Selected quad for the lemma: prince_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
prince_n king_n lord_n orange_n 3,081 5 10.2663 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A11516 The historie of the Councel of Trent Conteining eight bookes. In which (besides the ordinarie actes of the Councell) are declared many notable occurrences, which happened in Christendome, during the space of fourtie yeeres and more. And, particularly, the practises of the Court of Rome, to hinder the reformation of their errors, and to maintaine their greatnesse. Written in Italian by Pietro Soaue Polano, and faithfully translated into English by Nathanael Brent.; Historia del Concilio tridentino. English Sarpi, Paolo, 1552-1623.; Brent, Nathaniel, Sir, 1573?-1652. 1629 (1629) STC 21762; ESTC S116697 1,096,909 905

There are 123 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

catholic_n other_o say_v it_o will_v be_v general_o good_a to_o handle_v these_o controversy_n often_o because_o the_o party_n will_v by_o this_o mean_n become_v familiar_a malice_n and_o other_o bad_a affection_n will_v cease_v and_o many_o way_n of_o composition_n may_v be_v find_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o course_n to_o extirpate_v the_o evil_a that_o have_v take_v such_o deep_a root_n for_o the_o court_n be_v divide_v under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v be_v reconcile_v except_o all_o obstinacy_n lay_v aside_o they_o do_v tolerate_v one_o another_o and_o take_v that_o cloak_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o unquiet_a and_o turbulent_a people_n with_o which_o they_o cover_v their_o bad_a action_n the_o pope_n understand_v that_o the_o colloquy_n be_v dissolve_v without_o do_v please_v wherewith_o the_o pope_n be_v well_o please_v any_o thing_n be_v very_o glad_a and_o much_o commend_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o tornon_n more_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o jesuite_n please_v he_o and_o say_v he_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o ancient_a saint_n have_v without_o respect_n of_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n maintain_v god_n cause_n and_o upbraid_v the_o queen_n to_o her_o face_n on_o the_o contrary_a he_o reprehend_v the_o oration_n of_o the_o chancellor_n say_v kingdom_n the_o chancellor_n of_o france_n be_v blame_v in_o rome_n together_o with_o the_o whole_a government_n of_o that_o kingdom_n it_o be_v heretical_a in_o many_o part_n and_o threaten_v to_o call_v he_o into_o the_o inquisition_n the_o court_n also_o when_o it_o be_v diwlge_v to_o they_o be_v distaste_v with_o it_o and_o conjecture_v that_o all_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n have_v the_o same_o disposition_n towards_o rome_n and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n have_v much_o ado_n to_o defend_v himself_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n be_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v as_o france_n the_o entertainment_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n in_o france_n be_v of_o affinity_n to_o the_o matter_n whereof_o i_o write_v that_o prelate_n be_v receive_v at_o the_o first_o by_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n with_o much_o honour_n and_o have_v present_v the_o pope_n letter_n of_o credence_n be_v acknowledge_v for_o legate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n by_o their_o majesty_n by_o the_o prince_n and_o clergy_n but_o the_o parliament_n have_v discover_v that_o among_o his_o commission_n one_o be_v to_o desire_v a_o revocation_n or_o moderation_n at_o the_o least_o of_o the_o thing_n accord_v in_o the_o state_n of_o orleans_n the_o last_o of_o january_n concern_v the_o distribution_n of_o benefice_n and_o particular_o the_o prohibition_n of_o pay_v annates_fw-la to_o rome_n and_o send_v money_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o obtain_v benefice_n there_o or_o other_o favour_n do_v immediate_o publish_v the_o decree_n which_o have_v not_o be_v punish_v until_o that_o time_n under_o the_o date_n of_o the_o thirteen_o of_o september_n that_o the_o cardinal_n may_v not_o obtain_v his_o purpose_n and_o do_v resolve_v not_o to_o give_v the_o legate_n leave_v to_o use_v the_o faculty_n give_v he_o by_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o kingdom_n be_v that_o a_o legate_n can_v exercise_v his_o office_n if_o his_o faculty_n be_v not_o first_o present_v and_o examine_v in_o parliament_n and_o regulate_v and_o moderate_v by_o a_o decree_n thereof_o and_o confirm_v in_o that_o form_n by_o the_o king_n brief_a so_o that_o when_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o legation_n be_v present_v to_o be_v as_o they_o say_v approve_a it_o be_v refuse_v by_o the_o chancellor_n and_o parliament_n allege_v that_o it_o be_v already_o determine_v not_o to_o use_v any_o more_o dispensation_n against_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o collation_n of_o benefice_n against_o the_o canon_n but_o the_o cardinal_n have_v a_o great_a affront_n in_o that_o pasquin_n be_v make_v and_o spread_v both_o in_o the_o court_n and_o city_n of_o paris_n concern_v the_o love_n of_o lucretia_n borgia_n his_o mother_n and_o pope_n alexander_n the_o sixth_o his_o grandfather_n by_o the_o mother_n side_n with_o repetition_n of_o the_o obscenity_n diwlge_v throughout_o all_o italy_n in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o popedom_n which_o make_v the_o cardinal_n ridiculous_a to_o the_o people_n the_o first_o thing_n he_o undertake_v be_v to_o hinder_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o reformatist_n who_o after_o the_o colloquy_n do_v practice_v it_o more_o free_o than_o before_o and_o use_v persuasion_n and_o make_v secret_a promise_n to_o the_o minister_n and_o because_o he_o have_v no_o credit_n with_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o kindred_n with_o the_o house_n of_o guise_n for_o which_o reason_n also_o he_o be_v hold_v suspect_v by_o all_o the_o opposite_n of_o that_o family_n to_o gain_v reputation_n he_o make_v acquaintance_n with_o the_o noble_n of_o the_o huguenot_n faction_n and_o go_v to_o their_o feast_n and_o sometime_o be_v present_a at_o their_o sermon_n hugonot_n his_o familiarity_n with_o the_o hugonot_n in_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o gentleman_n by_o all_o which_o he_o gain_v nothing_o because_o many_o thought_n he_o do_v it_o as_o legate_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n displease_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n rome_n be_v displease_v with_o his_o action_n the_o queen_n of_o france_n understand_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n take_v the_o colloquy_n in_o ill_a part_n send_v jaques_n de_fw-fr montbrun_n express_o to_o he_o who_o make_v a_o large_a colloquy_n the_o q._n mother_n send_v a_o ambassador_n into_o spain_n to_o excuse_v the_o colloquy_n excuse_n that_o all_o be_v do_v for_o necessity_n and_o not_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o that_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n without_o speak_v any_o more_o of_o a_o nationall_n council_n be_v resolve_v to_o send_v their_o bishop_n to_o trent_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v the_o king_n answer_v he_o in_o general_a word_n and_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o duke_n of_o alva_n who_o have_v hear_v his_o ambaslage_n say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v sorry_a that_o in_o a_o kingdom_n so_o near_o and_o so_o near_o ally_v to_o he_o in_o kindred_n religion_n shall_v be_v so_o ill_o handle_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o that_o severity_n which_o henry_n use_v in_o a_o mercurial_a congregation_n and_o francis_n in_o amboise_n not_o long_o since_o he_o pray_v the_o queen_n to_o make_v provision_n in_o regard_n the_o danger_n of_o france_n belong_v to_o he_o also_o he_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o council_n to_o employ_v all_o his_o force_n and_o his_o life_n also_o to_o extinguish_v the_o common_a pestilence_n whereunto_o he_o be_v solicit_v by_o the_o grandee_n and_o people_n of_o france_n the_o wise_a spaniard_n think_v france_n the_o spaniard_n will_v have_v cure_v y_o e_o malady_n of_o flanders_n with_o the_o medicine_n of_o france_n to_o cure_v the_o malady_n of_o flanders_n by_o the_o medicine_n of_o france_n which_o be_v not_o less_o but_o only_o be_v less_o apparent_a and_o tumultuous_a the_o king_n of_o spain_n can_v never_o make_v the_o state_n assemble_v to_o obtain_v a_o contribution_n or_o donative_n but_o private_a assembly_n in_o cambray_n valentia_n and_o tornay_n be_v discover_v the_o magistrate_n have_v forbid_v they_o and_o imprison_v some_o of_o they_o they_o put_v themselves_o into_o arm_n with_o great_a danger_n of_o rebellion_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n and_o count_n egmont_n be_v open_a favourer_n of_o they_o especial_o after_o that_o the_o prince_n have_v marry_v anne_n daughter_n of_o maurice_n duke_n of_o saxony_n saxony_n the_o prince_n of_o orange_n marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o duke_n of_o saxony_n decease_v which_o do_v much_o displease_v the_o king_n foresee_v what_o issue_n such_o a_o marriage_n may_v have_v contract_v by_o one_o of_o his_o subject_n with_o a_o protestant_n of_o so_o great_a adherence_n yet_o the_o spaniard_n speak_v as_o if_o flanders_n have_v be_v sound_a and_o that_o they_o fear_v infection_n in_o france_n only_o which_o they_o will_v have_v purge_v with_o war_n and_o the_o ambassador_n be_v answer_v concern_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n of_o who_o business_n he_o have_v commission_n to_o treat_v that_o he_o deserve_v nothing_o for_o the_o small_a care_n he_o have_v of_o religion_n and_o that_o if_o he_o will_v have_v favour_n he_o shall_v first_o move_v war_n against_o the_o hugonot_n in_o france_n the_o queen_n also_o excuse_v the_o same_o colloquy_n to_o his_o holiness_n by_o the_o king_n ambassador_n in_o rome_n tell_v he_o that_o to_o put_v the_o hugonot_n to_o silence_n who_o say_v they_o be_v persecute_v before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o to_o appease_v their_o commotion_n the_o king_n be_v force_v to_o grant_v they_o public_a audience_n in_o the_o
not_o perform_v its_o duty_n and_o that_o which_o be_v expect_v from_o it_o by_o so_o holy_a and_o necessary_a a_o reformation_n to_o call_v a_o nationall_n have_v first_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o god_n and_o man_n by_o continual_a persuasion_n use_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o obtain_v of_o they_o a_o remedy_n against_o the_o common_a evil_n that_o to_o effect_v this_o with_o great_a ease_n he_o have_v dispatch_v the_o lord_n of_o oysel_n to_o the_o catholic_a king_n and_o the_o lord_n d'_fw-fr allegres_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o command_v birague_n that_o after_o he_o have_v perform_v his_o charge_n with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n he_o shall_v pass_v to_o the_o emperor_n to_o try_v if_o by_o mean_n of_o these_o prince_n be_v may_v gain_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v much_o distaste_v with_o the_o peace_n as_o well_o for_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o authority_n as_o because_o it_o be_v conclude_v without_o his_o knowledge_n have_v make_v so_o great_a contribution_n to_o the_o war_n but_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v displease_v more_o for_o be_v by_o his_o soldier_n a_o party_n in_o the_o war_n and_o the_o victory_n and_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o he_o think_v all_o be_v lose_v and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o conclude_v a_o peace_n without_o he_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o religion_n which_o he_o undertake_v to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v especial_o have_v so_o great_a interest_n therein_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o damage_n he_o do_v receive_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o low_a country_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o every_o prosperity_n of_o the_o hugonot_n in_o france_n will_v encourage_v the_o people_n of_o flanders_n and_o strong_a than_o they_o more_o in_o their_o contumacy_n for_o these_o reason_n the_o catholic_a ambassador_n in_o france_n make_v great_a complaint_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n why_o these_o extraordinary_a ambassage_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n and_o into_o spain_n to_o make_v know_v that_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n be_v not_o induce_v to_o make_v this_o accord_n by_o their_o own_o will_n but_o by_o mere_a necessity_n and_o for_o fear_v that_o gross_a army_n will_v be_v send_v out_o of_o germany_n to_o the_o hugonot_n which_o as_o be_v report_v be_v prepare_v about_o strasburg_n and_o in_o other_o place_n for_o those_o dutch_a man_n who_o have_v make_v war_n in_o france_n be_v return_v home_o load_v with_o spoil_n they_o invite_v other_o to_o go_v thither_o and_o make_v themselves_o rich_a neither_o be_v they_o without_o fear_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n will_v upon_o that_o occasion_n assay_v to_o 〈◊〉_d monte_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o city_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n will_v assist_v 〈◊〉_d hugonot_n more_o potent_o than_o she_o have_v do_v to_o possess_v some_o other_o place_n 〈◊〉_d already_o she_o have_v possess_v haure_n the_o grace_n but_o beside_o this_o principal_a end_n of_o both_o the_o ambassage_n d'oysel_n be_v afterward_o to_o make_v a_o proposition_n for_o translate_n the_o council_n from_o trent_n to_o constance_n worm_n ausburg_n or_o some_o other_o place_n in_o germany_n and_o to_o represent_v to_o the_o king_n that_o in_o regard_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v for_o the_o dutch_a english_a scottish_a and_o part_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o other_o nation_n who_o be_v resolute_a not_o to_o adhere_v to_o nor_o ever_o to_o accept_v that_o of_o trent_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o continue_v in_o that_o place_n conde_n be_v author_n of_o this_o negotiation_n who_o hope_v by_o this_o mean_n if_o it_o do_v succeed_v to_o strengthen_v his_o party_n by_o unite_n it_o to_o the_o interest_n of_o so_o many_o kingdom_n and_o prince_n and_o to_o weaken_v the_o oatholiques_n by_o promote_a difficulty_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o it_o do_v not_o take_v effect_n for_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v hear_v the_o proposition_n which_o i_o say_v by_o way_n of_o anticipation_n that_o i_o may_v not_o return_v to_o this_o matter_n do_v perceive_v what_o the_o aim_n be_v and_o make_v a_o full_a answer_n that_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v in_o trent_n with_o all_o the_o solemnity_n with_o consent_n of_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v superiority_n in_o that_o city_n as_o in_o the_o other_o that_o be_v name_v and_o may_v give_v full_a security_n to_o all_o in_o case_n the_o former_a safe_a conduct_n be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o favour_n it_o in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v and_o accept_v the_o determination_n thereof_o and_o he_o advise_v the_o pope_n of_o all_o assure_v he_o he_o will_v never_o change_v that_o resolution_n the_o french_a man_n in_o trent_n think_v it_o superfluous_a to_o make_v instance_n to_o the_o father_n as_o the_o king_n have_v command_v before_o the_o return_n of_o morone_n it_o be_v general_o resolve_v that_o all_o conciliary_a action_n shall_v be_v defer_v until_o then_o but_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o dispatch_v that_o cardinal_n and_o inform_v lorraine_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o for_o diverse_a accident_n and_o because_o the_o proposition_n be_v of_o the_o weight_n and_o importance_n as_o that_o they_o do_v deserve_v mature_a deliberation_n and_o consultation_n he_o have_v not_o be_v able_a as_o yet_o to_o give_v a_o resolute_a answer_n but_o he_o hope_v it_o shall_v be_v such_o as_o to_o make_v all_o man_n know_v that_o his_o action_n be_v answerable_a to_o his_o desire_n to_o see_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n set_v straight_o for_o the_o common_a benefit_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o the_o occasion_n and_o urgent_a necessity_n of_o his_o other_o province_n he_o resolve_v to_o continue_v his_o residence_n in_o isprue_a to_o favour_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n by_o his_o presence_n until_o he_o have_v hope_n to_o see_v some_o good_a fruit_n this_o delay_n do_v not_o please_v morone_n not_o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v refer_v as_o he_o do_v all_o the_o negotiation_n to_o the_o divine_n and_o counsellor_n and_o both_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n do_v doubt_v that_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v defer_v until_o he_o have_v hear_v birague_n who_o as_o they_o be_v inform_v be_v to_o propose_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n into_o germany_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o hugonot_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n be_v resolute_a not_o to_o consent_v as_o well_o by_o his_o own_o inclination_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o instance_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o all_o the_o court._n and_o he_o marvel_v at_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o frenchman_n who_o demand_v reformation_n and_o a_o translation_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o supply_n from_o the_o clergy_n for_o payment_n of_o the_o king_n de●ts_n and_o yet_o will_v make_v show_n to_o be_v favourer_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o frenchman_n be_v assure_v they_o can_v obtain_v nothing_o fit_a for_o their_o 〈…〉_o ce_fw-fr so_o long_o as_o the_o italian_n do_v make_v the_o mayor_n part_n begin_v to_o despair_v and_o to_o hold_v no_o esteem_n of_o the_o council_n while_o it_o remain_v in_o trent_n therefore_o they_o take_v from_o the_o divine_n send_v by_o the_o king_n their_o public_a allowance_n and_o give_v they_o all_o leave_n either_o to_o depart_v or_o 〈…〉_o ine_z there_o so_o that_o almost_o all_o go_v away_o one_o after_o another_o the_o two_o benedictines_n remain_v until_o the_o end_n who_o be_v ●haintained_v by_o chest_n monastery_n as_o also_o hugonius_n who_o the_o papalin_n cause_v to_o be_v lodge_v and_o defray_v in_o the_o monastery_n and_o give_v he_o fifty_o crown_n every_o three_o month_n lorraine_n have_v 〈…〉_o ed_z the_o all●gations_n send_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o make_v a_o conjure_v upon_o they_o send_v it_o to_o his_o majesty_n 〈◊〉_d think_v allegation_n the_o conjure_v of_o 〈…〉_o upon_o the_o 〈…〉_o allegation_n he_o have_v do_v all_o secret_o but_o hagonot_n have_v not_o only_o discover_v it_o but_o give_v a_o copy_n to_o the_o legate_n who_o expect_v morone_n short_o write_v by_o order_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o bishop_n depart_v from_o trent_n that_o they_o shall_v return_v to_o resume_v the_o action_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o a_o congregation_n be_v make_v the_o ten_o of_o may_n to_o read_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o scotland_n present_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n in_o which_o she_o declare_v that_o she_o do_v submit_v herself_o to_o the_o council_n make_v mention_n of_o her_o succession_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n promise_v that_o in_o case_n it_o
church_n and_o of_o god_n people_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o or_o as_o if_o they_o be_v pastor_n but_o of_o sheep_n and_o ox_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o body_n and_o neglect_v their_o soul_n they_o remember_v not_o that_o they_o be_v god_n servant_n choose_v of_o purpose_n to_o serve_v he_o ezekias_n go_v not_o into_o his_o own_o house_n before_o he_o see_v god_n temple_n purify_v king_n david_n say_v i_o will_v not_o give_v any_o sleep_n unto_o my_o eye_n nor_o suffer_v my_o eye_n lid_n to_o slumber_n until_o i_o have_v find_v a_o place_n for_o the_o lord_n a_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n o_o that_o christian_a prince_n will_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o say_v the_o lord_n understand_v o_o you_o king_n and_o learn_v you_o that_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n that_o be_v man_n choose_v by_o god_n to_o honour_v his_o name_n thou_o who_o i_o have_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o place_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o dignity_n and_o honour_n and_o set_v thou_o over_o my_o people_n when_o thou_o be_v so_o careful_a to_o build_v and_o adorn_v thy_o own_o house_n do_v but_o think_v with_o thyself_o how_o thou_o can_v contemn_v my_o house_n or_o how_o do_v thou_o pray_v daily_o that_o thy_o kingdom_n may_v be_v confirm_v to_o thou_o and_o thy_o posterity_n be_v it_o that_o my_o name_n may_v be_v contemn_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o my_o christ_n may_v be_v put_v down_o that_o my_o servant_n for_o my_o sake_n may_v be_v slay_v before_o thy_o eye_n that_o tyranny_n may_v be_v further_o spread_v my_o people_n always_o deceive_v and_o scandal_n confirm_v by_o thou_o woe_n unto_o he_o by_o who_o scandal_n come_v woe_n also_o unto_o he_o by_o who_o it_o be_v confirm_v thou_o abhor_v material_a blood_n how_o much_o more_o the_o blood_n of_o soul_n thou_o remember_v what_o happen_v to_o antiochus_n herod_n and_o julian_n i_o will_v give_v thy_o kingdom_n to_o thy_o enemy_n because_o thou_o have_v sin_v against_o i_o i_o change_v time_n and_o season_n i_o put_v down_o and_o raise_v up_o king_n that_o thou_o may_v understand_v that_o i_o be_o the_o most_o high_a that_o i_o have_v power_n over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n and_o give_v it_o to_o who_o i_o will_v i_o bring_v low_a and_o i_o exalt_v i_o glorify_v they_o that_o glorify_v i_o and_o put_v to_o shame_v those_o that_o despise_v i_o epistola_fw-la reu._n p._n joannis_n ivelli_fw-la episcopi_fw-la sarisburiensis_n ad_fw-la virum_fw-la nobilem_fw-la d._n scipionem_fw-la patricium_n venetum_n 1_o scribis_fw-la ad_fw-la i_o familiariter_fw-la pro_fw-la ea_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la quae_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la summa_fw-la semper_fw-la fuit_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la usque_fw-la tempore_fw-la quo_fw-la und_fw-ge viximus_fw-la pataviae_n tu_fw-la in_o reip._n tuus_fw-la tractatione_n occupatus_fw-la ego_fw-la in_o studijs_fw-la literarum_fw-la mirari_fw-la te_fw-la tecumque_fw-la alios_fw-la istîc_fw-la multos_fw-la cum_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempore_fw-la concilium_fw-la generale_fw-mi componendae_fw-la religionis_fw-la &_o contentionis_fw-la tollendae_fw-la causa_fw-la tridenti_n à_fw-la pontifice_fw-la indictum_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o eo_fw-la iam_fw-la reliquae_fw-la omnes_fw-la nationes_fw-la undique_fw-la convenerunt_fw-la solum_fw-la angliae_fw-la regnum_fw-la nec_fw-la legatum_fw-la eo_fw-la aliquem_fw-la misisse_fw-la nec_fw-la absentiam_fw-la svam_fw-la per_fw-la nuntio_n aut_fw-la litter_n as_o excusasse_v sed_fw-la sine_fw-la consilio_fw-la omnem_fw-la prope_fw-la rationem_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o avitae_fw-la religionis_fw-la immutasse_fw-la quorum_fw-la alterum_fw-la superbae_fw-la contumaciae_fw-la videri_fw-la ais_fw-la alterum_fw-la perniciosi_fw-la schismatis_fw-la nefas_fw-la enim_fw-la esse_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la sanctissimam_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la defugiat_fw-la rom._n pont._n aut_fw-la vocatus_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la se_fw-la subducat_fw-la controversias_fw-la autem_fw-la de_fw-la religione_fw-la non_fw-la alibi_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o huiusmodi_fw-la conventibus_fw-la fas_fw-la esse_fw-la disceptari_fw-la ibi_fw-la enim_fw-la esse_fw-la patriarchas_fw-la &_o episcopos_fw-la ibi_fw-la esse_fw-la ex_fw-la omni_fw-la genere_fw-la hominum_fw-la viros_fw-la doctissimos_fw-la ab_fw-la illorum_fw-la ore_fw-la petendam_fw-la esse_fw-la veritatem_fw-la ibi_fw-la esse_fw-la lumina_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ibi_fw-la esse_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la pios_fw-la principes_fw-la semper_fw-la omnes_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la incidisset_fw-la ambigui_fw-la in_o cultu_fw-la dei_fw-la illud_fw-la semper_fw-la ad_fw-la publicam_fw-la consultationem_fw-la retulisse_fw-la mosen_n josuam_fw-la davidem_fw-la ezechiam_fw-la josiam_n aliosque_fw-la judices_fw-la reges_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la de_fw-la rebus_fw-la divinis_fw-la non_fw-la alibi_fw-la quàm_fw-la in_o episcoporum_fw-la concilio_n deliber_fw-la ass_n apostolos_fw-la christi_fw-la piosque_fw-la patres_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la concilia_fw-la celebrasse_v sic_fw-la veritatem_fw-la emicuisse_fw-la sic_fw-la expugnatas_fw-la esse_fw-la haereses_fw-la sic_fw-la arrium_fw-la sic_fw-la eunomium_n sic_fw-la eutychetem_fw-la sic_fw-la macedonium_n sic_fw-la pelagium_fw-la succubuisse_fw-la sic_fw-la hodie_fw-la dissidia_fw-la orbis_fw-la terrarum_fw-la componi_fw-la &_o ruinas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sarciri_fw-la posse_fw-la si_fw-la positis_fw-la contentionibus_fw-la &_o studijs_fw-la veniatur_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la sine_fw-la concilio_n autem_fw-la quicquam_fw-la in_o religione_fw-la tentari_fw-la nefas_fw-la esse_fw-la 2_o atque_fw-la haec_fw-la quidem_fw-la ferè_fw-la literarum_fw-la tuarum_fw-la summa_fw-la fuit_fw-la ego_fw-la verò_fw-la non_fw-la id_fw-la mihi_fw-la nunc_fw-la sumo_fw-la ut_fw-la tibi_fw-la pro_fw-la regno_fw-la angliae_fw-la quo_fw-la quidque_fw-la consilio_fw-la factum_fw-la sit_fw-la quicquam_fw-la respondeam_fw-la neque_fw-la te_fw-la id_fw-la à_fw-la i_o requirere_fw-la aut_fw-la velle_fw-la arbitror_fw-la regum_fw-la consilia_fw-la recondita_fw-la &_o arcana_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la debent_fw-la nosti_fw-la illud_fw-la nec_fw-la passim_fw-la nec_fw-la omnibus_fw-la nec_fw-la quibuslibet_fw-la tamen_fw-la pro_fw-la nostra_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la veteri_fw-la &_o privata_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la quoniam_fw-la te_fw-la id_fw-la video_fw-la ita_fw-la prolixè_fw-la petere_fw-la quid_fw-la mihi_fw-la videatur_fw-la breviter_fw-la &_o amicè_fw-la respondebo_fw-la sed_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la ait_fw-la ille_fw-la quantum_fw-la sciam_fw-la poteroque_fw-la idque_fw-la tibi_fw-la non_fw-la dubito_fw-la fore_fw-la satis_fw-la 3_o miramur_fw-la inquis_fw-la legatos_fw-la ex_fw-la anglia_fw-it ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la non_fw-la venire_fw-la obsecro_fw-la te_fw-la an_fw-mi angli_fw-la soli_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la non_fw-la veniunt_fw-la a_o ergo_fw-la tu_fw-la concilio_n interfuisti_fw-la a_o censum_fw-la egisti_fw-la a_o capita_fw-la singula_fw-la enumerasti_fw-la a_o videbas_fw-la alius_fw-la nationes_fw-la undique_fw-la omnes_fw-la convenisse_fw-la praeter_fw-la anglos_n quod_fw-la si_fw-la tibi_fw-la mirari_fw-la tam_fw-la cordi_fw-la est_fw-la cur_n non_fw-la miraris_fw-la hoc_fw-la quoque_fw-la aut_fw-la tres_fw-la illos_fw-la memorabiles_fw-la patriarchas_fw-la constantinopolitanum_n antiochenum_fw-la alexandrinum_fw-la aut_fw-la presbyterum_fw-la joannem_fw-la aut_fw-la graeco_n armenios_n medos_n persas_n egyptios_n mauritano_n aethiopas_n indos_n ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la non_fw-la venire_fw-la an_fw-mi enim_fw-la multi_fw-la ex_fw-la estis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la non_fw-it habent_fw-la episcopos_fw-la non_fw-it baptizantur_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-it sunt_fw-la appellanturque_fw-la christiani_n an_fw-mi verò_fw-la ab_fw-la istis_fw-la singulis_fw-la nationibus_fw-la venerunt_fw-la legati_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la an_fw-mi tu_fw-la hoc_fw-la potius_fw-la dices_fw-la papam_fw-la illos_fw-la non_fw-la vocasse_fw-la aut_fw-la ilios_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la vestris_fw-la sanctionibus_fw-la non_fw-la teneri_fw-la 4_o sed_fw-la nos_fw-la hoc_fw-la miramur_fw-la magis_fw-la papam_fw-la eos_fw-la quos_fw-la inauditos_fw-la indicta_fw-la causa_fw-la pro_fw-la hereticis_fw-la iam_fw-la antea_fw-la condemnavit_fw-la &_o publicè_fw-la excommunicatos_fw-la pronunciavit_fw-la eosdem_fw-la postea_fw-la vocare_fw-la voluisse_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la homines_fw-la enim_fw-la primum_fw-la damnari_fw-la at_o que_fw-la affici_fw-la supplicio_fw-la deinde_fw-la eosdem_fw-la vocari_fw-la in_o iudicium_fw-la absurdum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d verum_fw-la hoc_fw-la mihi_fw-la velim_fw-la responderi_fw-la utrum_fw-la id_fw-la agit_fw-fr pontifex_fw-la ut_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la quos_fw-la habet_fw-la pro_fw-la haereticis_fw-la in_o concilio_n de_fw-la religione_fw-la deliberet_fw-la a_o potius_fw-la ut_fw-la nos_fw-la ex_fw-la inferiori_fw-la loco_fw-la causam_fw-la dicamus_fw-la &_o vel_fw-la statim_fw-la mutemus_fw-la sententiam_fw-la vel_fw-la iterum_fw-la è_fw-la vestigio_fw-la condemnemur_fw-la alterum_fw-la nowm_fw-la est_fw-la &_o prorsus_fw-la nostrarum_fw-la partium_fw-la hominibus_fw-la iam_fw-la pridem_fw-la à_fw-la julio_n papa_n tertio_fw-la denegatum_fw-la alterum_fw-la ridiculum_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la id_fw-la put_v at_o anglos_n venturos_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la tantùm_fw-la ut_fw-la accusentur_fw-la &_o causam_fw-la dicant_fw-la apud_fw-la illum_fw-la praesertim_fw-la qui_fw-la iamdudum_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la à_fw-la nostris_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la à_fw-la suis_fw-la gravissimis_fw-la criminibus_fw-la accusetur_fw-la 5_o quod_fw-la si_fw-la anglia_fw-it sola_fw-la tibi_fw-la adeo_fw-la videtur_fw-la esse_fw-la contumax_n ubi_fw-la ergo_fw-la sunt_fw-la legati_fw-la regis_fw-la daniae_fw-la principum_fw-la germaniae_fw-la regis_fw-la suetiae_fw-la heluetiorum_n rhetiorum_fw-la liberarum_fw-la civitatum_fw-la regni_fw-la scotiae_fw-la ducatus_fw-la prussiae_n cum_fw-la in_o concilio_n vestro_fw-la tot_fw-la desiderentur_fw-la nationes_fw-la christianae_n ineptum_fw-la
the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n contain_v eight_o book_n in_o which_o beside_o the_o ordinary_a act_n of_o the_o council_n be_v declare_v many_o notable_a occurrence_n which_o happen_v in_o christendom_n during_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n and_o more_o and_o particular_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n hinder_v the_o reformation_n of_o their_o error_n and_o to_o maintain_v their_o greatness_n write_a in_o italian_a by_o pietro_n soave_fw-it polano_n and_o faithful_o translate_v into_o english_a by_o nathanael_n brent_n unto_o this_o second_o edition_n be_v add_v diverse_a observable_a passage_n and_o epistle_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o history_n specify_v in_o the_o next_o page_n diev_n et_fw-fr mon_fw-fr dro●_n london_n print_v by_o bonham_n norton_n and_o john_n bill_n printer_n to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n m._n dc_o xxii_o the_o appendix_n of_o this_o second_o edition_n contain_v 1_o a_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o maurice_n the_o emperor_n 2_o a_o passage_n of_o the_o history_n of_o fr._n guicciardine_n florentine_n concern_v pope_n alex._n 6._o leave_v out_o of_o his_o three_o book_n in_o the_o print_a copy_n 3_o a_o second_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o author_n contain_v a_o large_a discourse_n of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n attein_v to_o their_o greatness_n that_o they_o now_o enjoy_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o four_o book_n 4_o 〈◊〉_d three_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o author_n leave_v out_o of_o his_o 10._o book_n 5_o certain_a passage_n out_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o lord_n de_fw-fr lansac_n pibr●●c_n ferrier_n etc._n etc._n take_v forth_o of_o the_o instruction_n and_o missy_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o their_o ambassador_n send_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n publish_v in_o french_a an._n 1608._o 6_o andr._n 〈…〉_o udithiu_n bishop_n of_o quinquecclesiae_fw-la in_o hungary_n his_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o maximilian_n 2._o emperor_n 7_o a_o epistle_n ●f_a bishop_n jewel_n unto_o signior_n scipio_n a_o senator_n of_o venice_n touch_v the_o cause_n move_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n now_o first_o publish_v according_a to_o the_o original_a annex_v 8_o last_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n of_o dudithius_n write_v by_o himself_o in_o latin_a to_o his_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n i_o offer_v to_o your_o majesty_n view_n the_o true_a and_o most_o judicious_a ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o either_o modern_a time_n or_o any_o antiquity_n have_v afford_v to_o the_o world_n impair_v i_o confess_v in_o beauty_n as_o be_v transport_v out_o of_o the_o natural_a lustre_n both_o of_o stile_n and_o phrase_n by_o a_o rude_a and_o unskilful_a translator_n but_o nothing_o alter_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o it_o handle_v the_o author_n a_o stranger_n to_o these_o part_n conversant_a only_a where_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v true_o preach_v be_v move_v to_o write_v it_o as_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o all_o christendom_n so_o particular_o in_o contemplation_n of_o your_o majesty_n service_n for_o as_o you_o hold_v the_o high_a place_n among_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o be_v god_n great_a lieutenant_n under_o the_o whole_a cope_n of_o heaven_n so_o your_o admirable_a perfection_n of_o wisdom_n learning_n justice_n and_o religion_n with_o which_o your_o royal_a breast_n be_v enrich_v beyond_o all_o comparison_n to_o be_v make_v with_o any_o other_o cast_v forth_o their_o bright_a shine_a ray_n into_o all_o country_n and_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n and_o rouse_v up_o the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o worthy_a even_o in_o place_n the_o far_a remote_a to_o labour_v in_o the_o build_n up_o or_o repair_v of_o god_n church_n so_o far_o as_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n under_o which_o they_o live_v and_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o life_n which_o nature_n bind_v they_o to_o preserve_v do_v give_v they_o leave_v in_o which_o number_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o present_a treatise_n the_o end_n and_o scope_n whereof_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n by_o discovery_n of_o those_o practice_n which_o for_o many_o year_n have_v be_v conceal_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n the_o advancement_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o religion_n i_o know_v not_o to_o who_o it_o may_v be_v address_v more_o just_o then_o to_o the_o great_a majesty_n upon_o the_o whole_a surface_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o chief_a defender_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n among_o us._n and_o sure_o if_o ever_o any_o book_n except_o only_o the_o book_n of_o god_n do_v deserve_v the_o protection_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o patron_n it_o be_v this_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o of_o all_o the_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n religion_n be_v of_o the_o great_a consequence_n and_o in_o religion_n ecumenicall_a counsel_n next_o after_o the_o holy_a writ_n have_v ever_o carry_v the_o great_a sway_n which_o be_v true_a and_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v be_v cause_n of_o infinite_a blessing_n but_o be_v pretend_v only_o and_o govern_v by_o humane_a policy_n and_o art_n have_v bring_v forth_o as_o many_o mischief_n and_o affliction_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o in_o this_o of_o trent_n it_o be_v plain_o discover_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o who_o eight_o live_v and_o die_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o treaty_n thereof_o in_o stead_n of_o be_v christ_n holy_a vicar_n as_o they_o pretend_v have_v be_v the_o great_a and_o most_o pernicious_a quacksalve_a juggler_n that_o ever_o the_o earth_n do_v bear_v it_o will_v be_v infinite_a to_o relate_v the_o stratagem_n they_o use_v to_o divert_v it_o before_o it_o begin_v their_o posting_n to_o and_o fro_o to_o hinder_v the_o propose_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o think_v will_v diminish_v their_o profit_n or_o pull_v down_o their_o pride_n their_o policy_n to_o enthrall_v the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n by_o hope_n and_o fear_n their_o diligence_n in_o send_v their_o adherent_n to_o trent_n and_o so_o by_o procure_v a_o mayor_n part_n of_o voice_n to_o make_v themselves_o the_o absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o the_o determination_n that_o pass_v by_o which_o device_n that_o which_o be_v desire_v by_o godly_a man_n as_o the_o only_a remedy_n against_o all_o the_o error_n in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n both_o in_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o especial_o against_o the_o great_a enormity_n of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o have_v be_v wrest_v to_o a_o quite_o contrary_a use_n to_o weaken_v the_o lawful_a right_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n to_o pervert_v the_o doctrine_n and_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o to_o lift_v up_o the_o papacy_n to_o a_o unsufferable_a height_n of_o pride_n this_o be_v that_o holy_a and_o great_a synod_n of_o which_o the_o romanist_n do_v boast_v themselves_o so_o much_o and_o indeed_o every_o one_o of_o any_o mean_a capacity_n may_v easy_o know_v that_o many_o controverted_a point_n between_o they_o and_o the_o true_a professor_n necessary_a as_o they_o maintain_v for_o the_o save_n of_o man_n soul_n have_v never_o any_o colourable_a establishment_n but_o this_o which_o insensible_o creep_v in_o by_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o vulgar_a or_o secret_o set_v on_o foot_n by_o those_o that_o be_v ambitious_a and_o covetous_a or_o at_o the_o best_a blind_o zealous_a have_v always_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o orthodox_n even_o public_o until_o the_o malicious_a industry_n of_o the_o great_a part_n put_v to_o silence_n though_o never_o quite_o overcome_v the_o paucity_n of_o the_o better_a so_o that_o their_o vaunt_a of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o infancy_n of_o we_o be_v vain_a and_o idle_a and_o if_o they_o will_v glory_v as_o usual_o they_o do_v of_o the_o universality_n of_o their_o doctrine_n because_o it_o be_v establish_v forsooth_o by_o the_o holy_a ecumenicall_a council_n of_o trent_n as_o they_o term_v it_o none_o can_v better_o judge_v then_o your_o majesty_n how_o factious_a and_o how_o unlawful_a that_o assembly_n be_v and_o by_o this_o history_n the_o whole_a world_n may_v understand_v the_o weakness_n of_o that_o foundation_n the_o almighty_a bless_v your_o majesty_n with_o length_n of_o day_n strength_n of_o body_n loyalty_n of_o your_o people_n and_o with_o all_o imaginable_a happiness_n in_o your_o most_o royal_a progeny_n and_o in_o sway_v the_o sceptre_n of_o your_o dominion_n your_o sacred_a majesty_n most_o humble_a and_o most_o faithful_o devote_a subject_n nathanael_n brent_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n thou_o shall_v see_v in_o this_o book_n great_a variety_n of_o remarkable_a accident_n then_o before_o the_o read_n of_o it_o thou_o can_v have_v possible_o imagine_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n
thing_n else_o be_v treat_v of_o but_o the_o pope_n authority_n but_o that_o be_v call_v into_o question_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o dangerous_a for_o as_o in_o former_a time_n the_o pope_n strength_n consist_v in_o have_v recourse_n to_o counsel_n so_o now_o the_o security_n of_o the_o popedom_n consist_v in_o decline_v and_o avoid_v they_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o leo_n have_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n the_o same_o matter_n can_v not_o be_v handle_v or_o examine_v in_o a_o council_n without_o doubt_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n 80_o the_o emperor_n have_v receive_v the_o decree_n of_o noremberg_n be_v much_o move_v at_o it_o think_v that_o to_o treat_v and_o give_v so_o resolute_a a_o answer_n to_o a_o strange_a noremberg_n the_o emperor_n be_v distaste_v with_o the_o decree_n of_o noremberg_n prince_n without_o his_o knowledge_n in_o so_o important_a a_o matter_n be_v but_o small_a reputation_n to_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n neither_o do_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o decree_n please_v he_o foresee_v the_o pope_n displeasure_n who_o he_o desire_v to_o keep_v love_v 1_o 1525_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o and_o well_o affect_v towards_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o war_n which_o his_o captain_n then_o make_v with_o the_o frenchman_n wherefore_o he_o write_v back_o to_o the_o prince_n in_o germany_n complain_v that_o himself_o have_v condemn_v all_o the_o book_n of_o luther_n the_o diet_n restrain_v themselves_o only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v contumelious_a but_o he_o reprehend_v they_o more_o severe_o that_o they_o have_v decree_v the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n in_o germany_n and_o desire_v the_o legate_n to_o treat_v thereof_o with_o prince_n he_o wrt_v to_o the_o prince_n the_o pope_n as_o if_o this_o do_v not_o more_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o then_o unto_o they_o who_o if_o they_o think_v that_o a_o council_n will_v be_v so_o commodious_a for_o germany_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o he_o to_o obtain_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n howsoever_o he_o know_v also_o that_o this_o will_v be_v profitable_a for_o that_o country_n be_v resolute_a it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v yet_o in_o time_n and_o place_n when_o and_o where_o himself_o can_v be_v personal_o present_a but_o touch_v a_o new_a assembly_n at_o spira_n which_o they_o have_v ordain_v to_o order_v their_o matter_n of_o religion_n until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n he_o say_v that_o by_o no_o mean_a he_o will_v yield_v unto_o it_o yea_o he_o command_v they_o shall_v be_v careful_a to_o obey_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n worm_n and_o command_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n and_o that_o they_o handle_v no_o point_n of_o religion_n until_o a_o council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n order_n and_o he_o the_o emperor_n letter_n more_o imperious_a than_o germany_n be_v use_v to_o receive_v from_o his_o predecessor_n move_v very_o dangerous_a humour_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o prince_n which_o float_v up_o and_o down_o may_v easy_o have_v come_v to_o a_o troublesome_a conclusion_n 81_o but_o the_o move_n be_v soon_o stop_v and_o the_o year_n follow_v 1525._o have_v 1525_o 1525_o no_o negotiation_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o boar_n in_o germany_n rebel_v against_o the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n and_o every_o one_o be_v busy_v with_o the_o war_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o in_o italy_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n succeed_v the_o battle_n of_o pavia_n francis_n the_o french_a king_n be_v take_v prisoner_n in_o the_o battle_n at_o pavia_n pavia_n and_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n which_o so_o li●ted_v up_o the_o emperor_n mind_n that_o he_o think_v he_o have_v all_o the_o world_n in_o his_o power_n but_o afterward_o the_o league_n of_o many_o prince_n against_o he_o which_o be_v treat_v of_o and_o the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o king_n liberty_n give_v he_o business_n enough_o the_o pope_n also_o because_o italy_n be_v without_o defence_n in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n emperor_n the_o pope_n suspect_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o emperor_n minister_n think_v of_o his_o own_o case_n and_o how_o he_o may_v be_v join_v with_o other_o who_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v he_o against_o the_o emperor_n from_o who_o his_o mind_n be_v alienate_v see_v he_o be_v become_v so_o potent_a that_o the_o popedom_n remain_v at_o his_o discretion_n 82_o in_o the_o year_n 1526_o they_o return_v to_o the_o same_o treaty_n in_o germany_n and_o italy_n in_o germany_n all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v assemble_v at_o the_o diet_n in_o spira_n 1526_o 1526_o in_o the_o end_n of_o june_n it_o be_v consult_v of_o by_o special_a order_n from_o the_o emperor_n how_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v spira_n the_o diet_n of_o spira_n preserve_v and_o the_o transgressor_n punish_v the_o opinion_n be_v so_o various_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conclude_v any_o thing_n those_o that_o represent_v the_o emperor_n person_n 〈◊〉_d cause_v the_o imperial_a letter_n to_o be_v read_v where_o charles_n say_v that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o pass_v into_o italy_n and_o to_o rome_n for_o the_o crown_n and_o to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n wherefore_o he_o command_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v ordain_v in_o the_o diet_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n ceremony_n council_n the_o emperor_n promise_v to_o procure_v a_o council_n and_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o the_o form_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n shall_v be_v observe_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v patient_o bear_v that_o small_a delay_n until_o he_o have_v negotiate_v with_o the_o pope_n the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n which_o shall_v short_o be_v forby_n treat_v of_o matter_n of_o religion_n execute_v 1526_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o why_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n can_v not_o be_v execute_v in_o a_o diet_n rather_o hurt_n arise_v then_o good_a 83_o the_o city_n for_o the_o most_o part_n answer_v that_o their_o desire_n be_v to_o gratify_v and_o obey_v the_o emperor_n but_o that_o they_o see_v not_o the_o mean_n how_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o command_v in_o his_o letter_n because_o the_o controversy_n be_v increase_v and_o do_v increase_v still_o particular_o concern_v the_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n and_o if_o for_o the_o time_n past_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n can_v not_o be_v observe_v for_o fear_n of_o sedition_n the_o difficulty_n be_v then_o great_a as_o be_v declare_v to_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o if_o the_o emperor_n be_v present_a and_o inform_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o business_n he_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n concern_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o majesty_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n every_o one_o say_v he_o may_v have_v effect_v it_o when_o he_o write_v the_o letter_n because_o he_o be_v then_o in_o amity_n with_o the_o pope_n but_o afterward_o there_o be_v distaste_n between_o they_o and_o the_o pope_n have_v take_v arm_n against_o he_o it_o appear_v not_o how_o thing_n stand_v thus_o a_o council_n can_v be_v call_v for_o these_o respect_v some_o propose_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v entreat_v to_o grant_v a_o national_a council_n in_o germany_n to_o give_v remedy_n desire_v a_o nationall_n council_n in_o germany_n be_v desire_v to_o the_o danger_n that_o be_v imminent_a which_o if_o it_o please_v he_o not_o at_o least_o the_o better_a to_o withstand_v the_o most_o grievous_a sedition_n that_o he_o will_v be_v content_v to_o defer_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n until_o a_o general_a council_n but_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n say_v that_o no_o treaty_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n during_o the_o discord_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n but_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v defer_v until_o a_o better_a time_n 84_o the_o opinion_n be_v so_o diverse_a and_o such_o discord_n between_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n and_o those_o that_o be_v incline_v to_o luther_n doctrine_n be_v stir_v up_o that_o spira_n the_o prince_n do_v not_o agree_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n there_o appear_v manifest_a danger_n of_o civil_a war_n and_o many_o of_o the_o prince_n put_v themselves_o in_o order_n to_o depart_v but_o ferdinand_n and_o the_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o emperor_n see_v clear_o what_o dang_v 〈…〉_o d_o arise_v if_o the_o diet_n be_v dissolve_v with_o such_o dissension_n of_o mind_n and_o 〈◊〉_d prince_n depart_v without_o any_o decree_n because_o they_o will_v have_v proceed_v diverse_o with_o danger_n to_o have_v divide_v germany_n without_o hope_n of_o
reconciliation_n they_o endeavour_v to_o pacific_a the_o chief_a both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o side_n and_o in_o the_o end_n they_o come_v to_o a_o resolution_n to_o make_v a_o decree_n which_o though_o it_o conclude_v not_o in_o substance_n according_a to_o the_o emperor_n mind_n yet_o it_o show_v some_o appearance_n of_o agreement_n between_o the_o state_n and_o obedience_n towards_o his_o majesty_n the_o content_n of_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o give_v of_o order_n and_o form_n to_o the_o spira_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n affair_n of_o religion_n and_o for_o the_o maintain_n of_o liberty_n to_o celebrate_v a_o lawful_a council_n in_o germany_n or_o a_o universal_a of_o all_o christendom_n which_o may_v begin_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o year_n ambassador_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o the_o emperor_n to_o pray_v he_o that_o he_o will_v cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o the_o miserable_a and_o tumultuous_a state_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o to_o return_v into_o germany_n so_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v to_o provide_v for_o it_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n while_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o council_n necessary_a for_o the_o business_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n be_v obtain_v all_o the_o prince_n and_o state_n ought_v to_o govern_v themselves_o in_o their_o province_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o they_o may_v give_v a_o good_a account_n of_o their_o action_n to_o god_n and_o the_o emperor_n 85_o but_o in_o italy_n clement_n have_v pass_v the_o year_n before_o in_o grief_n of_o mind_n and_o fear_n think_v that_o sometime_o he_o see_v charles_n arm_v in_o rome_n to_o possess_v himself_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n and_o to_o regain_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n usurp_v by_o the_o art_n of_o his_o predecessor_n sometime_o set_v in_o a_o council_n to_o moderate_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o the_o church_n without_o which_o he_o well_o see_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o diminish_v the_o temporal_a and_o above_o all_o have_v conceive_v a_o bad_a presage_n that_o all_o the_o minister_n send_v into_o france_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o queen_n mother_n and_o the_o state_n be_v perish_v in_o the_o journey_n at_o last_o council_n the_o pope_n be_v distract_v with_o fear_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o end_n of_o march_n this_o year_n he_o take_v breathe_v a_o little_a understand_v that_o the_o king_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o return_v into_o france_n he_o send_v present_o to_o congratulate_v with_o he_o and_o to_o make_v a_o confederation_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o which_o be_v ratify_v in_o cugnac_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o of_o may_n between_o liberty_n he_o make_v a_o confederation_n with_o the_o french_a king_n set_v at_o liberty_n he_o that_o king_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o italy_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a league_n and_o have_v absolve_v the_o king_n from_o the_o oath_n take_v in_o spain_n for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o thing_n agree_v upon_o now_o deliver_v from_o fear_n a_o passion_n which_o have_v much_o power_n over_o he_o think_v he_o be_v in_o liberty_n and_o be_v much_o provoke_v that_o not_o only_o in_o rome_n and_o naples_n ordinance_n be_v publish_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o which_o more_o grieved_a he_o that_o in_o those_o day_n a_o spanish_a notary_n dare_v to_o appear_v public_o in_o the_o rota_n and_o command_v two_o napolitan_o in_o caesar_n name_n to_o desist_v from_o litigate_a in_o that_o court_n he_o resolve_v to_o declare_v his_o mind_n that_o he_o may_v encourage_v the_o confederate_n and_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o june_n he_o write_v unto_o charles_n a_o very_o charles_n write_v a_o severe_a brief_n to_o charles_n long_o brief_a in_o manner_n of_o a_o invective_n 〈◊〉_d have_v repeat_v the_o benefit_n which_o he_o have_v do_v he_o as_o well_o be_v cardinal_n as_o after_o his_o assumption_n to_o the_o popedom_n and_o the_o great_a offer_n which_o he_o have_v refuse_v from_o other_o prince_n to_o stand_v firm_a in_o his_o friendship_n see_v he_o be_v ill_o requite_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o correspondence_n neither_o in_o good_a will_n nor_o observation_n of_o promise_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a much_o matter_n of_o suspicion_n be_v give_v he_o and_o many_o offence_n commit_v by_o exciting_a new_a war_n in_o italy_n and_o elsewhere_o all_o which_o he_o repeat_v in_o particular_a lay_v the_o blame_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n upon_o the_o emperor_n show_v that_o the_o papal_a dignity_n be_v offend_v in_o all_o and_o pass_v to_o another_o kind_n of_o offence_n do_v unto_o he_o by_o publish_v law_n in_o spain_n and_o pragmatiques_n in_o naples_n against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n he_o conclude_v in_o the_o end_n not_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o denounce_v spiritual_a punishment_n but_o protest_v unto_o he_o that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v to_o do_v wrong_a cease_v to_o possess_v italy_n and_o to_o trouble_v other_o part_n of_o christendom_n he_o will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o the_o justice_n and_o liberty_n of_o his_o country_n wherein_o stand_v the_o protection_n of_o that_o holy_a sea_n but_o will_v move_v his_o just_a and_o holy_a arm_n against_o he_o not_o to_o offend_v he_o but_o to_o defend_v the_o public_a safety_n and_o his_o own_o proper_a dignity_n 86_o this_o dispatch_n be_v send_v into_o spain_n the_o next_o day_n he_o write_v and_o dispatch_v another_o brief_n to_o the_o emperor_n without_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o first_o former_a and_o afterward_o another_o more_o moderate_a than_o the_o former_a where_o he_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o for_o the_o maintain_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o provide_v against_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n he_o have_v be_v constrain_v to_o come_v to_o these_o deliberation_n which_o can_v not_o be_v omit_v with_o out_o fail_v to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a pope_n and_o a_o just_a prince_n wherein_o if_o his_o majesty_n will_v afford_v the_o remedy_n which_o be_v easy_a profitable_a and_o glorious_a for_o he_o to_o do_v he_o shall_v thereby_o deliver_v christendom_n from_o a_o great_a fear_n whereof_o his_o nuncio_n reside_v with_o he_o shall_v give_v he_o a_o account_n more_o at_o large_a he_o pray_v he_o for_o god_n sake_n to_o hear_v he_o and_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o public_a welfare_n and_o to_o contain_v within_o the_o term_n of_o justice_n the_o unbridled_a and_o injurious_a desire_n of_o his_o minister_n that_o other_o may_v rest_v secure_a of_o their_o good_n and_o life_n under_o these_o last_o word_n the_o pope_n comprehend_v principal_o pompeius_n cardinal_n colonna_n vespasianus_n and_o ascanius_n with_o other_o of_o that_o family_n who_o follow_v the_o imperial_a part_n and_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n from_o who_o he_o daily_o receive_v diverse_a opposition_n to_o his_o endeavour_n and_o which_o make_v great_a impression_n in_o his_o mind_n he_o fear_v also_o that_o they_o may_v bring_v the_o papacy_n into_o strait_n for_o the_o forename_a cardinal_n a_o man_n bold_a and_o proud_a content_v not_o himself_o to_o speak_v of_o he_o public_o as_o of_o one_o assume_v to_o the_o papacy_n by_o unlawful_a mean_n magnify_v what_o the_o house_n of_o colonna_n have_v do_v against_o other_o pope_n intruder_n as_o he_o name_v they_o and_o unlawful_o choose_v but_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v fatal_a to_o that_o family_n to_o hate_v the_o tyrannical_a pope_n and_o to_o they_o to_o be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o it_o and_o threaten_v he_o with_o a_o council_n and_o treat_v with_o all_o the_o emperor_n minister_n to_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n to_o call_v it_o whereby_o the_o pope_n be_v provoke_v to_o anger_n the_o better_a to_o prevent_v he_o publish_v a_o severe_a monitory_n against_o that_o cardinal_n cite_v he_o to_o rome_n under_o the_o great_a penalty_n and_o colonna_n the_o popesend_v a_o monitorie_a against_o card._n colonna_n censure_n in_o which_o also_o he_o touch_v manifest_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n and_o oblique_o the_o emperor_n but_o the_o war_n be_v not_o prosperous_o begin_v in_o lombardie_n the_o army_n of_o the_o french_a king_n not_o appear_v as_o yet_o and_o the_o christian_a army_n be_v discomfit_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o hungary_n king_n lewis_n dead_a the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o follow_v luther_n doctrine_n do_v still_o increase_v and_o all_o man_n require_v a_o council_n which_o may_v make_v a_o universal_a peace_n among_o christian_n and_o give_v a_o end_n to_o so_o great_a disorder_n 87_o the_o pope_n for_o these_o cause_n have_v first_o compose_v the_o difference_n with_o consistory_n
strength_n of_o authority_n 〈◊〉_d 1530_o clement_n charles_n henry_n 8._o francis_z 〈◊〉_d and_o with_o absolute_a command_n which_o will_v easy_o take_v good_a effect_n and_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v not_o rather_o to_o proceed_v to_o force_v of_o arm_n then_o let_v the_o reins_n lose_v to_o popular_a licence_n to_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o grandee_n and_o perverseness_n of_o the_o arch_a heretic_n these_o reason_n unseemly_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o friar_n julius_n de_fw-fr medici_n ganalier_n thereunto_o who_o condescend_v thereunto_o of_o malta_n for_o so_o the_o pope_n be_v call_v before_o he_o be_v create_v cardinal_n much_o more_o of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 7._o do_v notwithstanding_o prevail_v with_o charles_n be_v second_v by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o mercurius_n de_fw-fr gattinara_n the_o emperor_n chancellor_n and_o cardinal_n unto_o who_o the_o pope_n make_v many_o promise_n and_o particular_o that_o in_o the_o first_o promotion_n of_o cardinal_n which_o he_o then_o prepare_v to_o make_v he_o will_v have_v regard_n to_o his_o kindred_n and_o dependent_n and_o by_o the_o emperor_n proper_a inclination_n to_o have_v more_o absolute_a authority_n in_o germany_n then_o be_v grant_v to_o his_o grandfather_n or_o his_o father_n grandfather_n in_o bolonia_n all_o the_o solemn_a act_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o coronation_n be_v bolonia_n 1530_o the_o emperor_n be_v crown_v in_o bolonia_n perform_v which_o be_v finish_v the_o 14._o of_o february_n and_o caesar_n be_v resolve_v to_o go_v personal_o into_o germany_n to_o give_v a_o end_n to_o those_o disorder_n be_v intimate_v a_o imperial_a diet_n for_o the_o 8._o of_o april_n and_o in_o march_n he_o begin_v his_o journey_n the_o emperor_n part_v from_o bolonia_n with_o this_o firm_a resolution_n to_o labour_v religion_n and_o resolve_v to_o employ_v his_o authority_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o diet_n with_o authority_n and_o command_n that_o the_o prince_n separate_v one_o from_o another_o shall_v return_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o prohibit_v sermon_n and_o book_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n and_o the_o pope_n give_v he_o for_o company_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n as_o legate_n who_o shall_v ferdinand_n campeggio_n the_o legate_n go_v with_o he_o and_o peter_n paul_n vergerius_n to_o ferdinand_n follow_v he_o to_o the_o diet._n he_o send_v also_o peter_n paul_n vergerius_n nuncio_n to_o king_n ferdinand_n with_o instruction_n to_o labour_v with_o he_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o disputation_n in_o the_o diet_n nor_o consultation_n concern_v religion_n nor_o any_o resolution_n take_v to_o call_v a_o council_n in_o germany_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o to_o gain_v the_o favour_n of_o that_o prince_n who_o be_v the_o emperor_n brother_n and_o have_v spend_v many_o year_n in_o germany_n he_o think_v be_v able_a to_o do_v much_o he_o shall_v grant_v he_o power_n to_o take_v a_o contribution_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o germany_n for_o the_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o gold_n and_o silver_n appoint_v for_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n almost_o all_o the_o prince_n arrive_v at_o the_o diet_n before_o caesar_n who_o come_v thither_o the_o thirteen_o of_o june_n the_o eve_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n and_o go_v in_o procession_n the_o diet_n of_o ausburg_n the_o protestant_n refuse_v to_o go_v in_o procession_n procession_n the_o day_n follow_v but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o obtain_v that_o the_o protestant_n will_v content_v themselves_o to_o be_v there_o which_o the_o legate_n perceive_v with_o infinite_a displeasure_n for_o the_o prejudice_n do_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o this_o contumacy_n as_o he_o term_v it_o to_o go_v a_o step_n further_o and_o to_o cause_v the_o protestant_n to_o assist_v at_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o emperor_n eight_o day_n after_o be_v to_o begin_v the_o assembly_n give_v order_n to_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n to_o carry_v the_o sword_n before_o he_o as_o he_o go_v thither_o according_a mass_n the_o duke_n of_o saxonte_n carry_v the_o sword_n after_o a_o long_a disputation_n whether_o he_o may_v ●●tely_o assist_v at_o the_o mass_n to_o his_o office_n and_o to_o stand_v at_o the_o mass_n the_o elector_n think_v that_o by_o yield_v he_o shall_v contradict_v his_o profession_n and_o by_o refuse_v shall_v loose_v his_o dignity_n have_v find_v out_o that_o in_o case_n of_o his_o denial_n the_o emperor_n will_v give_v the_o honour_n to_o another_o but_o he_o be_v counsel_v by_o his_o divine_n luther_n scholar_n that_o he_o may_v do_v it_o without_o offence_n to_o his_o conscience_n assist_v as_o at_o a_o civil_a not_o as_o at_o a_o religious_a ceremony_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o prophet_n elizeus_fw-la who_o think_v it_o not_o inconuinient_a that_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o troop_n of_o syria_n convert_v to_o the_o true_a religion_n shall_v bow_v himself_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o idol_n when_o the_o king_n bow_v who_o lean_v on_o his_o arm_n this_o 〈◊〉_d sell_v be_v not_o approve_v by_o other_o because_o by_o it_o one_o may_v conclude_v that_o every_o one_o may_v lawful_o be_v present_a at_o all_o the_o rite_n of_o another_o religion_n as_o at_o civil_a ceremony_n for_o no_o man_n can_v want_v a_o cause_n of_o necessity_n or_o utility_n which_o may_v induce_v thereunto_o but_o other_o approve_v the_o counsel_n and_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o elector_n conclude_v that_o if_o the_o new_a doctor_n have_v former_o use_v this_o reason_n and_o will_v use_v it_o hereafter_o a_o gate_n have_v not_o be_v open_v in_o many_o occasion_n to_o diverse_a inconvenience_n because_o it_o will_v be_v lawful_a to_o every_o one_o by_o that_o example_n for_o preservation_n of_o his_o dignity_n or_o his_o territory_n or_o the_o favour_n of_o his_o lord_n or_o other_o eminent_a person_n not_o to_o refuse_v to_o give_v assistance_n to_o any_o action_n whatsoever_o at_o which_o though_o other_o be_v present_n at_o a_o religious_a act_n he_o assist_v as_o at_o a_o civil_a thing_n in_o that_o mass_n vicenzo_n pimpinello_n archbishop_n of_o rosano_n the_o pope_n nuncio_n 〈◊〉_d the_o sermon_n of_o vicen_n 〈…〉_o pi_z 〈…〉_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d make_v a_o oration_n in_o latin_a before_o the_o offertory_n in_o which_o he_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n of_o any_o spiritual_a or_o religious_a matter_n but_o upbraid_v germany_n for_o have_v suffer_v so_o many_o wrong_n by_o the_o turk_n without_o revenge_n and_o exhort_v they_o by_o many_o example_n of_o ancient_a captain_n of_o the_o roman_a commonwealth_n to_o make_v war_n against_o they_o he_o say_v the_o disadvantage_n of_o germany_n be_v that_o the_o turk_n obey_v one_o prince_n only_o whereas_o in_o germany_n many_o obey_v not_o at_o all_o that_o the_o turk_n live_v in_o one_o religion_n and_o the_o german_n every_o day_n invent_v new_a and_o mock_v the_o old_a as_o if_o it_o be_v become_v mouldy_a he_o tax_v they_o that_o be_v desirous_a to_o change_v the_o faith_n they_o have_v not_o find_v our_o one_o more_o holy_a at_o the_o least_o and_o more_o wise_a final_o he_o exhort_v they_o that_o imitate_v scipio_n nasica_n cato_n the_o people_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o ancestor_n they_o shall_v observe_v the_o catholic_a religion_n forsake_v those_o novity_n and_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o war_n in_o the_o first_o session_n of_o the_o diet_n the_o legate_n cardinal_n campeggio_n present_v oration_n the_o leg_n 〈…〉_o present_v his_o letter_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n the_o letter_n of_o his_o legation_n and_o in_o the_o assembly_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n make_v a_o oration_n in_o latin_a the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o so_o many_o sect_n which_o then_o reign_v be_v want_n of_o charity_n and_o love_n that_o the_o change_n of_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n have_v not_o only_o rend_v the_o church_n in_o piece_n but_o bring_v all_o policy_n to_o a_o miserable_a desolation_n for_o remedy_v of_o which_o mischief_n the_o former_a pope_n have_v send_v legate_n to_o the_o diet_n and_o no_o fruit_n come_v thereby_o clement_n have_v send_v he_o to_o exhort_v to_o counsel_v and_o to_o employ_v all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o restore_v the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o have_v commend_v the_o emperor_n he_o exhort_v all_o to_o obey_v whatsoever_o he_o shall_v ordain_v and_o resolve_v upon_o concern_v religion_n and_o article_n of_o belief_n he_o persuade_v they_o to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n promise_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v spare_v no_o cost_n to_o assist_v they_o he_o pray_v they_o for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n for_o their_o country_n and_o their_o own_o safety_n that_o lay_v aside_o all_o error_n they_o will_v apply_v themselves_o to_o set_v germany_n and_o all_o christendom_n at_o liberty_n that_o in_o so_o do_v the_o pope_n
the_o pope_n and_o to_o make_v the_o emperor_n the_o principal_a and_o the_o pope_n his_o minister_n by_o the_o observation_n of_o these_o beginning_n he_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v little_a hope_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o think_v of_o a_o defensive_a that_o the_o disease_n may_v not_o pass_v to_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o that_o which_o be_v past_a can_v not_o be_v yndone_v he_o think_v it_o not_o wisdom_n to_o show_v it_o be_v do_v against_o his_o will_n but_o to_o make_v himself_o the_o author_n it_o 1531_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o he_o write_v to_o all_o prince_n that_o he_o will_v call_v a_o council_n though_o he_o never_o mean_v it_o of_o it_o that_o he_o may_v receive_v a_o less_o blow_n in_o his_o reputation_n therefore_o he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o thing_n pass_v to_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n dispatch_v his_o letter_n the_o first_o of_o december_n all_o of_o the_o same_o tenor_n that_o he_o hope_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n may_v be_v extinguish_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o principal_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o go_v to_o bolonia_n to_o entreat_v he_o for_o it_z though_o he_o know_v that_o of_o himself_o he_o be_v very_o well_o affect_v that_o way_n but_o have_v receive_v advice_n from_o the_o emperor_n and_o from_o his_o legate_n campeggio_n that_o the_o protestant_n be_v become_v more_o obstinate_a he_o have_v communicate_v the_o whole_a to_o the_o cardinal_n and_o together_o with_o they_o see_v clear_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v use_v by_o his_o predecessor_n that_o be_v a_o general_a council_n therefore_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n that_o shall_v be_v call_v either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o their_o ambassador_n a_o thing_n so_o holy_a that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a intimate_v a_o general_a and_o free_a council_n in_o some_o fit_a place_n in_o italy_n the_o pope_n letter_n be_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n because_o his_o minister_n endeavour_v in_o every_o place_n to_o give_v notice_n of_o they_o unto_o all_o not_o because_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o court_n desire_v to_o apply_v their_o mind_n to_o a_o council_n from_o which_o they_o be_v most_o averse_a but_o to_o entertain_v the_o world_n that_o by_o expectation_n of_o the_o remedy_n of_o the_o abuse_n and_o inconvenience_n they_o may_v remain_v constant_a in_o obedience_n yet_o few_o be_v deceive_v for_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o discover_v that_o to_o desire_v prince_n to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o a_o council_n whereof_o many_o and_o his_o collusion_n be_v discover_v by_o many_o neither_o time_n nor_o place_n nor_o manner_n be_v resolve_v on_o be_v too_o much_o affect_v prevention_n but_o the_o protestant_n also_o take_v occasion_n by_o these_o letter_n to_o write_v likewise_o to_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o the_o next_o year_n in_o february_n they_o frame_v prince_n 1531_o the_o protestant_n do_v write_v likewise_o to_o all_o prince_n a_o letter_n to_o every_o one_o under_o a_o common_a name_n of_o all_o of_o this_o tenor_n that_o the_o old_a complaint_n of_o pious_a man_n against_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n note_v by_o john_n gerson_n nicolas_n clemangis_n and_o other_o in_o france_n and_o of_o john_n collet_n in_o england_n and_o of_o other_o elsewhere_o be_v know_v unto_o their_o majesty_n which_o also_o happen_v in_o germany_n in_o these_o last_o year_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o detestable_a &_o infamous_a gain_n which_o some_o friar_n make_v by_o publish_v indulgence_n and_o pass_v from_o this_o to_o relate_v whatsoever_o happen_v until_o the_o last_o diet_n they_o say_v that_o their_o adversary_n endeavour_v to_o incite_v the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n against_o they_o use_v diverse_a calumny_n which_o as_o they_o have_v withstand_v in_o germany_n so_o they_o will_v more_o easy_o confute_v in_o a_o general_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n whereunto_o they_o will_v refer_v themselves_o so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v such_o a_o one_o in_o which_o preiudices_fw-la and_o passion_n may_v take_v no_o place_n that_o among_o the_o calumny_n lay_v upon_o they_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a that_o they_o condemn_v all_o magistrate_n and_o vilify_v the_o dignity_n of_o law_n which_o be_v not_o only_o not_o true_a but_o as_o they_o have_v show_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o augusta_n their_o doctrine_n honour_v magistrate_n and_o defend_v the_o strength_n of_o law_n more_o than_o ever_o have_v be_v do_v in_o other_o age_n teach_v magistrate_n that_o their_o state_n and_o kind_a of_o life_n be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n commandment_n to_o give_v honour_n and_o obedience_n to_o they_o and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v unpunished_a the_o disobedient_a because_o the_o magistrate_n have_v his_o government_n by_o divine_a ordination_n that_o they_o have_v desire_v to_o signify_v these_o thing_n to_o they_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o clear_n of_o themselves_o before_o they_o pray_v they_o not_o to_o believe_v the_o calumny_n and_o to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n until_o those_o that_o be_v accuse_v have_v place_n to_o acquit_v themselves_o public_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v desire_v the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v call_v a_o godly_a and_o free_a council_n in_o germany_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v and_o not_o to_o use_v force_n until_o the_o matter_n be_v dispute_v and_o lawful_o define_v the_o french_a king_n answer_v with_o very_o courteous_a letter_n in_o substance_n give_v protestant_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o the_o protestant_n they_o thanks_n for_o communicate_v unto_o he_o a_o business_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n he_o show_v they_o that_o he_o be_v glad_a to_o understand_v of_o their_o innocence_n and_o do_v approve_v the_o instance_n they_o make_v that_o the_o vice_n may_v be_v amend_v wherein_o they_o shall_v find_v his_o will_n to_o concur_v with_o they_o that_o their_o require_v of_o a_o council_n be_v just_a and_o holy_a yea_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o affair_n of_o germany_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o honest_a to_o use_v arm_n where_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v end_v with_o treaty_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v of_o the_o same_o tenor_n but_o that_o he_o england_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n declare_v in_o particular_a that_o himself_o also_o desire_v a_o council_n and_o that_o he_o will_v mediate_v with_o charles_n to_o find_v out_o a_o mean_n of_o composition_n the_o emperor_n decree_n be_v know_v throughout_o all_o germany_n they_o begin_v immediate_o to_o accuse_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n in_o the_o chamber_n contemn_v sentence_n be_v make_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o spirae_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o contemn_v of_o spira_n some_o for_o zeal_n other_o for_o revenge_n and_o some_o also_o to_o possess_v the_o good_n of_o their_o adversary_n many_o sentence_n be_v make_v many_o declaration_n and_o many_o confiscation_n against_o prince_n city_n and_o private_a man_n and_o none_o take_v place_n but_o some_o against_o private_a man_n who_o good_n be_v within_o the_o territory_n of_o catholic_n by_o other_o the_o sentence_n be_v contemn_v with_o great_a diminution_n of_o the_o honour_n not_o only_o of_o the_o chamber_n but_o of_o the_o emperor_n also_o who_o soon_o perceive_v that_o the_o remedy_n be_v not_o fit_v to_o themaladie_n which_o increase_v daily_o for_o the_o protestant_a prince_n and_o city_n beside_o that_o they_o esteem_v little_a the_o judgement_n of_o the_o chamber_n combine_v themselves_o together_o prepare_v for_o their_o defence_n and_o fortify_v themselves_o with_o foreign_a intelligence_n so_o that_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o case_n thing_n go_v on_o a_o war_n will_v arise_v dangerous_a for_o both_o party_n and_o whatsoever_o the_o issue_n be_v pernicious_a for_o germany_n wherefore_o he_o be_v willing_a that_o some_o prince_n shall_v interpose_v and_o find_v out_o a_o way_n of_o agreement_n to_o this_o end_n many_o head_n and_o condition_n of_o composition_n be_v negotiate_v all_o this_o year_n 1531_o and_o to_o give_v they_o some_o conclusion_n a_o diet_n at_o ratisbon_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o next_o year_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n all_o thing_n remain_v full_a of_o suspicion_n and_o the_o slay_v zuinglius_fw-la take_v arm_n and_o be_v slay_v diffidence_n between_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o rather_o increase_v and_o this_o year_n also_o there_o happen_v a_o notable_a event_n among_o the_o swiss_n which_o compose_v the_o dispute_n between_o they_o for_o though_o the_o
himself_o for_o his_o own_o part_n will_v willing_o make_v present_a answer_n to_o the_o thing_n propose_v but_o because_o there_o be_v many_o prince_n which_o have_v receive_v the_o same_o confession_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o ausbug_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a nor_o profitable_a for_o the_o cause_n to_o answer_v alone_o but_o a_o assembly_n be_v intimate_v against_o the_o 24._o of_o june_n he_o desire_v he_o will_v be_v content_v to_o grant_v this_o short_a delay_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v a_o more_o common_a and_o resolute_a conclusion_n the_o joy_n and_o hope_n of_o the_o nuncio_n be_v much_o increase_v smalcalde_fw-es the_o nuncio_n be_v please_v with_o the_o delatory_a answer_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o protestant_n assemble_v in_o smalcalde_fw-es who_o desire_v the_o delay_n have_v be_v rather_o of_o year_n than_o month_n but_o the_o protestant_n assemble_v at_o the_o aforesaid_a time_n in_o smalcalde_fw-es answer_v thank_v the_o emperor_n that_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n he_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o cause_v a_o council_n to_o be_v celebrate_v which_o will_v be_v in_o vain_a if_o condition_n be_v not_o observe_v necessary_a for_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o germany_n which_o desire_v that_o her_o controversy_n may_v be_v define_v with_o due_a order_n and_o hope_v to_o obtain_v it_o for_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v in_o many_o imperial_a diet_n promise_v such_o a_o one_o which_o by_o the_o mature_a deliberation_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o state_n have_v be_v resolve_v shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o germany_n in_o regard_n that_o many_o error_n be_v reveal_v by_o occasion_n of_o the_o indulgence_n publish_v in_o sermon_n pope_n leo_n condemn_v the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o doctor_n who_o discover_v the_o abuse_n but_o that_o sentence_n be_v oppose_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n whence_o do_v arise_v the_o controversy_n which_o can_v be_v decide_v but_o in_o a_o council_n where_o the_o pope_n sentence_n or_o the_o power_n of_o whosoever_o may_v not_o prejudice_n the_o cause_n and_o where_o judgement_n may_v be_v give_v not_o according_a to_o the_o pope_n law_n or_o opinion_n of_o the_o school_n but_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o this_o be_v not_o perform_v this_o so_o great_a a_o labour_n will_v be_v take_v in_o vain_a as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o some_o other_o counsel_n celebrate_v before_o now_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v contrary_a to_o this_o end_n to_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o diet_n and_o promise_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o though_o he_o propose_v pope_n and_o their_o exception_n against_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o free_a council_n in_o word_n yet_o in_o effect_n he_o will_v have_v it_o tie_v so_o that_o vice_n and_o error_n may_v not_o be_v reprehend_v and_o himself_o may_v maintain_v his_o power_n that_o that_o be_v not_o a_o reasonable_a demand_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v bind_v himself_o to_o observe_v the_o decree_n before_o he_o know_v by_o what_o order_n manner_n or_o form_n they_o be_v make_v whether_o the_o pope_n desire_v to_o have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n in_o he_o and_o his_o whether_o he_o will_v have_v the_o controversy_n discuss_v according_a to_o holy_a writ_n or_o according_a to_o humane_a law_n and_o tradition_n that_o that_o clause_n also_o seem_v captious_a that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o old_a custom_n for_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o old_a when_o all_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v not_o refuse_v it_o but_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o next_o precede_v age_n be_v much_o different_a from_o the_o other_o that_o be_v more_o ancient_a where_o too_o much_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n and_o other_o man_n that_o the_o propose_n be_v glorious_a but_o it_o take_v absolute_o away_o the_o liberty_n which_o be_v demand_v and_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o cause_n that_o they_o desire_v the_o emperor_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n that_o all_o may_v pass_v lawful_o that_o all_o man_n be_v in_o attention_n and_o stand_v in_o hope_n of_o a_o council_n and_o demand_v it_o with_o vow_n and_o prayer_n which_o will_v be_v turn_v into_o great_a sorrow_n and_o vexation_n of_o mind_n if_o this_o expectation_n shall_v be_v delude_v by_o give_v a_o council_n but_o not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v desire_v and_o promise_v that_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n also_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n to_o avoid_v those_o snare_n and_o bond_n with_o which_o the_o pope_n think_v to_o bind_v they_o in_o a_o new_a council_n to_o who_o will_n if_o the_o manage_n of_o the_o affair_n shall_v be_v permit_v they_o will_v refer_v the_o whole_a to_o god_n and_o think_v of_o what_o they_o have_v to_o do_v yet_o for_o all_o this_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v cite_v with_o good_a and_o lawful_a assurance_n in_o case_n they_o see_v themselves_o able_a to_o do_v some_o thing_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n they_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o appear_v but_o with_o condition_n not_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o pope_n demand_n nor_o to_o a_o council_n which_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o imperial_a diet_n in_o the_o end_n they_o pray_v the_o emperor_n not_o to_o take_v their_o resolution_n in_o ill_a part_n and_o to_o endeavour_n that_o the_o power_n of_o those_o be_v not_o confirm_v who_o long_o since_o have_v wax_v cruel_a against_o the_o innocent_a the_o protestant_n resolve_v not_o only_o to_o send_v the_o answer_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n but_o to_o print_v it_o also_o together_o with_o the_o nuncio_n his_o proposition_n which_o by_o the_o same_o pope_n be_v judge_v indiscreet_a and_o too_o open_a therefore_o place_n the_o pope_n recall_v hugo_n rangone_n b._n of_o rheggio_n his_o nuncio_n and_o put_v vergerius_n in_o his_o place_n under_o colour_n that_o he_o be_v old_a and_o unable_a to_o bear_v that_o charge_n he_o recall_v he_o and_o write_v to_o vergerius_n nuncio_n with_o king_n ferdinand_n that_o he_o shall_v take_v upon_o he_o that_o place_n with_o the_o same_o instruction_n admonish_v he_o to_o remember_v not_o to_o swerve_v by_o any_o mean_n from_o his_o will_n or_o to_o give_v ear_n to_o any_o 2._o 1534_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 2._o moderation_n though_o the_o king_n desire_v it_o that_o unaduised_o he_o cast_v he_o not_o into_o some_o strait_n and_o constrain_v he_o to_o call_v a_o council_n which_o be_v not_o profitable_a for_o the_o church_n or_o for_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n while_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o handle_v the_o pope_n who_o foresee_v the_o answer_n which_o will_v come_v out_o of_o germany_n &_o before_o in_o bolonia_n have_v conceive_v but_o small_a confidence_n in_o the_o emperor_n whole_o alien_v himself_o from_o his_o friendship_n for_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o modena_n and_o rheggio_n between_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n refer_v to_o he_o by_o the_o party_n he_o pronounce_v for_o the_o duke_n for_o all_o which_o cause_n the_o pope_n negotiate_v a_o confederation_n with_o the_o french_a king_n the_o which_o be_v conclude_v and_o establish_v also_o by_o the_o marriage_n marriage_n the_o confederation_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o french_a king_n be_v confirm_v by_o marriage_n of_o henry_n the_o king_n second_o son_n with_o catherine_n de_fw-fr medici_n the_o pope_n great_a grandchild_n and_o to_o give_v a_o complete_a perfection_n to_o the_o whole_a business_n he_o go_v to_o marseilles_n in_o person_n to_o speak_v with_o the_o king_n but_o understand_v that_o this_o journey_n be_v reprehend_v by_o all_o as_o not_o address_v to_o any_o public_a respect_n but_o only_o to_o make_v his_o house_n great_a he_o justify_v himself_o by_o say_v he_o undertake_v it_o to_o persuade_v he_o to_o favour_v the_o council_n and_o to_o abolish_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o beside_o other_o treaty_n he_o persuade_v his_o most_o christian_a majesty_n to_o deal_v with_o the_o protestant_n especial_o with_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n who_o be_v to_o come_v to_o he_o into_o france_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o desist_v from_o demand_v a_o council_n propose_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o will_v seek_v out_o any_o other_o way_n to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n and_o promise_v his_o own_o faithful_a and_o effectual_a help_n when_o time_n shall_v serve_v the_o king_n do_v thus_o negotiate_v but_o can_v obtain_v nothing_o for_o the_o landgrave_n allege_v council_n the_o french_a king_n treat_v with_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n at_o the_o pope_n request_n about_o the_o council_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o mean_n
to_o hinder_v the_o desolation_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o a_o council_n be_v willing_o to_o run_v into_o a_o civil_a war_n in_o the_o second_o place_n the_o king_n treat_v with_o they_o that_o they_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o council_n in_o italy_n but_o neither_o do_v the_o german_n agree_v unto_o this_o for_o they_o say_v that_o this_o match_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o because_o that_o constrain_v they_o only_o to_o make_v war_n but_o this_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o servitude_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n whereunto_o resistance_n can_v not_o be_v make_v but_o by_o a_o council_n in_o a_o free_a place_n yet_o condescend_v for_o his_o majesty_n sake_n to_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v able_a they_o will_v cease_v to_o demand_v to_o have_v it_o celebrate_v in_o germany_n so_o that_o another_o free_a place_n be_v appoint_v out_o of_o italy_n though_o it_o be_v near_o unto_o it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1534._o the_o king_n give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n 1534_o 1534_o of_o what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o offer_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v be_v content_v with_o geneva_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v the_o advice_n council_n the_o pope_n be_v displease_v with_o the_o propose_v of_o geneva_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d place_n of_o the_o council_n be_v uncertain_a whether_o the_o king_n though_o his_o confederate_a and_o kinsman_n will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v he_o in_o trouble_n or_o if_o in_o this_o particular_a he_o want_v that_o discretion_n which_o he_o show_v in_o other_o affair_n but_o he_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o use_v he_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o write_v unto_o he_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o pain_n without_o answer_v to_o the_o particular_a of_o geneva_n and_o he_o encourage_v many_o of_o the_o courtier_n who_o mind_n be_v trouble_v assure_v they_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n he_o will_v consent_v to_o such_o a_o folly_n but_o this_o year_n the_o pope_n in_o stead_n of_o regain_n germany_n lose_v the_o obedience_n england_n he_o lose_v the_o obedience_n of_o england_n of_o england_n by_o proceed_v rather_o with_o choler_n and_o passion_n then_o with_o wisdom_n necessary_a in_o so_o great_a negotiation_n the_o accident_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o great_a consequence_n which_o to_o declare_v distinct_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o begin_v from_o the_o first_o cause_n whence_o it_o have_v its_o original_n catherine_n infanta_n of_o spain_n sister_n to_o the_o mother_n of_o charles_n the_o emperor_n be_v marry_v to_o henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n and_o be_v before_o the_o wife_n of_o arthure_n prince_n of_o wall_n henry_n elder_a brother_n after_o who_o death_n their_o father_n give_v she_o in_o marriage_n to_o henry_n who_o remain_v successor_n by_o the_o dispensation_n cause_n the_o cause_n of_o pope_n julio_n the_o second_o this_o queen_n be_v with_o child_n often_o and_o always_o either_o miscarry_v or_o bring_v forth_o a_o creature_n of_o a_o short_a life_n except_o one_o only_a daughter_n king_n henry_n either_o for_o displeasure_n against_o the_o emperor_n or_o for_o desire_n of_o issue_n male_a or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n conceive_v a_o scruple_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o the_o marriage_n be_v not_o good_a and_o take_v counsel_n of_o his_o bishop_n separate_v himself_o from_o her_o company_n the_o bishop_n treat_v with_o the_o queen_n that_o she_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o divorce_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n be_v neither_o good_a nor_o true_a the_o queen_n will_v not_o give_v ear_n to_o they_o but_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o the_o king_n also_o send_v to_o crave_v a_o divorce_n the_o pope_n who_o be_v still_o retire_v in_o oruieto_fw-la and_o hope_v for_o good_a condition_n in_o his_o affair_n if_o the_o favour_n of_o france_n and_o england_n which_o still_o they_o perform_v be_v continue_v by_o molest_v the_o emperor_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n send_v into_o england_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n delegate_a the_o cause_n unto_o he_o and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o york_n from_o these_o and_o from_o rome_n the_o king_n have_v hope_n give_v he_o that_o in_o the_o end_n the_o sentence_n shall_v be_v on_o his_o side_n yea_o to_o facilitate_v divorce_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n and_o wolsie_n be_v delegated_a by_o the_o pope_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n divorce_n the_o resolution_n that_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o judgement_n may_v not_o draw_v the_o cause_n in_o length_n a_o brief_a be_v frame_v in_o which_o he_o be_v declare_v free_a from_o that_o marriage_n with_o the_o most_o ample_a clause_n that_o ever_o be_v put_v into_o any_o pope_n bull_n and_o a_o cardinal_n send_v into_o england_n with_o order_n to_o present_v it_o after_o some_o few_o proof_n be_v pass_v which_o he_o be_v sure_a will_v easy_o be_v make_v and_o burn_v the_o pope_n cause_v his_o brief_n which_o he_o have_v make_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o divorce_n to_o be_v burn_v this_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1524._o but_o clement_n judge_v it_o fit_a for_o compass_v his_o design_n upon_o florence_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n to_o join_v himself_o with_o the_o emperor_n then_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o friendship_n of_o france_n and_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1529._o he_o send_v francis_n campana_n unto_o campeggio_n with_o order_n to_o burn_v the_o brief_a and_o to_o proceed_v slow_o in_o the_o cause_n campeggio_n begin_v first_o to_o draw_v the_o cause_n in_o length_n and_o after_o to_o make_v difficulty_n of_o perform_v the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o king_n whereby_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o judge_n and_o his_o adversary_n do_v collude_v he_o send_v to_o the_o university_n of_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n for_o a_o consultation_n in_o his_o cause_n where_o among_o divorce_n a_o consultation_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o divorce_n the_o divine_n some_o be_v contrary_a and_o some_o favourable_a to_o his_o pretention_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o parisian_n be_v on_o his_o side_n and_o some_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n gift_n more_o persuade_v they_o than_o reason_n but_o the_o pope_n either_o to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n or_o for_o fear_n that_o in_o england_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o york_n something_o may_v happen_v not_o according_a campeggio_n the_o pope_n to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n recall_v campeggio_n to_o his_o mind_n as_o also_o to_o give_v occasion_n to_o campeggio_n to_o part_v from_o thence_o call_v the_o cause_n to_o himself_o the_o king_n impatient_a of_o delay_n either_o because_o he_o know_v their_o cunning_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n publish_v the_o divorce_n with_o his_o wife_n and_z matryed_z anne_z bullen_z in_o the_o year_n 1533._o yet_o still_o the_o cause_n depend_v before_o the_o pope_n in_o which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o proceed_v slow_o to_o bulle●_n the_o king_n in_o 〈…〉_o yes_o 〈◊〉_d bulle●_n satisfy_v the_o emperor_n and_o not_o offend_v the_o king_n therefore_o some_o by_o point_n rather_o be_v handle_v than_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o disputation_n grow_v upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o attentat_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n give_v sentence_n against_o the_o king_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n without_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n to_o separate_v himself_o from_o his_o wife_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o king_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o year_n 1534_o deny_v the_o pope_n obedience_n command_v all_o his_o subject_n not_o to_o carry_v any_o money_n to_o rome_n pope_n the_o king_n cause_v the_o peter-pence_n to_o be_v deny_v the_o pope_n nor_o to_o pay_v the_o ordinary_a peter-pence_n this_o infinite_o trouble_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o daily_o they_o consult_v of_o a_o remedy_n they_o think_v to_o proceed_v against_o the_o king_n with_o censure_n and_o to_o interdict_v all_o christian_a nation_n all_o commerce_n with_o england_n but_o the_o moderate_a counsel_n please_v best_a to_o temporize_v with_o he_o and_o to_o mediate_v a_o composition_n by_o the_o french_a king_n king_n francis_n accept_v the_o charge_n and_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n to_o rome_n to_o negotiate_v a_o pacification_n with_o the_o pope_n where_o they_o still_o proceed_v in_o the_o cause_n but_o gentle_o and_o with_o resolution_n not_o to_o come_v to_o censure_n if_o the_o emperor_n do_v not_o proceed_v first_o or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o his_o force_n they_o have_v divide_v the_o cause_n into_o three_o and_o twenty_o article_n and_o then_o they_o handle_v whether_o prince_n arthure_n have_v have_v carnal_a conjunction_n with_o queen_n catherine_n in_o this_o they_o spend_v time_n until_o midlent_a be_v pass_v when_o the_o nineteenth_o of_o march_n news_n come_v that_o a_o
the_o council_n be_v not_o true_o intend_v and_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o but_o word_n and_o court_n holy_a water_n and_o he_o deliver_v his_o mind_n with_o such_o grave_a sentence_n that_o the_o whole_a council_n the_o pope_n send_v nunci●_n to_o all_o prince_n to_o treat_v with_o they_o concern_v the_o council_n auditory_a be_v move_v in_o that_o consistory_n it_o be_v resolve_v to_o dispatch_v nuncij_fw-la to_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o french_a king_n and_o other_o christian_a prince_n with_o commission_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o college_n have_v determine_v absolute_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o christendom_n to_o celebrate_v a_o council_n exhort_v they_o to_o favour_v it_o and_o to_o procure_v peace_n and_o tranquillity_n while_o it_o shall_v last_v but_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o for_o the_o time_n and_o place_n his_o holiness_n be_v not_o resolve_v as_o yet_o and_o the_o most_o secret_a instruction_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v cunning_o find_v out_o what_o the_o prince_n think_v concern_v the_o place_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o their_o interest_n and_o purpose_n be_v know_v he_o may_v hinder_v they_o by_o oppose_v one_o against_o another_o and_o so_o work_v his_o own_o will_n he_o charge_v also_o the_o nuncij_fw-la to_o complain_v of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o when_o they_o see_v opportunity_n to_o incite_v they_o against_o he_o and_o to_o offer_v they_o also_o that_o kingdom_n for_o a_o prey_n among_o these_o nuncij_fw-la vergerius_n instruction_n vergerius_n be_v send_v back_o into_o germany_n with_o special_a instruction_n be_v one_o send_v back_o into_o germany_n with_o more_o special_a commission_n to_o penetrate_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o protestant_n concern_v the_o form_n of_o proceed_v in_o the_o council_n that_o he_o may_v draw_v from_o thence_o such_o conclusion_n as_o be_v necessary_a he_o give_v he_o also_o particular_a charge_n to_o treat_v with_o luther_n and_o the_o other_o principal_a preacher_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n use_v all_o kind_n of_o promise_n and_o offer_v to_o reduce_v they_o to_o some_o composition_n the_o pope_n reprehend_v in_o all_o occasion_n the_o rigidness_n of_o cardinal_n caietan_n who_o in_o the_o diet_n of_o ausburg_n 1518._o refuse_a luther_n offer_n that_o silence_n be_v impose_v to_o his_o adversary_n he_o will_v also_o be_v content_v to_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o he_o condemn_v the_o acerbity_n of_o that_o cardinal_n who_o by_o urge_v obstinate_o a_o recantation_n cast_v that_o man_n headlong_o into_o despair_n which_o have_v cost_v and_o will_v cost_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o much_o as_o the_o half_a of_o her_o authority_n be_v worth_a that_o he_o will_v not_o imitate_v leo_n in_o believe_v that_o the_o friar_n be_v good_a instrument_n to_o suppress_v the_o preacher_n of_o germany_n for_o reason_n and_o experience_n have_v declare_v the_o vanity_n of_o that_o cogitation_n that_o there_o be_v but_o two_o mean_n force_n and_o treaty_n both_o which_o he_o will_v use_v be_v ready_a to_o agree_v to_o any_o condition_n so_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n may_v remain_v entire_a for_o which_o end_n he_o say_v he_o have_v need_n of_o able_a man_n fit_a for_o negotiation_n and_o therefore_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o of_o may_n he_o create_v six_o cardinal_n and_o the_o seven_o a_o few_o day_n after_o all_o which_o be_v man_n much_o esteem_v in_o the_o court._n among_o these_o be_v john_n fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n than_o prisoner_n in_o england_n for_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o king_n decree_n which_o take_v away_o the_o pope_n authority_n the_o pope_n in_o make_v choice_n of_o he_o consider_v that_o he_o honour_v this_o promotion_n cardinal_n the_o pope_n crease_v seuca_fw-la cardinal_n by_o put_v in_o that_o number_n a_o learned_a man_n and_o well_o deserve_v for_o the_o persecution_n which_o he_o endure_v and_o that_o have_v increase_v his_o dignity_n he_o rochester_n in_o which_o number_n be_v john_n fisher_n b._n of_o rochester_n will_v have_v more_o respect_n with_o the_o king_n and_o more_o credit_n with_o the_o people_n but_o that_o cardinal_n cap_n profit_v that_o prelate_n in_o nothing_o but_o to_o hasten_v his_o death_n which_o be_v give_v he_o 43._o day_n after_o by_o cut_v off_o his_o head_n in_o public_a but_o howsoever_o the_o pope_n make_v open_a demonstration_n to_o desire_v such_o a_o council_n as_o may_v give_v satisfaction_n and_o reduce_v germany_n yet_o all_o the_o court_n and_o the_o pope_n near_a friend_n who_o treat_v most_o secret_o with_o he_o of_o these_o council_n the_o court_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o mantua_n be_v the_o fit_a place_n for_o the_o council_n thing_n say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o any_o where_n be_v celebrate_v but_o in_o italy_n because_o in_o no_o other_o place_n it_o can_v be_v free_a and_o that_o in_o italy_n no_o place_n can_v be_v choose_v but_o mantua_n vergerius_n at_o his_o return_n into_o germany_n deliver_v the_o pope_n ambassage_n first_o to_o ferdinand_n and_o then_o to_o those_o protestant_n that_o come_v to_o that_o king_n about_o the_o present_a occurrence_n and_o at_o last_o he_o make_v a_o journey_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o other_o also_o he_o have_v no_o other_o answer_n from_o any_o of_o they_o but_o that_o they_o will_v consult_v together_o and_o resolve_v by_o common_a consent_n in_o their_o assembly_n which_o shall_v be_v call_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n the_o proposition_n of_o the_o germany_n the_o negotiation_n of_o vergerius_n in_o germany_n nuncio_n contain_v that_o that_o be_v the_o time_n for_o the_o counsel_n so_o much_o desire_v the_o pope_n have_v treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o the_o king_n to_o call_v it_o serious_o not_o as_o former_o in_o appearance_n only_o and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v defer_v any_o more_o he_o determine_v to_o choose_v mantua_n for_o the_o place_n according_a to_o the_o resolution_n take_v with_o the_o emperor_n two_o year_n since_o which_o be_v a_o city_n of_o the_o emperor_n vassal_n place_v near_o his_o confine_n and_o the_o venetian_n they_o may_v hold_v it_o for_o secure_a beside_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n will_v give_v any_o great_a caution_n whatsoever_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o resolve_v or_o speak_v of_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n of_o treat_v in_o the_o council_n because_o this_o will_v better_a be_v do_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v call_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v celebrate_v in_o germany_n which_o abound_v with_o anabaptist_n sacramentary_n and_o other_o sect_n for_o the_o most_o part_n both_o foolish_a and_o furious_a therefore_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v secure_a for_o other_o nation_n to_o go_v where_o that_o multitude_n be_v potent_a and_o to_o condemn_v their_o doctrine_n that_o to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o call_v it_o in_o any_o other_o country_n whatsoever_o but_o he_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v enforce_v and_o to_o have_v that_o authority_n take_v from_o he_o which_o he_o have_v enjoy_v so_o many_o age_n to_o prescribe_v the_o place_n of_o general_a counsel_n in_o this_o journey_n vergerius_n find_v luther_n at_o wittenberg_n and_o treat_v with_o luther_n he_o treat_v with_o luther_n he_o very_o courteous_o upon_o these_o term_n enlarge_n and_o amplify_a they_o very_o much_o and_o first_o he_o assure_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o college_n of_o cardinal_n esteem_v he_o exceed_o who_o be_v infinite_o grieve_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o who_o if_o he_o have_v be_v employ_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n which_o be_v join_v together_o may_v have_v bring_v foo_o 〈…〉_o inestimable_a fruit_n and_o that_o they_o will_v do_v whatsoever_o they_o can_v to_o regain_v he_o he_o tell_v that_o the_o pope_n blame_v the_o rigiditie_n of_o caietan_n and_o that_o the_o cardinal_n do_v no_o less_o that_o he_o may_v expect_v all_o favour_n from_o that_o holy_a sea_n and_o that_o the_o rigour_n of_o leo_n which_o he_o use_v by_o the_o instigation_n of_o other_o not_o of_o his_o own_o disposition_n displease_v all_o man_n he_o add_v also_o that_o he_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o he_o of_o the_o controversy_n because_o he_o profess_v not_o divinity_n but_o that_o by_o common_a reason_n he_o can_v show_v he_o that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o reunite_v himself_o with_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o consider_v that_o his_o doctrine_n come_v to_o light_n and_o be_v publish_v within_o these_o eighteen_o year_n have_v raise_v innumerable_a sect_n of_o which_o the_o one_o detest_v the_o other_o and_o so_o many_o popular_a sedition_n with_o the_o death_n and_o banishment_n of_o so_o great_a multitude_n it_o can_v not_o be_v conclude_v that_o it_o come_v from_o god_n but_o one_o may_v well_o assure_v himself_o that_o it_o be_v pernicious_a
consistory_n the_o 28._o of_o april_n thank_v the_o pope_n and_o college_n for_o have_v ready_o and_o without_o delay_n resolve_v to_o call_v a_o general_a council_n and_o then_o desire_v they_o that_o the_o bull_n consistory_n the_o emperor_n enter_v into_o the_o public_a consistory_n may_v be_v dispatch_v before_o he_o part_v from_o rome_n that_o himself_o may_v give_v order_n for_o the_o rest_n the_o bull_n can_v not_o be_v frame_v so_o soon_o because_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o consider_v of_o fit_a word_n to_o be_v put_v into_o it_o such_o as_o may_v give_v as_o much_o hope_n of_o liberty_n as_o be_v possible_a and_o yet_o not_o prejudice_n the_o papal_a power_n six_o cardinal_n and_o three_o bishop_n be_v depute_v for_o this_o business_n make_v the_o bull_n for_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n be_v make_v and_o final_o the_o bull_n be_v finish_v the_o twelve_o of_o june_n publish_v in_o the_o consistory_n and_o subscribe_v by_o all_o the_o cardinal_n the_o tenor_n be_v as_o follow_v that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o papacy_n he_o have_v desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o cleanse_v the_o church_n recommend_v by_o god_n to_o his_o care_n from_o heresy_n and_o error_n and_o to_o restore_v the_o discipline_n to_o its_o former_a state_n for_o which_o find_v no_o way_n more_o commodious_a than_o that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v use_v in_o like_a occurrence_n that_o be_v a_o general_a council_n he_o have_v often_o write_v concern_v it_o to_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n with_o hope_v not_o only_o to_o obtain_v this_o end_n but_o also_o that_o all_o discord_n be_v appease_v between_o prince_n of_o christendom_n war_n may_v be_v make_v against_o the_o infidel_n to_o free_v the_o christian_n from_o that_o miserable_a slavery_n and_o also_o to_o reduce_v the_o infidel_n themselves_o to_o the_o faith_n therefore_o by_o the_o fullness_n of_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v from_o god_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o brethren_n the_o cardinal_n he_o do_v intimate_v a_o general_a council_n of_o all_o christendom_n against_o the_o 27._o of_o may_v the_o next_o year_n 1537._o 1537._o the_o council_n be_v to_o begin_v in_o mantua_n may_v 27._o 1537._o in_o mantua_n a_o rich_a place_n and_o commodious_a for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n therefore_o he_o command_v the_o bishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n of_o what_o place_n soever_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o oath_n and_o under_o the_o pain_n set_v down_o by_o the_o holy_a canon_n and_o decree_n that_o they_o tender_v their_o presence_n there_o at_o the_o day_n prefix_v he_o pray_v the_o emperor_n french_a king_n and_o all_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n or_o in_o case_n they_o can_v to_o send_v honourable_a and_o ample_a ambassage_n as_o the_o emperor_n french_a king_n and_o other_o christian_a prince_n have_v often_o promise_v both_o to_o clement_n and_o to_o he_o and_o to_o cause_v the_o prelate_n of_o their_o kingdom_n to_o go_v thither_o and_o there_o remain_v until_o the_o end_n to_o determine_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v fit_a to_o reform_v the_o church_n extirpate_v heresy_n and_o to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o infidel_n the_o pope_n publish_v another_o bull_n also_o to_o correct_v as_o he_o say_v all_o the_o vice_n rome_n a_o bull_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o rome_n and_o defect_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o all_o christendom_n mistress_n of_o learning_n manner_n and_o discipline_n that_o his_o own_o house_n be_v first_o purge_v he_o may_v more_o easy_o cleanse_v the_o rest_n but_o not_o be_v able_a full_o to_o perform_v this_o business_n by_o himself_o he_o depute_v the_o cardinal_n ostiense_n saint_n severino_n genutio_n and_o simoneta_n command_v all_o man_n under_o the_o most_o grievous_a pain_n to_o yield_v they_o absolute_a obedience_n these_o cardinal_n together_o with_o other_o prelate_n depute_v also_o by_o the_o pope_n apply_v themselves_o immediate_o to_o reform_v the_o penitentiary_n and_o datarie_a court_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o courtier_n yet_o nothing_o 1_o 1537_o paul_n 3._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o take_v effect_v but_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o council_n seem_v very_o unfit_a to_o every_o man_n of_o any_o mean_a capacity_n in_o a_o time_n when_o war_n be_v on_o foot_n in_o picardy_n provence_n and_o piedmont_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n the_o protestant_n when_o they_o have_v see_v the_o bull_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n convocation_n the_o protestant_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n that_o it_o appear_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o council_n they_o desire_v it_o shall_v be_v pious_a free_a and_o in_o germany_n and_o such_o a_o one_o be_v ever_o promise_v unto_o they_o and_o say_v they_o hope_v that_o his_o majesty_n will_v provide_v that_o their_o demand_n shall_v be_v satisfy_v and_o his_o promise_n fulfil_v but_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o year_n 1537._o the_o emperor_n send_v to_o the_o protestant_n mathias_n eldo_n his_o vicechancellor_n to_o exhort_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o council_n 1537_o the_o emperor_n exhort_v they_o to_o accept_v the_o council_n council_n for_o the_o call_n whereof_o he_o have_v take_v so_o great_a pain_n and_o where_o he_o mean_v to_o afford_v his_o personal_a presence_n if_o some_o great_a war_n constrain_v he_o not_o to_o be_v elsewhere_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v appeal_v to_o a_o council_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o now_o they_o shall_v change_v their_o purpose_n and_o refuse_v to_o meet_v all_o other_o nation_n who_o have_v fix_v therein_o all_o their_o hope_n for_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o pope_n the_o emperor_n say_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o will_v govern_v himself_o as_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o principal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o casethey_a have_v any_o complaint_n against_o he_o they_o may_v modest_o prosecute_v it_o in_o the_o council_n for_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a they_o shall_v prescribe_v it_o to_o all_o nation_n but_o shall_v rather_o think_v that_o not_o their_o divine_n only_o be_v inspire_v from_o god_n and_o understand_v holy_a mystery_n but_o that_o man_n may_v elsewhere_o be_v find_v who_o want_v neither_o learning_n nor_o sanctity_n of_o life_n for_o the_o place_n though_o they_o have_v demand_v it_o in_o germany_n yet_o the_o shall_v consider_v what_o be_v fit_a for_o other_o nation_n mantua_n be_v near_o to_o germany_n rich_a healthful_a and_o the_o duke_n thereof_o vassal_n of_o the_o empire_n so_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n there_o and_o if_o they_o desire_v any_o further_a caution_n himfelfe_n be_v ready_a to_o give_v it_o they_o he_o speak_v also_o apart_o with_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n exhort_v he_o to_o send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n without_o use_v exception_n or_o excuse_n which_o will_v hatch_v nothing_o but_o inconvenience_n concern_v the_o answer_v and_o they_o answer_v council_n the_o protestant_n answer_v that_o have_v read_v the_o pope_n letter_n they_o see_v well_o that_o he_o and_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o of_o one_o mind_n and_o have_v repeat_v what_o be_v treat_v of_o with_o adrian_n clement_n and_o paul_n they_o conclude_v that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o end_n they_o go_v on_o to_o allege_v their_o reason_n why_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o council_n nor_o yet_o those_o who_o be_v by_o oath_n tie_v unto_o he_o and_o for_o the_o place_n appoint_v beside_o that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o imperial_a diet_n no_o safe_a conduct_n can_v free_v they_o from_o danger_n if_o they_o go_v thither_o for_o the_o pope_n have_v adherent_n throughout_o all_o italy_n who_o bitter_o hate_v the_o protestant_n doctrine_n there_o be_v great_a danger_n of_o treachery_n and_o secret_a plot_n beside_o in_o regard_n that_o many_o doctor_n and_o minister_n ought_v to_o go_v in_o person_n because_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o handle_v a_o matter_n of_o that_o importance_n by_o deputy_n their_o church_n will_v be_v leave_v desolate_a and_o how_o can_v they_o consent_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o to_o root_v out_o their_o doctrine_n which_o he_o call_v heresy_n and_o can_v refrain_v from_o say_v so_o much_o in_o all_o his_o bull_n yea_o in_o that_o by_o which_o he_o intimate_v the_o council_n and_o in_o the_o bull_n which_o dissemble_o he_o make_v for_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o have_v often_o repeat_v that_o he_o have_v call_v a_o council_n to_o extirpate_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n and_o make_v demonstration_n thereof_o by_o effect_n exercise_v bloody_a torment_n
by_o the_o pope_n consent_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v there_o be_v some_o design_n in_o rome_n and_o some_o pain_n take_v also_o for_o reformation_n the_o copy_n be_v sudden_o print_v and_o publish_v throughout_o all_o germany_n and_o many_o write_v against_o it_o both_o in_o dutch_a and_o latin_a and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o protestant_n increase_v daily_a in_o that_o country_n the_o king_n of_o denmark_n and_o some_o prince_n of_o the_o house_n of_o brandeburg_n be_v enter_v into_o their_o league_n november_n draw_v near_o the_o pope_n send_v out_o a_o bull_n for_o convocation_n of_o appoint_v the_o council_n be_v intimate_v at_o vicenza_n and_o three_o legate_n appoint_v the_o council_n at_o vicenza_n and_o allege_v the_o necessity_n to_o prorogue_v the_o time_n because_o winter_n be_v at_o hand_n he_o do_v intimate_v it_o for_o the_o first_o of_o may_n the_o next_o year_n 1538._o and_o appoint_v three_o cardinal_n legate_n for_o that_o place_n lorenzo_n campeggio_n legate_n before_o for_o clement_n the_o seven_o in_o germany_n jomes_n simoneta_n and_o jerom_n aleander_n create_v cardinal_n by_o himself_o so_o soon_o as_o this_o bull_n go_v out_o the_o king_n of_o england_n publish_v another_o manifost_n against_o this_o new_a convocation_n and_o address_v it_o to_o the_o emperor_n king_n england_n another_o manifest_a publish_v by_o the_o k_o 〈…〉_o of_o england_n and_o christian_a people_n date_v the_o eight_o day_n of_o april_n the_o same_o year_n 1538._o that_o have_v before_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n the_o manifold_a cause_n why_o he_o have_v resuse_v the_o council_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n feign_v he_o will_v celebrate_v in_o mantua_n prorogue_v afterward_o without_o assignation_n of_o any_o certain_a place_n it_o seem_v not_o convenient_a to_o protest_v as_o often_o as_o he_o do_v excogitate_v a_o new_a way_n and_o to_o refuse_v that_o council_n which_o the_o pope_n 〈…〉_o de_fw-fr a_o colourable_a show_n that_o he_o will_v celebrate_v he_o say_v that_o that_o declaration_n desended_a his_o and_o his_o kingdom_n cause_n against_o all_o the_o attempt_n that_o either_o paul_n or_o any_o other_o pope_n can_v make_v which_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o confirm_v with_o this_o epistle_n to_o excuse_v himself_o for_o not_o go_v to_o vicenza_n more_o than_o he_o will_v have_v do_v to_o mantua_n though_o no_o man_n desire_v a_o public_a assembly_n of_o christian_n more_o than_o himself_o so_o that_o the_o council_n be_v general_a free_a and_o picus_fw-la such_o as_o he_o have_v describe_v in_o his_o protestation_n against_o the_o council_n of_o mantua_n and_o as_o nothing_o be_v more_o holy_a than_o a_o general_a convocation_n of_o christian_n so_o nothing_o be_v more_o prejudicial_a and_o pernicious_a to_o religion_n than_o a_o council_n abuse_v for_o gain_n and_o profit_n or_o confirmation_n of_o error_n that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o general_a council_n because_o all_o christian_n may_v speak_v their_o opinion_n and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v call_v general_a where_o only_o they_o be_v hear_v who_o be_v resolve_v to_o put_v themselves_o on_o the_o pope_n side_n in_o all_o matter_n and_o where_o the_o same_o man_n be_v plaintiff_n defendant_n advocate_n and_o judge_n that_o all_o may_v be_v say_v of_o viconza_n which_o in_o his_o declaration_n have_v be_v say_v of_o mantua_n and_o brief_o repeat_v a_o short_a content_n thereof_o he_o say_v if_o frederick_n duke_n of_o mantua_n have_v not_o yield_v so_o much_o to_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o to_o grant_v he_o his_o city_n in_o that_o manner_n that_o he_o will_v why_o shall_v we_o so_o much_o esteem_v it_o as_o to_o go_v whither_o he_o please_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n from_o god_n to_o call_v prince_n whither_o he_o will_v why_o can_v he_o not_o choose_v what_o place_n he_o list_v and_o make_v himself_o obey_v if_o the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n can_v with_o reason_n deny_v the_o place_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v choose_v why_o can_v other_o king_n and_o prince_n refuse_v to_o go_v thither_o and_o if_o all_o prince_n shall_v deny_v he_o their_o city_n where_o will_v be_v his_o power_n what_o a_o thing_n will_v it_o have_v be_v if_o all_o man_n have_v put_v themselves_o into_o the_o journey_n and_o be_v arrive_v there_o shall_v have_v be_v shut_v out_o of_o door_n by_o the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n that_o which_o happen_v for_o mantua_n may_v happen_v likewise_o for_o vicenza_n the_o legate_n go_v to_o vicenza_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o the_o pope_n to_o nizza_n vicenza_n the_o legate_n toe_n to_o vicenza_n in_o provence_n at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o speak_v personal_o with_o the_o emperor_n and_o french_a king_n which_o he_o give_v out_o be_v only_o to_o make_v peace_n between_o those_o spain_n a_o conference_n in_o nizza_n between_o the_o pope_n french_a k._n and_o king_n of_o spain_n two_o great_a prince_n though_o his_o principal_a end_n be_v to_o draw_v the_o dukedom_n of_o milan_n into_o his_o house_n i_o here_o the_o pope_n among_o other_o thing_n desire_v they_o both_o to_o send_v their_o ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o prelate_n which_o be_v in_o their_o train_n to_o go_v also_o and_o to_o give_v order_n that_o those_o that_o be_v at_o home_n in_o their_o kingdom_n shall_v begin_v their_o voyage_n thither_o for_o glue_v the_o order_n they_o both_o excuse_v and_o say_v that_o first_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o inform_v themselves_o by_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o their_o church_n and_o for_o send_v those_o that_o wear_v present_a that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o persuade_v they_o to_o go_v before_o they_o have_v consolt_v with_o other_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o easy_o satisfy_v with_o the_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v doubt_v whether_o he_o more_o desire_v the_o affirmative_a or_o the_o negative_a therefore_o this_o treaty_n be_v unprofitable_a as_o be_v all_o his_o other_o in_o that_o meeting_n he_o go_v his_o way_n and_z be_v at_o genua_n in_o easter_n the_o council_n be_v defen_v unull_v easter_n his_o return_n receive_v letter_n from_o his_o legate_n who_o be_v at_o vicenza_n yet_o alone_o without_o any_o prelate_n wherefore_o he_o recall_v they_o and_o by_o his_o bull_n date_v the_o eight_o of_o julie_n prolong_v the_o term_n of_o the_o council_n until_o the_o next_o easter_n day_n this_o year_n the_o pope_n break_v the_o wise_a patience_n or_o rather_o dissimulation_n which_o for_o four_o year_n together_o he_o have_v use_v towards_o england_n and_o send_v against_o the_o king_n a_o terrible_a thunder_a bull_n such_o as_o never_o be_v england_n the_o pope_n thunder_v against_o the_o k._n of_o england_n use_v by_o his_o predecessor_n nor_o imitate_v by_o his_o successor_n which_o fulmination_n have_v its_o original_n from_o the_o manifest_v publish_v against_o the_o council_n of_o mantua_n and_o vicenza_n my_o purpose_n require_v i_o shall_v make_v mention_n thereof_o beside_o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o many_o accident_n which_o shall_v be_v relate_v hereafter_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o repeat_v this_o event_n with_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v deny_v his_o obedience_n to_o rome_n and_o declare_v himself_o head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n the_o year_n 1534._o as_o have_v be_v say_v in_o its_o place_n pope_n paul_n immediate_o after_o his_o assumption_n be_v continual_o instigate_v by_o the_o emperor_n for_o his_o own_o interest_n and_o by_o the_o court_n which_o think_v by_o that_o mean_n either_o to_o regain_v england_n or_o set_v it_o on_o fire_n to_o fulminate_v against_o that_o king_n which_o he_o as_o a_o man_n well_o experience_v in_o the_o world_n judge_v will_v be_v to_o little_a purpose_n consider_v that_o if_o the_o thunder_n of_o his_o predecessor_n never_o have_v good_a success_n when_o they_o be_v believe_v and_o fear_v by_o all_o there_o be_v less_o hope_n they_o can_v effect_v any_o thing_n after_o a_o doctrine_n be_v publish_v and_o receive_v by_o many_o which_o do_v contemn_v they_o he_o think_v it_o wisdom_n to_o hold_v a_o weapon_n within_o the_o scabbard_n which_o have_v no_o other_o edge_n but_o what_o be_v give_v by_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o against_o who_o it_o be_v use_v but_o the_o behead_v of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o rochester_n happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1535_o the_o other_o cardinal_n be_v earnest_a in_o remonstrate_v unto_o he_o what_o a_o shame_n and_o how_o great_a a_o danger_n it_o be_v to_o the_o order_n which_o ever_o be_v esteem_v most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a if_o such_o a_o example_n shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o pass_v for_o the_o cardinal_n defend_v the_o popedom_n bold_o with_o all_o prince_n because_o they_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o life_n which_o assurance_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o make_v know_v to_o the_o secular_o that_o the_o cardinal_n may_v be_v
iustice_v they_o shall_v do_v their_o business_n with_o too_o much_o fear_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n forsake_v not_o his_o resolution_n but_o find_v a_o temper_n never_o use_v by_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n to_o lift_v up_o the_o thunderbolt_n with_o his_o hand_n and_o to_o threaten_v to_o shoot_v yet_o to_o hold_v it_o without_o fling_v it_o abroad_o and_o so_o to_o satisfy_v the_o cardinal_n the_o court_n and_o other_o and_o not_o to_o put_v the_o papal_a authority_n in_o hazard_n therefore_o he_o frame_v a_o process_n and_o most_o severe_a sentence_n against_o that_o king_n the_o thirty_o of_o august_n 1535._o and_o withal_o suspend_v the_o publication_n during_o his_o pleasure_n yet_o secret_o he_o let_v the_o copy_n go_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o that_o he_o know_v will_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o king_n disperse_v the_o rumour_n of_o the_o bull_n that_o be_v frame_v and_o the_o suspension_n with_o fame_n that_o very_o sudden_o he_o will_v remove_v the_o suspension_n and_o come_v to_o publication_n yet_o with_o design_n never_o to_o proceed_v so_o far_o and_o though_o he_o want_v not_o hope_n that_o the_o king_n either_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o excommunication_n frame_v or_o by_o the_o inclination_n of_o his_o people_n or_o by_o the_o satiety_n of_o punishment_n use_v against_o those_o that_o disobey_v his_o decree_n will_v induce_v himself_o or_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o emperor_n or_o french_a king_n when_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o occurrence_n of_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o unite_v himself_o with_o either_o of_o they_o will_v be_v induce_v to_o yield_v yet_o he_o be_v principal_o move_v by_o the_o forename_a cause_n that_o he_o may_v not_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o weapon_n and_o more_o confirm_v the_o king_n in_o his_o separation_n but_o in_o the_o end_n of_o three_o year_n he_o change_v his_o purpose_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o provocation_n which_o the_o king_n seem_v to_o use_v against_o he_o by_o send_v out_o manifest_v against_o all_o his_o calling_n of_o the_o council_n and_o by_o oppose_v his_o action_n though_o without_o particular_a offence_n of_o his_o person_n and_o last_o by_o have_v prosecute_v cite_v &_o condemn_a s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n for_o a_o traitor_n to_o the_o 〈…〉_o the_o king_n of_o england_n senteneeth_n s_o thomas_n bec_n 〈…〉_o kingdom_n with_o confiscation_n of_o good_n who_o alexander_n the_o three_o canonize_v in_o the_o year_n 1171._o for_o be_v slay_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o liberty_n who_o solemn_a feast_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v annual_o observe_v which_o sentence_n be_v execute_v by_o take_v the_o bone_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n which_o be_v public_o burn_v by_o the_o hangman_n and_o the_o ash_n sprinkle_v in_o the_o river_n put_v his_o hand_n into_o the_o treasure_n ornament_n and_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n dedicate_v to_o he_o which_o be_v to_o touch_v a_o secret_a of_o the_o popedom_n of_o far_o great_a importance_n than_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o council_n whereunto_o join_v some_o hope_n which_o he_o conceive_v from_o the_o conference_n with_o the_o french_a king_n which_o be_v that_o he_o will_v assist_v the_o malcontent_n of_o england_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v free_a from_o the_o war_n with_o the_o emperor_n the_o 17._o of_o december_n he_o brandish_v the_o thunderbolt_n of_o excommunication_n make_v three_o year_n before_o and_o open_v his_o hand_n to_o cast_v it_o forth_o which_o all_o this_o while_n be_v ready_a to_o do_v it_o the_o cause_n allege_v be_v in_o substance_n these_o the_o divorce_n obedience_n punishment_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o excommunication_n and_o the_o punishment_n take_v away_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o rochester_n and_o the_o proceed_n against_o s._n thomas_n the_o punishment_n to_o the_o king_n be_v deprivation_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o to_o his_o adherent_n of_o whatsoever_o they_o possess_v command_v his_o subject_n to_o deny_v he_o obedience_n and_o stranger_n to_o have_v any_o commerce_n in_o that_o kingdom_n and_o all_o to_o take_v arm_n against_o and_o to_o persecute_v both_o himself_o and_o his_o follower_n grant_v they_o their_o state_n and_o good_n for_o their_o prey_n and_o their_o person_n for_o their_o slave_n but_o how_o much_o the_o pope_n brief_n be_v esteem_v and_o his_o commandment_n contemn_v the_o excommunication_n be_v general_o contemn_v observe_v the_o league_n confederation_n peace_n treaty_n which_o by_o the_o emperor_n french_a king_n and_o other_o catholic_a prince_n be_v make_v with_o that_o king_n do_v evident_o declare_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1539_o new_a controversy_n be_v raise_v in_o 1539_o 1539_o germany_n about_o religion_n and_o perhaps_o by_o man_n ofbad_v intention_n who_o use_v it_o but_o for_o a_o pretence_n there_o be_v a_o assembly_n hold_v in_o francfurt_n whither_o the_o religion_n a_o assembly_n be_v hold_v in_o francfurt_n about_o religion_n emperor_n send_v a_o commissioner_n and_o after_o long_a disputation_n there_o it_o be_v by_o his_o consent_n conclude_v the_o 19_o of_o april_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o conference_n in_o noremberg_n the_o first_o of_o august_n to_o create_v quiet_o and_o love_o of_o religion_n 〈…〉_o 1539_o paul_n 3._o 1._o c_o 〈…〉_o 15._o henry_n 8._o 3._o f_o 〈…〉_o where_o on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o other_o beside_o the_o doctor_n other_o person_n of_o wisdom_n be_v to_o be_v present_a send_v by_o the_o emperor_n king_n ferdinand_n and_o other_o prince_n to_o superintend_v at_o the_o colloquie_n and_o deal_v between_o the_o party_n and_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o common_a consent_n shall_v be_v signify_v to_o all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o ratify_v by_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o next_o diet._n the_o catholic_n will_v have_v the_o pope_n entreat_v to_o send_v also_o some_o person_n to_o the_o conferent_fw-la 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o protestant_n think_v it_o contrary_n to_o their_o protestation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o do_v this_o news_n of_o the_o assembly_n be_v arrive_v at_o offend_v whereat_o the_o pope_n be_v much_o offend_v rome_n the_o pope_n be_v offend_v as_o well_o because_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o treaty_n about_o religion_n in_o germany_n as_o because_o it_o derogate_a from_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o council_n intimate_v though_o he_o care_v very_o little_a to_o have_v it_o celebrate_v and_o more_o particular_o because_o there_o be_v a_o dispute_n to_o admit_v of_o one_o to_o be_v send_v by_o he_o and_o in_o the_o end_n his_o authority_n whole_o reject_v therefore_o he_o sudden_o dispatch_v into_o spain_n the_o bishop_n of_o monte_n pulciano_n who_o principal_a message_n be_v to_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n not_o to_o confirm_v yea_o rather_o to_o annihilate_v the_o decree_n of_o that_o diet._n the_o nuncio_n have_v a_o great_a and_o long_a instruction_n first_o to_o complain_v grievous_o emperor_n he_o send_v a_o nuncio_n to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o demeanour_n of_o john_n vessalius_n archbishop_n of_o london_n his_o commissary_n who_o forget_v his_o oath_n make_v to_o that_o sea_n and_o infinite_a benefit_n receive_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o instruction_n give_v he_o by_o the_o emperor_n have_v consent_v to_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o lutheran_n with_o prejudice_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o dishonour_n of_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n that_o london_n be_v corrupt_v with_o gift_n and_o promise_n the_o city_n of_o ausburg_n have_v give_v he_o 250._o thousand_o florin_n of_o gold_n and_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n promise_v he_o 4._o thousand_o florin_n yearly_o out_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o archbishoprique_n of_o london_n which_o be_v take_v from_o he_o that_o he_o think_v to_o take_v a_o wife_n and_o forsake_v the_o church_n denmark_n a_o city_n in_o denmark_n and_o have_v never_o enter_v into_o holy_a order_n the_o nuncio_n have_v commandment_n to_o show_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o if_o the_o thing_n which_o london_n have_v grant_v be_v confirm_v by_o he_o they_o will_v show_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o son_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o that_o all_o the_o catholic_a prince_n of_o germany_n complain_v thereof_o and_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o his_o majesty_n will_v not_o confirm_v they_o he_o give_v order_n also_o to_o propose_v unto_o he_o his_o interest_n concern_v the_o duchy_n of_o ghelderland_n and_o the_o election_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o move_v he_o the_o more_o put_v he_o also_o in_o mind_n that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v germany_n at_o his_o disposition_n by_o tolerate_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n as_o london_n and_o other_o do_v persuade_v for_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n long_o since_o know_v that_o principality_n can_v in_o likelihood_n be_v preserve_v where_o religion_n be_v lose_v or_o where_o two_o religion_n be_v suffer_v
that_o this_o happen_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n who_o have_v abandon_v the_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o universal_a bishop_n of_o rome_n lose_v their_o force_n &_o kingdom_n that_o the_o cunning_a of_o the_o lutheran_n be_v manifest_a who_o have_v proceed_v malicious_o with_o his_o majesty_n and_o that_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o establish_v their_o religion_n they_o do_v ever_o procure_v something_o else_o that_o a_o example_n thereof_o be_v the_o diet_n of_o spira_n in_o the_o year_n 1526_o of_o noremberg_n 1532_o and_o of_o calano_n 1534._o when_o the_o duke_n of_o wittenberg_n regain_v the_o duchy_n which_o show_v that_o those_o commotion_n of_o the_o landgrave_n and_o the_o lutheran_n be_v not_o for_o religion_n but_o to_o take_v that_o state_n from_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n that_o he_o shall_v put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o when_o he_o make_v a_o accord_n with_o the_o lutheran_n the_o catholic_a prince_n will_v not_o endure_v such_o a_o disorder_n that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v have_v more_o power_n over_o they_o then_o over_o the_o protestant_n and_o will_v think_v upon_o new_a remedy_n that_o there_o be_v many_o other_o lawful_a and_o honest_a way_n to_o reduce_v germany_n the_o pope_n be_v resolve_v to_o afford_v he_o all_o possible_a aid_n according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o his_o force_n and_o when_o his_o majesty_n shall_v have_v well_o think_v thereon_o he_o will_v find_v that_o these_o capitulation_n can_v be_v approve_v without_o make_v all_o germany_n lutheran_n which_o be_v whole_o to_o deprive_v himself_o of_o authority_n for_o that_o sect_n exclude_v all_o superiority_n extol_v liberty_n or_o rather_o licence_n above_o all_o that_o he_o shall_v put_v into_o the_o emperor_n head_n to_o augment_v the_o catholic_a league_n and_o to_o take_v from_o the_o lutheran_n their_o adherent_n as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v and_o to_o send_v as_o much_o money_n as_o be_v possible_a into_o germany_n to_o promise_v and_o real_o to_o give_v it_o to_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o catholic_a league_n that_o it_o be_v good_a also_o under_o colour_n of_o turkish_a affair_n to_o send_v a_o competent_a number_n of_o spaniard_n or_o italian_n into_o those_o part_n lodge_v they_o within_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v resolve_v to_o send_v some_o person_n to_o the_o catholic_a prince_n with_o money_n to_o gratify_v those_o that_o shall_v be_v fit_a for_o his_o purpose_n that_o he_o shall_v exhort_v caesar_n to_o make_v such_o a_o edict_n as_o the_o king_n of_o england_n make_v in_o his_o kingdom_n cause_v a_o rumour_n to_o be_v spread_v cunning_o that_o his_o majesty_n negotiate_v with_o the_o say_a king_n to_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o rome_n the_o pope_n give_v commission_n also_o to_o the_o say_v montepulciano_n to_o complain_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o his_o sister_n queen_n mary_n governess_n of_o the_o low_a country_n secret_o favour_v the_o lutherane_n part_n that_o she_o purposely_o send_v country_n the_o nuncio_n complain_v against_o the_o emperor_n sister_n governess_n of_o the_o low_a country_n man_n unto_o they_o that_o when_o the_o catholic_a league_n be_v to_o be_v establish_v she_o write_v to_o the_o elector_n of_o trier_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o it_o and_o so_o that_o good_a work_n be_v cross_v that_o she_o hinder_v the_o lord_n of_o lavaur_n the_o french_a ambassador_n from_o go_v into_o germany_n to_o consult_v with_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o his_o holiness_n about_o religion_n which_o he_o do_v believe_v proceed_v notfrom_o her_o own_o will_n but_o from_o the_o counsel_n of_o her_o bad_a minister_n but_o because_o mention_v be_v make_v of_o the_o edict_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o matter_n 8._o the_o edict_n of_o religion_n make_v by_o k._n henry_n the_o 8._o of_o religion_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o recount_v here_o how_o henry_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o diet_n of_o francfort_n either_o because_o he_o think_v to_o do_v god_n service_n by_o not_o permit_v innovation_n of_o religion_n within_o his_o kingdom_n or_o to_o show_v constancy_n in_o what_o he_o have_v write_v against_o luther_n or_o to_o give_v the_o pope_n the_o lie_n who_o lay_v a_o imputation_n upon_o he_o in_o his_o bull_n that_o he_o have_v publish_v heretical_a doctrine_n in_o his_o kingdom_n make_v a_o public_a edict_n whereby_o he_o command_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n under_o the_o kind_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n there_o remain_v no_o substance_n of_o those_o element_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v throughout_o all_o england_n as_o also_o that_o christ_n be_v whole_o contain_v under_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o kind_n that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o priest_n to_o marry_v that_o religious_a man_n after_o their_o profession_n and_o vow_n of_o chastity_n be_v bind_v always_o to_o keep_v they_o and_o to_o live_v in_o monastery_n that_o secret_a and_o auricular_a confession_n be_v not_o only_o profitable_a but_o also_o necessary_a that_o the_o celebration_n of_o mass_n even_o private_a be_v a_o holy_a thing_n which_o he_o command_v shall_v be_v observe_v in_o his_o kingdom_n he_o prohibit_v all_o to_o do_v or_o teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o these_o article_n upon_o pain_n to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n it_o be_v to_o be_v marvel_v at_o how_o the_o pope_n who_o a_o little_a before_o thunder_v against_o that_o king_n be_v constrain_v to_o praise_v his_o action_n and_o to_o propose_v he_o to_o the_o emperor_n for_o a_o ensample_n to_o be_v imitate_v so_o a_o man_n proper_a interest_n make_v he_o commend_v and_o blame_v the_o same_o person_n but_o the_o pope_n after_o he_o have_v dispatch_v montepulciano_n see_v that_o by_o call_v the_o council_n and_o after_o defer_v it_o though_o he_o entertain_v the_o world_n yet_o he_o lose_v reputation_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o leave_v that_o ambiguous_a proceed_n which_o howsoever_o it_o have_v give_v man_n satisfaction_n heretofore_o yet_o in_o council_n a_o consultation_n about_o the_o council_n progress_n of_o time_n it_o may_v produce_v some_o sinister_a effect_n and_o he_o make_v a_o secret_a resolution_n to_o declare_v himself_o and_o to_o forsake_v ambiguity_n and_o in_o the_o consistory_n have_v relate_v what_o have_v happen_v and_o propose_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o constant_a and_o firm_a resolution_n he_o put_v the_o matter_n in_o consultation_n some_o of_o the_o cardinal_n to_o deliver_v themselves_o from_o fear_n which_o every_o other_o day_n amaze_v they_o do_v not_o approve_v the_o suspension_n but_o desire_v a_o express_a declaration_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o council_n at_o all_o because_o it_o appear_v not_o how_o the_o difficulty_n can_v be_v overcome_v before_o there_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n between_o prince_n a_o necessary_a mean_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n it_o can_v be_v celebrate_v but_o the_o wise_a sort_n be_v balance_v between_o this_o and_o another_o fear_n that_o there_o may_v be_v nationall_n counsel_n or_o other_o remedy_n use_v more_o offensive_a to_o they_o then_o a_o general_a synod_n and_o therefore_o the_o mayor_n part_n give_v consent_n for_o the_o suspension_n during_o pleasure_n think_v that_o when_o it_o shall_v seem_v not_o fit_a to_o bring_v it_o to_o effect_n it_o may_v be_v continue_v by_o pretend_v the_o discord_n between_o prince_n or_o some_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o if_o there_o happen_v any_o danger_n of_o a_o nationall_n council_n or_o of_o colloquy_n or_o aught_o else_o it_o may_v be_v remoove_v by_o promote_a the_o general_n council_n and_o assign_v unto_o it_o place_n and_o time_n and_o afterward_o it_o may_v be_v call_v or_o let_v alone_o as_o time_n shall_v advise_v the_o match_n be_v make_v and_o a_o bull_n pleasure_n the_o council_n intimate_v be_v suspend_v during_o pleasure_n be_v frame_v the_o thirteen_o of_o june_n by_o which_o the_o council_n intimate_v be_v suspend_v during_o pleasure_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n but_o montepulciano_n the_o nuncio_n who_o go_v into_o spain_n execute_v his_o commission_n with_o the_o emperor_n who_o either_o for_o the_o cause_n allege_v by_o the_o nuncio_n or_o for_o some_o respect_n of_o his_o own_o declare_v not_o himself_o whether_o he_o dissent_v or_o assent_v to_o the_o colloquy_n appoint_v to_o be_v hold_v at_o noremberg_n in_o august_n afterward_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o wife_n death_n and_o the_o rebellion_n of_o gant_n with_o part_n of_o the_o low_a country_n he_o have_v occasion_n by_o pretend_v affair_n of_o great_a importance_n to_o leave_v the_o matter_n in_o suspense_n and_o so_o
the_o whole_a year_n 1539._o pass_v when_o i_o set_v myself_o to_o write_v this_o story_n consider_v the_o number_n of_o colloquy_n some_o only_o intimate_v and_o some_o hold_v to_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n i_o doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o make_v mention_n of_o all_o have_v conclude_a reason_n for_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o end_n consider_v that_o i_o have_v propose_v to_o myself_o to_o relate_v all_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o observe_v that_o none_o have_v be_v intimate_v or_o hold_v but_o to_o hinder_v or_o divert_v or_o delay_n or_o to_o hasten_v and_o accelerate_v the_o council_n i_o resolve_v to_o make_v mention_n of_o every_o one_o especial_o for_o the_o fruit_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o 1540_o 1540_o paul_n 3_o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o 1540_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o notable_a particular_n which_o happen_v in_o they_o as_o in_o that_o which_o be_v appoint_v the_o year_n follow_v which_o have_v his_o beginning_n thus_o the_o emperor_n go_v to_o the_o low_a country_n by_o the_o way_n of_o france_n to_o accommodate_v those_o sedition_n and_o ferdinand_n meet_v he_o there_o where_o one_o of_o the_o most_o principal_a business_n confer_v of_o between_o they_o both_o be_v to_o find_v a_o way_n of_o composition_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o germany_n which_o be_v exact_o handle_v by_o the_o body_n of_o the_o emperor_n council_n all_o do_v incline_v to_o institute_v a_o colloquy_n herein_o this_o come_n to_o the_o ear_n of_o farnese_n who_o be_v legate_n there_o and_o have_v accompany_v colloquy_n cardinal_n farnese_n the_o pope_n legate_n dissuade_v the_o colloquy_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o voyage_n which_o cardinal_n though_o a_o youth_n under_o the_o age_n of_o twenty_o year_n yet_o have_v in_o his_o company_n many_o person_n fit_a for_o business_n and_o among_o other_o marcellus_z ceruinus_fw-la bishop_n of_o nicastro_n who_o after_o be_v pope_n and_o call_v marcellus_n the_o second_o he_o oppose_v this_o resolution_n and_o treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n and_o with_o all_o those_o of_o the_o council_n he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v often_o deal_v withal_o for_o peace_n begin_v ten_o year_n since_o in_o the_o diet_n of_o ausburg_n but_o still_o without_o effect_n and_o in_o case_n any_o conclusion_n have_v be_v make_v it_o will_v have_v be_v vain_a and_o fruitless_a for_o they_o daily_o change_v their_o opinion_n not_o follow_v any_o certain_a doctrine_n and_o have_v oppose_v even_o their_o own_o augustan_n confession_n that_o they_o be_v slippery_a as_o eeel_n first_o they_o be_v desirous_a that_o the_o abuse_n and_o vice_n shall_v be_v remoove_v now_o they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o papacy_n amend_v but_o extinguish_v and_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n root_v out_o and_o all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n abolish_v and_o if_o ever_o they_o be_v petulant_a they_o will_v be_v then_o much_o more_o when_o the_o peace_n be_v not_o well_o confirm_v with_o france_n and_o the_o turk_n threaten_v hungary_n that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o persuade_v they_o because_o the_o controversy_n be_v upon_o innumerable_a doctrine_n and_o because_o there_o be_v many_o sect_n among_o they_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o accord_v with_o all_o beside_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o have_v no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o possess_v the_o good_n of_o other_o and_o bereave_v the_o emperor_n of_o his_o authority_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o instant_a turkish_a war_n persuade_v a_o agreement_n in_o religion_n but_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v do_v in_o particular_a or_o nationall_n diet_n but_o in_o a_o general_a council_n which_o may_v immediate_o be_v intimate_v for_o where_o religion_n be_v in_o question_n no_o mutation_n can_v be_v make_v without_o common_a consent_n that_o germany_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v respect_v but_o france_n spain_n italy_n and_o other_o people_n without_o who_o counsel_n if_o germany_n shall_v make_v a_o change_n there_o will_v arise_v a_o dangerous_a division_n of_o that_o province_n from_o the_o rest_n that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o ancient_a custom_n even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o compose_v controversy_n with_o a_o council_n only_o and_o that_o now_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o godly_a man_n desire_v it_o that_o peace_n may_v now_o easy_o be_v conclude_v between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n &_o immediate_o after_o a_o council_n call_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n endeavour_n may_v be_v use_v to_o increase_v the_o number_n and_o power_n of_o the_o catholic_a league_n of_o germany_n which_o by_o intimidate_v the_o protestant_n will_v cause_v they_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o council_n or_o at_o the_o least_o they_o will_v be_v enforce_v by_o the_o catholic_n and_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o resist_v the_o turk_n the_o catholic_a league_n be_v strong_a may_v constrain_v the_o protestant_n to_o contribute_v which_o in_o case_n they_o will_v not_o do_v it_o be_v necessary_a of_o two_o evil_n to_o choose_v the_o lesser_a it_o be_v a_o great_a fault_n to_o offend_v god_n by_o abandon_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n then_o to_o want_v the_o assistance_n of_o one_o part_n of_o a_o province_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o judge_v who_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o christ_n the_o protestant_n or_o the_o turk_n for_o these_o desire_n to_o inthrale_n our_o body_n but_o those_o both_o body_n and_o soul_n together_o all_o the_o discourse_n and_o parley_n of_o the_o cardinal_n have_v for_o their_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o call_v a_o council_n and_o to_o begin_v it_o that_o same_o year_n and_o not_o to_o treat_v of_o religion_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o germany_n but_o to_o labour_v or_o augment_v the_o catholic_a league_n and_o to_o make_v peace_n with_o the_o king_n of_o france_n the_o emperor_n after_o much_o deliberation_n conclude_v that_o he_o will_v labour_v for_o a_o concord_n and_o give_v order_n for_o a_o diet_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o germany_n where_o ferdinand_n think_v good_a invite_v the_o protestant_a prince_n to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n and_o promise_v public_a security_n unto_o all_o cardinal_n farnese_n hear_v of_o this_o depart_v the_o legate_n depart_v conclusion_n make_v without_o his_o knowledge_n go_v immediate_o away_o and_o pass_v by_o paris_n obtain_v of_o the_o king_n a_o severe_a edict_n against_o the_o heretic_n and_o lutheran_n which_o be_v publish_v be_v execute_v in_o that_o city_n and_o after_o throughout_o all_o france_n with_o much_o rigour_n in_o germany_n the_o diet_n be_v call_v by_o ferdinand_n in_o aganoa_n where_o the_o catholigue_n religion_n the_o diet_n of_o aganoa_n about_o religion_n doctor_n and_o many_o protestant_a preacher_n and_o minister_n meet_v together_o and_o the_o elector_n of_o trier_n the_o palatine_a duke_n lewis_n of_o bavaria_n and_o william_n bishop_n of_o argentina_n be_v depute_v for_o mediator_n between_o the_o party_n the_o protestant_n be_v require_v to_o present_v the_o head_n of_o the_o doctrine_n in_o controversy_n answer_v that_o they_o have_v give_v up_o their_o confession_n in_o ausburg_n ten_o year_n since_o and_o a_o apology_n in_o defence_n of_o it_o that_o they_o persevere_v in_o that_o doctrine_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n thereof_o unto_o all_o man_n and_o not_o know_v what_o the_o adversary_n reprehend_v they_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o expect_v to_o understand_v from_o they_o what_o it_o be_v they_o esteem_v contrary_a to_o truth_n for_o so_o the_o matter_n will_v come_v to_o a_o conference_n and_o themselves_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o set_v peace_n before_o their_o eye_n the_o catholic_n take_v they_o sudden_o at_o their_o word_n &_o assent_v to_o what_o the_o other_o propose_v infer_v that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o esteem_v for_o approve_a all_o thing_n pass_v in_o that_o diet_n and_o to_o account_v the_o decree_n firm_a and_o stable_a which_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o recess_n and_o to_o lay_v before_o they_o the_o form_n of_o reconciliation_n begin_v in_o that_o diet._n the_o protestant_n know_v their_o disadvantage_n in_o case_n they_o follow_v that_o form_n and_o the_o prejudice_n which_o that_o decree_n will_v have_v infer_v urge_v for_o a_o new_a form_n and_o to_o have_v all_o the_o preiudices_fw-la take_v away_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o catholic_n demand_v that_o in_o regard_n all_o prejudice_n be_v to_o be_v remove_v those_o thing_n that_o the_o protestant_n have_v do_v shall_v be_v rectify_v and_o the_o church_n good_n take_v by_o they_o restore_v the_o protestant_n reply_v that_o the_o good_n be_v not_o take_v away_o but_z by_o renovation_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n be_v reapply_v to_o those_o lawful_a and_o honest_a use_n unto_o
commission_n declare_v that_o the_o pope_n mind_n concern_v the_o council_n be_v the_o same_o as_o before_o that_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v celebrate_v that_o he_o have_v suspend_v it_o by_o caesar_n consent_n to_o make_v way_n first_o to_o some_o concord_n in_o germany_n but_o see_v this_o to_o be_v in_o vain_a he_o return_v to_o his_o former_a opinion_n not_o to_o defer_v the_o celebration_n of_o it_o but_o that_o he_o can_v not_o consent_v to_o make_v it_o in_o germany_n because_o he_o mean_v to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n and_o that_o his_o age_n and_o length_n of_o the_o way_n and_o so_o great_a a_o change_n of_o the_o air_n hinder_v his_o go_v into_o that_o country_n and_o that_o it_o seem_v not_o more_o commodious_a for_o other_o nation_n beside_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a probability_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o difference_n can_v not_o be_v handle_v without_o commotion_n therefore_o that_o ferrara_n bolonia_n or_o piacenza_n all_o great_a and_o most_o opportune_a city_n seem_v to_o he_o more_o fit_a but_o in_o case_n they_o like_v they_o not_o he_o be_v content_v to_o call_v it_o in_o trent_n a_o city_n at_o the_o confine_n of_o germany_n that_o his_o will_n be_v to_o begin_v it_o at_o whitsuntide_n but_o for_o the_o straightness_n of_o the_o time_n he_o have_v prorogue_v it_o to_o the_o thirteen_o of_o august_n he_o pray_v they_o all_o to_o be_v present_a there_o and_z lay_v aside_o all_o hatred_n to_o handle_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n with_o sincerity_n ferdinand_n and_o the_o catholic_a prince_n thank_v the_o pope_n and_o say_v that_o not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v a_o fit_a place_n in_o germany_n as_o ratibon_n or_o collen_n they_o be_v content_v with_o trent_n but_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o agree_v 〈◊〉_d consent_v trent_n be_v name_v for_o the_o place_n of_o the_o council_n but_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o consent_v there_o that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v intimate_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o that_o trent_n shall_v be_v the_o place_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o nothing_o be_v determine_v in_o that_o diet_n concern_v the_o council_n howsoever_o the_o pope_n send_v out_o a_o bull_n of_o the_o intimation_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o of_o may_v this_o year_n wherein_o have_v declare_v his_o desire_n to_o provide_v 〈…〉_o the_o pope_n publish_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o in_o it_o 〈…〉_o against_o the_o evil_n of_o christendom_n he_o say_v he_o have_v always_o think_v upon_o the_o temedy_n and_o find_v none_o more_o fit_a than_o a_o council_n he_o be_v constant_o resolve_v to_o call_v it_o and_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o convocation_n at_o mantua_n then_o of_o the_o suspension_n after_o of_o the_o convocation_n at_o vicenza_n and_o of_o the_o other_o suspension_n make_v in_o genua_n and_o final_o of_o that_o other_o during_o pleasure_n he_o go_v on_o to_o show_v the_o reason_n that_o induce_v he_o to_o continue_v the_o same_o suspension_n until_o then_o these_o be_v ferdinend_v war_n in_o hungary_n the_o rebellion_n of_o flanders_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o happen_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o ratubon_n expect_v a_o time_n appoint_v by_o god_n for_o this_o work_n but_o consider_v in_o the_o end_n that_o every_o time_n be_v acceptable_a to_o his_o divine_a majesty_n when_o holy_a thing_n be_v handle_v he_o resolve_v to_o expect_v no_o other_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v vicenza_n be_v willing_a to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o germany_n concern_v the_o place_n and_o understand_v they_o desire_v trent_n though_o a_o city_n more_o within_o italy_n seem_v to_o he_o more_o commodious_a yet_o his_o fatherly_a charity_n incline_v his_o will_n to_o yield_v to_o their_o demand_n and_o he_o choose_v trent_n to_o celebrate_v there_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n the_o first_o of_o november_n next_o and_o that_o he_o interpose_v that_o time_n that_o his_o decree_n may_v be_v publish_v and_o the_o prelate_n have_v time_n to_o arrive_v at_o the_o place_n therefore_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o himself_o exercise_v on_o earth_n by_o the_o counsel_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n all_o suspension_n be_v remoove_v he_o intimate_v a_o holy_a ecumenical_a and_o general_a council_n in_o that_o city_n a_o fit_a place_n free_a and_o opportune_a for_o all_o nation_n to_o be_v begin_v the_o first_o of_o that_o month_n prosecute_v and_o end_v call_v all_o patriarch_n archbishop_n bishop_n abbat_n and_o those_o who_o by_o law_n or_o privilege_n have_v voice_n in_o general_a counsel_n and_o command_v they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o oath_n make_v to_o he_o and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o by_o holy_a obedience_n and_o under_o the_o punishment_n by_o law_n or_o custom_n to_o be_v inflict_v upon_o the_o disobedient_a to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n or_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v be_v hinder_v to_o make_v faith_n of_o the_o hindrance_n or_o send_v proctor_n pray_v the_o emperor_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n and_o all_o other_o king_n duke_n and_o prince_n to_o be_v personal_o present_a or_o in_o case_n they_o can_v to_o send_v ambassador_n man_n of_o gravity_n and_o authority_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o province_n to_o go_v thither_o desire_v further_o of_o the_o prelate_n and_o prince_n of_o germany_n for_o who_o sake_n the_o council_n be_v intimate_v in_o the_o place_n they_o wish_v that_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v handle_v which_o belong_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o the_o correction_n of_o manner_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o concord_n of_o christian_a prince_n and_o people_n and_o oppression_n of_o the_o barbarian_n and_o infidel_n the_o bull_n be_v present_o send_v from_o rome_n to_o also_o inch_n but_o go_v not_o forth_o in_o a_o fit_a time_n for_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n have_v in_o july_n denounce_v war_n in_o threaten_a torme_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o publish_v it_o by_o a_o book_n which_o boh_o 〈…〉_o he_o make_v it_o at_o the_o same_o instant_n in_o brabant_n king_n the_o french_a king_n make_v war_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o emperor_n except_v against_o the_o bull_n and_o complain_v of_o the_o french_a king_n 〈…〉_o nt_v and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o emperor_n have_v receive_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o council_n answer_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o it_o for_o have_v never_o refuse_v any_o pain_n danger_n or_o do_v that_o the_o council_n 〈…〉_o ght_v be_v end_v and_o contrary_o the_o french_a king_n have_v always_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v it_o reseem_v strange_a unto_o he_o that_o they_o be_v compare_v and_o make_v equal_a in_o the_o bull_n and_o rehearse_v all_o the_o injury_n which_o he_o protend_v to_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o king_n add_v also_o that_o in_o the_o last_o diet_n at_o spira_n he_o have_v labour_v by_o his_o ambassador_n to_o cherish_v the_o discord_n of_o religion_n by_o promise_a friendship_n and_o favour_n to_o either_o party_n in_o fine_a he_o refer_v it_o to_o his_o holiness_n to_o consider_v if_o the_o action_n of_o that_o king_n do_v ferue_v to_o remedy_v the_o mischief_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n and_o to_o begin_v the_o council_n which_o he_o do_v ever_o cross_a for_o his_o private_a gain_n and_o have_v constrain_v he_o who_o do_v perceive_v it_o to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o reconcile_v the_o difference_n of_o religion_n therefore_o in_o case_n the_o council_n shall_v not_o be_v celebrate_v that_o his_o holiness_n ought_v not_o to_o blame_v he_o but_o the_o king_n and_o denounce_v war_n against_o he_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o assist_v the_o public_a good_a because_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o call_v the_o council_n establish_v religion_n and_o regain_v peace_n the_o king_n presage_v what_o imputation_n will_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o for_o emperor_n the_o french_a king_n wax_v cruel_a against_o the_o protestant_n to_o free_v himself_o from_o the_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o emperor_n make_v a_o war_n to_o the_o hurt_n of_o religion_n and_o hindrance_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o the_o council_n prevent_v it_o by_o publish_v a_o edict_n against_o the_o lutheran_n command_v the_o parliament_n to_o execute_v it_o inviolable_o with_o severe_a charge_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v appeach_v who_o have_v book_n differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v secret_a conventicle_n that_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o that_o observe_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o meat_n or_o pray_v in_o any_o tongue_n but_o the_o latin_a and_o command_v the_o sorbonist_n to_o be_v diligent_a spy_n against_o they_o afterward_o understand_v the_o
labour_v to_o incite_v the_o pope_n against_o he_o and_o to_o have_v money_n from_o he_o for_o the_o war_n the_o pope_n serve_v himself_o upon_o this_o occasion_n be_v whole_o set_v upon_o the_o gain_n milan_n the_o pope_n seek_v to_o gain_v milan_n of_o milan_n for_o his_o nephew_n wherein_o he_o be_v assist_v by_o margarite_n bastard_n daughter_n to_o the_o emperor_n marry_v to_o octavius_n farnese_n the_o pope_n nephew_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n make_v duchess_n of_o camerino_n the_o pope_n promise_v the_o emperor_n to_o combine_v with_o he_o against_o the_o french_a king_n to_o make_v many_o cardinal_n of_o his_o nomination_n to_o pay_v he_o for_o some_o year_n 150000._o crown_n leave_v also_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o castle_n of_o milan_n and_o cremona_n but_o because_o the_o imperialist_n require_v a_o million_o of_o ducat_n for_o the_o present_a and_o another_o million_o upon_o short_a day_n of_o payment_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v and_o in_o regard_n the_o emperor_n can_v not_o long_o tarry_v it_o be_v agree_v to_o continue_v the_o treaty_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o pope_n minister_n who_o shall_v follow_v the_o emperor_n caesar_n show_v he_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o council_n that_o by_o the_o send_n of_o legate_n and_o assistance_n of_o those_o few_o prelate_n the_o catholic_n of_o germany_n at_o the_o least_o have_v know_v his_o ready_a mind_n and_o because_o the_o impediment_n may_v be_v impute_v to_o the_o french_a king_n he_o conclude_v that_o the_o remedy_n king_n he_o mistruste_v the_o emperor_n and_o turn_v to_o the_o french_a king_n be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v upon_o until_o it_o do_v appear_v how_o the_o war_n proceed_v they_o part_v with_o great_a demonstration_n of_o mutual_a satisfaction_n yet_o the_o pope_n mistrust_v the_o emperor_n and_o from_o that_o time_n turn_v his_o mind_n towards_o the_o french_a king_n but_o while_o he_o be_v thus_o doubtful_a the_o league_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n against_o france_n be_v publish_v which_o constrain_v the_o pope_n whole_o to_o alienate_v himself_o from_o he_o for_o he_o see_v how_o much_o that_o league_n prejudice_v his_o authority_n be_v contract_v with_o one_o excommunicate_v anathematise_v by_o he_o curse_a destinate_a to_o eternal_a damnation_n a_o schismatique_a deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n who_o confederation_n england_n a_o league_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o england_n make_v with_o who_o soever_o be_v void_a against_o who_o also_o all_o christian_n prince_n be_v bind_v by_o his_o commandment_n to_o take_v arm_n and_o which_o most_o import_v that_o still_o remain_v more_o contumacious_a and_o open_o despise_v his_o authority_n league_n the_o pope_n be_v much_o offend_v with_o the_o league_n this_o evident_o show_v to_o the_o world_n that_o the_o emperor_n bear_v no_o respect_n unto_o he_o neither_o spiritual_a nor_o temporal_a and_o give_v example_n to_o all_o to_o make_v no_o account_n of_o his_o authority_n and_o the_o affront_n seem_v to_o he_o the_o great_a because_o clement_n who_o may_v easy_o have_v temporize_v in_o that_o cause_n to_o please_v the_o emperor_n and_o for_o his_o interest_n have_v proceed_v against_o that_o king_n who_o otherwise_o be_v well_o affect_v and_o deserve_v well_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n to_o weigh_v down_o these_o offence_n the_o pope_n put_v in_o the_o other_o balance_n that_o the_o french_a king_n have_v make_v so_o many_o law_n and_o edict_n before_o name_v to_o preserve_v religion_n and_o his_o authority_n unto_o which_o be_v add_v that_o the_o parisian_a divine_n the_o first_o of_o august_n assemble_v the_o people_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n publish_v five_o and_o twenty_o head_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n propose_v the_o bare_a conclusion_n and_o determination_n without_o add_v reason_n persuasion_n or_o ground_n but_o only_o prescribe_v as_o it_o be_v by_o authority_n what_o they_o will_v have_v believe_v which_o be_v print_v and_o send_v through_o all_o france_n confirm_v by_o the_o king_n letter_n under_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n against_o whosoever_o speak_v or_o teach_v other_o wise_a with_o another_o new_a decree_n to_o make_v inquisition_n against_o the_o lutheran_n these_o thing_n the_o rather_o please_v the_o pope_n because_o he_o know_v the_o king_n do_v they_o not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o reason_n relate_v before_o that_o be_v to_o justify_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n that_o he_o make_v not_o war_n with_o the_o emperor_n to_o favour_v the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n nor_o to_o hinder_v their_o extirpation_n but_o principal_o to_o please_v he_o and_o for_o reverence_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n but_o the_o emperor_n know_v the_o pope_n complaint_n answer_v that_o the_o complaint_n the_o emperor_n answer_n to_o the_o pope_n complaint_n french_a king_n have_v make_v a_o league_n with_o the_o turk_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o christian_n as_o the_o siege_n of_o nizza_n in_o provence_n make_v by_o the_o ottoman_a army_n guide_v by_o polinus_n the_o king_n abassadour_n and_o the_o spoil_v take_v in_o the_o river_n of_o the_o kingdom_n well_o show_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o use_v for_o his_o defence_n the_o help_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n a_o christian_a though_o he_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o pope_n as_o also_o by_o the_o same_o pope_n leave_n himself_o and_o ferdinand_n use_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o protestant_n more_o averse_a from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n then_o that_o king_n that_o the_o pope_n understand_v the_o league_n of_o the_o french_a king_n with_o the_o turk_n shall_v have_v proceed_v against_o he_o but_o he_o see_v well_o what_o difference_n be_v make_v for_o the_o turkisharmie_a which_o have_v so_o much_o damnify_v all_o the_o christian_n wheresoever_o it_o go_v pass_v friendly_a by_o the_o pope_n river_n yea_o go_v to_o ostia_n to_o take_v in_o the_o fresh_a water_n on_o s._n peter_n day_n at_o night_n for_o which_o all_o rome_n be_v in_o confusion_n the_o cardinal_n of_o carpi_n who_o command_v in_o the_o pope_n name_n that_o be_v absent_a put_v they_o out_o of_o fear_n be_v secure_a by_o the_o intelligence_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o turk_n the_o war_n and_o these_o complaint_n put_v to_o silence_v the_o treaty_n about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 1544_o paul_n 3._o 〈◊〉_d charles_n 〈◊〉_d henry_n 〈…〉_o francis_z 〈◊〉_d council_n for_o this_o year_n which_o the_o next_o 1544_o return_v into_o the_o field_n &_o begin_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n where_o the_o emperor_n rehearse_v the_o pain_n which_o he_o former_o take_v to_o remedy_v the_o discord_n in_o religion_n &_o final_o the_o care_n &_o diligence_n use_v in_o ratisbon_n be_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n how_o it_o not_o be_v then_o possible_a to_o compose_v the_o controversy_n all_o be_v final_o refer_v to_o a_o general_a or_o national_a council_n 〈…〉_o 1544._o the_o treaty_n a_o 〈…〉_o both_o the_o cou●cell_n begin_v again_o in_o the_o diet_n of_o 〈…〉_o or_o a_o diet_n and_o that_o afterwards_o the_o pope_n at_o his_o instance_n have_v intimate_v the_o council_n where_o himself_o resolve_v to_o be_v in_o person_n &_o will_v have_v perform_v it_o if_o the_o war_n of_o france_n have_v not_o hundred_o him_z but_o now_o in_o regard_n the_o discord_n in_o religion_n remain_v the_o same_o &_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n it_o be_v not_o time_n to_o defer_v the_o remedy_n any_o long_o for_o which_o he_o give_v order_n they_o shall_v consider_v and_o propose_v to_o he_o what_o way_n they_o think_v to_o be_v best_a the_o business_n of_o religion_n be_v much_o consider_v on_o but_o because_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o war_n press_v they_o more_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o diet_n which_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o december_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n a_o decree_n be_v make_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v give_v charge_n to_o some_o honest_a and_o learned_a man_n to_o write_v a_o form_n of_o reformation_n and_o that_o all_o the_o prince_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o that_o all_o be_v confer_v together_o that_o may_v be_v determine_v in_o the_o diet_n by_o common_a consent_n which_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v until_o the_o future_a general_a council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o germany_n or_o until_o a_o nationall_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n that_o all_o shall_v remain_v in_o peace_n without_o raise_v any_o tumult_n for_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o shall_v enjoy_v their_o good_n this_o recess_n do_v not_o general_o please_v the_o catholic_n but_o some_o of_o they_o because_o they_o incline_v to_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n approve_v this_o middle_a way_n those_o that_o be_v not_o content_v see_v their_o number_n to_o be_v small_a resolve_v to_o endure_v it_o but_o the_o war_n go_v on_o still_o and_o the_o pope_n disdain_n conceive_v for_o the_o league_n with_o
england_n do_v wax_n great_a for_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v never_o increase_v the_o pope_n disdain_n against_o the_o emperor_n be_v increase_v assent_v to_o any_o of_o those_o main_a and_o ample_a match_n offer_v he_o by_o the_o cardinal_n farnese_n who_o he_o send_v legate_n with_o he_o into_o germany_n concern_v the_o grant_n of_o the_o duchy_n of_o milan_n to_o the_o family_n of_o the_o farnesi_n and_o that_o be_v to_o assist_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n he_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o cardinal_n legate_n to_o follow_v he_o thither_o for_o fear_n of_o offend_v the_o protestant_n and_o final_o consider_v the_o decree_n make_v in_o the_o diet_n so_o prejudicial_a to_o he_o and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o be_v more_o offend_v because_o he_o see_v his_o hope_n lose_v and_o his_o authority_n and_o reputation_n much_o diminish_v and_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o show_v he_o be_v sensible_a of_o it_o and_o though_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o consider_v that_o his_o party_n in_o germany_n be_v weaken_v and_o be_v counsel_v by_o his_o most_o inward_a friend_n to_o dissemble_v yet_o final_o be_v assure_v that_o by_o declare_v himself_o open_o against_o caesar_n he_o do_v more_o strait_o bind_v the_o french_a king_n to_o maintain_v his_o reputation_n he_o resolve_v to_o begin_v from_o word_n to_o take_v occasion_n to_o pass_v to_o deed_n as_o the_o coniuncture_n shall_v comport_v and_o the_o five_o of_o august_n he_o write_v a_o great_a long_a letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o have_v understand_v what_o decree_n be_v make_v emperor_n the_o pope_n write_v a_o long_a angry_a letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o spira_n his_o duty_n and_o fatherly_a charity_n do_v enforce_v he_o to_o tell_v he_o his_o opinion_n that_o he_o may_v not_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o ely_n the_o priest_n who_o god_n severe_o punish_v for_o his_o too_o much_o indulgence_n towards_o his_o son_n that_o the_o decree_n of_o spira_n be_v dangerous_a for_o the_o emperor_n soul_n and_o extreme_o trouble_v the_o church_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o violate_v the_o rule_n observe_v by_o christian_n which_o command_v that_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n all_o shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o he_o not_o esteem_v the_o pope_n who_o only_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v power_n to_o call_v counsel_n and_o to_o decree_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n be_v willing_a to_o think_v of_o assemble_v a_o general_n of_o nationall_n council_n and_o have_v suffer_v idiot_n and_o heretic_n to_o judge_v of_o religion_n have_v make_v decree_n concern_v sacred_a good_n restore_v to_o honour_v the_o rebel_n of_o the_o church_n who_o he_o have_v condemn_v by_o his_o own_o edict_n that_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v these_o thing_n by_o his_o own_o inclination_n but_o by_o the_o pernicious_a counsel_n of_o those_o that_o bear_v ill_a will_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o complain_v of_o this_o that_o he_o have_v yield_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o example_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o the_o usurper_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o vzza_n dathan_n abiron_n and_o core_n of_o king_n ozias_n and_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a excuse_n to_o say_v the_o decree_n be_v but_o temporary_a until_o the_o council_n only_o for_o though_o the_o thing_n do_v be_v holy_a yet_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o person_n that_o do_v it_o it_o not_o belong_v to_o he_o it_o be_v wicked_a that_o god_n have_v always_o exalt_v those_o prince_n that_o have_v be_v devote_a to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n head_n of_o all_o church_n constantine_n the_o theodosij_n and_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o contrary_o have_v punish_v those_o that_o have_v not_o give_v due_a respect_n unto_o it_o example_n hereof_o be_v anastasius_n mauritius_n constan●_n the_o 2._o pilip_n leo_n and_o other_o and_z henry_n the_o 4._o be_v for_o this_o cause_n chastise_v by_o his_o own_o son_n as_o also_o frederick_n the_o 2._o by_o he_o and_o not_o prince_n only_o but_o whole_a nation_n have_v be_v punish_v for_o it_o the_o jew_n for_o put_v to_o death_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o grecian_n for_o have_v many_o way_n contemn_v his_o vicar_n which_o thing_n he_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o fear_v because_o he_o be_v descend_v from_o those_o emperor_n who_o have_v receive_v more_o honour_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o they_o have_v give_v it_o that_o he_o commend_v he_o for_o desire_v the_o amendment_n of_o the_o church_n but_o withal_o do_v advise_v he_o to_o leave_v the_o charge_n thereof_o to_o he_o to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v it_o that_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o minister_n but_o not_o a_o governor_n nor_o a_o head_n he_o add_v that_o he_o desire_v the_o reformation_n and_o have_v declare_v it_o often_o by_o intimate_v the_o council_n whensoever_o any_o spark_n of_o hope_n have_v appear_v that_o it_o may_v be_v assemble_v and_o though_o in_o vain_a until_o then_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o be_v want_v to_o his_o duty_n desire_v much_o a_o council_n which_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n against_o all_o mischief_n as_o well_o for_o the_o general_a good_a of_o christendom_n as_o the_o particular_a of_o germany_n which_o have_v more_o need_n thereof_o that_o it_o have_v be_v intimate_v already_o though_o defer_v until_o a_o more_o commodious_a time_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o to_o give_v way_n that_o it_o may_v be_v celebrate_v by_o make_v peace_n or_o defer_v the_o war_n while_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n that_o he_o shall_v obey_v these_o fatherly_a command_n exclude_v from_o the_o imperial_a diet_n all_o dispute_n about_o religion_n and_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o pope_n ordain_v nothing_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a good_n revoke_v the_o grant_n make_v to_o the_o rebel_n against_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n otherwise_o to_o perform_v his_o own_o duty_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o use_v great_a severity_n against_o he_o than_o he_o will_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o second_o book_n the_o war_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a september_n the_o emperor_n be_v whole_o inclive_v to_o peace_n which_o be_v conclude_v the_o 24._o of_o september_n king_n last_v not_o long_o for_o the_o emperor_n see_v plain_o that_o while_o he_o be_v busy_v in_o that_o and_o his_o brother_n in_o the_o other_o against_o the_o turk_n germany_n so_o much_o increase_v in_o liberty_n that_o the_o imperial_a name_n will_v not_o be_v esteem_v within_o a_o short_a time_n and_o that_o so_o long_o as_o he_o make_v war_n in_o france_n he_o imitate_v esop_n dog_n who_o follow_v the_o shadow_n lose_v both_o it_o and_o the_o body_n whereupon_o he_o hearken_v to_o the_o proposition_n of_o peace_n make_v by_o the_o french_a man_n with_o design_n not_o only_o to_o be_v free_v from_o that_o impediment_n but_o by_o the_o king_n mean_n to_o accommodate_v the_o turkish_a affair_n and_o apply_v himself_o unto_o germany_n the_o four_o and_o twenty_o of_o september_n the_o peace_n be_v conclude_v between_o they_o and_o among_o other_o thing_n they_o both_o capitulate_v to_o defend_v the_o old_a religion_n and_o to_o labour_v for_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n from_o whence_o all_o the_o dissension_n be_v derive_v and_o that_o for_o this_o purpose_n the_o pope_n shall_v joint_o be_v request_v to_o call_v the_o council_n and_o the_o french_a king_n shall_v send_v to_o the_o diet_n of_o germany_n to_o persuade_v the_o protestant_n to_o accept_v it_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o afraid_a of_o the_o capitulation_n for_o the_o council_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n be_v assure_v that_o whensoever_o they_o begin_v that_o enterprise_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o diverse_a end_n and_o interest_n they_o will_v not_o long_o agree_v neither_o do_v he_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o design_n be_v to_o be_v execute_v by_o a_o council_n he_o will_v so_o accommodate_v every_o treaty_n that_o his_o authority_n shall_v be_v amplify_v but_o he_o think_v that_o in_o case_n he_o shall_v call_v the_o council_n at_o their_o request_n the_o world_n will_v imagine_v he_o be_v constrain_v which_o will_v bring_v much_o dishonour_n to_o his_o reputation_n and_o encouragement_n to_o he_o that_o design_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o papal_a power_n therefore_o not_o expect_v to_o be_v prevent_v by_o any_o of_o they_o and_o dissemble_v suspicion_n the_o pope_n dissemble_v his_o suspicion_n the_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o the_o emperor_n even_o those_o that_o be_v most_o important_a which_o the_o peace_n make_v
proceed_v joint_o with_o the_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n and_o to_o communicate_v to_o they_o their_o most_o inward_a thought_n whereupon_o when_o letter_n come_v from_o rome_n or_o germany_n they_o assemble_v all_o to_o read_v they_o but_o perceive_v that_o don_n diego_n equalise_v himself_o to_o they_o and_o the_o bishop_n presume_v more_o than_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v at_o rome_n and_o fear_v some_o inconvenience_n will_v arise_v when_o their_o number_n do_v increase_v they_o send_v advise_v to_o rome_n that_o always_o one_o letter_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o be_v show_v and_o the_o secret_a thing_n apart_o because_o of_o the_o letter_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v until_o then_o they_o have_v make_v no_o use_n but_o by_o their_o wit_n they_o demand_v also_o a_o cipher_n to_o communicate_v the_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n all_o which_o particularity_n with_o many_o more_o that_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o have_v take_v out_o of_o the_o register_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n i_o have_v not_o be_v willing_a to_o conceal_v they_o because_o they_o serve_v to_o penetrate_v the_o depth_n of_o the_o treaty_n the_o month_n of_o march_n be_v pass_v and_o the_o time_n prefix_v in_o the_o pope_n bull_n to_o begin_v the_o council_n expire_v many_o day_n the_o legate_n consult_v among_o themselves_o concern_v the_o open_n of_o it_o and_o resolve_v to_o expect_v advice_n from_o fabius_n magnanellus_n nuncio_n with_o ferdinand_n of_o what_o be_v handle_v in_o worm_n and_o order_n from_o rome_n after_o the_o pope_n have_v hear_v of_o the_o arrival_n and_o proposition_n of_o don_n diego_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o make_v so_o great_a a_o begin_n with_o three_o bishop_n only_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n arrive_v the_o eight_o of_o april_n and_o a_o solemn_a congregation_n be_v make_v to_o receive_v they_o in_o that_o don_n diego_n will_v have_v precede_v the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n and_o sit_v next_o the_o legate_n say_v that_o in_o regard_n he_o represent_v the_o emperor_n he_o ought_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o his_o majesty_n trent_n d._n diego_n will_v have_v precede_v the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n shall_v but_o not_o to_o hinder_v the_o business_n they_o find_v out_o a_o way_n to_o place_v they_o so_o that_o it_o can_v not_o appear_v who_o have_v the_o precedence_n the_o king_n ambassador_n present_v only_o their_o prince_n his_o letter_n and_o declare_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n his_o observance_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o the_o pope_n his_o readiness_n to_o favour_v the_o council_n and_o large_a offer_n and_o they_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o k._n of_o the_o roman_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n add_v that_o he_o will_v send_v a_o commission_n in_o form_n and_o person_n better_o instruct_v after_o this_o the_o wish_a for_o advice_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o trent_n of_o the_o proposition_n make_v in_o the_o diet_n the_o 24._o of_o march_n by_o king_n ferdinand_n who_o be_v precedent_n there_o in_o the_o emperor_n name_n and_o of_o the_o negotiation_n which_o follow_v thereupon_o the_o king_n proposition_n be_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v make_v peace_n with_o the_o french_a king_n that_o he_o may_v apply_v himself_o to_o compose_v the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o prosecute_v the_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n from_o who_o he_o have_v diet._n the_o proposition_n of_o ferdinand_n in_o the_o diet._n promise_n of_o assistance_n and_o a_o approbation_n of_o the_o council_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o be_v there_o in_o person_n or_o by_o his_o ambassador_n that_o for_o this_o end_n it_o be_v before_o prorogue_v he_o have_v deal_v with_o the_o pope_n to_o intimate_v it_o again_o and_o solicit_v he_o to_o give_v aid_n against_o the_o turk_n that_o he_o have_v obtain_v the_o intimation_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o that_o ambassador_n send_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o himself_o be_v already_o in_o trent_n that_o all_o the_o world_n know_v what_o pain_n caesar_n have_v take_v to_o cause_v the_o council_n to_o be_v celebrate_v first_o with_o clement_n in_o bolonia_n then_o with_o paul_n in_o rome_n genua_n nizza_n lucca_n and_o busseto_o that_o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o spira_n he_o have_v give_v order_n to_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o good_a conscience_n to_o compose_v a_o form_n of_o reformation_n which_o be_v according_o perform_v but_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o great_a deliberation_n and_o the_o time_n short_a and_o the_o turkish_a war_n threaten_v they_o the_o emperor_n be_v resolve_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o this_o any_o more_o but_o to_o expect_v how_o the_o council_n will_v proceed_v and_o what_o may_v be_v hope_v from_o it_o because_o it_o be_v sudden_o to_o begin_v and_o in_o case_n no_o fruit_n appear_v he_o may_v before_o the_o end_n of_o that_o diet_n intimate_v another_o to_o handle_v all_o that_o business_n apply_v himself_o how_o to_o that_o which_o be_v of_o more_o importance_n that_o be_v the_o turkish_a war_n this_o proposition_n make_v the_o protestant_n very_o suspicious_a for_o the_o peace_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o last_o until_o the_o council_n they_o be_v in_o doubt_n that_o when_o they_o be_v exhaust_v by_o contribution_n against_o the_o turk_n they_o shall_v be_v assail_v upon_o pretence_n that_o the_o peace_n be_v end_v by_o open_v the_o council_n in_o trent_n protestant_n the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o protestant_n yet_o they_o demand_v that_o the_o treaty_n begin_v shall_v be_v continue_v allege_v that_o the_o time_n be_v long_o enough_o to_o he_o that_o fear_v god_n or_o at_o least_o that_o a_o new_a peace_n shall_v be_v establish_v until_o a_o lawful_a council_n so_o often_o promise_v such_o as_o that_o of_o trent_n be_v not_o for_o the_o reason_n so_o many_o time_n rehearse_v before_o and_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o can_v not_o contribute_v if_o they_o have_v not_o assurance_n of_o peace_n not_o ●●ed_v to_o the_o pope_n council_n which_o they_o have_v refuse_v whensoever_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o and_o though_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n do_v consent_v absolute_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v whole_o remit_v to_o the_o council_n yet_o it_o be_v resolve_v to_o expect_v the_o emperor_n answer_n before_o the_o conclusion_n three_o particular_n in_o this_o action_n displease_v the_o pope_n and_o legate_n which_o proposition_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o legate_n be_v displease_v with_o three_o particular_n in_o the_o proposition_n be_v at_o trent_n one_o that_o the_o emperor_n arrogate_a to_o himself_o to_o have_v induce_v the_o pope_n to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n which_o argue_v small_a care_n of_o religion_n in_o his_o holiness_n the_o second_o that_o he_o have_v induce_v the_o french_a king_n to_o consent_n unto_o it_o which_o be_v no_o honour_n to_o his_o sanctity_n to_o who_o this_o belong_v the_o three_o that_o he_o will_v still_o keep_v the_o bit_n in_o his_o mouth_n by_o a_o future_a diet_n that_o in_o case_n the_o council_n go_v not_o forward_o he_o shall_v always_o fear_v that_o thing_n concern_v religion_n shall_v be_v treat_v of_o in_o the_o diet._n the_o pope_n be_v perpetual_o trouble_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o injury_n receive_v from_o the_o protestant_n as_o for_o the_o emperor_n action_n which_o as_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v though_o they_o seem_v favourable_a yet_o be_v more_o pernicious_a to_o religion_n and_o his_o authority_n which_o can_v not_o be_v separate_v beside_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v always_o in_o danger_n that_o the_o emperor_n will_v make_v some_o accord_n with_o the_o dutchman_n to_o his_o prejudice_n and_o think_v how_o to_o provide_v a_o remedy_n he_o can_v find_v none_o but_o to_o set_v on_o foot_n a_o war_n for_o religion_n because_o the_o protestant_n will_v be_v curb_v and_o the_o emperor_n likewise_o entangle_v in_o a_o dangerous_a enterprise_n and_o all_o speech_n of_o reformation_n and_o the_o council_n will_v be_v bury_v in_o silence_n he_o have_v great_a hope_n it_o will_v succeed_v by_o that_o which_o his_o nuncio_n write_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o find_v in_o the_o emperor_n great_a disdain_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o that_o he_o hearken_v to_o his_o proposition_n to_o subdue_v they_o by_o force_n for_o this_o respect_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v before_o relate_v and_o to_o hinder_v that_o no_o prejudicial_a thing_n may_v be_v do_v in_o the_o diet_n and_o to_o encourage_v and_o give_v strength_n to_o his_o follower_n another_o cause_n be_v add_v more_o urgent_a because_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o private_a interest_n for_o be_v resolve_v to_o give_v parma_n and_o piacenza_n to_o his_o son_n emperor_n the_o pope_n be_v resolve_v to_o give_v parma_n and_o piacenza_n to_o his_o sonnet_n but_o fear_v the_o emperor_n he_o think_v he_o can_v not_o do_v
the_o legate_n know_v how_o much_o it_o concern_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o council_n entertain_v they_o partly_o by_o say_v they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o give_v leave_n and_o partly_o by_o give_v hope_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v begin_v within_o few_o day_n caesar_n ambassador_n return_v to_o his_o ambassage_n at_o venice_n upon_o pretence_n of_o ind●_n position_n leave_v the_o legate_n doubtful_a whether_o it_o be_v by_o the_o emperor_n commission_n upon_o some_o trick_n or_o for_o be_v wear●_n to_o be_v idle_a and_o incommodated_a he_o promise_v a_o speedy_a return_n add_v that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n remain_v there_o to_o assist_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o he_o desire_v the_o council_n shall_v not_o be_v open_v until_o his_o return_n but_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o next_o month_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n move_v some_o by_o poverty_n and_o some_o by_o incommoditie_n make_v grievous_a complaint_n and_o raise_v as_o it_o be_v a_o sedition_n among_o themselves_o threaten_v that_o they_o will_v depart_v and_o have_v recourse_n to_o francis_n castel-alto_a governor_n of_o trent_n who_o ferdinand_n have_v appoint_v to_o hold_v his_o place_n together_o with_o 〈◊〉_d gine●a_n this_o man_n come_v before_o the_o legate_n and_o desire_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o king_n that_o now_o at_o last_o they_o will_v begin_v it_o be_v plain_a how_o much_o good_a will_v ensue_v by_o the_o celebration_n and_o how_o much_o evil_n by_o temperize_n th●●_n the_o legate_n hold_v themselves_o offend_v herewith_o because_o they_o think_v it_o be_v to_o show_v the_o world_n that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o attribute_v to_o they_o the_o delay_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o though_o they_o among_o themselves_o resolve_v to_o dissemble_v and_o to_o answer_v in_o general_a term_n yet_o the_o cardinal_n monte_fw-fr can_v not_o bridle_v his_o liberty_n but_o in_o make_v answer_n conclude_v in_o the_o end_n with_o persuasion_n to_o expect_v don_n diego_n who_o have_v more_o particular_a commission_n than_o he_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o entertain_v and_o comfort_v the_o prelate_n who_o ill_o endure_v that_o idle_a delay_n and_o especial_o the_o poor_a one_o who_o want_v money_n and_o not_o word_n wherefore_o they_o resolve_v to_o give_v at_o the_o pope_n charge_n forty_o ducat_n a_o year_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o nobili_fw-la bertinoro_n and_o bishop_n money_n be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a bishop_n chioza_n who_o complain_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o fear_v that_o the_o munificence_n may_v give_v pretence_n hereafter_o they_o declare_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v for_o a_o subsidy_n and_o not_o for_o provision_n they_o give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n by_o letter_n of_o what_o they_o have_v do_v show_v he_o the_o necessity_n to_o assist_v they_o with_o some_o great_a aid_n but_o tell_v he_o withal_o that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o give_v it_o as_o a_o firm_a provision_n that_o the_o father_n may_v not_o seem_v the_o stipendary_n of_o his_o holiness_n which_o will_v cherish_v the_o protestant_n excuse_n not_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o council_n because_o it_o be_v compose_v only_o of_o those_o that_o depend_v on_o and_o be_v oblige_v to_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o emperor_n in_o worm_n cite_v the_o archbiship_n of_o collen_n worm_n the_o archbishop_n of_o collen_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o emperor_n in_o worm_n to_o appear_v before_o he_o within_o thirty_o day_n or_o to_o send_v a_o proctor_n to_o answer_v to_o the_o accusation_n and_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o he_o command_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n not_o to_o make_v any_o innovation_n in_o religion_n and_o rite_n but_o to_o reduce_v the_o thing_n innovate_v to_o their_o former_a state_n hermannus_n bishop_n of_o collen_n desire_v to_o reform_v his_o church_n in_o the_o year_n 1536._o call_v a_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n his_o suffragans_fw-la where_o many_o decree_n be_v make_v and_o a_o book_n print_v compose_v by_o john_n groperus_n a_o canonist_n who_o for_o service_n do_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v after_o create_v cardinal_n by_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o but_o whether_o the_o archbishop_n and_o groperus_n himself_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o the_o reformation_n or_o whether_o he_o change_v his_o opinion_n he_o assemble_v the_o clergy_n and_o nobility_n and_o chief_a man_n of_o his_o state_n in_o the_o year_n 1543._o and_o establish_v another_o reformation_n this_o though_o it_o be_v approve_v by_o many_o please_v not_o the_o whole_a clergy_n yea_o the_o mayor_n part_v oppose_v it_o and_o make_v groperus_n their_o head_n who_o before_o have_v give_v counsel_n for_o it_o and_o promote_v it_o they_o entreat_v the_o archbishop_n to_o desist_v and_o expect_v a_o general_a council_n or_o at_o the_o least_o a_o imperial_a diet_n which_o not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v in_o the_o year_n 1545_o they_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o the_o emperor_n as_o supreme_a advocate_n and_o protector_n of_o the_o church_n the_o archbishop_n publish_v by_o a_o writing_n that_o the_o appeal_n be_v frivolous_a and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o desist_v from_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o amendment_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o have_v not_o to_o do_v either_o with_o the_o lutheran_n or_o other_o but_o that_o he_o observe_v the_o doctrine_n agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o archbishop_n go_v on_o in_o his_o reformation_n and_o the_o clergy_n of_o collen_n insist_v upon_o the_o contrary_a the_o emperor_n receive_v the_o clergy_n into_o his_o protection_n and_o cite_v the_o archbishop_n as_o have_v be_v say_v this_o news_n come_v to_o trent_n give_v matter_n to_o pass_v the_o time_n at_o the_o least_o with_o discourse_n the_o legate_n be_v much_o move_v and_o among_o the_o prelate_n which_o be_v present_v those_o that_o be_v of_o any_o understanding_n blame_v the_o emperor_n for_o make_v himself_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o reformation_n the_o most_o gentle_a word_n they_o speak_v be_v that_o the_o emperor_n proceed_n be_v very_o scandalous_a they_o begin_v to_o know_v they_o be_v not_o esteem_v and_o that_o to_o be_v idle_a be_v to_o be_v scorn_v by_o the_o world_n therefore_o they_o do_v discourse_n that_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v a_o council_n lawful_o call_v and_o to_o be_v begin_v trent_n the_o emperor_n be_v blame_v for_o the_o citation_n by_o the_o father_n of_o trent_n the_o work_n of_o god_n proceed_v first_o against_o the_o foresay_a archbishop_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n and_o likewise_o against_o the_o king_n of_o england_n they_o grow_v into_o so_o great_a spirit_n that_o they_o seem_v not_o the_o same_o who_o a_o few_o day_n before_o thought_n themselves_o confine_v in_o prison_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n abate_v this_o heat_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o those_o prince_n and_o their_o adherent_n and_o the_o danger_n to_o make_v they_o unite_v themselves_o with_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o so_o to_o make_v a_o great_a fire_n in_o germany_n and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o form_n the_o italian_a bishop_n think_v it_o a_o great_a matter_n to_o meddle_v in_o such_o eminent_a subject_n say_v it_o be_v true_a that_o all_o the_o world_n will_v be_v attentive_a at_o such_o a_o process_n yet_o that_o all_o the_o importance_n be_v to_o begin_v and_o ground_v it_o well_o they_o incite_v one_o another_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o redeem_v the_o slowness_n pass_v with_o celerity_n hereafter_o that_o they_o shall_v demand_v of_o the_o pope_n some_o man_n of_o worth_a to_o perorate_v against_o the_o accuse_a as_o do_v melehior_n baldassino_n against_o the_o pragmatique_a in_o the_o laterane_n council_n be_v persuade_v that_o to_o deprive_v prince_n of_o their_o state_n have_v no_o other_o difficulty_n then_o to_o use_v well_o the_o form_n of_o process_n but_o the_o legate_n as_o well_o for_o this_o as_o for_o other_o occurrence_n know_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v such_o a_o doctor_n and_o write_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v provide_v of_o one_o the_o pope_n understand_v the_o emperor_n action_n be_v astonish_v and_o doubt_v citation_n the_o pope_n be_v wonderful_o distaste_v with_o the_o citation_n whether_o to_o complain_v or_o be_v silent_a to_o complain_v when_o no_o effect_n will_v succeed_v he_o think_v frivolous_a and_o a_o demonstration_n of_o his_o small_a power_n and_o this_o move_v he_o exceed_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n consider_v well_o how_o much_o it_o import_v he_o not_o to_o pass_v over_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o moment_n he_o resolve_v not_o to_o give_v word_n
as_o they_o do_v in_o trent_n but_o to_o proceed_v to_o fact_n and_o answer_v the_o emperor_n afterward_o if_o he_o shall_v speak_v of_o it_o therefore_o he_o pope_n the_o archbishop_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o pope_n make_v another_o citation_n against_o the_o archbishop_n the_o eighteen_o of_o july_n that_o within_o sixty_o day_n he_o shall_v appear_v before_o he_o he_o cite_v also_o the_o dean_n of_o collen_n and_o five_o of_o the_o principal_a canon_n leave_v the_o world_n to_o dispute_v how_o the_o archbishop_n can_v appear_v before_o two_o which_o cite_v he_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o diverse_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o how_o a_o dispute_n of_o the_o competency_n of_o the_o place_n of_o judicature_n belong_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n but_o how_o this_o succeed_v and_o what_o end_n the_o cause_n have_v shall_v be_v say_v in_o its_o place_n to_o return_v to_o that_o which_o more_o near_o concern_v the_o council_n the_o emperor_n assay_v in_o the_o diet_n diverse_a way_n to_o make_v the_o protestant_n grant_v he_o answer_n the_o emperor_n demand_v assistance_n against_o the_o turk_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o give_v a_o conditional_a answer_n assistance_n against_o the_o turk_n not_o mention_v religion_n whereunto_o they_o still_o answer_v that_o they_o can_v not_o resolve_v without_o they_o be_v secure_v that_o the_o peace_n shall_v be_v keep_v and_o that_o by_o the_o convocation_n in_o trent_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o council_n it_o be_v not_o understand_v that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o peace_n be_v end_v according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o former_a diet_n but_o declare_v that_o the_o peace_n can_v be_v interrupt_v nor_o themselves_o enforce_v by_o any_o decree_v make_v in_o trent_n because_o they_o can_v submit_v themselves_o to_o that_o council_n where_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v condemn_v they_o already_o have_v free_a power_n the_o emperor_n say_v he_o can_v not_o give_v they_o peace_n which_o may_v exempt_v they_o from_o the_o council_n to_o who_o authority_n all_o be_v subject_a that_o he_o have_v no_o way_n to_o excuse_v himself_o to_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n if_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o germany_n alone_a not_o to_o obey_v the_o council_n assemble_v especial_o for_o her_o sake_n but_o if_o as_o they_o say_v they_o pretend_v a_o cause_n why_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v let_v they_o go_v to_o the_o council_n and_o allege_v their_o reason_n why_o they_o suspect_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v and_o if_o it_o appear_v they_o have_v wrong_v they_o may_v then_o refuse_v that_o it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o prevent_v and_o to_o suspect_v that_o which_o appear_v not_o pretend_v grievance_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o see_v as_o yet_o they_o reply_v they_o speak_v not_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o past_a their_o religion_n be_v condemn_v already_o and_o persecute_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o adherent_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o future_a judgement_n because_o it_o be_v pass_v already_o that_o it_o be_v just_a that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n of_o germany_n and_o of_o all_o other_o place_n shall_v make_v one_o part_n in_o the_o council_n and_o themselves_o the_o other_o and_o for_o the_o difficulty_n about_o the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o proceed_v the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n shall_v be_v judge_n but_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o they_o can_v not_o be_v remoove_v from_o this_o resolution_n though_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n there_o present_a do_v very_o much_o and_o with_o menace_a term_n entreat_v they_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o council_n which_o threat_v the_o minister_n of_o that_o k._n the_o pope_n favourer_n do_v dictate_v to_o the_o ambassador_n when_o he_o part_v from_o france_n the_o imperialist_n propose_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n into_o germany_n under_o the_o emperor_n promise_n to_o labour_v effectual_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v condescend_v which_o the_o other_o accept_v upon_o condition_n the_o peace_n be_v establish_v until_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v there_o but_o charles_n be_v sure_a that_o the_o pope_n will_v never_o agree_v see_v that_o this_o be_v to_o give_v they_o a_o perpetual_a peace_n and_o therefore_o he_o think_v it_o better_a to_o leave_v thing_n in_o suspense_n grant_v it_o only_o until_o another_o diet_n see_v he_o be_v constrain_v have_v not_o conclude_v truce_n with_o the_o turk_n as_o yet_o and_o esteem_v more_o that_o war_n think_v that_o by_o occasion_n of_o a_o colloquy_n other_o reasonable_a mean_n will_v be_v offer_v hereafter_o to_o make_v they_o consent_v anew_o to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o in_o case_n of_o refusal_n to_o hold_v they_o contumacious_a and_o to_o make_v war_n against_o they_o therefore_o the_o four_o of_o august_n he_o end_v the_o diet_n and_o ordain_v another_o in_o ratubon_n january_n another_o diet_n be_v ordain_v in_o ratubon_n for_o january_n for_o january_n next_o whereat_o the_o prince_n shall_v be_v personal_o present_a and_o institute_v a_o colloquy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n of_o four_o doctor_n and_o two_o judge_n for_o a_o side_n this_o be_v to_o begin_v at_o december_n that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v digest_v before_o the_o diet._n he_o confirm_v and_o renew_v the_o former_a edict_n of_o peace_n and_o set_v down_o a_o manner_n to_o pay_v the_o contribution_n for_o the_o war_n how_o the_o colloquy_n do_v proceed_v shall_v be_v say_v in_o its_o place_n the_o protestant_n be_v depart_v from_o worm_n set_v forth_o a_o book_n where_o council_n the_o protestant_n do_v protest_v against_o the_o tridentine_a council_n they_o say_v in_o sum_n that_o they_o esteem_v not_o the_o tridentine_n for_o a_o council_n be_v not_o assemble_v in_o germany_n as_o adrian_n and_o the_o emperor_n promise_v whereunto_o to_o make_v show_n of_o give_v satisfaction_n by_o make_v choice_n of_o trent_n be_v to_o mock_v the_o world_n because_o trent_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o germany_n but_o only_o because_o the_o bishop_n be_v a_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o for_o security_n that_o it_o be_v aswell_o in_o italy_n and_o as_o much_o in_o the_o pope_n power_n as_o rome_n itself_o and_o the_o rather_o they_o esteem_v it_o not_o lawful_a because_o pope_n paul_n will_v be_v precedent_n in_o it_o and_o propose_v by_o his_o legate_n that_o the_o judge_n be_v tie_v unto_o he_o by_o oath_n that_o the_o plea_n be_v against_o the_o pope_n himself_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o treat_v first_o of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o council_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n whereupon_o to_o ground_n but_o the_o emperor_n resolution_n displease_v religion_n the_o emperor_n be_v tax_v again_o for_o meddle_v in_o religion_n alike_o in_o trent_n and_o at_o rome_n as_o well_o because_o a_o secular_a prince_n meddle_v in_o religion_n as_o because_o it_o seem_v the_o council_n be_v casseer_v in_o regard_n that_o approach_v order_n be_v give_v to_o handle_v elsewhere_o the_o controversy_n of_o doctrine_n the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n blame_v the_o decree_n as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o voice_n say_v it_o be_v worse_a than_o that_o of_o spira_n and_o marvel_v that_o the_o pope_n who_o show_v himself_o so_o quick_a against_o that_o have_v and_o do_v tolarate_v this_o after_o that_o the_o council_n be_v intimate_v and_o already_o assemble_v from_o this_o they_o draw_v a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o their_o remain_v in_o trent_n be_v vain_a and_o dishonourable_a the_o legate_n try_v their_o wit_n to_o consolate_v and_o persuade_v they_o that_o all_o depart_v the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n be_v discontent_v and_o most_o of_o they_o do_v depart_v have_v be_v permit_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o a_o good_a end_n but_o they_o reply_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o end_n be_v and_o what_o thing_n soever_o do_v follow_v the_o blemish_n not_o only_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o apostolic_a sea_n but_o of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n will_v never_o be_v take_v away_o neither_o can_v the_o legate_n resist_v their_o complaint_n which_o end_v in_o demand_v leave_n to_o depart_v some_o allege_v necessary_a and_o important_a affair_n of_o their_o own_o and_o some_o to_o retire_v themselves_o into_o some_o of_o the_o next_o city_n for_o infirmity_n or_o indisposition_n and_o though_o the_o legate_n give_v leave_v to_o none_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o daily_o take_v it_o so_o that_o before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o month_n there_o remain_v very_o few_o but_o in_o rome_n though_o this_o success_n be_v foresee_v by_o the_o negotiation_n of_o cardinal_n farnese_n yet_o after_o it_o happen_v they_o begin_v to_o think_v more_o exact_o of_o it_o they_o consider_v that_o the_o emperor_n end_n be_v much_o different_a from_o
for_o great_a reverence_n to_o receive_v it_o again_o and_o examine_v it_o and_o make_v answer_v afterward_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o roman_a ceremonial_a all_o kneel_v down_o to_o pray_v soft_o as_o the_o use_n be_v in_o all_o the_o session_n and_o then_o they_o say_v aloud_o adsumus_fw-la domine_fw-la etc._n etc._n sancte_fw-la spiritus_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o the_o precedent_n speak_v with_o a_o high_a voice_n in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o litany_n be_v sing_v the_o gospel_n be_v read_v by_o the_o deacon_n si_fw-mi peccaverit_fw-la in_o te_fw-la frater_fw-la tu●s_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o last_o the_o hymn_n veni_fw-la creator_n spiritus_fw-la be_v sing_v and_o all_o sit_v down_o in_o their_o place_n the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n pronunce_v the_o decree_n with_o interrogatory_n word_n read_v whether_o it_o please_v the_o father_n for_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n extirpation_n of_o heresy_n reformation_n of_o church_n and_o people_n depression_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n to_o determine_v and_o declare_v that_o the_o holy_a tridentine_n and_o general_n council_n shall_v begin_v and_o be_v begin_v whereunto_o all_o answer_v first_o the_o legate_n than_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o father_n by_o the_o word_n place●_n he_o then_o add_v whether_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a year_n it_o session_n the_o decree_n for_o open_v the_o counsel_n and_o hold_v the_o next_o session_n please_v they_o that_o the_o next_o session_n shall_v be_v the_o seven_o of_o january_n and_o they_o answer_v likewise_o that_o it_o please_v they_o this_o be_v do_v hercules_n severallo_n speaker_n of_o the_o council_n desire_v the_o notary_n to_o make_v a_o instrument_n of_o all_o the_o hymn_n te_fw-la deum_fw-la laudamus_fw-la be_v sing_v and_o the_o father_n put_v off_o their_o pontifical_a habit_n and_o put_v on_o their_o common_a accompany_v the_o legate_n the_o cross_n go_v before_o these_o ceremony_n be_v use_v in_o the_o session_n follow_v shall_v be_v repeat_v no_o more_o germany_n and_o italy_n be_v very_o curious_a to_o know_v the_o first_o action_n of_o this_o assembly_n which_o be_v begin_v with_o so_o many_o difficulty_n &_o the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n and_o those_o of_o their_o family_n be_v charge_v by_o their_o friend_n to_o advise_v they_o of_o it_o therefore_o immediate_o after_o the_o session_n a_o copy_n of_o the_o legate_n admonition_n and_o of_o the_o oration_n of_o bitonto_n be_v send_v into_o every_o place_n which_o be_v quick_o print_v whereof_o that_o i_o may_v the_o better_o tell_v what_o be_v common_o speak_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o relate_v brief_o the_o content_n of_o the_o oration_n it_o begin_v with_o show_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o council_n because_o it_o be_v a_o hundred_o year_n since_o that_o of_o florence_n and_o because_o thing_n of_o difficulty_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n ritonto_n the_o content_n of_o the_o oration_n make_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o ritonto_n can_v well_o be_v handle_v but_o in_o it_o for_o in_o they_o the_o creed_n have_v be_v make_v heresy_n condemn_v manner_n amend_v christian_a nation_n unite_v army_n send_v to_o conquer_v the_o holy_a land_n king_n and_o emperor_n depose_v and_o schism_n root_v out_o and_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o poet_n introduce_v the_o council_n of_o the_o go_n and_o moses_n write_v that_o they_o be_v conciliarie_n voice_n the_o decree_n to_o make_v man_n and_o to_o confound_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o giant_n that_o religion_n have_v three_o head_n doctrine_n the_o sacrament_n and_o charity_n and_o that_o all_o these_o three_o call_v for_o a_o council_n he_o declare_v the_o corruption_n enter_v into_o they_o for_o restauration_n of_o which_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o france_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o of_o portugal_n and_o of_o christian_a prince_n have_v assemble_v the_o synod_n and_o send_v his_o legate_n he_o make_v a_o long_a digression_n in_o commendation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o another_o not_o much_o short_a in_o praise_n of_o the_o emperor_n then_o he_o praise_v the_o three_o legate_n derive_v their_o commendation_n from_o the_o name_n and_o surname_n of_o each_o of_o they_o and_o add_v that_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v all_o aught_o to_o meet_v in_o it_o as_o in_o the_o trojan_a horse_n he_o invite_v the_o wood_n of_o trent_n to_o sound_v forth_o through_o the_o world_n that_o all_o shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o that_o council_n which_o if_o they_o do_v not_o it_o will_v be_v just_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n have_v love_v darkness_n better_a than_o the_o light_n he_o lament_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o present_a or_o at_o the_o least_o don_n diego_n who_o represent_v he_o he_o congratulate_v the_o cardinal_n madruccio_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v assemble_v in_o his_o city_n the_o disperse_a and_o wander_a father_n he_o turn_v to_o the_o prelate_n and_o say_v that_o to_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o council_n be_v to_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o paradise_n from_o whence_o will_v descend_v live_v water_n to_o fill_v the_o earth_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o exhort_v the_o father_n to_o amendment_n and_o to_o open_v their_o heart_n as_o dry_a ground_n to_o receive_v it_o add_v that_o if_o they_o do_v it_o not_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v open_v their_o mouth_n though_o their_o mind_n be_v possess_v with_o a_o evil_a spirit_n as_o he_o do_v the_o mouth_n of_o caiphas_n and_o balaam_n lest_o if_o the_o council_n shall_v err_v the_o church_n shall_v err_v also_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o passion_n that_o they_o may_v true_o say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o us._n he_o invite_v greece_n france_n spain_n italy_n and_o all_o christian_a nation_n to_o the_o marriage_n in_o fine_a he_o turn_v himself_o to_o christ_n pray_v he_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n vigilius_n the_o turelarie_a saint_n of_o the_o valley_n of_o trent_n to_o assist_v that_o council_n the_o legate_n admonition_n be_v account_v pious_a christian_a modest_a and_o oration_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o oration_n worthy_a of_o cardinal_n but_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v judge_v far_o otherwise_o his_o vanity_n and_o ostentation_n of_o eloquence_n be_v note_v by_o all_o but_o man_n of_o understand_v compare_v as_o a_o holy_a sentence_n to_o a_o wicked_a those_o ingenious_a and_o most_o true_a word_n of_o the_o legate_n that_o without_o a_o good_a inward_a acknowledgement_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v in_o vain_a be_v call_v on_o with_o the_o say_n of_o the_o bishop_n quite_o contrary_a that_o without_o that_o their_o mouth_n shall_v be_v open_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n though_o their_o heart_n remain_v replenish_v with_o a_o wicked_a spirit_n it_o be_v think_v arrogancy_n to_o affirm_v that_o in_o case_n those_o few_o prelate_n err_v all_o the_o church_n will_v err_v as_o if_o other_o counsel_n of_o seven_o hundred_o bishop_n have_v not_o err_v and_o the_o church_n refuse_v their_o doctrine_n other_o add_v that_o this_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romanist_n who_o grant_v not_o infallibility_n but_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o the_o council_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n but_o to_o compare_v the_o council_n to_o the_o trojan_a horse_n a_o insidious_a invention_n be_v note_v of_o folly_n and_o reprehend_v for_o irreverence_n to_o have_v retort_v the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n the_o light_n of_o the_o father_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n have_v prefer_v darkness_n before_o the_o light_n make_v the_o council_n and_o doctrine_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o pope_n light_n appear_v to_o the_o world_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v man_n have_v love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n be_v esteem_v a_o blasphemy_n and_o it_o be_v wish_v that_o at_o the_o least_o he_o have_v not_o take_v the_o formal_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v show_v so_o open_o to_o have_v disesteem_v it_o but_o in_o trent_n the_o beginning_n be_v make_v neither_o the_o prelate_n not_o legate_n rome_n the_o legate_n not_o know_v how_o to_o proceed_v write_v to_o rome_n themselves_o know_v what_o shall_v be_v handle_v nor_o what_o order_n observe_v therefore_o the_o legate_n write_v to_o rome_n a_o letter_n worthy_a to_o be_v repeat_v at_o large_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o what_o be_v do_v before_o first_o they_o say_v they_o be_v appoint_v the_o next_o session_n the_o day_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n as_o a_o term_n which_o can_v not_o be_v tax_v neither_o of_o too_o long_a delay_n nor_o too_o much_o brevity_n that_o in_o the_o
apostle_n and_o other_o disciple_n in_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v assemble_v about_o the_o question_n of_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o though_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o recourse_n of_o the_o new_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n unto_o the_o old_a mother_n church_n from_o whence_o their_o faith_n be_v derive_v a_o custom_n much_o use_v in_o those_o first_o age_n &_o often_o rehearse_v by_o irenie_n and_o tertullian_n &_o though_o the_o letter_n be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n elder_n &_o brethren_n of_o jerusalem_n only_o yet_o in_o regard_n that_o not_o they_o only_a but_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n also_o do_v speak_v it_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o council_n by_o example_n whereof_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n think_v all_o christian_a church_n to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o likewise_o all_o bishopricke_n to_o be_v but_o only_o one_o so_o frame_v that_o every_o bishop_n hold_v a_o part_n thereof_o not_o as_o his_o own_o but_o so_o as_o that_o all_o aught_o to_o govern_v the_o whole_a and_o every_o one_o to_o employ_v himself_o most_o in_o that_o which_o be_v particular_o recommend_v to_o he_o as_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o little_a golden_a book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v pious_o demonstrate_v in_o case_n of_o necessity_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n though_o the_o persecution_n sometime_o wax_v warm_a as_o many_o as_o can_v assemble_v themselves_o to_o make_v provision_n in_o common_a in_o which_o assembly_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v precedent_n and_o charity_n chase_v away_o all_o humane_a passion_n they_o advise_v and_o resolve_v of_o what_o be_v fit_a without_o ceremony_n or_o form_n prescribe_v but_o after_o a_o certain_a time_n passion_n of_o man_n and_o charity_n be_v mingle_v together_o and_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o govern_v they_o with_o some_o order_n the_o chief_a man_n among_o those_o that_o be_v assemble_v in_o council_n either_o for_o learning_n or_o for_o greatness_n of_o the_o city_n or_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v or_o for_o some_o other_o respect_n of_o eminency_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o charge_n to_o propose_v and_o guide_v the_o action_n and_o collect_v the_o voice_n but_o after_o that_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v peace_n to_o the_o christian_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a emperor_n receive_v the_o holy_a faith_n there_o happen_v more_o difficulty_n in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o ambition_n or_o other_o bad_a affection_n of_o those_o that_o have_v follower_n and_o credit_n trouble_v the_o public_a quiet_n another_o sort_n of_o episcopal_a assembly_n have_v beginning_n congregat_v by_o prince_n or_o their_o lieutenant_n to_o remedy_v the_o trouble_n in_o these_o the_o action_n be_v guide_v by_o those_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n which_o do_v call_v they_o together_o who_o also_o be_v personal_o present_a propose_v and_o govern_v the_o treaty_n and_o decree_a interlocutory_o the_o occur_v difference_n but_o leave_v the_o decision_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n for_o which_o the_o council_n be_v congregat_v to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o assembly_n this_o form_n appear_v in_o the_o counsel_n who_o act_n do_v remain_v the_o colloquy_n of_o catholic_n and_o donatist_n before_o marcellinus_n and_o many_o other_o may_v serve_v for_o example_n but_o to_o speak_v only_o of_o general_a counsel_n this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n before_o the_o earl_n candidianus_n send_v precedent_n by_o the_o emperor_n and_o more_o clear_o in_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n before_o martianus_n and_o the_o judge_n by_o he_o appoint_v in_o that_o of_o constantinople_n in_o trullo_n before_o constantine_n surname_v poganatus_n where_o the_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n that_o be_v precedent_n command_v what_o shall_v be_v handle_v what_o order_n observe_v who_o shall_v speak_v and_o who_o be_v silent_a and_o do_v decide_v and_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n in_o these_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o other_o general_a council_n the_o act_n whereof_o be_v not_o extant_a as_o of_o the_o first_o of_o nice_a and_o the_o second_o of_o constantinople_n the_o historian_n of_o that_o age_n do_v witness_n that_o constantine_n and_o theodofius_fw-la do_v the_o like_a yet_o in_o those_o time_n when_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o do_v assemble_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o other_o meddle_v not_o the_o action_n be_v govern_v as_o have_v be_v say_v by_o one_o of_o they_o and_o the_o resolution_n take_v according_a to_o the_o common_a consent_n sometime_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o easy_a that_o it_o be_v dispatch_v in_o one_o meeting_n sometime_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o difficulty_n or_o multiplicity_n thereof_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o reiterate_v the_o business_n whence_o proceed_v the_o many_o session_n in_o the_o same_o council_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v about_o ceremony_n or_o only_o to_o publish_v what_o be_v digest_v elsewhere_o but_o to_o understand_v the_o opinion_n of_o every_o one_o and_o the_o colloquy_n discussion_n dispute_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v or_o speak_v be_v call_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n it_o be_v a_o new_a opinion_n and_o seldom_o practise_v though_o establish_v in_o trent_n that_o the_o decree_n only_o be_v call_v act_n of_o the_o council_n and_o ought_v only_o to_o be_v publish_v but_o in_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n all_o be_v give_v unto_o all_o notary_n be_v present_a to_o collect_v the_o voice_n who_o when_o a_o bishop_n speak_v and_o be_v not_o contradict_v write_v not_o his_o proper_a name_n but_o thus_o the_o holy_a synod_n say_v and_o when_o many_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n it_o be_v write_v the_o bishop_n acclaym_v or_o affirm_v and_o the_o thing_n so_o speak_v be_v take_v for_o decision_n if_o they_o speak_v in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n the_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v note_v and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n and_o the_o judge_n or_o precedent_n do_v pronounce_v sometime_o some_o impertinency_n do_v undoubted_o happen_v by_o reason_n of_o some_o man_n imperfection_n but_o charity_n which_o excuse_v the_o defect_n of_o one_o brother_n do_v cover_v it_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o province_n where_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v and_o of_o the_o border_n be_v present_a but_o without_o emulation_n every_o one_o rather_o desire_v to_o obey_v then_o to_o give_v a_o law_n unto_o other_o after_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a empire_n be_v separate_v there_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o west_n some_o mark_n of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o many_o be_v celebrate_v in_o prince_n counsel_n govern_v by_o prince_n france_n and_o germany_n under_o the_o posterity_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o not_o a_o few_o in_o spain_n under_o the_o king_n of_o the_o goth_n at_o last_o prince_n be_v absolute_o debar_v to_o intermeddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n that_o kind_n of_o council_n grow_v in_o disuse_n 1_o 1546_o paul_n 3_o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o &_o that_o alone_o remain_v which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o eccleisastic_n themselves_o the_o convocation_n of_o which_o provincial_a counsel_n be_v almost_o whole_o assume_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o send_v his_o legate_n to_o be_v precedent_n wheresoever_o he_o hear_v there_o be_v a_o treaty_n to_o hold_v a_o council_n and_o after_o a_o certain_a time_n he_o take_v that_o power_n to_o himself_o which_o the_o roman_a emperor_n use_v to_o convocate_v a_o council_n of_o the_o whole_a empire_n and_o to_o be_v precedent_n himself_o if_o he_o be_v present_a or_o in_o his_o absence_n to_o send_v legate_n to_o be_v precedent_n and_o to_o govern_v the_o action_n but_o the_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o the_o synod_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o secular_a prince_n which_o keep_v they_o in_o awe_n as_o worldly_a respect_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o mischief_n do_v exceed_o increase_v which_o cause_v also_o the_o multiply_a of_o many_o indecency_n they_o begin_v to_o digest_v and_o order_v the_o matter_n in_o private_a that_o they_o may_v observe_v a_o decency_n in_o the_o public_a meeting_n afterward_o this_o be_v observe_v for_o a_o form_n and_o in_o the_o counsel_n beside_o the_o session_n they_o begin_v to_o make_v congregation_n of_o some_o deputy_n to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o matter_n to_o be_v treat_v of_o which_o in_o the_o beginning_n if_o they_o be_v many_o be_v divide_v and_o a_o proper_a congregation_n assign_v to_o every_o one_o and_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o remove_v all_o the_o indecency_n because_o those_o that_o be_v not_o present_a have_v different_a interest_n make_v difficulty_n in_o public_a beside_o the_o particular_a congregation_n they_o make_v a_o general_a before_o the_o session_n where_o all_o be_v present_a which_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a rite_n be_v the_o conciliarie_n action_n because_o the_o session_n every_o thing_n be_v do_v before_o remain_v but_o a_o pure_a ceremony_n but_o a_o
little_a more_o than_o one_o age_n be_v past_a private_a interest_n cause_v a_o contention_n to_o arise_v among_o the_o bishop_n of_o diverse_a nation_n whereupon_o those_o that_o be_v remote_a be_v few_o and_o not_o willing_a to_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o borderer_n who_o be_v more_o in_o number_n to_o make_v the_o balance_n equal_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o nation_n shall_v assemble_v by_o itself_o and_o resolve_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o voice_n and_o that_o the_o general_a decision_n shall_v be_v establish_v not_o by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o particular_a man_n but_o by_o the_o plurality_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o nation_n so_o it_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n which_o use_v as_o it_o be_v good_a where_o the_o government_n be_v free_a as_o it_o be_v when_o the_o world_n have_v no_o pope_n so_o it_o ill_o befit_v proceed_v why_o the_o romanist_n make_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n of_o the_o form_n of_o proceed_v trent_n where_o they_o desire_v a_o council_n subject_a unto_o he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o legate_n at_o trent_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n make_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n of_o the_o form_n of_o proceed_v and_o of_o the_o quality_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o presidencie_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v come_v from_o rome_n they_o call_v the_o congregation_n the_o five_o of_o january_n 1546._o where_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n have_v salute_v and_o bless_v 1546_o 1546_o they_o all_o in_o the_o pope_n name_n cause_v the_o say_a brief_n of_o exemption_n from_o payment_n of_o tenthes_o to_o be_v read_v the_o three_o legate_n make_v as_o it_o be_v three_o encomiasticall_a oration_n one_o after_o another_o declare_v the_o pope_n good_a affection_n towards_o the_o father_n but_o some_o spaniard_n say_v that_o this_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n bring_v great_a damage_n than_o benefit_n because_o the_o accept_n of_o it_o imply_v a_o confession_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v lay_v burden_n upon_o other_o church_n and_o that_o the_o council_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o hinder_v he_o nor_o to_o exempt_v those_o who_o by_o right_n be_v not_o to_o be_v include_v the_o legate_n be_v not_o only_o displease_v at_o this_o but_o return_v also_o some_o bite_a term_n some_o of_o the_o prelate_n demand_v that_o the_o grace_n may_v be_v extend_v to_o those_o of_o their_o family_n also_o and_o to_o as_o many_o as_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n the_o general_n of_o the_o religious_a order_n demand_v likewise_o the_o same_o exemption_n allege_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o monastery_n for_o the_o friar_n which_o they_o bring_v to_o the_o council_n catalanus_fw-la triultius_n bishop_n of_o piacenza_n who_o arrive_v two_o day_n before_o relate_v public_o that_o he_o be_v rifle_v as_o he_o pass_v near_o to_o mirandula_n and_o desire_v a_o order_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n against_o those_o that_o hinder_v or_o molest_v the_o prelate_n or_o other_o that_o go_v to_o the_o council_n the_o legate_n join_v this_o propose_n with_o the_o foresay_a pretence_n of_o exemption_n consider_v of_o what_o importance_n it_o may_v be_v if_o the_o council_n shall_v meddle_v in_o such_o a_o business_n make_v edict_n for_o their_o own_o exaltation_n and_o that_o this_o be_v to_o touch_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n put_v it_o aside_o with_o much_o dexterity_n allege_v it_o will_v seem_v strange_a to_o the_o world_n and_o too_o great_a a_o desire_n of_o revenge_n offer_v to_o labour_n with_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v provide_v for_o the_o security_n of_o their_o person_n and_o have_v consideration_n of_o the_o family_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o of_o the_o friar_n and_o so_o they_o appease_v all_o and_o go_v on_o to_o the_o conciliary_a action_n the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n relate_v what_o form_n be_v observe_v in_o the_o last_o laterane_n council_n where_o himself_o be_v present_a as_o archbishop_z of_o siponto_n he_o say_v that_o treat_v then_o of_o the_o french_a pragmatique_a of_o the_o schism_n against_o julius_n 2._o and_o of_o the_o war_n between_o christian_a prince_n three_o deputation_n of_o prelate_n be_v make_v for_o those_o matter_n that_o each_o congregation_n be_v employ_v in_o one_o only_a it_o may_v better_o digest_v it_o that_o the_o decree_n be_v frame_v a_o general_a congregation_n be_v call_v where_o every_o one_o speak_v his_o opinion_n and_o that_o by_o those_o the_o resolution_n be_v better_o reform_v so_o that_o all_o thing_n pass_v in_o the_o session_n with_o great_a concord_n and_o comeliness_n that_o the_o business_n to_o be_v handle_v by_o they_o be_v more_o various_a the_o lutheran_n have_v move_v every_o stone_n to_o overthrow_v the_o build_n of_o council_n card._n monte_n prescribe_v a_o order_n for_o discuss_v matter_n in_o council_n faith_n therefore_o that_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o divide_v the_o matter_n and_o for_o every_o one_o to_o ordain_v a_o particular_a congregation_n to_o dispute_v it_o to_o cause_v the_o deputy_n to_o frame_v the_o decree_n which_o be_v to_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o general_a congregation_n where_o every_o one_o shall_v deliver_v his_o opinion_n which_o that_o it_o may_v be_v absolute_o free_a themselves_o the_o legate_n do_v resolve_v to_o be_v proposer_n only_o and_o not_o to_o give_v their_o suffrage_n but_o in_o the_o session_n that_o all_o shall_v bethink_v themselves_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v handle_v that_o some_o beginning_n may_v be_v make_v in_o the_o session_n which_o approach_v they_o propose_v then_o whether_o they_o be_v please_v that_o a_o decree_n already_o council_n a_o great_a difference_n about_o the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n frame_v concern_v christian_n conversation_n while_o the_o council_n last_v in_o trent_n shall_v be_v publish_v in_o the_o session_n which_o be_v read_v with_o the_o title_n the_o most_o holy_a as_o the_o commandment_n from_o rome_n be_v the_o french_a man_n desire_v this_o addition_n represent_v the_o church_n universal_a which_o opinion_n many_o bishop_n do_v follow_v with_o a_o joint_a consent_n but_o the_o legate_n consider_v that_o that_o title_n be_v use_v only_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o that_o to_o imitate_v they_o be_v to_o renew_v their_o memory_n and_o to_o give_v they_o some_o authority_n and_o to_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o the_o difficulty_n which_o then_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o which_o import_v more_o consider_v that_o after_o they_o have_v say_v represent_v the_o church_n universal_a some_o also_o may_v think_v to_o add_v the_o word_n follow_v that_o be_v which_o have_v power_n immediate_o from_o christ_n whereunto_o every_o one_o though_o of_o papal_a dignity_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v they_o oppose_v strong_o and_o as_o they_o write_v to_o rome_n in_o plain_a term_n they_o whet_v themselves_o against_o it_o without_o declare_v to_o the_o father_n the_o true_a cause_n but_o only_o say_v they_o be_v frothy_a and_o invidious_a word_n and_o that_o the_o heretic_n will_v have_v make_v a_o bad_a interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o they_o all_o so_o labour_v without_o discover_v the_o secret_a first_o by_o art_n then_o by_o say_v plain_o they_o will_v not_o permit_v it_o that_o they_o appease_v the_o general_a commotion_n though_o the_o french_a man_n and_o some_o few_o more_o remain_v firm_a in_o their_o proposition_n and_o john_n de_fw-fr salazzar_n bishop_n of_o lanciano_n a_o spaniard_n by_o nation_n assist_v the_o legate_n very_o much_o who_o have_v commend_v in_o ample_a term_n the_o first_o counsel_n of_o the_o church_n for_o antiquity_n and_o sanctity_n of_o those_o that_o assist_v he_o desire_v they_o shall_v be_v imitate_v in_o the_o title_n use_v by_o they_o which_o be_v very_o plain_a without_o express_v representation_n or_o what_o or_o how_o great_a authority_n the_o council_n have_v but_o he_o please_v they_o not_o when_o he_o say_v that_o by_o their_o example_n the_o name_n of_o precedent_n ought_v to_o be_v lay_v aside_o because_o it_o be_v never_o use_v by_o any_o ancient_a council_n but_o begin_v only_o by_o that_o of_o constance_n which_o constance_n the_o name_n of_o precedent_n be_v never_o use_v in_o council_n before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n by_o reason_n of_o schism_n change_v precedent_n often_o add_v that_o if_o that_o example_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v it_o will_v also_o be_v necessary_a to_o nominate_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n for_o then_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v name_v and_o the_o prince_n with_o he_o but_o this_o pride_n be_v far_o remote_a from_o christian_a humility_n and_o he_o repeat_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n which_o he_o make_v the_o twelve_o of_o december_n by_o which_o also_o he_o conclude_v that_o they_o shall_v desist_v to_o make_v mention_n of_o presidencie_n this_o
proposition_n trouble_v the_o legate_n more_o than_o the_o former_a yet_o the_o cardinal_n monte_n sudden_o answer_v that_o counsel_n have_v speak_v diverse_o according_a to_o the_o occurrence_n of_o the_o time_n that_o former_o the_o pope_n have_v always_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o ever_o any_o council_n have_v be_v demand_v with_o condition_n it_o shall_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o duchman_n now_o do_v with_o great_a boldness_n unto_o which_o heretical_a temeritie_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o resist_v in_o every_o action_n show_v they_o be_v join_v with_o the_o head_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n by_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o legate_n he_o speak_v much_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o know_v he_o can_v better_o maintain_v it_o by_o diversion_n than_o persuasion_n he_o be_v a_o mean_n they_o shall_v pass_v to_o another_o thing_n the_o content_n of_o the_o decree_n be_v approve_v by_o all_o but_o there_o be_v one_o particle_n in_o it_o in_o which_o every_o one_o be_v exhort_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o pope_n emperor_n and_o king_n the_o french_a prelate_n desire_v there_o shall_v special_a mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o french_a king_n this_o the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n commend_v but_o add_v that_o the_o like_a specification_n will_v be_v expect_v by_o all_o in_o their_o place_n which_o will_v prove_v a_o long_a business_n and_o full_a of_o danger_n by_o reason_n of_o precedency_n the_o french_a man_n reply_v that_o in_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v mention_n only_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o french_a king_n and_o therefore_o by_o that_o example_n they_o shall_v name_v they_o both_o or_o neither_o the_o legate_n take_v time_n to_o think_v of_o it_o be_v desirous_a to_o give_v every_o one_o satisfaction_n the_o seven_o of_o january_n all_o the_o prelate_n clad_v in_o their_o ordinary_a habit_n assemble_v 7._o the_o session_n january_n 7._o themselves_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o prime_a legate_n from_o whence_o they_o go_v to_o the_o cathedral_n church_n with_o the_o cross_n before_o they_o out_o of_o the_o country_n of_o trent_n be_v collect_v into_o the_o city_n three_o hundred_o foot_n arm_v partly_o with_o pike_n and_o partly_o with_o harquebuss_n and_o some_o horse_n these_o put_v themselves_o in_o file_n on_o either_o side_n the_o way_n from_o the_o house_n of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o legate_n and_o prelate_n be_v enter_v the_o soldier_n return_v to_o the_o market_n place_n and_o discharge_v their_o harquebuss_n and_o remain_v there_o to_o guard_v the_o session_n beside_o the_o legate_n and_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n there_o be_v present_a four_o archbishop_n twenty_o eight_o bishop_n three_o abbat_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o cassina_n and_o four_o general_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o session_n these_o forty_o three_o person_n make_v the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o archbishop_n two_o be_v titular_a only_o never_o see_v in_o the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o have_v their_o name_n which_o the_o pope_n give_v they_o only_o to_o do_v they_o honour_n the_o one_o be_v olaus_n magnus_n archbishop_n of_o vpsala_n in_o gothland_n the_o other_o robert_n venante_fw-la a_o scottish-man_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n in_o ireland_n who_o though_o he_o be_v purblind_a be_v commend_v for_o his_o virtue_n to_o ride_v post_o the_o best_a in_o the_o world_n these_o two_o man_n have_v be_v relieve_v certain_a year_n in_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n alm_n be_v send_v to_o trent_n to_o increase_v the_o number_n and_o to_o depend_v on_o the_o legate_n about_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o divine_n stand_v on_o their_o foot_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ausburg_n be_v present_a and_o sit_v upon_o the_o ambassador_n bench_n and_o near_o unto_o they_o upon_o the_o same_o bench_n sit_v ten_o gentleman_n choose_v out_o of_o the_o border_a place_n by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n john_n fonseca_n bishop_n of_o castelamare_fw-la say_v mass_n and_o coriolanus_n martiranus_n bishop_n of_o s._n mark_v make_v the_o sermon_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v the_o prelate_n put_v on_o their_o pontifical_a habit_n and_o then_o the_o litany_n and_o prayer_n be_v say_v as_o in_o the_o first_o session_n after_o this_o all_o sit_v down_o and_o the_o bishop_n that_o say_v mass_n mount_v into_o the_o pulpit_n read_v the_o forename_a bull_n against_o admit_v to_o give_v voice_n the_o proctor_n of_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a without_o mention_v the_o other_o where_o those_o of_o germany_n be_v except_v then_o he_o read_v the_o decree_n in_o which_o the_o synod_n exhort_v all_o the_o faithful_a assemble_v in_o trent_n to_o live_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o daily_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o prince_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o those_o of_o the_o council_n to_o say_v mass_n at_o the_o least_o on_o sunday_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o pope_n emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o all_o to_o fast_o give_v alm_n to_o be_v sober_a and_o to_o instruct_v their_o family_n it_o exhort_v also_o all_o man_n especial_o the_o learned_a to_o bethink_v themselves_o exact_o how_o to_o resist_v heresy_n and_o in_o the_o assembly_n to_o use_v modesty_n in_o speak_v and_o it_o ordain_v beside_o that_o if_o any_o sit_v not_o in_o their_o place_n or_o give_v not_o voice_n or_o be_v not_o present_a in_o their_o congregation_n he_o shall_v not_o receive_v any_o prejudice_n or_o gain_v any_o new_a right_n the_o father_n be_v interrogated_a after_o this_o be_v read_v they_o answer_v it_o please_v they_o but_o the_o french_a man_n add_v that_o they_o approve_v not_o so_o bare_a a_o title_n and_o require_v a_o addition_n of_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n in_o fine_a the_o next_o session_n be_v appoint_v the_o four_o of_o february_n and_o the_o father_n have_v leave_v to_o depart_v who_o put_v off_o their_o pontifical_a habit_n do_v in_o their_o ordinary_a apparel_n accompany_v the_o legate_n home_o in_o the_o same_o order_n they_o come_v to_o church_n which_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o session_n afterward_o after_o the_o session_n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n hold_v until_o the_o thirteen_o of_o january_n because_o peter_n pacceco_n bishop_n of_o jahen_n late_o create_v cardinal_n who_o expect_v the_o hat_n from_o rome_n without_o which_o the_o ceremony_n give_v he_o not_o leave_v to_o go_v abroad_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o be_v there_o because_o order_n be_v to_o be_v take_v therein_o that_o no_o inconvenience_n shall_v happen_v in_o the_o session_n the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v the_o legate_n complain_v of_o those_o who_o in_o the_o session_n have_v oppose_v the_o title_n they_o show_v it_o be_v not_o seemly_a to_o cause_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n to_o appear_v in_o that_o public_a place_n that_o the_o congregation_n be_v make_v that_o every_o one_o may_v deliver_v his_o mind_n more_o private_o and_o all_o agree_v in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v publish_v that_o nothing_o will_v more_o daunt_v the_o heretic_n and_o encourage_v the_o catholic_n than_o the_o fame_n of_o union_n they_o descend_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o title_n and_o say_v that_o none_o be_v more_o fit_a than_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v in_o the_o convocation_n and_o in_o so_o many_o other_o bull_n where_o it_o be_v call_v ecumenical_a and_o universal_a unto_o which_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o add_v representation_n in_o regard_n whole_a book_n declare_v what_o a_o council_n lawful_o call_v and_o begin_v be_v and_o do_v represent_v that_o by_o do_v otherwise_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o make_v doubt_n of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o and_o resemble_v it_o to_o some_o other_o council_n unto_o which_o they_o give_v that_o title_n be_v willing_a to_o supply_v with_o word_n the_o lawful_a authority_n which_o they_o know_v it_o want_v glance_v at_o that_o of_o basil_n and_o constance_n but_o to_o make_v a_o firm_a resolution_n they_o will_v have_v every_o one_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n begin_v to_o say_v the_o council_n be_v adorn_v with_o very_a many_o title_n which_o if_o they_o be_v use_v in_o all_o occasion_n the_o expression_n of_o they_o will_v be_v great_a than_o the_o body_n of_o the_o decree_n but_o as_o a_o great_a emperor_n council_n a_o dispute_n about_o the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n possessor_n of_o many_o kingdom_n and_o state_n use_v in_o his_o edict_n the_o title_n only_o from_o whence_o they_o have_v force_n and_o often_o put_v his_o own_o name_n to_o they_o without_o any_o title_n at_o all_o so_o this_o council_n according_a to_o the_o subject_n that_o shall_v be_v handle_v aught_o to_o use_v many_o title_n to_o express_v its_o authority_n but_o now_o that_o they_o be_v in_o
the_o preparatory_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n to_o use_v any_o of_o they_o at_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o feltre_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o protestant_n desire_v a_o council_n where_o themselves_o may_v have_v a_o decisive_a voice_n so_o that_o if_o this_o title_n be_v give_v to_o the_o council_n that_o it_o represent_v the_o church_n universal_a they_o will_v draw_v a_o argument_n from_o hence_o that_o some_o of_o every_o order_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v present_a these_o be_v two_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o laity_n it_o can_v be_v entire_o represent_v if_o the_o laity_n be_v exclude_v but_o for_o the_o rest_n those_o also_o of_o the_o council_n who_o assent_v to_o the_o simple_a title_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v supply_v the_o bishop_n of_o saint_n mark_v say_v that_o the_o laikes_n be_v most_o improper_o call_v the_o church_n for_o the_o canon_n determine_v that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o command_v but_o necessity_n to_o obey_v and_o that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o council_n ought_v to_o decree_v that_o the_o secular_o ought_v humble_o to_o receive_v that_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o the_o church_n without_o dispute_v or_o think_v further_o on_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v very_o meet_a to_o use_v the_o title_n that_o the_o synod_n represent_v the_o church_n universal_a to_o make_v they_o understand_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n but_o aught_o to_o hearken_v to_o and_o obey_v the_o church_n many_o thing_n be_v speak_v and_o they_o go_v on_o without_o any_o firm_a conclusion_n but_o only_o that_o the_o simple_a title_n shall_v be_v use_v in_o the_o next_o session_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o last_o when_o this_o be_v end_v because_o certain_a prelate_n desire_v that_o at_o the_o last_o they_o may_v come_v to_o matter_n substantial_a the_o legate_n to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n propose_v that_o they_o shall_v consider_v of_o the_o three_o head_n contain_v in_o the_o pope_n bull_n that_o be_v the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n reformation_n of_o discipline_n and_o establish_v of_o peace_n how_o they_o shall_v begin_v these_o treaty_n what_o course_n they_o shall_v hold_v and_o how_o proceed_v that_o they_o shall_v pray_v god_n to_o illuminate_v they_o all_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v speak_v his_o opinion_n in_o the_o first_o congregation_n in_o the_o end_n some_o commission_n from_o absent_a bishop_n be_v present_v and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o aix_n the_o bishop_n of_o feltre_n and_o astorga_n be_v depute_v to_o consider_v of_o their_o excuse_n and_o relate_v in_o the_o congregation_n the_o next_o day_n the_o legate_n write_v to_o rome_n that_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o amplification_n of_o the_o title_n with_o addition_n of_o represent_v the_o church_n universal_a be_v a_o thing_n so_o popular_a and_o so_o please_v all_o that_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v speak_v of_o again_o and_o therefore_o they_o desire_v to_o know_v his_o holiness_n pleasure_n if_o they_o shall_v persist_v in_o deny_v it_o or_o yield_v unto_o they_o especial_o upon_o occasion_n of_o make_v some_o decree_n of_o importance_n as_o to_o condemn_v heresy_n or_o the_o like_a they_o give_v advice_n also_o that_o they_o have_v make_v the_o proposition_n for_o the_o next_o congregation_n so_o general_a that_o they_o may_v yield_v to_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o prelate_n which_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o substantial_a point_n and_o yet_o interpose_v time_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v instruction_n from_o his_o holiness_n they_o add_v that_o the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n have_v advice_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v order_n to_o many_o spanish_a bishop_n man_n of_o exemplary_a life_n and_o learning_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n therefore_o they_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o his_o holiness_n shall_v send_v ten_o or_o twelve_o prelate_n who_o he_o may_v trust_v man_n fit_a to_o appear_v for_o their_o other_o quality_n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o oltramontans_n increase_v especial_o man_n rare_a of_o exemplaritie_n strong_a the_o legate_n desire_v to_o make_v their_o party_n strong_a and_o learning_n they_o may_v in_o some_o part_n be_v encounter_v for_o among_o those_o that_o until_o then_o be_v in_o trent_n those_o that_o have_v good_a mind_n have_v little_a learning_n and_o less_o discretion_n and_o those_o that_o have_v understanding_n be_v discover_v to_o have_v deseigne_n and_o hard_o to_o be_v govern_v in_o the_o next_o congregation_n assemble_v the_o eighteen_o to_o understand_v the_o reformation_n the_o imperialist_n desire_v to_o begin_v with_o reformation_n mind_n of_o all_o concern_v the_o proposition_n make_v in_o the_o last_o the_o opinion_n be_v four_o the_o imperialist_n say_v that_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n can_v not_o be_v touch_v with_o hope_n of_o any_o fruit_n because_o it_o be_v first_o necessary_a to_o remove_v the_o transgression_n from_o whence_o the_o heresy_n arise_v by_o a_o good_a reformation_n enlarge_n themselves_o very_o much_o in_o this_o field_n and_o conclude_v that_o so_o long_o as_o the_o scandal_n which_o the_o world_n receive_v by_o the_o deformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n cease_v not_o nothing_o that_o they_o can_v say_v or_o preach_v will_v ever_o be_v believe_v all_o be_v persuade_v that_o deed_n ought_v to_o be_v regard_v and_o not_o word_n and_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v example_n by_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n because_o in_o they_o either_o there_o be_v not_o corruption_n of_o manner_n or_o that_o be_v not_o cause_n of_o heresy_n and_o in_o fine_a that_o to_o defer_v the_o treaty_n of_o reformation_n be_v to_o show_v themselves_o incorrigible_a some_o few_o other_o think_v fit_a to_o begin_v with_o doctrine_n and_o then_o to_o pass_v to_o reformation_n allege_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o christian_a life_n that_o no_o man_n begin_v to_o build_v from_o the_o roof_n but_o from_o the_o foundation_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o err_v in_o faith_n then_o in_o other_o humane_a action_n and_o that_o the_o point_n of_o root_a out_o heresy_n be_v put_v first_o in_o the_o pope_n bull_n a_o three_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n and_o faith_n may_v ill_o be_v separate_v because_o there_o be_v no_o doctrine_n without_o abuse_n nor_o abuse_v which_o draw_v not_o after_o it_o the_o bad_a interpretation_n and_o bad_a sense_n of_o some_o doctrine_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o handle_v they_o at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o that_o the_o world_n have_v their_o eye_n fix_v upon_o this_o council_n and_o expect_v a_o remedy_n as_o well_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o manner_n it_o will_v be_v satisfy_v better_a by_o handle_v they_o both_o together_o than_o one_o after_o another_o especial_o if_o according_o to_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n diverse_a deputation_n be_v make_v and_o one_o handle_v this_o matter_n and_o the_o other_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v do_v quick_o consider_v that_o the_o time_n present_a when_o christendom_n have_v peace_n be_v precious_a and_o not_o to_o be_v lose_v not_o know_v what_o impediment_n the_o time_n to_o come_v may_v bring_v and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o shall_v study_v to_o make_v the_o council_n as_o short_a as_o they_o can_v that_o the_o church_n the_o less_o while_o may_v remain_v deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n and_o for_o many_o other_o respect_n intimate_v that_o which_o may_v arise_v in_o length_n of_o time_n to_o the_o distaste_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n some_o other_o among_o who_o be_v the_o french_a man_n demand_v that_o that_o of_o the_o peace_n may_v be_v the_o first_o that_o they_o shall_v write_v unto_o the_o emperor_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n and_o other_o prince_n give_v they_o thanks_n for_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n for_o continuance_n whereof_o that_o they_o will_v establish_v peace_n and_o help_v the_o work_n forward_o by_o send_v their_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n and_o likewise_o shall_v write_v friendly_a to_o the_o lutheran_n invite_v they_o charitable_o to_o come_v to_o the_o council_n and_o join_v themselves_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n the_o legate_n understand_v the_o opinion_n of_o they_o all_o and_o commend_v their_o wisdom_n say_v that_o because_o it_o be_v late_a and_o the_o consultation_n of_o weight_n and_o the_o opinion_n various_a they_o will_v think_v of_o what_o every_o one_o have_v say_v and_o in_o the_o first_o congregation_n propose_v the_o point_n to_o be_v determine_v order_n be_v take_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o congregation_n every_o week_n intimation_n two_o congregation_n every_o week_n without_o intimation_n on_o monday_n and_o friday_n without_o warning_n and_o in_o the_o end_n the_o archbishop_n of_o aix_n have_v receive_v letter_n
from_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n salute_v the_o synod_n in_o his_o name_n and_o promise_v that_o his_o majesty_n will_v sudden_o send_v a_o ambassador_n and_o many_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o so_o the_o congregation_n end_v the_o legate_n send_v advice_n of_o all_o to_o rome_n and_o write_v that_o they_o have_v draw_v in_o length_n the_o resolution_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v handle_v under_o the_o pretence_n before_o relate_v but_o in_o truth_n to_o gain_v more_o time_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v instruction_n and_o order_n how_o to_o govern_v themselves_o beseech_v his_o holiness_n again_o to_o make_v his_o will_n know_v and_o to_o consider_v above_o all_o that_o to_o prolong_v the_o council_n and_o hold_v it_o open_v when_o he_o may_v make_v it_o short_a be_v not_o good_a for_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n add_v that_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o hold_v two_o congregation_n every_o week_n to_o keep_v the_o prelate_n in_o exercise_n and_o to_o take_v occasion_n from_o they_o to_o make_v they_o by_o themselves_o but_o they_o say_v that_o this_o will_v draw_v on_o the_o business_n very_o fast_o and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o take_v some_o course_n to_o resolve_v their_o propose_v quick_o and_o not_o to_o defer_v to_o answer_v they_o as_o hitherto_o have_v be_v do_v but_o to_o advise_v they_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v present_o and_o to_o foresee_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v what_o can_v happen_v and_o see_v they_o have_v write_v oftentimes_o that_o many_o poor_a bishop_n come_v to_o the_o council_n for_o the_o hope_n and_o good_a promise_n which_o his_o holiness_n and_o cardinal_n farnese_n have_v give_v they_o they_o then_o repeat_v it_o add_v it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o think_v to_o use_v they_o as_o homely_a in_o trent_n as_o in_o rome_n where_o have_v no_o authority_n they_o be_v humble_a and_o in_o subjection_n but_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o council_n they_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v esteem_v and_o maintain_v which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o do_v it_o be_v better_a not_o to_o have_v they_o in_o that_o place_n then_o to_o have_v they_o there_o ill_o satisfy_v and_o distaste_v conclude_v that_o that_o enterprise_n can_v not_o succeed_v well_o without_o diligence_n and_o cost_n it_o may_v general_o seem_v strange_a that_o the_o pope_n a_o wise_a man_n and_o skilful_a in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o give_v answer_n unto_o two_o particular_n of_o such_o importance_n and_o necessity_n in_o so_o long_a a_o time_n after_o so_o many_o instance_n of_o his_o minister_n but_o his_o holiness_n ground_v not_o his_o hope_n upon_o the_o council_n all_o his_o cogitation_n be_v turn_v towards_o the_o war_n which_o the_o cardinal_n farnese_n council_n the_o pope_n be_v more_o intent_n upon_o the_o war_n against_o the_o protestant_n then_o upon_o the_o council_n treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n the_o year_n before_o and_o can_v not_o forbear_v to_o make_v demonstration_n thereof_o neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n desire_v the_o council_n shall_v proceed_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o his_o end_n that_o it_o be_v open_v only_o but_o the_o prelate_n who_o desire_v to_o begin_v with_o reformation_n and_o leave_v the_o doctrine_n behind_o assist_v by_o the_o emperor_n minister_n assay_v to_o draw_v the_o other_o together_o a_o controversy_n how_o to_o begin_v whether_o with_o reformation_n or_o doctrine_n or_o with_o both_o together_o to_o they_o which_o thing_n be_v very_o easy_a because_o the_o reformation_n be_v general_o desire_v and_o not_o much_o believe_v their_o number_n grow_v so_o great_a that_o the_o legate_n be_v confound_v therefore_o by_o themselves_o and_o their_o friend_n they_o often_o deal_v private_o with_o diverse_a and_o last_o in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o 22._o day_n all_o three_o one_o after_o another_o set_v themselves_o to_o ruin_v the_o foundation_n which_o be_v lay_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o reformation_n one_o reason_n draw_v from_o the_o emperor_n proposition_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o worm_n the_o last_o may_v make_v a_o great_a impression_n when_o he_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o expect_v what_o the_o council_n will_v do_v in_o the_o definition_n of_o doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o reformation_n and_o that_o if_o nothing_o be_v do_v he_o will_v intimate_v another_o diet_n to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o correct_v the_o abuse_n argue_v from_o hence_o that_o if_o they_o handle_v not_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o determination_n of_o the_o future_a colloquy_n and_o diet_n will_v be_v canonize_v neither_o can_v they_o with_o reason_n hinder_v they_o to_o treat_v of_o religion_n in_o germany_n which_o themselves_o refuse_v to_o do_v in_o the_o council_n there_o be_v a_o great_a rich_a prelate_n in_o the_o congregation_n who_o with_o a_o premeditate_a speech_n go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o they_o ought_v only_o to_o aim_v at_o the_o reformation_n aggravate_v much_o the_o common_a deformation_n of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n and_o inculcate_v that_o so_o long_o as_o our_o vessel_n be_v not_o cleanse_v the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o by_o consequence_n that_o no_o right_a judgement_n can_v be_v expect_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o cardinal_n santa_n croce_n take_v from_o hence_o occasion_n to_o speak_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o defer_v the_o reformation_n of_o themselves_o who_o be_v to_o manage_v the_o council_n but_o that_o be_v easy_a and_o ready_a and_o may_v sudden_o be_v execute_v without_o delay_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v intricate_a of_o themselves_o and_o of_o long_a digestion_n he_o much_o commend_v that_o prelate_n for_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o thing_n so_o holy_a and_o of_o so_o good_a example_n for_o beginning_n from_o themselves_o they_o may_v easy_o reform_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n and_o he_o earnest_o exhort_v all_o to_o come_v to_o the_o practice_n thereof_o this_o opinion_n be_v much_o commend_v by_o all_o but_o not_o follow_v for_o many_o soid_a the_o reformation_n ought_v to_o be_v general_a without_o lose_v time_n in_o that_o particular_a therefore_o they_o all_o conclude_v except_o two_o that_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o reformation_n shall_v be_v handle_v together_o as_o they_o be_v alike_o desire_v and_o deem_v necessary_a by_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o joint_o propose_v in_o the_o pope_n bull_n the_o legate_n be_v content_a with_o this_o resolution_n though_o they_o rather_o desire_v to_o treat_v of_o faith_n and_o leave_v the_o reformation_n but_o so_o great_a be_v their_o fear_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o handle_v reformation_n alone_o that_o they_o think_v it_o together_o a_o resolution_n make_v to_o handle_v doctrine_n and_o reformation_n together_o a_o great_a victory_n to_o join_v they_o together_o and_o they_o think_v also_o that_o their_o opinion_n to_o leave_v the_o reformation_n be_v dangerous_a because_o they_o shall_v resist_v all_o the_o prelate_n and_o state_n of_o christendom_n who_o desire_v it_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v without_o much_o scandal_n and_o infamy_n if_o this_o course_n which_o they_o take_v be_v constrain_v thereunto_o by_o mere_a necessity_n shall_v not_o please_v those_o at_o rome_n they_o can_v not_o complain_v of_o any_o but_o themselves_o who_o be_v so_o often_o solicit_v to_o answer_v the_o letter_n and_o send_v necessary_a instruction_n afterward_o it_o be_v resolve_v to_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o thank_v he_o for_o call_v and_o open_v the_o council_n and_o to_o desire_v he_o to_o maintain_v and_o favour_v it_o and_o to_o be_v a_o mean_n unto_o christian_a prince_n to_o continue_v peace_n among_o themselves_o and_o excite_v they_o to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n they_o resolve_v also_o to_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n the_o french_a king_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n of_o portugal_n and_o other_o catholic_a prince_n to_o preserve_v peace_n to_o send_v ambassador_n secure_v the_o way_n to_o move_v their_o prelate_n to_o appear_v personal_o in_o the_o council_n the_o care_n of_o write_v these_o letter_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o saint_n mark_v and_o be_v to_o be_v read_v and_o seal_v in_o the_o next_o congregation_n the_o legate_n publish_v two_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o by_o the_o father_n whereof_o they_o be_v to_o give_v their_o voice_n the_o first_o whether_o in_o the_o next_o session_n the_o head_n of_o faith_n and_o those_o of_o reformation_n which_o be_v correspondent_a shall_v be_v handle_v together_o the_o second_o how_o to_o proceed_v in_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o two_o head_n and_o in_o handle_v and_o examine_v they_o the_o legate_n think_v they_o have_v by_o these_o proposition_n disburden_v themselves_o of_o the_o importunate_a quest_n make_v by_o some_o to_o establish_v some_o substantial_a point_n in_o every_o congregation_n
great_a reason_n to_o exempt_v from_o original_a sin_n none_o but_o he_o for_o unto_o he_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o redeemer_n be_v make_v christ_n be_v ever_o call_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o all_o that_o believe_v a_o pattern_n of_o the_o faithful_a these_o be_v great_a dignity_n then_o to_o bear_v christ_n in_o the_o belly_n according_a to_o that_o divine_a answer_n that_o the_o virgin_n be_v more_o bless_v in_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o in_o have_v bear_v christ_n and_o give_v he_o suck_v and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o for_o preheminencie_n except_o abraham_n but_o only_o esteem_v for_o sound_v the_o ancient_a reason_n that_o christ_n be_v without_o sin_n because_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n will_v say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o follow_v the_o council_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o contain_v one_o self_n within_o the_o bound_n set_v down_o by_o the_o father_n they_o add_v that_o the_o world_n be_v much_o bind_v to_o the_o council_n for_o be_v content_v to_o say_v that_o it_o confess_v and_o think_v that_o concupiscence_n remain_v in_o the_o baptize_v or_o else_o man_n will_v be_v compel_v to_o deny_v to_o feel_v that_o which_o they_o do_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n it_o be_v expect_v that_o order_n shall_v have_v be_v take_v with_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n with_o these_o for_o give_v divine_a propriety_n to_o the_o pope_n even_o to_o call_v he_o god_n attribute_v unto_o he_o infallibility_n and_o make_v the_o same_o tribunal_n of_o both_o say_v also_o that_o he_o be_v more_o merciful_a than_o christ_n with_o the_o school_n man_n who_o leave_v the_o scripture_n or_o make_v it_o all_o doubtful_a have_v make_v aritostle_n philosophy_n the_o foundation_n of_o theology_n even_o make_v a_o question_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o dispute_v of_o it_o on_o both_o side_n it_o seem_v strange_a that_o it_o be_v unknowen_a until_o then_o that_o to_o preach_v be_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n that_o the_o abuse_n of_o preach_v vanity_n or_o any_o thing_n but_o christ_n be_v not_o remoove_v that_o provision_n be_v make_v against_o the_o open_a merchandize_v of_o preacher_n under_o the_o name_n of_o alm_n news_n be_v come_v of_o these_o decree_n to_o the_o emperor_n court_n the_o d_o 〈…〉_o es_fw-ge a_o 〈…〉_o in_o the_o emperor_n court_n court_n it_o be_v take_v in_o ill_a part_n that_o light_a matter_n not_o require_v by_o germany_n be_v handle_v and_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o dispute_n be_v awake_v by_o the_o decree_n for_o the_o controversy_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v almost_o agree_v in_o the_o colloquy_n from_o the_o council_n from_o whence_o composition_n be_v expect_v a_o decree_n do_v proceed_v against_o the_o thing_n accord_v and_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o emperor_n name_n to_o his_o minister_n in_o trent_n that_o they_o shall_v promote_v the_o reformation_n and_o endeavour_v that_o the_o controversy_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o protestant_n come_v who_o the_o emperor_n be_v persuade_v he_o can_v bring_v thither_o or_o at_o least_o until_o the_o prelate_n of_o germany_n do_v arrive_v who_o will_v put_v themselves_o into_o the_o journey_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o diet_n be_v end_v but_o they_o talk_v but_o a_o little_a while_n of_o these_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n because_o other_o accident_n happen_v which_o draw_v all_o man_n eye_n and_o mind_n unto_o they_o for_o in_o rome_n the_o 26._o of_o june_n the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n conclude_v a_o league_n protestant_n the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n conclude_v a_o league_n the_o 26._o of_o june_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o protestant_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n against_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n the_o treaty_n whereof_o be_v begin_v the_o year_n before_o in_o worm_n by_o cardinal_n farnese_n as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o afterward_o continue_v by_o other_o minister_n the_o cause_n allege_v and_o the_o condition_n be_v because_o germany_n have_v a_o long_a time_n persevere_v in_o heresy_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v in_o trent_n and_o already_o begin_v whereunto_o the_o protestant_n refuse_v to_o submit_v the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o safety_n of_o germany_n do_v agree_v league_n the_o cause_n and_o capitulation_n of_o this_o league_n that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v take_v arm_n against_o those_o that_o refuse_v it_o and_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o holy_a sea_n and_o for_o this_o the_o pope_n shall_v lay_v in_o venice_n a_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n in_o trust_n beside_o the_o hundred_o thousand_o lay_v there_o all_o ready_a to_o spend_v in_o this_o use_n only_o and_o shall_v send_v to_o the_o war_n at_o his_o own_o charge_n twelve_o thousand_o italian_a foot_n and_o five_o hundred_o light_a horse_n for_o six_o month_n shall_v give_v the_o emperor_n for_o this_o year_n half_o the_o rent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n and_o power_n to_o alienate_v of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o those_o kingdom_n to_o the_o value_n of_o five_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n that_o during_o the_o six_o month_n the_o emperor_n shall_v not_o make_v a_o accord_n with_o the_o protestant_n without_o the_o pope_n who_o also_o shall_v have_v a_o certain_a portion_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v gain_v by_o the_o war_n and_o if_o the_o war_n continue_v long_o new_a capitulation_n which_o shall_v seem_v fit_a to_o both_o party_n shall_v be_v treat_v on_o and_o place_n shall_v be_v leave_v for_o other_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o league_n bear_v part_n of_o the_o charge_n and_o receive_v part_n of_o the_o profit_n there_o be_v one_o capitulation_n apart_o which_o be_v keep_v secret_a concern_v the_o french_a king_n that_o if_o any_o christian_a prince_n during_o the_o war_n do_v move_v latins_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o pope_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o persecute_v he_o with_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a force_n a_o few_o day_n after_o the_o pope_n write_v to_o the_o swiss_n invite_v they_o to_o assist_v suissès_fw-fr the_o pope_n write_v to_o the_o suissès_fw-fr he_o first_o show_v in_o ample_a term_n his_o benevolence_n towards_o they_o and_o the_o grief_n he_o feel_v for_o that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v ostrange_v themselves_o from_o his_o obedience_n and_o thank_v god_n for_o those_o who_o persevere_v and_o commend_v they_o all_o for_o that_o in_o this_o difference_n of_o religion_n they_o keep_v themselves_o in_o peace_n whereas_o in_o other_o place_n diverse_a tumult_n do_v arise_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n he_o add_v that_o to_o provide_v against_o they_o he_o have_v ordain_v the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n hope_v that_o no_o man_n will_v refuse_v to_o submit_v himself_o and_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o those_o among_o they_o who_o until_o then_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o apostolical_a obedience_n will_v obey_v the_o council_n and_o the_o other_o not_o contein_v he_o invite_v they_o also_o to_o come_v thither_o complain_v that_o many_o in_o germany_n who_o be_v call_v prince_n do_v proud_o disdain_v and_o despise_v the_o council_n who_o authority_n be_v rather_o divine_a then_o humane_a this_o have_v compel_v he_o to_o think_v of_o force_n and_o arm_n and_o because_o it_o have_v happen_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v make_v the_o same_o resolution_n he_o have_v be_v constrain_v to_o join_v with_o he_o and_o assist_v he_o with_o his_o own_o and_o the_o church_n power_n to_o restore_v religion_n by_o war_n that_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o signify_v his_o purpose_n and_o mind_n unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v join_v their_o prayer_n with_o he_o render_v the_o ancient_a honour_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o assist_v he_o in_o so_o pious_a a_o cause_n but_o the_o emperor_n make_v show_v he_o undertake_v the_o war_n not_o for_o religion_n religion_n the_o emperor_n will_v not_o have_v it_o think_v that_o this_o war_n be_v make_v for_o religion_n but_o for_o matter_n of_o state_n for_o that_o some_o deny_v he_o obedience_n plot_v with_o stranger_n against_o he_o and_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o law_n usurp_v the_o possession_n of_o other_o especial_o the_o church_n go_v about_o to_o make_v bishoprike_v and_o abbacy_n hereditary_a and_o that_o have_v prove_v diverse_a gentle_a mean_n to_o reduce_v they_o they_o ever_o become_v more_o insolent_a on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o protestant_n labour_v to_o make_v manifest_a to_o the_o contrary_n and_o the_o protestant_n show_v the_o contrary_n world_n that_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n they_o put_v the_o emperor_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o capitulation_n which_o he_o swear_v in_o frankfurt_n when_o he_o be_v
burial_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v condemn_v by_o all_o and_o many_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v allege_v where_o aspersion_n or_o effusion_n of_o water_n be_v speak_v of_o all_o which_o they_o say_v ought_v literal_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o baptism_n all_o set_v themselves_o against_o those_o three_o which_o speak_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n allege_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o schoolman_n and_o many_o invective_n be_v make_v against_o erasmus_n attribute_v unto_o he_o the_o tax_v erasmus_n be_v tax_v invention_n of_o the_o fifteen_o say_v it_o be_v impious_a and_o pernicious_a and_o will_v open_v a_o way_n to_o abolish_v all_o christian_a religion_n add_v that_o if_o the_o child_n of_o the_o uncircumcised_a jew_n come_v to_o age_n be_v bind_v to_o keep_v all_o the_o law_n and_o be_v punish_v for_o transgress_v it_o it_o be_v 〈…〉_o compel_v the_o son_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o observe_v the_o christian_a law_n that_o the_o 〈…〉_o have_v deserve_o condemn_v the_o article_n and_o so_o ought_v the_o synod_n to_o ded_fw-we they_o conclude_v that_o the_o sixteenth_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o former_a article_n because_o it_o do_v take_v away_o penance_n one_o of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n but_o all_o say_v that_o the_o last_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o proper_a ministry_n of_o baptism_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n whereof_o the_o catechize_v be_v admonish_v that_o if_o he_o will_v have_v eternal_a life_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v all_o the_o commandment_n in_o the_o article_n about_o confirmation_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n and_o all_o unction_n of_o confirmation_n chrism_n and_o unction_n for_o their_o ground_n do_v allege_v the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o three_o article_n that_o young_a man_n do_v former_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v general_o decide_v that_o not_o be_v use_v in_o these_o time_n one_o ought_v to_o believe_v it_o be_v never_o use_v before_o for_o the_o church_n will_v never_o have_v intermit_v that_o ceremony_n many_o place_n of_o counsel_n and_o ancient_a writer_n be_v allege_v make_v mention_n of_o chrism_n and_o unction_n which_o can_v agree_v to_o instruction_n or_o examination_n therefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o vain_a ignorance_n to_o change_v so_o principal_a a_o sacrament_n against_o the_o common_a meaning_n of_o all_o the_o church_n into_o a_o rite_n perhaps_o use_v in_o some_o particular_a place_n but_o never_o universal_o as_o the_o unction_n of_o the_o chris_n 〈…〉_o upon_o the_o last_o article_n there_o be_v much_o difficulty_n in_o regard_n saint_n gregory_n confirmation_n whether_o only_o the_o bishop_n be_v minister_v of_o confirmation_n the_o pope_n do_v grant_v the_o ministry_n to_o simple_a priest_n the_o franciscan_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n bonaventure_n follow_v by_o john_n scotus_n and_o their_o order_n which_o do_v attribute_v the_o ministry_n to_o the_o bishop_n only_o as_o pope_n adrian_n the_o sixth_o do_v also_o maintain_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o permission_n only_o for_o that_o time_n and_o against_o the_o pope_n will_n to_o avoid_v the_o scandal_n of_o those_o people_n or_o else_o that_o the_o unction_n permit_v by_o gregory_n be_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n which_o answer_v not_o please_v saint_n thomas_n because_o it_o do_v not_o whole_o free_v the_o pope_n from_o have_v err_v he_o find_v a_o temper_n and_o say_v that_o though_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o confirmation_n yet_o with_o the_o pope_n permission_n it_o may_v be_v administer_v by_o the_o priest_n other_o oppose_v and_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v absolute_a that_o the_o minister_n of_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n who_o though_o the_o pope_n can_v command_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n yet_o he_o can_v make_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v of_o force_n that_o be_v administer_v by_o other_o nor_o nullify_v that_o which_o be_v confer_v by_o the_o minister_n institute_v by_o christ_n though_o against_o his_o commandment_n and_o therefore_o if_o christ_n have_v institute_v the_o bishop_n for_o minister_v the_o pope_n can_v make_v that_o grant_n to_o the_o priest_n if_o christ_n have_v grant_v that_o the_o priest_n may_v do_v it_o the_o pope_n can_v hinder_v he_o for_o it_o will_v seem_v a_o strange_a thing_n that_o in_o the_o other_o sacrament_n be_v all_o of_o great_a necessity_n christ_n shall_v prescribe_v the_o minister_n without_o leave_v any_o liberty_n unto_o man_n and_o in_o this_o which_o may_v at_o any_o time_n be_v defer_v use_v a_o singularity_n whereof_o for_o six_o hundred_o year_n until_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n no_o man_n have_v make_v any_o mention_n build_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n upon_o four_o word_n speak_v by_o occasion_n and_o if_o the_o epistle_n have_v be_v lose_v no_o man_n will_v ever_o have_v invent_v that_o distinction_n unusual_a in_o such_o a_o matter_n nor_o to_o be_v apply_v to_o any_o thing_n but_o to_o this_o place_n of_o gregory_n other_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o the_o resolution_n of_o either_o party_n do_v propose_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o florentine_a council_n shall_v be_v take_v some_o think_v fit_a only_o to_o condemn_v he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o the_o priest_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n only_o be_v the_o ordinary_a minister_n give_v by_o the_o word_n ordinary_a power_n to_o infer_v therefore_o there_o be_v another_o extraordinary_a or_o to_o say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o because_o the_o sacrament_n have_v no_o minister_n but_o ordinary_a while_o the_o forename_a article_n be_v discuss_v by_o the_o divine_n in_o the_o congregation_n head_n a_o decree_n of_o reformation_n contain_v six_o head_n of_o the_o canonist_n assemble_v to_o collect_v and_o remedy_v the_o abuse_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a and_o in_o particular_a of_o baptism_n and_o confirmation_n a_o decree_n be_v make_v contain_v six_o head_n which_o say_v thus_o in_o substance_n that_o the_o synod_n desire_v to_o remove_v the_o abuse_n bring_v in_o by_o man_n or_o time_n and_o to_o teach_v the_o minister_n of_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a how_o to_o govern_v themselves_o in_o observe_v minister_a and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n do_v ordain_v 1._o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a sacrament_n shall_v be_v free_o confer_v without_o take_v or_o demand_v any_o thing_n for_o they_o under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o and_o no_o chest_n vessel_n cloth_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n shall_v be_v show_v by_o which_o a_o demand_n may_v be_v intimate_v nor_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v deny_v or_o defer_v upon_o pretence_n of_o any_o long_a and_o ancient_a custom_n not_o to_o confer_v they_o before_o some_o certain_a stipend_n be_v pay_v or_o satisfaction_n of_o some_o debt_n consider_v that_o neither_o custom_n or_o length_n of_o time_n do_v diminish_v the_o sin_n but_o rather_o increase_v it_o and_o the_o offender_n shall_v be_v punish_v according_a to_o the_o law_n make_v against_o symoniacall_a person_n 2._o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n shall_v not_o be_v confer_v in_o profane_a place_n but_o in_o church_n only_o except_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n and_o when_o the_o child_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o clement_n the_o five_o which_o shall_v not_o take_v place_n in_o all_o that_o have_v dominion_n but_o only_o in_o great_a prince_n neither_o shall_v the_o bishop_n give_v the_o chrism_n but_o in_o seemly_a ornament_n and_o in_o the_o church_n sacred_a place_n or_o episcopal_a house_n 3._o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n shall_v be_v administer_v by_o able_a priest_n in_o the_o mother_n church_n only_o except_o by_o reason_n of_o great_a difficulty_n to_o go_v to_o they_o the_o bishop_n think_v fit_a to_o grant_v it_o to_o other_o church_n or_o that_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v time_n out_o of_o mind_n in_o which_o church_n holy_a water_n take_v from_o the_o mother_n church_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o a_o clean_a and_o decent_a vessel_n 4._o in_o baptism_n and_o chrism_n there_o shall_v be_v allow_v but_o one_o godfather_n who_o shall_v neither_o be_v infamous_a nor_o excommunicate_v nor_o interdict_v nor_o under_o age_n nor_o a_o monk_n nor_o any_o that_o can_v perform_v what_o he_o promise_v and_o in_o chrism_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v for_o a_o godfather_n who_o have_v not_o receive_v chrism_n himself_o 5._o to_o take_v away_o the_o abuse_n practise_v in_o many_o place_n to_o carry_v about_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n or_o christen_v child_n with_o their_o forehead_n bind_v to_o make_v many_o godfather_n by_o wash_v of_o the_o hand_n or_o lose_v the_o forehead_n the_o priest_n in_o regard_n
to_o reformation_n be_v peremptory_a in_o this_o answer_v those_o that_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o innocentius_n the_o three_o and_o the_o general_a council_n that_o they_o do_v great_a wrong_n to_o that_o pope_n and_o those_o father_n to_o say_v they_o defend_v so_o great_a a_o abuse_n and_o that_o they_o show_v their_o ignorance_n for_o if_o they_o read_v the_o 3_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o council_n which_o be_v the_o three_o before_o that_o which_o they_o have_v allege_v they_o may_v have_v see_v the_o meaning_n very_o plain_o and_o how_o those_o father_n do_v forbid_v all_o exaction_n condemn_v also_o the_o custom_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o in_o that_o chapter_n the_o custom_n to_o give_v any_o thing_n for_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o allow_v but_o other_o be_v lawful_a honest_a and_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o church_n be_v permit_v as_o tenthes_o first_o fruit_n oblation_n usual_o make_v to_o the_o altar_n canonical_a portion_n and_o such_o other_o laudable_a usance_n allege_v that_o the_o chapter_n be_v so_o understand_v by_o bartolus_n and_o romanus_n the_o father_n depute_a to_o make_v the_o decree_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n consider_v frame_v anathematism_n frame_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o divine_n and_o the_o conclusion_n in_o which_o they_o agree_v leave_v and_o distinguish_v the_o article_n according_a to_o their_o direction_n and_o range_v they_o in_o a_o better_a order_n frame_v 24._o anathematism_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a ten_o of_o baptism_n and_o three_o of_o chrism_n which_o be_v express_v in_o such_o a_o form_n as_o that_o no_o catholic_a opinion_n be_v condemn_v and_o all_o party_n satisfy_v but_o in_o compose_v the_o head_n to_o express_v the_o doctrine_n person_n it_o be_v hard_a to_o express_v the_o doctrine_n and_o to_o displease_v no_o person_n as_o be_v do_v in_o justification_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o use_v the_o term_n of_o one_o opinion_n but_o that_o another_o seem_v to_o be_v disallow_v which_o neither_o please_v the_o doctor_n for_o the_o affection_n they_o bear_v to_o their_o own_o sect_n nor_o the_o legate_n and_o neutral_n for_o fear_n of_o sow_v new_a division_n but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o express_v the_o doctrine_n so_o nice_o but_o that_o more_o than_o one_o of_o the_o party_n will_v be_v lose_v they_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o general_a congregation_n to_o define_v how_o the_o sacrament_n do_v contain_v and_o cause_n grace_n the_o congregation_n be_v no_o less_o perplex_v than_o the_o deputy_n one_o part_n incline_v to_o omit_v whole_o the_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o to_o pass_v with_o the_o anathematism_n only_o as_o they_o do_v in_o original_a sin_n another_o part_n will_v have_v the_o doctrine_n by_o all_o mean_n allege_v the_o reason_n use_v when_o they_o treat_v of_o justification_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o follow_v the_o example_n then_o begin_v and_o that_o all_o diligence_n shall_v be_v use_v to_o satisfy_v all_o party_n but_o at_o the_o last_o they_o say_v it_o must_v be_v do_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o division_n for_o the_o divine_n present_a in_o council_n though_o they_o sharp_o defend_v their_o own_o opinion_n yet_o they_o do_v refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o synod_n which_o the_o absent_a will_n assure_o do_v also_o therefore_o they_o shall_v not_o refrain_v to_o do_v the_o business_n exact_o that_o the_o heretic_n may_v be_v convince_v this_o opinion_n have_v prevail_v but_o that_o john_n baptista_n cigala_n bishop_n of_o albenga_n and_o auditor_n of_o the_o chamber_n do_v strong_o oppose_v who_o say_v it_o be_v never_o find_v in_o any_o story_n that_o ever_o any_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o have_v his_o opinion_n condemn_v and_o though_o all_o the_o catholic_n refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v reject_v they_o will_v not_o refer_v it_o but_o defend_v it_o more_o obstinate_o fortify_v themselves_o the_o more_o by_o reason_n of_o opposition_n by_o which_o mean_n of_o sect_n heresy_n do_v spring_n therefore_o that_o the_o best_a way_n be_v to_o tolerate_v all_o the_o opinion_n and_o to_o take_v care_n that_o none_o condemn_v another_o but_o that_o all_o may_v live_v in_o peace_n neither_o be_v there_o such_o contrariety_n between_o they_o that_o use_v this_o moderation_n any_o inconvenience_n can_v arise_v whereas_o without_o it_o every_o verbal_a difference_n or_o little_a trifle_n be_v able_a to_o divide_v the_o whole_a world_n that_o many_o opinion_n of_o the_o modern_a innovator_n may_v have_v be_v tolerate_v if_o they_o have_v be_v modest_o maintain_v without_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o school_n this_o constrain_a leo_n to_o retor●_n against_o luther_n those_o arrow_n which_o he_o have_v first_o shoot_v against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o sum_n the_o wife_n prelate_n say_v that_o the_o usual_a protestation_n of_o the_o doctor_n to_o refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n be_v term_n of_o good_a manner_n and_o reverence_n which_o shall_v be_v answer_v with_o as_o much_o respect_n by_o keep_v themselves_o neutral_a between_o the_o contrariety_n that_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o he_o that_o will_v be_v respect_v shall_v give_v respect_n again_o and_o one_o ought_v never_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o that_o say_v he_o do_v refer_v himself_o and_o submit_v have_v a_o purpose_n to_o do_v it_o if_o manner_n the_o protestation_n of_o doctor_n that_o they_o refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n be_v but_o term_n of_o good_a manner_n occasion_n be_v offer_v of_o this_o luther_n be_v a_o manifest_a example_n who_o while_o he_o have_v to_o do_v only_o with_o the_o friar_n who_o be_v pardon_n monger_n in_o germany_n in_o matter_n of_o indulgence_n as_o also_o with_o the_o doctor_n of_o rome_n do_v always_o say_v he_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o leo_n take_v the_o promise_n for_o real_a which_o be_v make_v only_o in_o show_n martin_n do_v not_o only_o keep_v it_o but_o inveigh_v more_o against_o his_o holiness_n than_o he_o have_v do_v against_o the_o pardoner_n in_o germany_n the_o legate_n send_v a_o copy_n to_o rome_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v deliberate_v and_o rome_n the_o legate_n send_v to_o rome_n of_o the_o difficulty_n remain_v as_o well_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o in_o reformation_n of_o the_o abuse_n desire_v to_o have_v order_n what_o they_o shall_v resolve_v reexamine_v in_o the_o mean_a space_n the_o same_o matter_n but_o most_o serious_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o plurality_n of_o beneficies_n propose_v long_o before_o as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o handle_v in_o part_n at_o the_o same_o time_n all_o the_o substance_n whereof_o i_o will_v continuate_o relate_v in_o this_o place_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o fifteen_o of_o januarie_n when_o the_o article_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v give_v out_o the_o matter_n begin_v the_o day_n before_o continue_v still_o in_o regard_n many_o do_v not_o reside_v because_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o exercise_v the_o charge_n with_o the_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n they_o handle_v the_o quality_n and_o condition_n require_v in_o bishop_n they_o begin_v with_o that_o which_o saint_n paul_n require_v in_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n insist_v much_o upon_o the_o word_n irreprehensible_a bishop_n the_o quality_n and_o condition_n require_v in_o bishop_n give_v to_o hospitality_n not_o covetous_a not_o new_a in_o religion_n and_o esteem_v by_o stranger_n afterward_o other_o condition_n require_v by_o many_o canon_n be_v allege_v wherein_o there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n all_o uniform_o declaim_v against_o the_o vice_n and_o defect_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n this_o displease_v not_o the_o legate_n be_v content_a to_o see_v the_o prelate_n entertain_v themselves_o with_o this_o shadow_n of_o liberty_n but_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o speak_v john_n salazar_n bishop_n of_o lanciano_n attribute_v the_o beginning_n of_o all_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o in_o distribute_v bishopricke_n regard_v not_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o person_n but_o service_n perform_v whereunto_o the_o bishop_n o_o bitonto_n who_o speak_v a_o little_a after_o reply_v with_o much_o feel_n and_o say_v that_o the_o fault_n of_o other_o be_v unjust_o attribute_v to_o the_o court._n for_o in_o germany_n bishopricke_n be_v give_v by_o election_n in_o france_n spain_n and_o hungary_n by_o the_o king_n nomination_n and_o in_o italy_n many_o do_v belong_v to_o particular_a patron_n and_o to_o those_o that_o be_v free_a the_o prince_n do_v recommend_v and_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v take_v all_o liberty_n from_o the_o pope_n but_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v transport_v by_o opinion_n but_o judge_v sincere_o will_v see_v that_o those_o who_o be_v make_v free_o at_o rome_n be_v the_o best_a of_o all_o europe_n plurality_n of_o benefice_n
here_o against_o their_o will_n and_o because_o of_o the_o departure_n of_o many_o and_o protestation_n of_o other_o by_o who_o departure_n the_o council_n will_v be_v dissolve_v and_o for_o other_o cause_n allege_v by_o the_o father_n notorious_o true_a and_o lawful_a do_v it_o please_v you_o to_o declare_v that_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o prelate_n life_n and_o prosecution_n of_o the_o council_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v transfer_v to_o bolonia_n and_o be_v now_o transfer_v and_o that_o the_o session_n intimate_v for_o the_o 21._o of_o april_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v and_o all_o thing_n prosecute_v there_o until_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o reduce_v it_o into_o this_o or_o some_o other_o place_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o french_a king_n and_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n the_o next_o day_n the_o session_n be_v hold_v and_o the_o decree_n read_v 35._o bishop_n and_o bolonia_n a_o session_n be_v hold_v to_o read_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o translation_n to_o bolonia_n three_o general_n do_v assent_v but_o the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n and_o 17._o other_o bishop_n oppose_v among_o those_o that_o consent_v there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o emperor_n subject_n but_o michael_n saracenus_n a_o napolitan_a archb._n of_o matera_fw-la but_o among_o those_o that_o consent_v not_o there_o be_v claudius_n della_fw-it guische_n bishop_n of_o mirpois_n and_o martelli_n bishop_n of_o fiesole_n and_o marcus_n viguerius_n bishop_n of_o sintgaglia_n who_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n do_v upbraid_v that_o his_o uncle_n be_v draw_v from_o a_o base_a estate_n to_o the_o height_n of_o the_o cardinality_n from_o whence_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o house_n and_o his_o own_o bishopric_n do_v proceed_v he_o do_v ill_o requite_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n for_o answer_n he_o use_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n god_n be_v not_o mock_v the_o legate_n depart_v with_o the_o cross_n carry_v before_o they_o accompany_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o faction_n with_o ceremony_n and_o prayer_n the_o imperialist_n be_v command_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n not_o to_o depart_v until_o his_o majesty_n be_v inform_v and_o give_v they_o order_n in_o rome_n the_o court_n be_v glad_a they_o be_v deliver_v from_o danger_n for_o there_o be_v already_o great_a confusion_n and_o sale_n make_v by_o the_o possessor_n of_o many_o benefice_n who_o seek_v to_o unburthen_v themselves_o but_o so_o as_o that_o they_o will_v lose_v no_o commodity_n the_o pope_n say_v that_o have_v give_v his_o legate_n power_n to_o translate_v the_o council_n and_o promise_v to_o ratify_v what_o they_o shall_v determine_v and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v execute_v and_o they_o have_v judge_v the_o infection_n of_o the_o air_n to_o be_v a_o lawful_a cause_n he_o pope_n which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o choose_v but_o approve_v it_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o mayor_n part_n of_o the_o prelate_n do_v consent_v but_o none_o be_v so_o simple_a as_o not_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v do_v by_o his_o commandment_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o nothing_o how_o little_a soever_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n without_o order_n first_o have_v from_o rome_n for_o which_o purpose_n letter_n come_v once_o every_o week_n and_o some_o week_n twice_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o importance_n be_v hatch_v in_o the_o legate_n brain_n beside_o only_o to_o bring_v so_o many_o person_n into_o a_o city_n so_o jealous_a as_o bolonia_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n thereof_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o the_o legate_n will_v never_o have_v many_o the_o date_n of_o the_o bull_n be_v suspect_v by_o many_o attempt_v many_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o bull_n have_v not_o a_o true_a date_n but_o be_v new_o make_v though_o the_o date_n be_v old_a and_o with_o the_o name_n of_o cardinal_n poole_n to_o give_v great_a reputation_n otherwise_o that_o clause_n in_o which_o authority_n be_v give_v unto_o two_o of_o they_o the_o other_o be_v absent_a to_o translate_v the_o council_n will_v seem_v a_o kind_n of_o prophecy_n that_o poole_n shall_v depart_v a_o year_n after_o and_o the_o liberty_n to_o transfer_v it_o to_o what_o city_n they_o list_v seem_v too_o large_a and_o improbable_a consider_v the_o suspicion_n always_o fix_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o unfaithful_a city_n show_v more_o than_o ever_o by_o pope_n paul_n when_o he_o do_v call_v it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o he_o will_v unnecessary_o expose_v himself_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o another_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n yet_o follow_v the_o note_n which_o i_o have_v see_v as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o i_o assure_v myself_o that_o it_o be_v make_v two_o year_n and_o send_v 18._o month_n before_o this_o time_n but_o that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v conceal_v and_o which_o do_v scandalize_v free_a it_o appear_v by_o the_o bull_n that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a every_o one_o be_v that_o by_o that_o bull_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o council_n be_v in_o servitude_n for_o if_o the_o two_o legate_n can_v command_v all_o the_o prelate_n at_o once_o to_o part_v from_o trent_n and_o compel_v they_o by_o punishment_n and_o censure_n let_v any_o man_n say_v that_o can_v what_o liberty_n they_o have_v the_o emperor_n hear_v the_o news_n be_v much_o translation_n the_o emperor_n be_v offend_v with_o the_o translation_n displease_v because_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v despise_v and_o because_o he_o see_v a_o weapon_n take_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n by_o manage_v whereof_o according_a to_o opportunity_n he_o think_v to_o set_v religion_n at_o peace_n in_o germany_n and_o so_o to_o put_v it_o under_o his_o die_v the_o french_a king_n die_v obedience_n the_o news_n come_v not_o to_o the_o french_a king_n who_o the_o 21._o of_o the_o same_o month_n change_v this_o life_n for_o a_o better_a the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o law_n of_o history_n 2._o 1547_o paul_n 3_o charles_n 5._o edward_z 6._o henry_n 2._o and_o how_o they_o differ_v from_o annal_n and_o diaries_n i_o work_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o author_n concern_v this_o work_n know_v likewise_o that_o the_o narration_n of_o uniform_a accident_n breed_v satiety_n in_o the_o writer_n and_o tediousness_n in_o the_o reader_n and_o that_o to_o recount_v small_a matter_n too_o particular_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o foolish_a knowledge_n yet_o i_o observe_v frequent_a reply_n and_o little_a narration_n in_o homer_n and_o that_o in_o the_o expedition_n of_o cyrus_n the_o young_a xenophon_n do_v more_o ravish_v and_o instruct_v the_o mind_n by_o recite_v the_o serious_a and_o merry_a discourse_n of_o the_o soldier_n then_o by_o relate_v the_o action_n and_o counsel_n of_o prince_n i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o every_o matter_n have_v his_o proper_a form_n and_o that_o this_o of_o i_o can_v be_v compose_v with_o ordinary_a rule_n i_o assure_v myself_o that_o this_o work_n will_v be_v read_v by_o few_o and_o be_v of_o a_o short_a life_n not_o so_o much_o for_o want_v of_o form_n as_o for_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o i_o be_o so_o persuade_v by_o that_o which_o i_o see_v happen_v in_o the_o like_a thing_n but_o not_o regard_v perpetuity_n or_o continuance_n of_o time_n it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o that_o it_o will_v please_v some_o one_o to_o who_o i_o will_v show_v it_o because_o i_o know_v he_o will_v make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o i_o be_o assure_v that_o for_o hereafter_o that_o will_v happen_v to_o it_o which_o the_o coniuncture_n shall_v comport_v the_o prelate_n remain_v in_o trent_n be_v in_o great_a suspense_n until_o letter_n trent_n the_o emperor_n prelate_n remain_v in_o trent_n come_v from_o the_o emperor_n commend_v they_o for_o contradict_v the_o translation_n and_o abide_v in_o trent_n with_o express_a order_n not_o to_o part_v from_o the_o city_n they_o consult_v among_o themselves_o whether_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o conciliarie_n bolonia_n write_n pass_v between_o the_o prelate_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o bolonia_n act_n and_o it_o be_v uniform_o resolve_v that_o it_o will_v make_v a_o schism_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attempt_v but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o study_v the_o point_n and_o to_o expect_v what_o opportunity_n will_v bring_v there_o pass_v some_o writing_n between_o the_o divine_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o bolonia_n these_o do_v with_o affectation_n call_v it_o the_o synod_n of_o bolonia_n and_o those_o the_o holy_a synod_n be_v it_o wheresoever_o it_o will_n and_o some_o of_o they_o remain_v still_o in_o print_n in_o bolonia_n the_o legate_n and_o other_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n make_v
keep_v from_o they_o any_o faculty_n that_o the_o manner_n of_o live_v until_o the_o council_n begin_v may_v be_v set_v down_o by_o their_o advice_n and_o the_o clergy_n reform_v that_o he_o will_v have_v consideration_n and_o determine_v if_o the_o sea_n be_v vacant_a during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n whether_o the_o father_n thereof_o or_o cardinal_n shall_v elect_v the_o pope_n that_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v happen_v no_o new_a stir_n may_v arise_v this_o three_o age_n the_o pope_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o his_o old_a age_n point_n be_v add_v to_o put_v the_o pope_n in_o mind_n of_o his_o old_a age_n and_o approach_a death_n and_o so_o to_o make_v he_o condescend_v more_o easy_o that_o his_o posterity_n may_v not_o inherit_v the_o displeasure_n which_o the_o emperor_n take_v at_o 〈…〉_o the_o pope_n in_o answer_n of_o these_o proposition_n commend_v the_o emperor_n good_a will_n and_o his_o pain_n for_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n conclude_v he_o will_v have_v such_o consideration_n of_o these_o proposition_n as_o they_o deserve_v and_o resolve_v as_o god_n will_v inspire_v he_o the_o cardinal_n have_v in_o diverse_a private_a audience_n assay_v in_o vain_a to_o have_v some_o good_a resolution_n from_o the_o pope_n leave_v the_o instruction_n to_o don_n diego_n di_fw-fr mendoza_n who_o the_o emperor_n have_v cause_v to_o room_n the_o card_n of_o trent_n reture_v leave_v don_n diego_n in_o his_o room_n go_v for_o that_o purpose_n to_o rome_n from_o sienna_n where_o he_o be_v to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n of_o that_o republic_n he_o depart_v and_o return_v to_o ausburg_n don_n diego_n in_o public_a consistory_n assemble_v to_o give_v the_o cap_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o guise_n where_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n may_v be_v present_a present_v himself_o before_o the_o pope_n and_o expound_v unto_o he_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v do_v add_v that_o he_o have_v commission_n in_o case_n his_o holiness_n do_v interpose_v any_o delay_n or_o excuse_v to_o protest_v that_o the_o synod_n of_o bolonia_n be_v not_o lawful_a the_o pope_n answer_v that_o he_o will_v first_o understand_v the_o opinion_n and_o the_o reason_n council_n the_o pope_n answer_n concern_v the_o return_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o bolonia_n and_o impart_v the_o proposition_n to_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n that_o he_o may_v resolve_v mature_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n of_o guise_n make_v a_o public_a discourse_n in_o the_o same_o consistory_n consistory_n the_o discourse_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o guise_n in_o the_o consistory_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o french_a king_n and_o speak_v thus_o in_o substance_n that_o king_n francis_n have_v never_o spare_v any_o cost_n or_o danger_n to_o maintain_v the_o liberty_n of_o other_o prince_n in_o conformity_n whereof_o henry_n not_o degenerate_v from_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o ancestor_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o leave_v to_o mourn_v for_o his_o father_n death_n be_v willing_a to_o declare_v his_o observance_n towards_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n towards_o the_o pope_n be_v famous_a and_o exceed_v all_o those_o of_o other_o nation_n but_o this_o be_v above_o all_o which_o the_o king_n now_o do_v promise_v all_o his_o force_n to_o preserve_v the_o papal_a dignity_n now_o when_o it_o be_v so_o contemn_v he_o pray_v the_o pope_n to_o receive_v the_o king_n for_o his_o son_n and_o to_o promise_v to_o himself_o all_o assistance_n from_o he_o and_o to_o take_v care_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v receive_v no_o damage_n or_o shame_n in_o regard_n that_o from_o small_a beginning_n great_a faction_n have_v rise_v which_o have_v bring_v the_o pope_n into_o great_a calamity_n he_o exemplify_v in_o many_o pope_n afflict_a who_o be_v defend_v and_o raise_v by_o the_o king_n of_o france_n conclude_v that_o the_o present_a king_n will_v not_o yield_v to_o his_o ancestor_n in_o preserve_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n many_o do_v think_v that_o the_o pope_n make_v guise_n speak_v so_o to_o encourage_v the_o cardinal_n his_o dependent_n and_o to_o daunt_v the_o lofty_a spirit_n of_o the_o imperialist_n and_o to_o make_v they_o see_v they_o can_v not_o enforce_v he_o and_o to_o execute_v what_o he_o have_v say_v to_o don_n diego_n he_o write_v to_o bolonia_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n the_o proposition_n make_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o own_o determination_n give_v he_o order_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v invocate_a the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o shall_v deliver_v all_o to_o the_o father_n and_o when_o he_o have_v understand_v their_o opinion_n shall_v write_v back_o what_o the_o council_n think_v the_o legate_n the_o father_n be_v assemble_v declare_v council_n the_o manner_n how_o the_o spirit_n do_v work_v in_o this_o council_n the_o commission_n and_o give_v his_o own_o voice_n first_o which_z all_z the_o other_o followed_z for_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o move_v the_o legate_n to_o think_v as_o the_o pope_n do_v and_o he_o bishop_n to_o believe_v as_o the_o legate_n do_v work_v as_o former_o it_o have_v do_v the_o voice_n be_v collect_v the_o cardinal_n by_o the_o consent_n and_o be_v the_o name_n of_o all_o answer_v that_o the_o synod_n when_o the_o lawful_a decree_n be_v make_v to_o translate_v it_o from_o trent_n to_o bolonia_n have_v admonish_v all_o to_o put_v themselves_o into_o the_o journey_n and_o after_o that_o they_o be_v arrive_v in_o bolonia_n understand_v that_o some_o remain_v in_o trent_n have_v again_o love_o exhort_v they_o to_o part_v from_o thence_o and_o join_v with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n they_o make_v none_o account_v thereof_o continue_v still_o in_o that_o city_n with_o contempt_n of_o the_o council_n and_o scandal_n of_o many_o as_o if_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a council_n or_o be_v not_o bonnd_v to_o obey_v this_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o father_n council_n the_o answer_n send_v from_o bolonia_n concern_v the_o return_n of_o the_o council_n do_v not_o know_v how_o the_o return_n to_o trent_n can_v be_v treat_v of_o with_o the_o honour_n and_o reputation_n of_o the_o synod_n if_o those_o who_o remain_v there_o do_v not_o first_o go_v to_o bolonia_n to_o unite_v with_o the_o rest_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o council_n when_o this_o be_v do_v the_o return_n in_o contemplation_n of_o germany_n may_v be_v handle_v if_o that_o nation_n will_v give_v sufficient_a security_n to_o obey_v the_o decree_n as_o well_o to_o be_v make_v as_o make_v already_o he_o add_v that_o there_o be_v a_o fame_n spread_v that_o when_o the_o council_n return_v to_o trent_n the_o proceed_n shall_v be_v popular_a and_o licentious_a therefore_o the_o father_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o have_v good_a security_n that_o the_o order_n continue_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o counsel_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o this_o age_n shall_v be_v observe_v desire_v also_o caution_n to_o stand_v secure_a and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o depart_v and_o translate_v also_o the_o council_n when_o it_o shall_v seem_v fit_a to_o the_o mayor_n part_n and_o to_o end_v it_o when_o they_o shall_v judge_v that_o they_o have_v attain_v the_o end_n for_o which_o it_o be_v call_v desire_v his_o holiness_n not_o to_o compel_v they_o to_o that_o which_o will_v be_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v these_o letter_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v on_o ambassador_n which_o the_o pope_n do_v communicito_fw-la to_o the_o cardinal_n in_o consistory_n &_o to_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n saint_n john_n the_o evangelist_n day_n be_v return_v to_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o robe_n with_o the_o cardinal_n do_v communicate_v the_o counsel_n answer_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o mayor_n part_n he_o cause_v mendoza_n to_o be_v call_v and_o relate_v unto_o he_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o synod_n approve_v also_o by_o the_o cardinal_n add_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o do_v for_o germanies_n sake_n that_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o good_a witness_n hereof_o that_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o demand_n which_o he_o the_o ambassador_n have_v make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o caesar_n ferdinand_n and_o the_o empire_n have_v a_o condition_n annex_v that_o be_v if_o it_o may_v be_v with_o the_o peace_n and_o profit_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n see_v it_o have_v judge_v otherwise_o and_o that_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o repute_v it_o iuridicall_a and_o
will_v not_o give_v but_o receive_v law_n refer_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o his_o nuncij_fw-la to_o remit_v something_o of_o the_o old_a discipline_n if_o they_o think_v it_o may_v be_v do_v without_o public_a scandal_n give_v they_o faculty_n to_o absolve_v full_o in_o both_o 〈…〉_o person_n though_o king_n and_o prince_n ecclesiastical_a and_o regular_a college_n and_o community_n from_o all_o excommunication_n 〈…〉_o and_o even_o from_o temporal_a punishment_n incur_v for_o 〈…〉_o though_o they_o be_v relapse_v it_o and_o to_o dispense_v 〈…〉_o for_o 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈…〉_o absolve_a the●_n 〈…〉_o and_o homag●●_n make_v 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈…〉_o s_o 〈…〉_o and_o to_o absolve_v 〈◊〉_d the_o re_fw-mi 〈…〉_o from_o 〈…〉_o give_v 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈…〉_o by_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o fast_v day_n by_o the_o counsel_n 〈◊〉_d the_o corporal_a physician_n or_o spiritual_a only_a or_o without_o any_o if_o it_o 〈…〉_o and_o to_o moderate_v the_o number_n of_o feast_n and_o for_o those_o 〈…〉_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o chalica_fw-la if_o they_o will_v humble_o de_fw-mi 〈…〉_o be_v 〈…〉_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o err_v in_o deny_v it_o to_o the_o laity_n to_o grant_v it_o unto_o they_o for_o life_n or_o for_o so_o long_o as_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_a so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v neither_o in_o the_o same_o time_n nor_o place_n with_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n he_o grant_v they_o power_n also_o to_o unite_v ecclesiastical_a benefice_n to_o study_n school_n or_o hospital_n and_o to_o absolve_v the_o usurper_n of_o ecclesiastical_a mooveable_a good_n after_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o immooveable_n compound_v also_o for_o the_o fruit_n usurp_v and_o movables_n consume_v with_o authority_n to_o communicate_v these_o faculty_n to_o other_o person_n of_o note_n this_o bull_n pass_v in_o all_o place_n be_v print_v upon_o the_o occasion_n which_o germany_n which_o be_v censure_v in_o germany_n shall_v be_v relate_v and_o afford_v matter_n of_o discourse_n first_o for_o the_o proheme_n where_o the_o pope_n say_v that_o in_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v comfort_v by_o the_o remedy_n leave_v by_o christ_n that_o the_o corn_n of_o the_o church_n winnow_v by_o satan_n shall_v be_v preserve_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n especial_o after_o he_o have_v apply_v the_o remedy_n of_o the_o general_a council_n as_o if_o the_o church_n have_v no_o foundation_n but_o upon_o he_o and_o sixty_o person_n of_o trent_n then_o they_o think_v it_o a_o great_a presumption_n to_o restore_v king_n and_o prince_n to_o honour_n fame_n and_o dignity_n there_o be_v also_o observe_v a_o contradiction_n to_o absolve_v from_o unlawful_a oath_n which_o need_v no_o absolution_n and_o from_o true_a oath_n no_o man_n can_v absolve_v and_o it_o be_v think_v another_o contradiction_n to_o grant_v the_o chalice_n only_o to_o he_o who_o believe_v the_o church_n do_v not_o err_v in_o forbid_v it_o to_o the_o laiety_n for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o believe_v so_o and_o to_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o prohibition_n but_o they_o can_v not_o forbear_v laugh_v when_o they_o read_v the_o condition_n to_o absolve_v the_o friar_n who_o forsake_v their_o cloister_n to_o wear_v the_o habit_n cover_v as_o if_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n do_v consist_v in_o a_o colour_n or_o vestment_n which_o be_v not_o wear_v in_o show_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v it_o in_o secret_a but_o though_o the_o nuncij_fw-la be_v soon_o depute_v yet_o their_o dispatch_n be_v defer_v until_o the_o next_o year_n because_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o please_v with_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o in_o which_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v to_o assist_v or_o authorise_v the_o provision_n defer_v why_o the_o dispatch_n of_o the_o two_o nuncij_fw-la be_v defer_v make_v by_o he_o neither_o will_v the_o pope_n ever_o be_v persuade_v that_o any_o minister_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v present_a the_o emperor_n be_v part_v from_o ausburg_n use_v all_o diligence_n that_o the_o catholic_n the_o emperor_n interim_n do_v please_v neither_o the_o protestant_n nor_o the_o catholic_n interim_n may_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o protestant_a city_n but_o find_v resistance_n and_o difficulty_n every_o where_o because_o they_o do_v detest_v it_o more_o than_o the_o catholic_n they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o total_a establishment_n of_o the_o papacy_n above_o all_o they_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v question_v john_n frederick_n duke_n of_o saxony_n though_o prisoner_n say_v free_o that_o god_n and_o his_o conscience_n unto_o which_o he_o be_v bind_v above_o all_o do_v not_o permit_v he_o to_o receive_v it_o where_o it_o be_v admit_v diverse_a accident_n variety_n and_o confusion_n do_v succeed_v so_o that_o it_o be_v bring_v into_o some_o place_n diverse_o with_o so_o many_o limitation_n and_o condition_n that_o one_o may_v say_v it_o be_v rather_o reject_v by_o all_o then_o accept_v by_o any_o neither_o do_v the_o catholic_n care_v to_o help_v forward_o the_o business_n because_o they_o do_v not_o approve_v it_o themselves_o that_o which_o do_v hinder_v the_o emperor_n most_o be_v the_o modest_a liberty_n of_o a_o little_a weak_a city_n which_o desire_v he_o that_o be_v lord_n of_o their_o good_n and_o life_n he_o will_v suffer_v that_o their_o conscience_n may_v belong_v to_o god_n that_o if_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v to_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o himself_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o great_a example_n to_o follow_v but_o if_o his_o majesty_n will_v compel_v they_o to_o accept_v of_o and_o believe_v that_o which_o himself_o think_v not_o true_a they_o know_v not_o how_o it_o can_v be_v do_v in_o september_n the_o emperor_n go_v into_o low_a germany_n where_o he_o find_v great_a difficulty_n for_o the_o city_n of_o saxony_n use_v many_o excuse_n and_o 〈◊〉_d do_v oppose_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o scorn_n wherefore_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o emperor_n and_o sustain_v a_o long_a war_n that_o maintain_v the_o fire_n alive_a in_o germanic_a which_o burn_v his_o trophy_n as_o in_o its_o place_n shall_v be_v say_v by_o reason_n of_o this_o confusion_n and_o to_o give_v order_n that_o the_o fleming_n shall_v swear_v 〈◊〉_d to_o his_o son_n the_o emperor_n quit_v germany_n go_v into_o flanders_n and_o though_o he_o severe_o forbid_v that_o the_o doctrine_n both_o and_o 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d against_o by_o both_o of_o the_o interim_n shall_v be_v impugn_a by_o any_o or_o write_v teach_v or_o preach_v against_o yet_o many_o protestant_n do_v write_v against_o it_o and_o the_o pope_n think_v it_o fit_a for_o his_o affair_n to_o do_v it_o give_v order_n to_o 〈…〉_o general_n of_o the_o dominican_n that_o assemble_v the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o his_o order_n by_o their_o opinion_n and_o paint_v he_o shall_v make_v a_o strong_a and_o sound_a confutation_n many_o in_o france_n write_v against_o it_o also_o and_o in_o a_o short_a time_n there_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o whole_a quodron_n of_o writer_n against_o it_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n especial_o of_o the_o hanse-towne_n and_o that_o do_v follow_v which_o do_v ordinary_o happen_v to_o he_o that_o will_v reconcile_v contrary_a opinion_n that_o he_o make_v they_o both_o agree_v to_o impugn_v he_o and_o every_o one_o more_o obstinate_a in_o defend_v his_o own_o there_o be_v also_o some_o cause_n of_o division_n among_o the_o protestant_n for_o those_o protestant_n a_o division_n among_o the_o protestant_n who_o have_v in_o part_n yield_v to_o caesar_n against_o their_o will_n and_o restore_v the_o old_a ceremony_n excuse_v themselves_o and_o say_v that_o the_o thing_n do_v by_o they_o be_v indifferent_a and_o by_o consequence_n that_o do_v not_o concern_v their_o salvation_n to_o reprove_v or_o receive_v they_o and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a yea_o necessary_a to_o tolerate_v some_o servitude_n when_o no_o impiety_n be_v join_v with_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o in_o these_o the_o emperor_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v other_o who_o necessity_n have_v not_o compel_v say_v it_o be_v true_a that_o indifferent_a thing_n concern_v not_o salvation_n yet_o by_o mean_n of_o they_o pernicious_a thing_n be_v bring_v in_o and_o go_v on_o they_o frame_v a_o general_a conclusion_n that_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n though_o by_o nature_n indifferent_a do_v become_v then_o bad_a when_o he_o that_o use_v they_o have_v a_o opinion_n reconcile_v which_o be_v never_o well_o reconcile_v that_o they_o be_v good_a 〈…〉_o and_o hence_o arise_v two_o sect_n and_o afterward_o more_o difference_n among_o they_o which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d well_o reconcile_v and_o in_o england_n there_o be_v no_o less_o 〈◊〉_d for_o religion_n for_o edward_n earl_n of_o harford_n 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o king_n have_v religion_n trouble_n in_o
to_o treat_v with_o cardinal_n pacceco_n but_o that_o he_o will_v let_v he_o know_v the_o capitulation_n which_o he_o require_v that_o he_o may_v resolve_v whether_o that_o medicine_n will_v cure_v the_o malady_n of_o germany_n or_o shall_v think_v of_o other_o remedy_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o continue_v long_o in_o that_o state_n the_o pope_n consider_v with_o his_o inward_a friend_n that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o important_a deliberation_n which_o can_v happen_v in_o all_o his_o papacy_n do_v balance_v make_v and_o the_o pope_n do_v serious_o deliberate_v what_o answer_n to_o make_v the_o reason_n which_o may_v persuade_v or_o dissuade_v it_o first_o he_o consider_v that_o remit_v the_o council_n to_o trent_n he_o condemn_v the_o translation_n to_o bolonia_n which_o be_v principal_o his_o deed_n and_o so_o shall_v plain_o confess_v he_o have_v do_v amiss_o either_o willing_o or_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o another_o and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o translation_n it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n but_o have_v make_v himself_o a_o party_n to_o defend_v it_o and_o so_o earnest_o he_o can_v not_o excuse_v himself_o of_o malice_n if_o he_o do_v so_o easy_o retract_v it_o and_o which_o import_v most_o he_o shall_v put_v himself_o into_o all_o those_o danger_n from_o which_o paul_n a_o most_o wise_a prince_n think_v fit_a to_o secure_v himself_o &_o persevere_v in_o that_o opinion_n until_o his_o death_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a error_n to_o reenter_v into_o they_o and_o though_o many_o be_v not_o ill_o affect_v to_o he_o be_v a_o new_a pope_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o mayor_n part_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v greve_v at_o the_o pope_n but_o at_o the_o popedom_n and_o for_o this_o particular_a no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o something_o may_v not_o happen_v in_o the_o progress_n which_o may_v raise_v he_o great_a hatred_n though_o without_o his_o fault_n beside_o all_o man_n be_v not_o move_v with_o hatred_n but_o those_o that_o hurt_v most_o desire_v to_o advantage_n themselves_o by_o depress_v other_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v conclude_v that_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o move_v paul_n will_v constrain_v julius_n also_o to_o the_o same_o resolution_n he_o consider_v the_o great_a trouble_n that_o paul_n sustain_v 26._o month_n for_o this_o cause_n and_o the_o indignity_n which_o he_o do_v necessary_o suffer_v and_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n not_o only_o in_o germany_n but_o in_o italy_n also_o and_o if_o this_o do_v derogate_v from_o paul_n confirm_v so_o many_o year_n in_o the_o papacy_n and_o esteem_v by_o all_o it_o will_v do_v it_o from_o he_o much_o more_o be_v a_o new_a pope_n not_o have_v as_o yet_o make_v intelligence_n and_o adherence_n necessary_a for_o the_o enterprise_n of_o contest_v and_o if_o a_o protestation_n shall_v he_o lay_v on_o his_o back_n or_o a_o decree_n as_o the_o interim_n his_o authority_n will_v be_v scorn_v by_o all_o he_o be_v not_o to_o reckon_v of_o the_o pain_n in_o translate_n the_o council_n and_o his_o constancy_n in_o defend_v it_o because_o with_o the_o change_n of_o fortune_n whatsoever_o depend_v on_o it_o be_v change_v and_o the_o action_n of_o john_n maria_n di_fw-fr monte_fw-fr do_v not_o appertain_v to_o pope_n julius_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o give_v reputation_n unto_o that_o man_n do_v not_o give_v it_o unto_o this_o then_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v to_o show_v himself_o a_o faithful_a servant_n of_o his_o lord_n but_o now_o be_v lord_n himself_o the_o respect_n of_o constancy_n in_o serve_v well_o do_v quite_o cease_v and_o another_o do_v succeed_v which_o require_v wisdom_n in_o apply_v himself_o to_o the_o time_n he_o consider_v how_o popular_a the_o emperor_n request_n be_v in_o regard_n the_o reduce_n of_o germany_n be_v in_o question_n and_o how_o scandalous_a it_o will_v be_v not_o to_o hearken_v unto_o it_o the_o cause_n which_o move_v to_o make_v the_o council_n be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a to_o all_o those_o which_o dissuade_v be_v secret_a &_o know_v to_o few_o final_o the_o oath_n make_v and_o iterate_v aught_o to_o be_v regard_v which_o though_o it_o do_v bind_v to_o prosecute_v the_o council_n without_o prescribe_v the_o place_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o without_o the_o emperor_n consent_n be_v king_n of_o spain_n and_o naples_n prince_n of_o the_o low_a country_n and_o have_v other_o adherence_n in_o italy_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v a_o general_a council_n so_o that_o to_o refuse_v to_o bring_v it_o back_o to_o trent_n and_o not_o to_o prosecute_v it_o be_v all_o one_o he_o incline_v to_o this_o part_n most_o as_o most_o agreeable_a to_o his_o disposition_n desirous_a rather_o to_o fly_v present_a incommodity_n then_o avoid_v future_a danger_n for_o choose_v to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n he_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o trouble_n which_o the_o emperor_n will_v give_v he_o and_o for_o the_o danger_n which_o it_o bring_v he_o begin_v to_o esteem_v they_o less_o he_o think_v the_o emperor_n fortune_n be_v not_o then_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v two_o year_n before_o for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o expectation_n of_o the_o victory_n which_o he_o after_o obtain_v give_v he_o reputation_n which_o now_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v burdensome_a to_o he_o than_o any_o ease_n he_o hold_v two_o prince_n prisoner_n as_o wolf_n by_o the_o ear_n the_o city_n of_o germany_n do_v open_o inchne_v to_o rebellion_n the_o eccleisastic_n have_v a_o satiety_n of_o that_o domination_n there_o be_v also_o domestical_a cross_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o son_n brother_n and_o nephew_n who_o aspire_v to_o the_o empire_n a_o business_n which_o perhaps_o may_v give_v he_o trouble_v beyond_o his_o force_n in_o fine_a he_o conclude_v according_a to_o his_o disposition_n let_v we_o get_v out_o of_o the_o present_a difficulty_n with_o hope_n that_o our_o good_a fortune_n will_v not_o abandon_v us._n and_o conceal_v his_o resolution_n he_o depute_v a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n prelate_n he_o conceal_v his_o resolution_n until_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n and_o other_o prelate_n for_o the_o most_o part_n imperialist_n that_o they_o may_v fall_v upon_o the_o resolution_n which_o he_o have_v take_v mingle_v some_o few_o of_o his_o trusty_a friend_n among_o they_o to_o govern_v the_o business_n according_a to_o his_o purpose_n to_o these_o he_o propose_v the_o emperor_n request_n give_v order_n that_o without_o all_o respect_n every_o one_o shall_v speak_v what_o he_o think_v convenient_a for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o in_o case_n they_o think_v fit_a to_o condescend_v they_o shall_v think_v how_o to_o do_v it_o with_o honour_n security_n and_o fruit_n the_o congregation_n have_v often_o consult_v relate_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n the_o council_n shall_v be_v prosecute_v because_o such_o a_o oath_n be_v take_v in_o the_o conclave_n and_o by_o his_o holiness_n after_o his_o assumption_n and_o to_o take_v away_o scandal_n from_o the_o world_n which_o without_o doubt_n will_v be_v very_o great_a incase_o i●_n be_v not_o do_v and_o it_o may_v be_v prosecute_v two_o way_n one_o by_o continue_v it_o in_o bolonid_n another_o by_o remit_v it_o to_o trent_n it_o can_v not_o be_v continue_v in_o bolonia_n because_o paul_n have_v call_v to_o he_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o translation_n and_o inhibit_v to_o proceed_v any_o further_a if_o his_o holiness_n do_v not_o first_o give_v sentence_n that_o the_o translation_n be_v good_a it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o go_v on_o in_o that_o city_n and_o if_o he_o do_v he_o will_v give_v a_o lawful_a pretence_n to_o be_v suspect_v it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o translation_n be_v make_v by_o he_o as_o be_v the_o prime_a legate_n and_o precedent_n therefore_o only_a the_o other_o way_n remain_v to_o remit_v it_o to_o trent_n and_o all_o occasion_n be_v so_o take_v away_o from_o germany_n to_o spurn_v against_o it_o and_o the_o emperor_n be_v satisfy_v which_o be_v a_o very_a essential_a point_n this_o advice_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v approve_v by_o he_o and_o so_o they_o pass_v to_o that_o which_o remain_v and_o first_o it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o consent_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o french_a debate_v the_o difficulty_n 〈…〉_o thing_fw-mi y_fw-es e_fw-it council_n to_o trent_n be_v debate_v king_n be_v necessary_a and_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n otherwise_o the_o reputation_n of_o the_o council_n will_v be_v very_o weak_a and_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o loose_v france_n only_o to_o endeavour_v to_o regain_v germany_n which_o be_v lose_v which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o
only_o be_v hear_v but_o have_v a_o decide_n voice_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o preside_v but_o shall_v submit_v himself_o also_o to_o the_o council_n and_o release_v the_o bishop_n of_o their_o oath_n that_o they_o may_v speak_v free_o the_o emperor_n complain_v of_o the_o protestant_n that_o his_o decree_n of_o the_o interim_n be_v not_o obey_v by_o they_o and_o of_o the_o catholic_n that_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v not_o execute_v these_o excuse_v themselves_o some_o by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v to_o proceed_v slow_o avoid_v dissension_n other_o that_o the_o exempt_a pretend_v privilege_n will_v not_o obey_v the_o protestant_n lay_v the_o cause_n upon_o the_o people_n who_o in_o regard_n the_o matter_n concern_v their_o conscience_n do_v mutin_n and_o can_v not_o be_v force_v the_o emperor_n give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o nuncio_n of_o all_o these_o particular_n show_v not_o only_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o protestant_n but_o the_o limitation_n also_o propose_v by_o the_o other_o lest_z if_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o by_o some_o other_o mean_n it_o may_v have_v produce_v some_o bad_a effect_n but_o he_o add_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v this_o limitation_n put_v into_o the_o act_n because_o those_o prince_n have_v give_v he_o their_o word_n that_o they_o will_v do_v nothing_o against_o his_o will_n and_o therefore_o he_o may_v affirm_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o all_o germany_n be_v content_v with_o the_o council_n afterward_o he_o treat_v more_o strict_o with_o the_o principal_a ecclesiastique_n propose_v that_o the_o beginning_n shall_v be_v before_o easter_n and_o that_o they_o will_v go_v thither_o in_o person_n which_o be_v promise_v by_o the_o elector_n he_o solicit_v the_o pope_n to_o make_v the_o convocation_n for_o easter_n or_o immediate_o after_o because_o he_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o publish_v the_o emperor_n hasten_v the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n and_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o bull_n before_o it_o be_v publish_v germany_n which_o the_o better_a to_o confirm_v he_o pray_v his_o holiness_n that_o when_o the_o bull_n be_v make_v he_o will_v send_v he_o the_o draught_n before_o it_o be_v publish_v that_o show_v it_o to_o all_o in_o the_o diet_n he_o may_v by_o that_o occasion_n make_v a_o decree_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o the_o pope_n think_v that_o nothing_o be_v conclude_v of_o what_o be_v propose_v by_o he_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v not_o decide_v that_o the_o decree_n already_o make_v shall_v be_v receive_v he_o will_v not_o that_o in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o council_n this_o shall_v be_v dispute_v of_o because_o the_o issue_n be_v plain_a that_o be_v that_o much_o time_n will_v be_v spend_v and_o nothing_o do_v and_o in_o fine_a all_o will_v be_v dissolve_v without_o conclusion_n it_o be_v plain_a to_o be_v see_v that_o the_o general_a dispute_n whether_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v do_v draw_v after_o it_o a_o particular_a of_o every_o one_o and_o that_o himself_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o interpose_v because_o it_o will_v be_v allege_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v suspect_v as_o have_v be_v precedent_n and_o the_o principal_a author_n to_o insist_v more_o with_o the_o emperor_n that_o this_o point_n may_v be_v decide_v will_v give_v he_o more_o distaste_n &_o cast_v all_o into_o insuperable_a difficulty_n he_o be_v counsel_v that_o without_o say_v any_o more_o he_o shall_v take_v the_o point_n for_o decide_v make_v the_o pope_n resolution_n concern_v the_o decree_n already_o make_v &_o presuppose_v in_o his_o bull_n that_o the_o decree_n already_o make_v shall_v be_v accept_v by_o all_o for_o the_o bull_n go_v to_o the_o diet_n with_o this_o tenor_n either_o the_o dutchman_n will_v be_v content_v with_o it_o and_o so_o he_o shall_v obtain_v his_o purpose_n or_o will_v not_o accept_v it_o and_o so_o the_o dispute_n will_v begin_v in_o the_o diet_n and_o himself_o will_v be_v free_a from_o care_n of_o it_o the_o council_n seem_v unto_o he_o good_a in_o conformity_n whereof_o he_o make_v the_o bull._n and_o to_o satisfy_v the_o emperor_n in_o part_n he_o send_v it_o to_o he_o not_o in_o a_o draught_n because_o he_o think_v it_o be_v against_o his_o honour_n but_o frame_v date_a and_o seal_v yet_o not_o publish_v the_o date_n be_v the_o fifteen_o of_o november_n the_o bull_n of_o the_o conocation_n be_v date_v the_o 15._o 8_o november_n november_n in_o that_o bull_n he_o say_v that_o for_o the_o take_v away_o of_o all_o difference_n of_o religion_n in_o germany_n it_o be_v expedient_a and_o fit_a which_o the_o emperor_n have_v also_o signify_v unto_o he_o to_o reduce_v the_o general_a council_n into_o trent_n call_v by_o paul_n the_o three_o begin_v order_v and_o prosecute_v by_o himself_o than_o cardinal_n and_o precedent_n and_o many_o decree_n of_o faith_n and_o discipline_n be_v constitute_v and_o publish_v therein_o he_o unto_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o call_v and_o direct_v general_a counsel_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o orthodox_n religion_n and_o to_o restore_v peace_n to_o germany_n which_o former_o have_v not_o yield_v to_o any_o province_n in_o obedience_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n hope_v also_o that_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n will_v favour_v and_o assist_v it_o exhort_v and_o admonish_v the_o patriarques_n arch_a bishop_n bishop_n abbat_n and_o other_o who_o by_o law_n 〈…〉_o the_o council_n be_v to_o beguine_v the_o first_o of_o ma_fw-fr 〈…〉_o custom_n or_o privilege_n aught_o to_o assist_v in_o counsel_n to_o be_v in_o trent_n the_o first_o of_o may●_n in_o which_o day_n he_o have_v ordain_v by_o his_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v reassume_v in_o the_o state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v and_o prosecute_v whether_o he_o will_v send_v his_o legate_n by_o who_o he_o will_v preside_v in_o the_o synod_n in_o case_n he_o can_v be_v personal_o present_a notwithstanding_o any_o translation_n suspension_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o especial_o those_o thing_n which_o paul_n the_o three_o in_o his_o bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n and_o other_o belong_v to_o the_o council_n do_v ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o hinder_v which_o bull_n his_o will_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v remain_v in_o force_n with_o all_o their_o clause_n and_o decree_n confirm_v and_o renew_v they_o as_o much_o as_o be_v needful_a the_o emperor_n minister_n and_o other_o zealous_a catholic_n to_o who_o the_o emperor_n do_v impart_v it_o think_v it_o will_v exasperate_v the_o protestant_n and_o give_v they_o occasion_n not_o to_o accept_v of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n declare_v that_o he_o will_v not_o only_o preside_v but_o direct_v also_o beside_o to_o talk_v of_o reassume_v and_o prosecute_n it_o be_v to_o put_v too_o many_o suspicion_n into_o their_o head_n and_o to_o speak_v so_o magnificent_o of_o his_o authority_n be_v nothing_o but_o to_o provoke_v they_o they_o counsel_v the_o emperor_n to_o enduour_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v moderate_v the_o bull_n and_o reduce_v it_o into_o such_o a_o form_n as_o may_v not_o more_o alcinate_v the_o protestant_n the_o emperor_n treat_v thereof_o with_o the_o nuncio_n bull._n the_o emperor_n desire_v a_o alteration_n of_o the_o bull._n and_o write_v to_o his_o ambassador_n to_o do_v the_o like_a with_o the_o pope_n pray_v his_o holiness_n affectionate_o and_o effectual_o and_o for_o christian_a charity_n to_o make_v those_o word_n more_o mild_a which_o may_v diverse_a germany_n from_o accept_v the_o council_n the_o ambassador_n in_o rome_n treat_v with_o a_o spanish_a dexterity_n and_o say_v that_o as_o wild_a beast_n take_v in_o a_o snare_n must_v be_v draw_v gentle_o make_v show_n to_o yield_v unto_o they_o nor_o must_v be_v show_v the_o fire_n or_o arm_n for_o fear_n of_o provoke_v they_o and_o put_v they_o in_o despair_n which_o will_v increase_v their_o force_n so_o the_o protestant_n must_v be_v use_v who_o with_o gentleness_n and_o by_o instruct_v and_o hear_v they_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o council_n where_o be_v arrive_v it_o will_v be_v a_o fit_a time_n to_o show_v they_o the_o truth_n that_o to_o condemn_v they_o before_o they_o be_v hear_v be_v to_o exasperate_v and_o provoke_v they_o more_o the_o pope_n answer_v according_a to_o his_o usual_a liberty_n that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v teach_v to_o fight_v with_o a_o cat_n shut_v up_o but_o will_v have_v it_o at_o liberty_n that_o it_o may_v fly_v that_o to_o answer_n the_o pope_n answer_n bring_v the_o protestant_n with_o fair_a word_n to_o the_o council_n where_o the_o deed_n will_v not_o be_v answerable_a be_v to_o put_v they_o in_o despair_n and_o make_v
therefore_o that_o he_o will_v lodge_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o empire_n 〈…〉_o he_o can_v and_o he_o admonish_v the_o elector_n prince_n and_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n especial_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n and_o those_o who_o have_v make_v innovation_n in_o religion_n that_o they_o prepare_v to_o be_v there_o well_o instruct_v that_o they_o may_v be_v inexcusable_a himself_o take_v care_n that_o all_o shall_v pass_v lawful_o and_o in_o order_n and_o that_o every_o thing_n be_v handle_v pious_o and_o christianly_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o for_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o inter-religion_n and_o reformation_n be_v assure_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o overcome_v the_o difficulty_n and_o that_o as_o o_o 〈…〉_o o_o thing_n grow_v worse_a to_o the_o end_n that_o great_a confusion_n may_v not_o arise_v he_o call_v unto_o he_o the_o cognition_n of_o the_o transgression_n post_n yet_o enjoin_v the_o prince_n and_o order_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o observance_n hereafter_o the_o world_n see_v this_o decree_n think_v it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o just_a counterpoise_n bull._n which_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o counterpoise_n to_o the_o pope_n bull._n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n in_o all_o part_n the_o one_o will_v direct_v counsel_n the_o other_o will_v take_v care_n that_o all_o be_v do_v in_o order_n and_o iuridical_o the_o one_o will_v preside_v and_o the_o other_o will_v have_v the_o decision_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n the_o one_o will_n continuate_a and_o the_o other_o will_v have_v power_n give_v to_o every_o one_o to_o propose_v according_a to_o his_o conscience_n in_o sum_n the_o court_n can_v not_o digest_v this_o affront_n and_o complain_v that_o it_o be_v another_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n but_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o his_o usual_a pleasanthesse_n say_v the_o emperor_n have_v be_v even_o with_o i_o for_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o bull_n make_v without_o he_o the_o year_n 1551._o be_v begin_v the_o pope_n apply_v himself_o to_o the_o council_n intimate_v have_v two_o principal_a aye_n to_o send_v trusty_a person_n to_o preside_v 1551_o 1551_o and_o to_o be_v at_o as_o little_a charge_n as_o be_v possible_a to_o avoid_v charge_n he_o name_v the_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n be_v name_v think_v to_o send_v but_o one_o legate_n but_o that_o be_v too_o great_a a_o burden_n for_o one_o because_o there_o will_v be_v none_o who_o have_v the_o same_o interest_n on_o who_o he_o may_v safe_o rely_v and_o because_o he_o shall_v be_v esteem_v the_o only_a author_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v for_o which_o respect_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o lay_v the_o burden_n on_o more_o man_n shoulder_n the_o pope_n find_v a_o middle_a way_n to_o send_v one_o legate_n and_o two_o nuncij_fw-la with_o equal_a authority_n think_v that_o so_o he_o shall_v be_v better_o serve_v because_o hope_n make_v man_n more_o diligent_a cast_v his_o eye_n on_o all_o the_o cardinal_n he_o find_v none_o more_o trusty_a and_o withal_o more_o worthy_a than_o marcellus_n crescentius_n cardinal_n of_o s._n marcellus_n to_o who_o he_o join_v for_o nuncij_fw-la sebastianus_n pigbinus_n archbishop_n of_o siponto_n and_o aloisius_n lipomannus_n bishop_n of_o verona_n of_o the_o former_a he_o make_v choice_n for_o the_o great_a confidence_n he_o have_v in_o he_o before_o his_o papacy_n of_o the_o other_o for_o the_o foam_n of_o his_o great_a piety_n goodness_n and_o loyalty_n have_v have_v many_o secret_a parley_n with_o these_o three_o and_o open_v veto_fw-la they_o the_o sincerity_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o instruct_v they_o full_o he_o give_v they_o a_o ample_a mandate_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n in_o his_o name_n the_o tenor_n whereof_o be_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o father_n of_o a_o family_n to_o substitute_v other_o to_o do_v that_o mandate_n the_o tenor_n of_o their_o mandate_n which_o he_o can_v commodious_o do_v himself_o therefore_o have_v reduce_v to_o trent_n the_o general_n council_n intimate_v by_o paul_n hope_v that_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n will_v afford_v their_o favour_n and_o assistance_n he_o cite_v the_o prelate_n who_o usual_o have_v voice_n therein_o to_o be_v there_o the_o first_o of_o may_n to_o resume_v the_o council_n in_o the_o state_n it_o be_v but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o be_v personal_o present_a according_a to_o his_o desire_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o old_a age_n and_o other_o impediment_n that_o his_o absence_n may_v not_o be_v a_o hindrance_n he_o appoint_v marcellus_n a_o zealous_a wise_a and_o learned_a cardinal_n for_o legate_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o siponto_n and_o verona_n famous_a for_o knowledge_n and_o experience_n as_o nuncij_fw-la with_o special_a mandate_n and_o fit_a clause_n send_v they_o as_o angel_n of_o peace_n give_v they_o authority_n to_o resume_v direct_v and_o prosecute_v the_o council_n and_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n meet_v and_o necessary_a according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o he_o and_o his_o predecessor_n letter_n of_o the_o convocation_n the_o emperor_n who_o the_o council_n do_v more_o protestant_n the_o emperor_n give_v a_o safe_a conduct_n to_o the_o protestant_n concern_v hold_v it_o to_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o make_v himself_o absolute_a master_n of_o germany_n send_v a_o safe_a conduct_n in_o a_o ample_a form_n to_o all_o the_o protestant_a order_n of_o that_o empire_n for_o themselves_o their_o ambassador_n and_o divine_n but_o while_o these_o foundation_n be_v lay_v in_o rome_n and_o ausburg_n to_o build_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n upon_o they_o web_n be_v spin_a in_o other_o place_n which_o obscure_v farnese_n the_o pope_n restore_v parma_n to_o octavius_n farnese_n the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o that_o synod_n and_o engine_n be_v frame_v which_o do_v shake_v and_o dissolve_v it_o the_o pope_n immediate_o after_o his_o assumption_n to_o preforme_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o the_o conclave_n restore_v parma_n to_o octavius_n farnese_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v take_v into_o his_o hand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o assign_v to_o he_o two_o thousand_o crown_n a_o month_n to_o defend_v it_o octavius_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o enmity_n of_o ferrante_n conzaga_n vice-duke_n of_o milan_n and_o of_o many_o argument_n which_o he_o have_v that_o the_o emperor_n mean_v to_o be_v lord_n of_o that_o city_n the_o pope_n also_o have_v take_v from_o he_o the_o provision_n of_o two_o thousand_o crown_n doubt_v that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v it_o with_o his_o own_o force_n treat_v with_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o brother_n the_o cardinal_n either_o to_o assist_v he_o or_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o provide_v for_o himself_o by_o the_o protection_n of_o some_o other_o prince_n able_a to_o maintain_v he_o against_o the_o emperor_n the_o pope_n without_o think_v more_o of_o it_o answer_v that_o he_o shall_v do_v for_o himself_o the_o best_a he_o can_v wherefore_o octavius_n by_o mean_n of_o horatius_n city_n who_o receive_v a_o french_a garrison_n 〈◊〉_d the_o city_n his_o brother_n son_n in_o law_n to_o the_o french_a king_n put_v himself_o under_o the_o protection_n of_o france_n and_o receive_v a_o french_a garrison_n into_o the_o city_n this_o displease_v the_o emperor_n his_o uncle_n who_o persuade_v the_o pope_n that_o it_o be_v against_o his_o honour_n who_o be_v supreme_a lord_n of_o that_o city_n and_o duke_n therefore_o the_o pope_n publish_v a_o severe_a edict_n against_o he_o cite_v he_o to_o rome_n and_o declare_v he_o traitor_n if_o he_o do_v not_o appear_v and_o demand_v the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d which_o occasion_v a_o war_n between_o the_o emperor_n &_o the_o french_a 〈◊〉_d assistance_n against_o he_o who_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v approve_v the_o pope_n cause_n and_o will_v defend_v it_o with_o his_o arm_n this_o be_v a_o beginning_n of_o a_o manifest_a war_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n and_o of_o great_a distaste_v of_o this_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o saxony_n upon_o the_o river_n albi_fw-la discourse_n begin_v between_o the_o saxon_n and_o those_o of_o brandeburg_n to_o make_v a_o league_n against_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o may_v not_o whole_o subdue_v germany_n as_o shall_v be_v say_v in_o its_o place_n notwithstanding_o these_o seed_n of_o war_n which_o in_o italy_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o april_n begin_v to_o spring_v the_o pope_n will_v have_v the_o legate_n emperor_n a_o confederation_n be_v make_v in_o germany_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o nuncij_fw-la go_v to_o trent_n and_o give_v they_o commission_n to_o open_v the_o council_n on_o the_o first_o of_o may_n the_o day_n appoint_v with_o those_o who_o be_v there_o yea_o though_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o nuncij_fw-la of_o martinus_n the_o five_o who_o open_v the_o
habit_n which_o be_v not_o lawful_a because_o he_o be_v a_o monk_n of_o saint_n basil_n all_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o october_n but_o this_o vain_a show_n of_o honour_n be_v not_o esteem_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o prefer_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n before_o his_o country_n he_o be_v traitorous_o and_o cruel_o slay_v by_o ferdinand_n minister_n the_o eighteen_o of_o december_n upon_o pretence_n that_o he_o hold_v intelligence_n with_o the_o turk_n this_o accident_n do_v exceed_o move_v the_o cardinal_n who_o think_v themselves_o most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a they_o consider_v of_o what_o importance_n the_o example_n be_v that_o a_o cardinal_n shall_v be_v slay_v upon_o feign_a calumny_n or_o for_o suspicion_n and_o they_o incite_v the_o pope_n who_o be_v forward_o of_o himself_o show_v he_o that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v possessor_n of_o a_o great_a treasure_n to_o the_o value_n of_o a_o million_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o chamber_n be_v the_o good_n of_o a_o cardinal_n dead_a without_o a_o will._n for_o all_o these_o respect_v the_o pope_n depute_a cardinal_n to_o take_v knowledge_n of_o the_o crime_n and_o ferdinand_n and_o all_o his_o minister_n of_o transiluania_n be_v think_v to_o have_v incur_v the_o censure_n commissioner_n be_v send_v to_o vienna_n to_o make_v censure_n ferdinand_n &_o his_o minister_n be_v think_v to_o have_v incur_v the_o censure_n inquisition_n and_o not_o to_o return_v to_o speak_v of_o this_o again_o i_o will_v say_v here_o by_o way_n of_o anticipation_n that_o the_o heat_n be_v abate_v as_o the_o custom_n be_v because_o that_o which_o be_v do_v can_v not_o be_v undo_v not_o to_o raise_v any_o great_a stir_n the_o proceed_n be_v with_o much_o connivencie_n and_o though_o the_o process_n be_v make_v as_o ferdinand_n will_v yet_o nothing_o be_v prove_v against_o the_o dead_a man_n and_o the_o purpose_n to_o draw_v the_o inheritance_n to_o the_o chamber_n die_v because_o little_o be_v find_v in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o be_v think_v martinuccio_n a_o man_n bountiful_a have_v spend_v all_o in_o the_o public_a service_n and_o that_o which_o be_v find_v be_v divide_v among_o the_o soldier_n the_o pope_n declare_v ferdinand_n and_o all_o those_o who_o absolute_o ferdinand_n be_v absolve_v first_o conditional_o and_o then_o absolute_o be_v not_o present_a at_o his_o death_n to_o be_v absolve_v with_o this_o addition_n if_o the_o thing_n deduce_v in_o the_o process_n be_v true_a whereof_o the_o emperor_n minister_n complain_v as_o if_o the_o integrity_n of_o ferdinand_n be_v question_v the_o pope_n make_v the_o sentence_n absolute_a and_o those_o only_a who_o be_v author_n of_o the_o murder_n go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v absolve_v but_o so_o as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v a_o good_a work_n and_o in_o hungary_n and_o rome_n it_o be_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o command_n from_o he_o who_o have_v interest_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a say_n that_o of_o every_o secret_a counsel_n he_o be_v author_n who_o receive_v profit_n by_o it_o yet_o this_o do_v ferdinand_n no_o good_a who_o short_o after_o for_o this_o and_o other_o cause_n be_v chase_v out_o of_o transiluania_n but_o because_o to_o speak_v thereof_o belong_v not_o to_o my_o purpose_n i_o return_v to_o the_o matter_n which_o i_o leave_v the_o seven_o day_n of_o february_n the_o next_o sunday_n before_o septuagesima_fw-la the_o gospel_n of_o the_o cockle_n be_v read_v ambrose_n cigogna_n or_o stork_n for_o so_o his_o dutch_a name_n pelargo_n be_v expound_v a_o dominican_n divine_a of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o trier_n preach_v who_o apply_v the_o name_n of_o cockle_n to_o the_o heretic_n say_v it_o be_v fit_a to_o tolerate_v they_o when_o without_o danger_n of_o great_a mischief_n they_o can_v not_o be_v noot_v our_o this_o be_v tell_v to_o the_o protestant_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a not_o to_o observe_v the_o faith_n give_v which_o raise_v a_o great_a tumult_n he_o defend_v himself_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o heretic_n in_o general_a and_o say_v no_o more_o than_o what_o the_o gospel_n itself_o do_v propose_v but_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o extirpate_v they_o with_o fire_n bond_n and_o halter_n or_o any_o other_o way_n he_o shall_v have_v do_v that_o which_o the_o council_n in_o the_o second_o session_n do_v command_v that_o he_o have_v speak_v modest_o nor_o can_v a_o sermon_n be_v make_v upon_o that_o gospel_n without_o say_v as_o much_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n do_v pacify_v the_o commotion_n but_o with_o difficulty_n though_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o friar_n speak_v not_o of_o keep_v faith_n not_o of_o the_o protestant_n particular_o but_o of_o heretic_n in_o general_n the_o elector_n make_v this_o his_o pretence_n to_o depart_v which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o do_v before_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o secret_a intelligence_n which_o he_o hold_v with_o the_o french_a king_n as_o also_o to_o recover_v his_o health_n and_o so_o he_o depart_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o february_n leave_v trent_n the_o elector_n of_o trier_n depart_v from_o trent_n a_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v with_o the_o good_a like_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o with_o promise_n to_o return_v quick_o yet_o he_o pass_v not_o by_o ispruc_n nor_o speak_v with_o the_o emperor_n the_o first_o day_n of_o lent_n the_o station_n be_v by_o affixion_n publish_v in_o trent_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o in_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n grant_n to_o he_o that_o visit_v the_o church_n which_o give_v entertainment_n to_o the_o father_n and_o divine_n who_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o intermission_n of_o the_o congregation_n want_v business_n and_o before_o be_v almost_o idle_a they_o entertain_v themselves_o in_o private_a meeting_n discourse_v various_o sometime_o of_o dissolve_v sometime_o of_o continue_v the_o council_n according_a to_o the_o news_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o march_n letter_n come_v from_o the_o electour_n of_o saxony_n to_o his_o ambassador_n give_v they_o commission_n to_o prosecute_v their_o instance_n in_o the_o council_n and_o advise_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n in_o person_n which_o put_v all_o man_n out_o of_o fear_n but_o not_o long_o after_o a_o general_a rumour_n be_v spread_v that_o the_o french_a king_n be_v confederate_a with_o the_o protestant_a prince_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o emperor_n the_o electour_n of_o mentz_n and_o collen_n depart_v trent_n the_o elector_n of_o collen_n and_o mentz_n depart_v from_o trent_n the_o eleven_o of_o march_n and_o pass_v by_o ispruc_n have_v very_o secret_a conference_n with_o caesar_n and_o the_o ambassador_n of_o maurice_n fear_v some_o danger_n go_v secret_o out_o of_o trent_n and_o return_v home_o by_o diverse_a way_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o four_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n and_o two_o of_o argentina_n come_v to_o trent_n afterward_o who_o with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o that_o duke_n synod_n the_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n &_o argentina_n come_v to_o the_o synod_n do_v immediate_o desire_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n that_o the_o synod_n may_v answer_v the_o proposition_n already_o make_v and_o begin_v the_o conference_n the_o legate_n answer_v that_o the_o nineteenth_o of_o march_n a_o day_n appoint_v for_o the_o session_n approach_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v order_n for_o it_o and_o to_o handle_v many_o other_o thing_n of_o which_o one_o shall_v be_v to_o find_v a_o form_n how_o to_o treat_v therefore_o that_o day_n a_o congregation_n be_v make_v in_o the_o legate_n house_n and_o a_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n resolution_n take_v to_o prolong_v the_o session_n until_o the_o first_o of_o may._n in_o this_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n be_v receive_v who_o present_v his_o mandate_n and_o make_v a_o speech_n and_o be_v answer_v in_o the_o usual_a form_n with_o praise_n and_o thanks_n to_o the_o king_n and_o word_n of_o compliment_n to_o the_o ambassador_n but_o those_o of_o wittenberg_n see_v no_o answer_n be_v make_v to_o their_o proposition_n and_o that_o the_o legate_n conceal_v the_o confession_n present_v by_o they_o which_o many_o desire_v to_o have_v and_o can_v not_o have_v bring_v many_o print_a copy_n distribute_v they_o unto_o diverse_a which_o raise_v much_o noise_n and_o some_o say_v the_o deserve_v confession_n the_o ambassador_n of_o wittenberg_n spread_v copy_n of_o their_o confession_n serve_v punishment_n for_o he_o unto_o who_o safe_a conduct_n be_v grant_v be_v bind_v to_o give_v none_o offence_n unto_o he_o that_o grant_v it_o and_o this_o be_v esteem_v a_o public_a offence_n yet_o in_o the_o end_n all_o be_v quiet_v the_o protestant_n together_o with_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n
religion_n many_o be_v burn_v in_o england_n for_o religion_n they_o have_v be_v live_v and_o their_o body_n dig_v up_o and_o burn_v a_o action_n commend_v by_o some_o as_o a_o revenge_n of_o what_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v do_v against_o s._n thomas_n by_o other_o compare_v to_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n stephanus_n the_o six_o and_o sergius_n the_o three_o do_v against_o the_o corpse_n of_o pope_n formosus_fw-la many_o also_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n burn_v in_o france_n for_o religion_n not_o also_o and_o in_o france_n also_o without_o the_o indignation_n of_o honest_a man_n who_o know_v that_o the_o diligence_n use_v against_o those_o poor_a people_n be_v not_o for_o piety_n or_o religion_n but_o to_o satiate_v valentina_n which_o be_v do_v to_o satiate_v the_o covetousness_n of_o diana_n valentina_n the_o covetousness_n of_o diana_n valentina_n the_o king_n mistress_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v all_o the_o confiscation_n of_o good_n make_v in_o the_o kingdom_n for_o cause_n of_o heresy_n it_o be_v wonder_v also_o that_o those_o of_o the_o new_a reformation_n shall_v meddle_v with_o blood_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n for_o michael_n seruetus_fw-la of_o tarragona_n make_v a_o divine_a of_o a_o physician_n renew_v the_o old_a opinion_n of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o marcellus_n anciranus_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n subsist_v and_o therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o pure_a man_n be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o geneva_n michael_n seruetus_fw-la be_v burn_v in_o geneva_n it_o in_o geneva_n by_o counsel_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o zuric_n berne_n and_o schiaffusa_fw-la and_o john_n caluin_n who_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o by_o many_o write_v a_o book_n defend_v that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v punish_v heretic_n with_o loss_n of_o life_n which_o doctrine_n be_v draw_v to_o diverse_a sense_n as_o it_o be_v understand_v more_o strict_o or_o more_o large_o or_o as_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n be_v take_v diverse_o may_v sometime_o do_v hurt_v to_o he_o who_o another_o time_n it_o have_v help_v at_o that_o time_n ferdinand_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n publish_v a_o edict_n to_o all_o religion_n the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n publish_v a_o edict_n against_o all_o innovation_n in_o religion_n the_o people_n subject_a unto_o he_o that_o in_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o rite_n they_o shall_v not_o innovate_v but_o follow_v the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o particular_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a communion_n they_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n only_o wherein_o though_o many_o person_n of_o note_n the_o nobility_n and_o many_o of_o the_o city_n make_v supplication_n unto_o he_o that_o at_o the_o least_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v grant_v they_o say_v that_o the_o institution_n be_v of_o christ_n which_o may_v not_o be_v alter_v by_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o old_a church_n as_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n promise_v all_o submission_n and_o obedience_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n pray_v he_o not_o to_o burden_n their_o conscience_n but_o to_o accommodate_v his_o commandment_n to_o the_o order_n set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o ferdinand_n persevere_v in_o his_o resolution_n and_o answer_v they_o that_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o new_a but_o a_o ancient_a institution_n use_v by_o his_o ancestor_n emperor_n king_n and_o duke_n of_o austria_n and_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v a_o novitie_n bring_v in_o by_o curiosity_n or_o pride_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n yet_o he_o moderate_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o answer_n say_v that_o the_o question_n be_v of_o a_o point_n that_o concern_v salvation_n he_o will_v think_v of_o it_o more_o diligent_o and_o answer_v they_o in_o fit_a time_n but_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n he_o expect_v from_o they_o obedience_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o edict_n he_o publish_v also_o a_o catechism_n the_o fourteen_o of_o catechism_n and_o a_o catechism_n august_n make_v by_o his_o authority_n by_o some_o learned_a and_o pious_a divine_n rome_n 1555_o paul_n 4._o charles_n 5._o mary_n 〈◊〉_d henry_n 2._o which_o give_v distaste_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n command_v all_o the_o magistrate_n of_o those_o country_n not_o to_o suffer_v any_o schoolmaster_n to_o read_v any_o but_o that_o either_o in_o public_a or_o in_o private_a because_o by_o diverse_a pamphlet_n which_o go_v about_o religion_n be_v much_o corrupt_v in_o those_o country_n this_o constitution_n distaste_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o be_v not_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v approve_v by_o his_o authority_n nor_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o country_n the_o secular_a prince_n assume_v the_o office_n to_o cause_n to_o be_v compose_v and_o to_o authorize_v book_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n especial_o by_o name_n of_o catechism_n to_o show_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n to_o determine_v what_o religion_n the_o people_n shall_v follow_v and_o what_o refuse_v the_o two_o year_n of_o the_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n be_v expire_v they_o treat_v in_o the_o consistory_n what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v for_o although_o the_o condition_n in_o the_o decree_n be_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n again_o when_o the_o impediment_n be_v remoove_v which_o do_v still_o continue_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n of_o sienna_n piedmont_n and_o other_o between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n yet_o it_o seem_v that_o any_o man_n of_o a_o unquiet_a spirit_n may_v say_v that_o those_o impediment_n be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o that_o it_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o council_n be_v on_o foot_n again_o so_o that_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o those_o danger_n it_o may_v be_v good_a to_o make_v a_o new_a declaration_n but_o wise_a man_n end_v it_o be_v resolve_v in_o rome_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n though_o the_o two_o year_n of_o suspension_n be_v end_v give_v counsel_n not_o to_o move_v the_o evil_a while_o it_o be_v quiet_a while_o the_o world_n be_v silent_a while_o neither_o prince_n nor_o people_n demand_v the_o council_n lest_o by_o show_v they_o be_v afraid_a they_o may_v excite_v other_o to_o require_v it_o this_o advice_n prevayl_v and_o make_v the_o pope_n resolve_v never_o to_o speak_v more_o of_o it_o in_o the_o year_n 1555._o there_o be_v a_o diet_n in_o ausburg_n which_o the_o emperor_n religion_n 1555._o a_o diet._n 〈◊〉_d have_v in_o ausburg_n to_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n have_v intimate_v principal_o to_o compose_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n in_o regard_n this_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o the_o trouble_n and_o calamity_n of_o germany_n with_o the_o loss_n not_o only_o of_o the_o life_n of_o many_o thousand_o of_o man_n but_o of_o their_o soul_n also_o ferdinand_n begin_v the_o diet_n in_o the_o emperor_n name_n the_o five_o of_o february_n where_o he_o show_v at_o large_a the_o lamentable_a spectacle_n of_o germany_n in_o which_o man_n of_o the_o same_o baptism_n language_n oration_n in_o which_o ferdinand_n make_v a_o oration_n and_o empire_n be_v distract_v by_o so_o various_a a_o profession_n of_o faith_n there_o arise_v new_a sect_n every_o day_n which_o do_v show_v not_o only_o small_a reverence_n towards_o god_n and_o great_a perturbation_n of_o man_n mind_n but_o be_v cause_n also_o that_o the_o multitude_n know_v not_o what_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o principal_a nobility_n and_o other_o be_v without_o all_o faith_n and_o honesty_n make_v no_o conscience_n of_o their_o action_n which_o take_v away_o all_o commerce_n so_o that_o now_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o the_o german_n be_v better_a than_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o barbarous_a people_n for_o which_o cause_v god_n have_v afflict_v it_o with_o so_o great_a calamity_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o take_v in_o hand_n the_o business_n of_o religion_n he_o say_v a_o general_a free_a and_o pious_a council_n be_v former_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o faith_n be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v handle_v by_o all_o and_o the_o emperor_n employ_v all_o his_o force_n herein_o do_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v assemble_v more_o than_o once_o but_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o say_v why_o no_o fruit_n come_v by_o it_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a now_o if_o they_o desire_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o remedy_n again_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v the_o impediment_n which_o do_v 2._o 1555_o marcdilus_n 〈◊〉_d charles_n 5._o mary_n henry_n 2._o hinder_v they_o from_o attain_v the_o wish_a end_n but_o if_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o accident_n
learned_a man_n inhabitant_n of_o rome_n who_o himself_o do_v know_v be_v name_v and_o other_o put_v themselves_o forward_o to_o receive_v this_o honour_n the_o court_n be_v full_a of_o the_o expectation_n day_n but_o die_v be_v before_o anything_o be_v effect_v have_v sit_v but_o 22._o day_n of_o many_o novity_n which_o be_v all_o bury_v in_o silence_n because_o marcelius_n first_o weaken_v by_o the_o pain_n he_o take_v in_o the_o long_a great_a ceremony_n as_o have_v be_v say_v afterward_o take_v with_o a_o apoplexy_n die_v the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o month_n the_o other_o astrological_a prediction_n of_o his_o father_n and_o his_o owhe_n which_o be_v extend_v a_o year_n after_o that_o time_n be_v not_o verify_v the_o cardinal_n be_v assemble_v again_o in_o the_o conclave_n he_o of_o ausburg_n assist_v by_o moren_n make_v great_a instance_n that_o among_o the_o capitulation_n which_o the_o cardinal_n be_v to_o swear_v unto_o one_o shall_v be_v that_o the_o future_a pope_n shall_v by_o counsel_n of_o the_o college_n call_v a_o other_o synod_n within_o pope_n two_o cap_n 〈…〉_o lation_n one_o to_o call_v another_o s●_n council_n within_o two_o year_n another_o not_o to_o make_v above_o 4._o cardinal_n within_o two_o year_n john_n peter_n caraffa_n call_v paul_n the_o 4_o 41●_n create_v pope_n two_o year_n to_o finish_v the_o reformation_n begin_v to_o determine_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n that_o remain_v and_o to_o find_v a_o mean_n to_o cause_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o germany_n and_o the_o college_n of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v full_a it_o be_v capitulate_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o create_v more_o than_o four_o within_o two_o year_n the_o three_o and_o twenty_o day_n of_o the_o next_o month_n john_n peter_n caraffa_n who_o call_v himself_o paulus_n quartus_fw-la be_v create_v the_o imperialist_n resistng_a as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v for_o he_o be_v think_v not_o to_o be_v the_o emperor_n friend_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o old_a distaste_n which_o he_o receive_v in_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n his_o court_n where_o he_o serve_v eight_o year_n in_o the_o life_n time_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n ferdinand_n and_o because_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o archbishoprique_n of_o naples_n be_v deny_v he_o a_o few_o year_n before_o by_o the_o common_a inclination_n of_o the_o baron_n of_o that_o kingdom_n whereunto_o be_v add_v the_o severitio_fw-la of_o his_o manner_n which_o make_v afraid_a of_o who_o severity_n the_o court_n be_v afraid_a the_o court_n fad_v and_o put_v it_o in_o geat_a fear_n of_o reformation_n than_o it_o former_o have_v in_o the_o treaty_n of_o the_o council_n the_o strictness_n of_o his_o life_n concern_v his_o person_n and_o family_n he_o lay_v aside_o immediate_o after_o his_o creation_n for_o be_v demand_v by_o his_o steward_n what_o diet_n he_o will_v have_v provide_v for_o he_o he_o answer_v such_o as_o befit_v a_o prince_n and_o will_v be_v crown_v with_o great_a pomp_n than_o be_v usual_a affect_v in_o all_o his_o action_n to_o keep_v his_o degree_n with_o magnificence_n and_o to_o appear_v stately_a and_o sumptuous_a to_o his_o nephew_n and_o kinsman_n he_o be_v as_o indulgent_a as_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n he_o affect_v to_o hide_v his_o severity_n towards_o other_o by_o show_v the_o great_a humanity_n but_o within_o a_o short_a time_n he_o return_v to_o his_o own_o natural_a disposition_n he_o take_v it_o for_o a_o great_a glory_n that_o the_o three_o english_a ambassador_n coronation_n the_o english_a ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o first_o consistory_n after_o the_o coronation_n dispatch_v in_o the_o time_n of_o julius_n enter_v rome_n the_o firstday_n of_o his_o papacy_n and_o the_o first_o consistory_n after_o the_o coronation_n be_v public_a the_o ambassador_n be_v bring_v into_o it_o who_o prostrate_v themselves_o at_o the_o pope_n foot_n do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o kingdom_n acknowledge_v the_o fault_n commit_v relate_v they_o all_o in_o particular_a for_o so_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v it_o confess_v they_o have_v be_v ungrateful_a for_o so_o many_o benefit_n receive_v from_o the_o church_n and_o humble_o crave_v pardon_n for_o it_o the_o pope_n do_v pardon_v they_o take_v they_o up_o from_o the_o ground_n and_o embrace_v they_o and_o to_o honour_v their_o majesty_n who_o send_v they_o give_v the_o title_n of_o a_o kingdom_n to_o ireland_n grant_v they_o this_o dignity_n by_o the_o authority_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v from_o god_n be_v place_v over_o all_o kingdom_n to_o supplant_v those_o that_o be_v contumacious_a and_o to_o build_v new_a man_n of_o judgement_n who_o then_o know_v not_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o that_o action_n think_v it_o a_o vanity_n not_o see_v kingdom_n the_o pope_n give_v to_o ireland_n the_o title_n of_o a_o kingdom_n what_o profit_n either_o of_o authority_n or_o honour_n it_o may_v bring_v to_o a_o king_n to_o have_v many_o title_n in_o the_o country_n which_o he_o possess_v consider_v that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n be_v more_o honour_a by_o the_o only_a title_n of_o king_n of_o france_n then_o if_o his_o state_n be_v divide_v into_o as_o many_o kingly_a title_n as_o he_o have_v province_n neither_o do_v it_o then_o seem_v a_o fit_a time_n to_o say_v he_o have_v power_n from_o god_n to_o build_v up_o and_o overthrow_v kingdom_n but_o those_o that_o know_v the_o true_a cause_n do_v not_o think_v it_o vain_a but_o a_o secret_a usual_o practise_v a_o long_a time_n henry_n the_o eight_o after_o his_o separation_n from_o the_o pope_n make_v ireland_n a_o kingdom_n and_o call_v himself_o king_n of_o england_n france_n and_o ireland_n which_o title_n continue_v by_o edward_n be_v assume_v by_o marie_n and_o her_o husband_n the_o pope_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v create_v enter_v into_o a_o resolution_n that_o the_o title_n of_o ireland_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v by_o those_o prince_n affirm_v constant_o that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o he_o to_o pope_n which_o be_v take_v before_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o any_o pope_n give_v the_o name_n of_o a_o king_n but_o it_o seem_v hard_a to_o induce_v england_n to_o quit_v that_o which_o two_o king_n have_v use_v and_o the_o queen_n not_o think_v much_o of_o it_o have_v continue_v therefore_o he_o find_v a_o temper_n that_o be_v to_o dissemble_v the_o knowledge_n of_o what_o henry_n have_v do_v and_o himself_o to_o crect_v the_o island_n into_o a_o kingdom_n that_o so_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o the_o queen_n possessor_n pope_n have_v often_o give_v that_o which_o they_o can_v not_o take_v from_o the_o possessor_n have_v use_v the_o title_n as_o give_v by_o the_o pope_n not_o as_o decree_v by_o her_o father_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v often_o give_v that_o which_o they_o can_v not_o take_v from_o the_o possessor_n and_o to_o avoid_v contention_n some_o have_v receive_v their_o own_o good_n as_o gift_n and_o some_o have_v dissemble_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gift_n or_o of_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o giver_n in_o the_o private_a discourse_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o ambassador_n he_o find_v fault_n that_o the_o church_n good_n be_v not_o whole_o restore_v say_v that_o by_o no_o mean_n it_o be_v to_o be_v tolerate_v and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o render_v all_o even_o to_o afarthing_n because_o the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o god_n can_v never_o be_v apply_v to_o humane_a use_n and_o he_o that_o withhold_v the_o least_o part_n of_o they_o be_v in_o continual_a state_n of_o damnation_n that_o if_o he_o have_v power_n to_o grant_v they_o he_o will_v do_v it_o most_o ready_o england_n the_o pope_n command_v the_o restitution_n of_o church_n good_n in_o england_n for_o his_o fatherly_a affection_n which_o he_o bear_v to_o they_o and_o for_o the_o experience_n he_o have_v of_o their_o filial_a obedience_n but_o his_o authority_n be_v not_o so_o large_a as_o that_o he_o may_v profane_v the_o thing_n dedicate_v to_o god_n and_o let_v england_n be_v assure_v that_o this_o will_v be_v a_o anathema_n and_o a_o contagion_n which_o by_o the_o just_a revenge_n of_o god_n will_v always_o hold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n in_o perpetual_a infelicity_n he_o charge_v the_o ambassador_n to_o write_v thereof_o immediate_o and_o be_v not_o content_a to_o speak_v of_o it_o once_o but_o repeat_v it_o as_o often_o as_o there_o be_v occasion_n he_o say_v also_o plain_o that_o the_o peterperce_v aught_o to_o be_v pay_v as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o penny_n and_o the_o payment_n of_o peter_n penny_n custom_n he_o will_v send_v a_o collector_n for_o that_o purpose_n that_o himself_o have_v exercise_v that_o charge_n three_o year_n have_v be_v send_v into_o england_n for_o that_o end_n wherein_o he_o be_v much_o edify_v
what_o he_o can_v and_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o reduce_v germany_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o token_n of_o god_n anger_n and_o that_o he_o must_v expect_v great_a punishment_n if_o he_o take_v not_o warn_v by_o it_o but_o carry_v himself_o as_o a_o soldier_n of_o christ_n undauntedly_n and_o without_o worldly_a respect_n he_o shall_v obtain_v all_o manner_n of_o victory_n as_o the_o example_n of_o the_o time_n past_a do_v demonstrate_v the_o fame_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v move_v to_o say_v so_o not_o only_o by_o his_o own_o inclination_n but_o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ausburg_n who_o be_v displease_v with_o the_o liberty_n grant_v to_o the_o confessionist_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o paul_n be_v of_o a_o high_a spirit_n and_o vast_a thought_n do_v assure_v himself_o that_o he_o can_v redress_v all_o the_o disorder_n by_o his_o papal_a authority_n only_o nor_o have_v need_n of_o any_o prince_n herein_o therefore_o he_o never_o speak_v with_o ambassador_n but_o proud_a paul_n have_v vast_a thought_n and_o be_v exceed_o proud_a he_o thunder_v in_o their_o ear_n that_o he_o be_v above_o all_o prince_n that_o he_o will_v not_o that_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v too_o domestical_a with_o he_o that_o he_o can_v change_v kingdom_n that_o he_o be_v successor_n of_o he_o who_o have_v depose_v king_n and_o emperor_n and_o do_v often_o repeat_v for_o a_o beginning_n of_o authority_n exercise_v by_o he_o that_o he_o have_v make_v ireland_n a_o kingdom_n and_o go_v on_o so_o far_o that_o in_o consistory_n and_o at_o his_o table_n public_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o many_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o have_v any_o prince_n for_o his_o companion_n but_o all_o subject_n under_o his_o foot_n so_o he_o say_v strike_v it_o against_o the_o ground_n as_o it_o be_v fit_a and_o as_o it_o be_v his_o will_n who_o have_v build_v the_o church_n and_o have_v place_v they_o in_o this_o degree_n and_o sometime_o he_o will_v say_v that_o rather_o than_o we_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n base_o we_o will_v die_v overthrow_v all_o and_o set_v the_o whole_a world_n on_o fire_n paul_n the_o four_o be_v natural_o of_o a_o lofty_a mind_n and_o courage_n and_o trust_v much_o in_o his_o knowledge_n and_o good_a fortune_n which_o do_v accompany_v he_o in_o all_o his_o action_n whereunto_o the_o power_n and_o fortune_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v add_v he_o think_v every_o thing_n be_v easy_a but_o two_o humour_n do_v flore_fw-la in_o he_o by_o turn_n one_o which_o by_o custom_n to_o make_v use_n of_o religion_n in_o all_o his_o attempt_n do_v induce_v he_o to_o employ_v his_o spiritual_a authority_n the_o other_o be_v put_v into_o he_o by_o charles_n caraffa_n his_o nephew_n who_o be_v valiant_a and_o exercise_v in_o war_n make_v cardinal_n of_o a_o soldier_n do_v retain_v his_o marrial_a spirit_n and_o persuade_v he_o to_o use_v his_o temporal_a power_n say_v that_o the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o be_v despise_v but_o be_v join_v be_v instrument_n of_o great_a matter_n the_o circumspect_a old_a man_n know_v well_o that_o the_o spiritual_a be_v make_v weak_a when_o it_o be_v manifest_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o the_o temporal_a but_o be_v ever_o intent_n to_o make_v his_o name_n great_a sometime_o he_o give_v ear_n to_o his_o nephew_n and_o sometime_o he_o believe_v himself_o more_o in_o the_o one_o louse_n conclude_v to_o use_v the_o temporal_a secret_o and_o the_o spiritual_a open_o that_o proceed_v with_o this_o he_o may_v add_v or_o omit_v the_o other_o as_o he_o shall_v lice_n advise_v by_o the_o event_n therefore_o he_o treat_v most_o secret_o by_o his_o nephew_n king_n he_o trea●ced_v a_o league_n with_o the_o french_a king_n with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n a_o league_n with_o the_o french_a king_n 〈…〉_o ing_z almost_o make_v lorraine_n part_v from_o rome_n to_o take_v away_o ●u●ption_n and_o the_o cardinal_n torrnon_n go_v thither_o with_o who_o it_o be_v conclude_v with_o the_o same_o secrecy_n the_o principal_a captiulation_n whereof_o be_v the_o gain_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n for_o a_o young_a son_n of_o the_o king_n with_o great_a enlargement_n of_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n who_o confine_n be_v to_o be_v s._n germano_n gerigliano_n and_o on_o the_o further_a side_n of_o the_o apennine_a the_o river_n pescara_n beyong_a beneventum_n and_o some_o thing_n beside_o be_v yield_v unto_o for_o the_o pope_n benefit_n the_o pope_n also_o that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o prop_n to_o lean_v on_o in_o both_o course_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o promotion_n of_o cardinal_n dependent_n on_o himself_o man_n of_o courage_n who_o will_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o prosecute_v hisdisseigne_n and_o employ_v themselves_o in_o any_o hard_a enterprise_n he_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o this_o promotion_n but_o a_o few_o day_n before_o he_o make_v it_o which_o grieve_v oath_n and_o creat_v cardinal_n contrary_a to_o his_o oath_n the_o cardinal_n for_o that_o he_o will_v contradict_v the_o capitulation_n which_o he_o have_v swear_v and_o the_o imperialist_n above_o all_o consider_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v promote_v purpose_v to_o oppose_v the_o twenty_o of_o december_n the_o pope_n be_v enter_v into_o the_o consistory_n say_v so_o soon_o as_o he_o sit_v down_o that_o he_o will_v not_o give_v audience_n to_o any_o that_o day_n because_o he_o have_v great_a matter_n to_o propose_v every_o one_o understanding_n by_o this_o that_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o create_v new_a cardinal_n the_o cardinal_n of_o saint_n james_n go_v to_o his_o seat_n to_o speak_v with_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n refuse_v and_o the_o cardinal_n not_o desist_v he_o set_v his_o hand_n on_o his_o breast_n and_o thrust_v he_o from_o he_o all_o be_v set_v the_o pope_n begin_v to_o complain_v of_o those_o who_o report_v he_o can_v make_v but_o four_o cardinal_n in_o regard_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v swear_v in_o the_o conclave_n and_o say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o bind_v the_o pope_n authority_n which_o be_v absolute_a that_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v bind_v and_o much_o less_o can_v bind_v himself_o that_o to_o say_v otherwise_o be_v a_o manifest_a heresy_n from_o the_o guilt_n whereof_o he_o do_v absolve_v those_o that_o be_v faulty_a because_o he_o think_v they_o do_v not_o speak_v obstinate_o but_o hereafter_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v the_o same_o or_o the_o like_a against_o the_o authority_n give_v he_o by_o god_n he_o will_v give_v order_n that_o the_o inquisition_n shall_v proceed_v he_o add_v that_o he_o will_v make_v cardinal_n and_o will_v not_o have_v any_o contradiction_n because_o he_o want_v person_n for_o employment_n which_o he_o can_v not_o put_v upon_o they_o because_o every_o one_o have_v his_o proper_a faction_n that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o promote_v man_n of_o learning_n and_o of_o exemplary_a life_n to_o employ_v they_o for_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o in_o the_o council_n whereof_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o treat_v serious_o which_o he_o will_v propose_v with_o the_o first_o occasion_n but_o now_o he_o will_v name_v unto_o they_o the_o person_n to_o be_v promote_v to_o the_o cardinalitie_n a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v defer_v any_o long_a that_o they_o have_v a_o consultive_a voice_n may_v put_v to_o his_o consideration_n what_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o believe_v they_o have_v a_o decisive_a voice_n because_o that_o belong_v only_o to_o he_o he_o propose_v seven_o person_n in_o which_o number_n only_o one_o be_v his_o kinsman_n and_o another_o of_o the_o theatine_a congregration_n the_o other_o be_v man_n of_o much_o fame_n either_o for_o learning_n or_o for_o the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o court_n among_o these_o be_v johannes_n groperus_n of_o collen_n of_o who_o often_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v who_o know_v he_o will_v not_o live_v long_o think_v to_o honour_v his_o memory_n much_o more_o by_o refuse_v a_o dignity_n desire_v even_o by_o great_a prince_n then_o by_o keep_v it_o a_o few_o day_n which_o will_v give_v matter_n of_o discourse_n to_o those_o that_o be_v emulous_a of_o he_o he_o send_v the_o pope_n many_o thanks_n together_o with_o his_o excuse_n and_o refuse_v the_o ornament_n will_v neither_o have_v the_o name_n nor_o the_o title_n the_o cardinal_n be_v create_v the_o next_o sunday_n before_o the_o league_n be_v conclude_v with_o france_n which_o be_v the_o 15._o of_o that_o month_n at_o this_o time_n cardinal_n poole_n who_o for_o many_o respect_n of_o succession_n and_o canterbury_n card_n poole_n ordain_v priest_n and_o make_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n
for_o the_o loss_n of_o reputation_n and_o for_o the_o danger_n which_o it_o bring_v if_o those_o two_o prince_n be_v join_v at_o 〈…〉_o cretion_n he_o must_v needs_o stand_v to_o the_o cardinal_n impatient_a of_o 〈◊〉_d it_o seem_v that_o five_o year_n in_o the_o decrepit_a age_n of_o his_o uncle_n do_v quite_o take_v from_o he_o all_o occasion_n to_o chase_v the_o spaniard_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n who_o he_o so_o much_o hate_v yet_o the_o pope_n not_o lose_v courage_n make_v show_v of_o joy_n for_o the_o truce_n but_o say_v he_o be_v not_o full_o satisfy_v with_o it_o because_o a_o peace_n be_v necessary_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o council_n which_o he_o purpose_v to_o celebrate_v which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o treat_v and_o for_o that_o end_n to_o send_v legate_n to_o those_o prince_n be_v assure_v to_o conclude_v it_o because_o he_o will_v employ_v his_o authority_n for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v hinder_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n to_o the_o emperor_n he_o send_v war_n notwithstanding_o he_o dissemble_v his_o passion_n and_o send_v legate_n to_o they_o both_o to_o treat_v a_o peace_n but_o intend_v nothing_o but_o war_n scipio_n rebiba_n cardinal_n of_o pisa_n and_o to_o the_o french_a king_n cardinal_n caraffa_n his_o nephew_n this_o go_v with_o all_o speed_n and_o to_o the_o other_o order_n be_v give_v to_o go_v slow_o rebiba_n have_v instruction_n to_o exhort_v the_o emperor_n to_o amend_v germany_n which_o be_v not_o do_z until_o then_o because_o none_o have_v proceed_v a_o right_o in_o that_o enterprise_n he_o know_v the_o detect_v of_o his_o predecessor_n who_o to_o stop_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n do_v hinder_v the_o good_a progress_n of_o the_o council_n but_o contrary_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o promote_v the_o reformation_n and_o to_o celebrate_v a_o council_n in_o his_o own_o presence_n and_o to_o begin_v with_o this_o point_n assure_v himself_o that_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o abuse_n take_v away_o for_o which_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n and_o remain_v contumacious_a still_o they_o will_v desire_v and_o run_v to_o receive_v the_o decree_n and_o constitution_n which_o the_o council_n will_v make_v where_o shall_v be_v reform_v not_o verbal_o but_o real_o the_o head_n member_n clergy_n laity_n prince_n and_o people_n to_o do_v so_o good_a a_o work_n a_o truce_n of_o five_o year_n be_v not_o sufficient_a because_o there_o be_v no_o less_o suspicion_n in_o truce_n then_o in_o war_n and_o one_o must_v ever_o be_v ready_a to_o provide_v against_o the_o time_n when_o they_o end_v that_o a_o perpetual_a peace_n be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v all_o malice_n and_o suspicion_n that_o all_o may_v bend_v themselves_o joint_o without_o worldly_a respect_n to_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o union_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n he_o give_v the_o like_a instruction_n to_o caraffa_n and_o be_v content_a it_o shall_v be_v publish_v by_o give_v out_o some_o copy_n of_o it_o the_o court_n do_v general_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n speak_v so_o often_o and_o so_o earnest_o of_o the_o council_n that_o no_o man_n else_o may_v propose_v it_o unto_o he_o and_o do_v threaten_v the_o prince_n and_o all_o the_o world_n with_o it_o to_o make_v they_o abhor_v it_o but_o afterward_o it_o be_v know_v that_o he_o deseign_v to_o free_v himself_o by_o another_o way_n from_o the_o trouble_n give_v to_o his_o predecessor_n for_o when_o the_o reformation_n only_o of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o court_n of_o the_o exempt_v and_o privilege_v person_n dependent_n of_o the_o popedom_n be_v propose_v every_o prince_n people_n and_o private_a man_n in_o regard_n nothing_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v that_o concern_v they_o be_v forward_o to_o solicit_v the_o council_n but_o he_o propose_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n laity_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o prince_n with_o a_o most_o severe_a inquisition_n which_o he_o deseign_v to_o institute_v he_o make_v they_o all_o equal_a so_o that_o himself_o be_v not_o in_o question_n only_o but_o other_o likewise_o and_o this_o be_v a_o secret_a by_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o hold_v all_o man_n in_o fear_n and_o himself_o in_o reputation_n of_o integrity_n and_o worth_a and_o concern_v the_o council_n he_o mean_v to_o govern_v himself_o according_a to_o the_o coniuncture_n yet_o ever_o hold_v this_o point_n constant_o to_o celebrate_v it_o in_o rome_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o legate_n he_o give_v his_o nephew_n a_o large_a instruction_n to_o try_v the_o king_n mind_n and_o if_o he_o see_v he_o resolute_a to_o observe_v the_o truce_n to_o thunder_v into_o his_o ear_n the_o same_o lesson_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o rebiba_n he_o give_v order_n to_o govern_v himself_o as_o he_o shall_v receive_v advice_n from_o his_o nephew_n caraffa_n carry_v to_o the_o king_n the_o sword_n and_o hat_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v bless_v on_o christmas_n day_n at_o night_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o peace_n he_o make_v no_o mention_n but_o represent_v to_o the_o king_n that_o howsoever_o the_o league_n be_v not_o violate_v by_o the_o truce_n of_o five_o year_n yet_o it_o be_v make_v of_o no_o force_n to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o his_o uncle_n and_o of_o his_o family_n and_o that_o they_o have_v already_o some_o taste_n thereof_o by_o that_o which_o the_o spaniard_n have_v do_v he_o recommend_v to_o he_o in_o most_o effectual_a term_n religion_n and_o the_o papacy_n to_o which_o his_o predecessor_n give_v singular_a protection_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o his_o family_n much_o devote_a to_o his_o majesty_n the_o king_n be_v not_o averse_a but_o remain_v doubtful_a consider_v the_o pope_n age_n who_o may_v die_v when_o he_o shall_v have_v most_o need_n of_o he_o caraffa_n perceive_v this_o and_o find_v a_o remedy_n instance_n the_o french_a king_n break_v the_o truce_n at_o the_o pope_n instance_n promise_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v create_v so_o many_o cardinal_n partial_a for_o france_n and_o enemy_n to_o spain_n that_o he_o shall_v ever_o have_v a_o pope_n on_o his_o side_n the_o cardinal_n persuasion_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o promotion_n and_o the_o absolution_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o truce_n which_o he_o give_v in_o the_o pope_n name_n together_o with_o the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o his_o brother_n make_v the_o king_n resolve_v to_o move_v war_n though_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o all_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n abhor_v the_o infamy_n of_o break_v the_o truce_n and_o receive_v absolution_n from_o the_o oath_n the_o conclusion_n be_v make_v caraffa_n recall_v the_o legate_n send_v to_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v arrive_v at_o mastric_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o come_v into_o france_n though_o he_o be_v but_o two_o day_n journey_n distant_a from_o caesar_n which_o make_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n his_o son_n believe_v that_o in_o france_n some_o thing_n be_v conclude_v against_o they_o the_o pope_n distaste_v against_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o son_n do_v daily_o increase_v colonnesi_n the_o pope_n proceed_v severe_o against_o the_o colonnesi_n he_o make_v a_o most_o severe_a process_n against_o ascanius_n colonna_n and_o marcus_n antonius_n his_o son_n for_o many_o offence_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v do_v against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n so_o long_o since_o as_o when_o clement_n be_v besiege_v and_o afterward_o against_o paul_n the_o three_o and_o julius_n and_o by_o marcus_n antonius_n against_o himself_o and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o relate_v in_o consistory_n all_o the_o injury_n do_v of_o old_a by_o the_o colonnesi_n against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n do_v excommunicate_a ascanius_n and_o marcus_n antonius_n deprive_v they_o of_o all_o dignity_n and_o fee_n with_o censure_n against_o those_o that_o give_v they_o assistance_n or_o favour_n and_o do_v confiscate_v all_o their_o possession_n within_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o give_v they_o to_o the_o count_n montorius_n his_o nephew_n with_o the_o title_n of_o duke_n of_o pagliano_fw-it marcus_n antonius_n retire_v into_o the_o kingdom_n be_v receive_v and_o sometime_o land_n who_o retire_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n and_o make_v excursion_n upon_o their_o land_n make_v excursion_n upon_o his_o own_o land_n with_o some_o few_o soldier_n which_o much_o provoke_v the_o pope_n who_o think_v his_o nod_n be_v commandment_n unto_o all_o able_a to_o terrify_v every_o one_o he_o can_v not_o endure_v to_o be_v so_o little_o esteem_v at_o naples_n his_o country_n where_o he_o will_v have_v be_v think_v to_o be_v omnipotent_a he_o think_v in_o the_o beginning_n by_o talk_v lavish_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o king_n to_o make_v they_o desist_v from_o
aforesaid_a the_o pope_n perceive_v that_o by_o the_o war_n past_a he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o credit_n family_n 1558._o the_o pope_n proceed_v severe_o against_o his_o own_o family_n with_o which_o he_o think_v to_o daunt_v the_o whole_a world_n think_v to_o regain_v it_o by_o a_o heroical_a action_n and_o do_v the_o six_o and_o twenty_o of_o january_n in_o consistory_n deprive_v cardinal_n caraffa_n of_o the_o legation_n of_o bolonia_n and_o of_o all_o government_n and_o confine_v he_o to_o civita_n lavinia_n and_o take_v from_o john_n caraffa_n the_o cardinal_n brother_n the_o command_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o army_n exile_v he_o likewise_o to_o galessi_n he_o deprive_v the_o other_o nephew_n of_o the_o government_n of_o borgo_n and_o banish_v he_o to_o monte-bello_a command_v that_o their_o wife_n family_n and_o child_n shall_v depart_v from_o rome_n and_o themselves_o not_o depart_v from_o the_o place_n to_o which_o they_o be_v banish_v upon_o pain_n of_o rebellion_n he_o deprive_v likewise_o all_o those_o of_o their_o office_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v they_o in_o contemplation_n of_o these_o he_o spend_v more_o than_o six_o hour_n in_o complain_v and_o enueigh_v against_o their_o offence_n with_o such_o fury_n that_o he_o disdain_v at_o the_o cardinal_n who_o speak_v any_o good_a word_n to_o pacific_a he_o to_o cardinal_n s_o angelo_n who_o first_o commend_v justice_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o say_n of_o paul_n the_o 3._o which_o he_o often_o use_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v never_o take_v hope_n of_o favour_n from_o any_o he_o answer_v that_o his_o grand_a father_n paul_n the_o 3._o shall_v have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v proceed_v against_o his_o father_n and_o punish_v his_o villainy_n he_o institute_v rome_n institute_v a_o new_a government_n in_o rome_n a_o new_a government_n in_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n give_v the_o charge_n of_o all_o business_n to_o camillus_n orsinus_n unto_o who_o he_o join_v the_o cardinal_n of_o trani_n and_o spoleto_n affect_v a_o fame_n of_o justice_n in_o these_o action_n and_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o all_o the_o grievance_n which_o the_o people_n suffer_v upon_o the_o nephew_n be_v thus_o disburden_v of_o the_o government_n he_o apply_v himself_o whole_o to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n say_v it_o be_v the_o true_a ram_n to_o beat_v down_o heresy_n and_o defend_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o not_o regard_v what_o do_v befit_v the_o time_n he_o publish_v a_o new_a constitution_n date_v the_o fifteen_o of_o february_n which_o he_o make_v all_o the_o cardinal_n subscribe_v in_o this_o he_o constitution_n and_o appli_v himself_o whole_o to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n make_v a_o new_a constitution_n renew_v every_o censure_n and_o punishment_n pronounce_v by_o his_o predecessor_n and_o every_o statute_n of_o canon_n counsel_n and_o father_n in_o what_o time_n soever_o publish_v against_o heretic_n ordain_v that_o those_o that_o be_v disuse_v shall_v be_v bring_v in_o use_n again_o he_o declare_v that_o all_o prelate_n and_o prince_n even_o king_n and_o emperor_n fall_v into_o heresy_n shall_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o their_o benefice_n state_n kingdom_n and_o empire_n without_o further_a declaration_n and_o uncapable_a to_o be_v restore_v to_o they_o even_o by_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o their_o good_n state_n kingdom_n and_o empire_n shall_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v common_a and_o to_o belong_v to_o those_o catholic_n who_o can_v get_v they_o this_o do_v minister_v much_o talk_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o present_o be_v world_n which_o be_v disesteem_v by_o the_o world_n disesteem_v by_o the_o world_n it_o will_v have_v kindle_v a_o fire_n in_o all_o christendom_n another_o accident_n make_v the_o world_n know_v that_o he_o have_v not_o moderate_v the_o haughtiness_n of_o his_o mind_n the_o emperor_n charles_n in_o the_o year_n 1556._o by_o his_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o elector_n and_o prince_n do_v absolute_o give_v to_o ferdinand_n all_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o empire_n without_o reserve_v any_o thing_n to_o himself_o command_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v obey_v by_o all_o afterward_o he_o send_v william_n prince_n of_o orange_n with_o two_o colleague_n to_o the_o diet_n in_o germany_n to_o transfer_v the_o name_n title_n crown_n and_o dignity_n upon_o ferdinand_n as_o if_o himself_o have_v be_v dead_a which_o not_o seem_v fit_a to_o the_o elector_n be_v defer_v until_o the_o year_n 1558._o in_o which_o the_o four_o of_o february_n the_o day_n of_o the_o nativity_n coronation_n and_o other_o felicity_n of_o charles_n the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o resignation_n be_v make_v by_o his_o ambassador_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o elector_n ferdinand_n be_v install_v with_o the_o usual_a rite_n the_o pope_n hear_v this_o fall_v into_o a_o excessive_a rage_n empire_n ferdinand_n be_v install_v in_o the_o empire_n he_o pretend_v that_o as_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n do_v make_v the_o emperor_n so_o the_o resignation_n can_v be_v put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o any_o but_o himself_o in_o which_o case_n it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o make_v what_o emperor_n he_o please_v allege_v that_o the_o elector_n have_v power_n grant_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n favour_n to_o elect_v the_o emperor_n in_o place_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a but_o not_o in_o case_n of_o resignation_n in_o which_o it_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n as_o also_o to_o the_o disposition_n he_o the_o pope_n refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o thereof_o be_v annex_v all_o dignity_n resign_v unto_o it_o therefore_o the_o resignation_n of_o charles_n be_v void_a and_o the_o whole_a authority_n to_o choose_v a_o emperor_n be_v devolue_v to_o he_o and_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o emperor_n ferdinand_n though_o he_o know_v this_o send_v martin_n gusman_n his_o ambassador_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o brother_n resignation_n and_o his_o own_o assumption_n to_o testify_v unto_o he_o the_o reverence_n he_o bear_v he_o to_o promise_v he_o obedience_n and_o to_o signify_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o will_v send_v a_o solemn_a ambassage_n to_o treat_v of_o his_o coronation_n the_o pope_n refuse_v to_o hear_v he_o and_o refer_v the_o discussion_n ambassador_n and_o to_o hear_v his_o ambassador_n of_o the_o matter_n to_o the_o cardinal_n who_o relate_v for_o the_o pope_n will_n be_v they_o shall_v do_v so_o that_o the_o ambassador_n can_v not_o be_v admit_v before_o it_o do_v appear_v whether_o the_o resignation_n of_o charles_n be_v lawful_a and_o the_o succession_n of_o ferdinand_n just_a for_o he_o be_v elect_a king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o election_n confirm_v by_o clement_n to_o succeed_v after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o emperor_n it_o be_v necessary_a the_o empire_n shall_v be_v void_a by_o death_n beside_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o all_o the_o act_n of_o francfort_n as_o make_v by_o heretic_n who_o have_v lose_v all_o authority_n and_o power_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o ferdinand_n shall_v send_v a_o proctor_n and_o renounce_v whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o that_o diet_n and_o beseech_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v gracious_o be_v please_v to_o make_v good_a the_o resignation_n of_o charles_n and_o his_o assumption_n to_o the_o empire_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o plenary_a power_n from_o who_o he_o may_v expect_v all_o paternal_a grace_n and_o favour_n the_o pope_n resolve_v according_a to_o this_o counsel_n and_o so_o declare_v himself_o to_o gusman_n give_v he_o three_o month_n to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n beyond_o which_o time_n he_o will_v hear_v no_o more_o speech_n of_o it_o but_o himself_o will_v create_v a_o new_a emperor_n neither_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o remove_v he_o though_o king_n philip_n to_o favour_v his_o uncle_n send_v francis_n vargas_n express_o and_o after_o he_o john_n figaroa_n to_o entreat_v he_o ferdinand_n understand_v this_o give_v order_n to_o gusman_n that_o if_o within_o three_o day_n after_o the_o receipt_n thereof_o he_o be_v not_o admit_v by_o the_o pope_n he_o shall_v depart_v and_o protest_v unto_o he_o that_o ferdinand_n together_o with_o the_o elector_n will_v resolve_v of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o empire_n gusman_n desire_v audience_n again_o which_o the_o pope_n grant_v in_o private_a not_o as_o unto_o a_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o hear_v he_o relate_v what_o he_o have_v in_o his_o instruction_n and_o that_o which_o be_v write_v unto_o he_o from_o the_o emperor_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o thing_n consider_v by_o the_o cardinal_n be_v very_o important_a and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o resolve_v on_o they_o so_o soon_o that_o he_o will_v send_v a_o nuncio_n to_o the_o imperial_a majesty_n of_o charles_n
it_o in_o a_o mercurial_a so_o they_o call_v the_o judicature_n institute_v to_o examine_v and_o correct_v the_o action_n of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o king_n hold_v in_o paris_n the_o 15._o of_o june_n where_o they_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o religion_n after_o the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v enter_v in_o person_n he_o say_v he_o have_v establish_v peace_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o sister_n and_o daughter_n that_o he_o may_v provide_v against_o the_o inconvenience_n breed_v in_o his_o kingdom_n about_o religion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o principal_a care_n of_o prince_n therefore_o understanding_n they_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o this_o subject_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o handle_v god_n cause_n with_o sincerity_n and_o have_v command_v they_o to_o prosecute_v the_o thing_n begin_v claude_n viol_n one_o of_o they_o speak_v much_o against_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bad_a custom_n grow_v to_o be_v pernicious_a error_n which_o have_v cause_v the_o new_a sect_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o mitigate_v the_o severe_a punishment_n until_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n be_v remoove_v and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n amend_v by_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n the_o only_a remedy_n for_o these_o evil_n as_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n have_v judge_v command_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v every_o ten_o year_n his_o opinion_n be_v follow_v by_o ludovicus_n faber_n and_o some_o other_o anne_n du_fw-fr bourg_n do_v add_v that_o many_o villainy_n be_v comit_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n for_o punishment_n whereof_o the_o rope_n and_o fire_n be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o frequent_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n perjury_n adultery_n not_o only_o secret_a but_o even_o cherish_v with_o impudent_a licence_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v plain_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n but_o of_o the_o king_n himself_o also_o add_v that_o while_o man_n live_v thus_o dissolute_o diverse_a torment_n be_v prepare_v against_o those_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n the_o vice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o desire_v a_o amendment_n of_o they_o in_o opposition_n of_o all_o this_o egidius_n magister_n the_o prime_a precedent_n speak_v against_o the_o new_a sect_n conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o that_o which_o be_v former_o use_v against_o the_o albigense_n of_o who_o philippus_n augustus_n put_v to_o death_n six_o hundred_o in_o one_o day_n and_o against_o the_o waldense_n who_o be_v choke_v in_o the_o cave_n whither_o they_o retire_v to_o hide_v themselves_o when_o all_o the_o voice_n be_v give_v the_o king_n say_v he_o have_v now_o hear_v with_o his_o own_o ear_n that_o which_o before_o be_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v hence_o arise_v imprison_v 1559_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z philip_z 2._o elizabeth_n henry_n 2._o and_o command_v some_o of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v imprison_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o parliament_n who_o do_v despise_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o he_o that_o he_o well_o know_v they_o be_v but_o few_o but_o the_o cause_n of_o many_o evil_n therefore_o he_o exhort_v those_o who_o be_v good_a subject_n to_o continue_v in_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o immediate_o give_v order_n that_o faber_n and_o du_fw-fr bourg_n shall_v be_v imprison_v and_o afterward_o cause_v four_o more_o to_o be_v apprehend_v in_o their_o house_n which_o do_v much_o daunt_v those_o who_o embrace_v the_o new_a religion_n for_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n be_v repute_v most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a who_o notwithstanding_o be_v put_v into_o prison_n for_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n in_o public_a assembly_n they_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n will_v pardon_v none_o but_o example_n of_o great_a fear_n be_v always_o join_v with_o other_o of_o equal_a boldness_n paris_n 15●9_n the_o reformatist_n hold_v a_o synod_n in_o paris_n for_o at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o danger_n at_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o reform_a for_o so_o the_o protestant_n be_v call_v in_o france_n assemble_v in_o paris_n in_o the_o suburb_n of_o saint_n german_n make_v a_o synod_n in_o which_o franciscus_n morellus_n the_o chief_a man_n among_o they_o be_v precedent_n ordain_v diverse_a constitution_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o hold_v counsel_n of_o remove_v the_o domination_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o election_n and_o office_n of_o minister_n of_o censure_n of_o marriage_n of_o divorce_n of_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n that_o throughout_o all_o france_n they_o may_v not_o only_o have_v a_o uniform_a faith_n but_o discipline_n also_o and_o their_o courage_n do_v increase_v because_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o severity_n use_v in_o france_n come_v into_o germany_n the_o three_o elector_n and_o germany_n and_o be_v encourage_v by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n other_o protestant_a prince_n send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o king_n pray_v he_o to_o proceed_v with_o piety_n and_o christian_a charity_n against_o the_o professor_n of_o their_o religion_n guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o accuse_v the_o corrupt_a manner_n and_o the_o discipline_n pervert_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v be_v do_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o year_n since_o by_o other_o godly_a doctor_n of_o france_n for_o that_o kingdom_n be_v now_o in_o quiet_a the_o difference_n of_o religion_n may_v easy_o be_v compose_v by_o the_o disputation_n of_o able_a man_n desirous_a of_o peace_n who_o may_v examine_v their_o confession_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n suspend_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o severity_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o they_o will_v receive_v as_o a_o thing_n most_o grateful_a and_o remain_v much_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o it_o the_o king_n give_v a_o courteous_a answer_n in_o general_a word_n promise_v good_a which_o do_v they_o no_o good_a to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n and_o to_o send_v one_o express_o to_o signify_v so_o much_o unto_o they_o yet_o he_o remit_v nothing_o of_o the_o severity_n but_o after_o the_o ambassador_n be_v part_v he_o depute_v four_o judge_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o prisoner_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n and_o the_o inquisitor_n antony_n de_fw-fr mocares_fw-la command_v they_o to_o proceed_v with_o all_o expedition_n the_o pope_n unto_o who_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v know_v as_o he_o be_v much_o discontent_v with_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o state_n of_o both_o the_o king_n so_o he_o be_v please_v that_o those_o prince_n do_v think_v of_o it_o and_o move_v they_o by_o his_o nuncij_fw-la and_o by_o their_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o to_o do_v so_o still_o but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v any_o other_o mean_v then_o that_o of_o the_o inquisition_n which_o he_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n as_o he_o say_v upon_o all_o occasion_n judge_v that_o the_o council_n will_v do_v as_o former_o it_o have_v do_v that_o be_v reduce_v all_o into_o a_o worse_a state_n while_o he_o be_v possess_v with_o these_o cogitation_n and_o weak_a of_o body_n the_o king_n of_o france_n die_v the_o second_o of_o july_n by_o a_o wound_n in_o the_o eye_n run_v at_o tilt_n for_o which_o he_o seem_v very_o sorrowful_a and_o be_v so_o indeed_o for_o although_o he_o suspect_v and_o with_o reason_n the_o intelligence_n between_o the_o july_n 1559._o paul_n 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_z francis_n 2._o henry_n the_o second_o die_v the_o second_o of_o july_n two_o king_n yet_o he_o have_v still_o hope_n to_o separate_v they_o but_o the_o one_o be_v dead_a he_o see_v he_o be_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o other_o alone_o who_o he_o more_o fear_v because_o he_o be_v more_o offend_v by_o he_o and_o be_v of_o a_o more_o close_a nature_n hard_o to_o be_v sound_v he_o fear_v also_o that_o in_o france_n a_o gate_n will_v be_v set_v wide_o open_a to_o let_v in_o sect_n which_o may_v be_v confirm_v before_o the_o new_a king_n can_v get_v so_o much_o wisdom_n and_o reputation_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o oppose_v so_o great_a difficulty_n he_o live_v some_o few_o day_n afflict_v with_o these_o cogitation_n but_o now_o lay_v aside_o all_o hope_n which_o have_v until_o then_o keep_v he_o alive_a he_o die_v the_o eighteen_o inquisition_n the_o pope_n jy_v the_o 18._o of_o august_n recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n nothing_o but_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n of_o august_n recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n nothing_o but_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n the_o only_a mean_n as_o he_o say_v to_o
who_o opinion_n he_o follow_v because_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v he_o charge_n to_o consult_v with_o those_o two_o cardinal_n in_o all_o matter_n after_o the_o ceremony_n be_v end_v in_o the_o consistery_n with_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o ambassador_n begin_v to_o pray_v he_o in_o the_o first_o private_a audience_n in_o caesar_n name_n to_o call_v the_o council_n to_o compose_v the_o dissension_n of_o germany_n be_v prevent_v by_o he_o with_o the_o ambassador_n great_a contentment_n who_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n about_o a_o council_n and_o be_v well_o please_v that_o his_o holiness_n begin_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n unpleasing_a business_n be_v prepare_v to_o deliver_v in_o sugared_a term_n that_o it_o may_v be_v hear_v more_o willing_o the_o pope_n tell_v he_o that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v in_o the_o conclave_n consult_v how_o they_o may_v set_v the_o council_n on_o foot_n again_o in_o which_o consultation_n himself_o be_v a_o very_a principal_a party_n and_o now_o be_v pope_n be_v more_o confirm_v in_o the_o same_o determination_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o proceed_v blind_o but_o so_o as_o that_o he_o may_v avoid_v the_o difficulty_n which_o happen_v before_o and_o will_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o necessary_a preparatory_n that_o the_o desire_a fruit_n may_v succeed_v he_o say_v the_o like_a to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n and_o write_v to_o his_o nuncij_fw-la to_o impart_v it_o to_o their_o king_n he_o speak_v of_o it_o also_o with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o portugal_n and_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o italy_n which_o be_v in_o rome_n colloquy_n the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n demand_v the_o pope_n have_v to_o hold_v a_o colloquy_n after_o this_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n send_v one_o express_o to_o desire_v the_o pope_n that_o by_o his_o favour_n he_o may_v make_v a_o colloquie_n of_o religion_n to_o instruct_v his_o people_n of_o the_o valley_n who_o be_v general_o alienate_v from_o the_o old_a religion_n these_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o waldense_n who_o 400_o year_n since_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o persecution_n flee_v into_o polonia_n germany_n puglia_n provence_n and_o some_o of_o they_o into_o the_o valley_n of_o mountsenis_n luserna_n angronia_n perosa_fw-la and_o s._n martin_n these_o have_v always_o continue_v in_o their_o separation_n with_o certain_a minister_n of_o their_o own_o who_o they_o call_v pastor_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v plant_v in_o geneva_n do_v present_o unite_v themselves_o with_o those_o as_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n &_o principal_a rite_n and_o when_o piedmont_n be_v under_o the_o frenchman_n though_o they_o be_v forbid_v upon_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o exercise_v their_o religion_n yet_o by_o little_a and_o little_a they_o make_v it_o public_a so_o that_o when_o country_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v almost_o free_a the_o duke_n resolve_v to_o make_v they_o receive_v the_o catholic_a religion_n so_o that_o many_o be_v burn_v and_o put_v to_o death_n by_o other_o mean_n and_o more_o condemn_v to_o the_o galley_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o inquifitor_n thomaso_n jacomello_n a_o dominican_n friar_n this_o make_v they_o consult_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o defend_v themselves_o with_o arm_n wherein_o their_o minister_n do_v not_o agree_v some_o say_v they_o may_v not_o oppose_v their_o prince_n though_o it_o be_v to_o defend_v their_o own_o life_n but_o may_v carry_v away_o their_o good_n and_o reure_fw-fr into_o the_o mountain_n other_o say_v they_o may_v use_v force_n in_o so_o desperate_a a_o case_n as_o this_o especial_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o against_o the_o prince_n as_o against_o the_o pope_n who_o abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o prince_n many_o of_o they_o do_v follow_v the_o first_o opinion_n and_o the_o other_o stand_v upon_o their_o guard_n so_o that_o the_o duke_n perceive_v they_o have_v not_o rebellious_a thought_n and_o that_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v gain_v by_o instruction_n receive_v the_o counsel_n which_o be_v give_v he_o to_o institute_v a_o colloquy_n to_o this_o end_n but_o because_o he_o will_v not_o displease_v the_o pope_n by_o proceed_v without_o his_o knowledge_n he_o give_v he_o a_o account_n hereof_o and_o ask_v his_o consent_n the_o pope_n be_v angry_a that_o in_o italy_n also_o even_o under_o persecete_v to_o instruct_v the_o people_n of_o his_o valley_n who_o before_o he_o have_v persecete_v his_o nose_n his_o authority_n shall_v be_v question_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v consent_v by_o no_o mean_n but_o if_o those_o people_n have_v need_n of_o instruction_n he_o will_v send_v a_o legate_n with_o authority_n to_o absolute_a they_o who_o will_v be_v convert_v accompany_v with_o divine_n who_o may_v give_v they_o instruction_n but_o it_o but_o his_o holiness_n refuse_v to_o grant_v it_o he_o say_v he_o have_v little_a hope_n to_o convert_v they_o because_o the_o heretic_n be_v obstinate_a and_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v to_o exhort_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v their_o fault_n they_o expound_v to_o be_v a_o want_n of_o force_n to_o compel_v they_o that_o it_o can_v be_v remember_v that_o any_o good_a be_v ever_o do_v by_o this_o moderation_n but_o that_o experience_n be_v teach_v that_o the_o soon_o justice_n be_v use_v and_o force_v of_o arm_n when_o that_o other_o be_v not_o sufficient_a so_o much_o the_o better_a the_o success_n be_v if_o he_o will_v proceed_v thus_o he_o will_v send_v he_o assistance_n but_o if_o he_o think_v it_o not_o fit_a all_o may_v be_v defer_v until_o a_o general_a council_n which_o he_o will_v sudden_o call_v they_o and_o therefore_o the_o duke_n take_v arm_n against_o they_o the_o duke_n do_v not_o like_o the_o send_n of_o a_o legate_n because_o it_o will_v have_v provoke_v they_o more_o and_o force_v he_o to_o proceed_v according_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o other_o think_v it_o better_a to_o take_v arm_n which_o the_o pope_n commend_v more_o and_o promise_a assistance_n therefore_o there_o be_v war_n in_o these_o valley_n all_o this_o year_n and_o part_n of_o the_o next_o whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o time_n when_o it_o end_v there_o be_v a_o great_a conspiracy_n in_o many_o part_n of_o france_n into_o which_o many_o it_o a_o great_a conspiracy_n in_o france_n &_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v enter_v and_o the_o mayor_n part_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n disdain_v to_o see_v poor_a people_n draw_v every_o day_n to_o the_o stake_n to_o be_v burn_v guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o zeal_n to_o worship_n god_n and_o to_o save_v their_o own_o soul_n to_o these_o be_v join_v other_o who_o think_v the_o guisard_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o disorder_n of_o the_o kingdom_n judge_v it_o a_o heroic_a act_n to_o deliver_v it_o from_o oppression_n by_o take_v the_o public_a administration_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n there_o be_v also_o ambitious_a person_n desirous_a of_o change_n who_o can_v not_o work_v their_o will_n but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o trouble_n both_o these_o cover_a themselves_o with_o the_o cloak_n of_o religion_n to_o gain_v more_o follower_n and_o the_o better_a to_o confirm_v their_o mind_n cause_v the_o principal_a lawyer_n of_o germany_n and_o france_n and_o the_o most_o famous_a protestant_a divine_n to_o publish_v in_o writing_n that_o without_o violate_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o king_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o lawful_a magistrate_n they_o may_v oppose_v with_o arm_n the_o violent_a domination_n of_o the_o house_n of_o guise_n who_o offend_v true_a religion_n and_o lawful_a justice_n and_o keep_v the_o king_n as_o it_o be_v in_o prison_n the_o conspirator_n prepare_v a_o great_a multitude_n who_o shall_v appear_v before_o the_o king_n without_o arm_n to_o demand_v that_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o judgement_n may_v be_v mitigate_v and_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n grant_v design_v they_o shall_v be_v follow_v by_o gentleman_n who_o shall_v make_v supplication_n against_o the_o government_n of_o the_o guisard_n the_o conspiracy_n be_v discover_v and_o the_o court_n retire_v from_o blois_n a_o open_a place_n fit_a for_o the_o execution_n of_o such_o a_o purpose_n unto_o pardon_v the_o conspiration_n be_v discover_v and_o many_o of_o they_o execute_v and_o the_o rest_n pardon_v amboise_n a_o strong_a fortress_n this_o trouble_v the_o conspirator_n who_o while_o they_o be_v think_v of_o a_o new_a course_n some_o of_o they_o who_o take_v arm_n be_v beat_v and_o slay_v and_o other_o take_v and_o sentence_v to_o die_v and_o to_o appease_v the_o tumult_n pardon_n be_v grant_v by_o the_o king_n edict_n date_v the_o eighteen_o of_o march_n to_o all_o who_o simple_o move_v with_o zeal_n of_o religion_n have_v enter_v into_o the_o
conspiracy_n so_o that_o they_o disarm_v within_o 24._o hour_n afterward_o the_o king_n by_o his_o edict_n pardon_v all_o the_o reformatist_n until_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n he_o forbid_v all_o assembly_n for_o religion_n and_o commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n the_o hear_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n this_o displease_v the_o chancellor_n though_o he_o consent_v for_o fear_v the_o spanish_a inquisition_n will_v be_v bring_v in_o as_o the_o guisard_n desire_v the_o humour_n move_v be_v not_o quiet_v by_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o conspirator_n and_o the_o pardon_n publish_v nor_o the_o hope_n lay_v aside_o which_o they_o have_v conceive_v to_o have_v liberty_n of_o religion_n yea_o great_a tumult_n of_o the_o people_n be_v raise_v in_o provence_n languedoc_n and_o poitou_n whether_o the_o preacher_n of_o geneva_n geneva_n the_o protestant_n do_v increase_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o geneva_n be_v call_v and_o come_v willing_o by_o who_o sermon_n the_o number_n of_o the_o protestant_n do_v increase_v this_o general_a and_o sudden_a combination_n make_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n resolute_a that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a remedy_n and_o that_o very_o quick_o and_o a_o nationall_n synod_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n the_o cardinal_n of_o armignac_n say_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v do_v without_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o make_v provision_n that_o they_o shall_v write_v to_o rome_n and_o expect_v a_o answer_n to_o which_o opinion_n some_o few_o prelate_n do_v adhere_v but_o the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n say_v that_o a_o sudden_a remedy_n can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o be_v far_o distant_a nor_o a_o fit_a one_o because_o he_o be_v not_o inform_v of_o the_o particular_a necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o a_o charitable_a one_o because_o he_o be_v busy_v in_o make_v his_o nephew_n great_a that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o all_o kingdom_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o govern_v they_o that_o france_n have_v prelate_n of_o its_o own_o to_o regulate_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n who_o better_a know_v the_o want_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n to_o see_v paris_n burn_v have_v the_o river_n of_o some_o and_o marne_n full_a of_o water_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o water_n must_v be_v bring_v from_o tiber_n to_o quench_v the_o fire_n the_o resolution_n france_n a_o nationall_n synod_n be_v intimate_v in_o france_n of_o the_o council_n be_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o strong_a and_o sudden_a remedy_n the_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v assemble_v to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o hinder_v the_o course_n of_o these_o great_a mischief_n and_o the_o eleven_o of_o april_n the_o synod_n be_v intimate_v for_o the_o ten_o of_o september_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n a_o curriet_n be_v dispatch_v to_o rome_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o remedy_n and_o to_o pray_v he_o not_o to_o take_v it_o amiss_o the_o ambassador_n represent_v to_o his_o holiness_n the_o infection_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o danger_n and_o the_o hope_n which_o the_o king_n have_v of_o some_o good_a remedy_n by_o a_o general_a convocation_n of_o the_o prelate_n without_o which_o he_o see_v no_o mean_n to_o make_v a_o effectual_a povision_n therefore_o he_o be_v force_v not_o to_o defer_v long_o nor_o to_o expect_v remedy_n from_o place_n romote_v which_o be_v uncertain_a and_o long_o in_o come_v and_o to_o use_v that_o which_o be_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o he_o add_v that_o no_o constitution_n of_o that_o synod_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n before_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o holiness_n the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_a do_v grievous_o complain_v that_o the_o king_n have_v pardon_v the_o error_n commit_v against_o religion_n even_o of_o here●●kes_n the_o pope_n blame_v the_o french_a king_n for_o pardon_v here●●kes_n those_o who_o do_v not_o ask_v it_o wherein_o none_o have_v power_n but_o himself_o and_o what_o king_n be_v there_o he_o say_v who_o think_v he_o be_v able_a to_o pardon_v offence_n against_o god_n that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o by_o the_o just_a wrath_n of_o god_n there_o be_v so_o many_o tumult_n in_o that_o kingdom_n where_o the_o sacred_a canon_n be_v disesteem_v and_o the_o pope_n authority_n usurp_v he_o say_v that_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o prelate_n will_v do_v no_o good_a yea_o will_v cause_v a_o great_a division_n that_o he_o have_v propose_v a_o general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n that_o the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v not_o essemble_v already_o proceed_v from_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v it_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o celebrate_v it_o though_o it_o be_v desire_v by_o none_o but_o synod_n and_o will_v not_o approve_v the_o nationall_n synod_n will_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n consent_v to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o prelate_n either_o in_o france_n or_o elsewhere_o that_o this_o be_v never_o tolerate_v by_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n that_o if_o every_o prince_n shall_v celebrate_v counsel_n of_o himself_o a_o confusion_n and_o separation_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o follow_v he_o complain_v much_o that_o the_o assembly_n be_v first_o intimate_v and_o then_o his_o consent_n demand_v which_o he_o must_v needs_o think_v be_v do_v with_o small_a respect_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o all_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v not_o to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n when_o they_o be_v do_v but_o to_o receive_v from_o he_o authority_n to_o do_v they_o that_o the_o edict_n publish_v do_v infer_v a_o apostasy_n in_o that_o kingdom_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o he_o will_v send_v a_o express_a nuncio_n to_o make_v his_o will_n know_v to_o the_o king_n he_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o viterbo_n with_o instruction_n to_o show_v he_o that_o a_o nationall_n it_o but_o send_v a_o nuncio_n into_o spain_n to_o dissuade_v it_o council_n of_o that_o kingdom_n will_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o schism_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v a_o bad_a example_n to_o other_o nation_n and_o make_v his_o prelate_n proud_a assume_v great_a authority_n which_o diminution_n of_o his_o own_o that_o it_o be_v general_o know_v how_o earnest_o they_o desire_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a which_o they_o will_v first_o of_o all_o bring_v in_o by_o which_o mean_v the_o king_n will_v lose_v his_o whole_a collation_n of_o the_o regality_n and_o the_o presentation_n of_o the_o bishopricke_n and_o abbey_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o prelate_n not_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n will_v refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o and_o yet_o with_o all_o these_o inconvenience_n the_o evil_n which_o do_v now_o press_v he_o will_v not_o be_v provide_v against_o for_o the_o heretic_n do_v profess_v already_o that_o they_o esteem_v not_o the_o prelate_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v do_v will_v be_v oppose_v by_o the_o protestant_a minister_n if_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n because_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o the_o true_a remedy_n be_v to_o make_v the_o prelate_n and_o other_o curate_n reside_v and_o keep_v their_o flock_n oppose_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o wolf_n and_o to_o proceed_v in_o justice_n against_o those_o who_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v heretic_n by_o the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o where_o it_o can_v be_v do_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o multitude_n to_o use_v force_n of_o arm_n to_o compel_v all_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n before_o the_o contagion_n do_v increase_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v now_o all_o difference_n may_v be_v complete_o endded_a by_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o general_a council_n which_o he_o will_v immediate_o intimate_v that_o if_o the_o king_n will_v resolve_v to_o reduce_v the_o contumacious_a to_o obedience_n before_o they_o do_v more_o increase_n in_o number_n and_o strength_n he_o promise_v to_o assist_v he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o to_o labour_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o prince_n of_o italy_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o compel_v his_o subject_n by_o force_n the_o nuncio_n have_v instruction_n to_o propose_v unto_o he_o that_o all_o the_o mischief_n which_o trouble_v france_n and_o the_o poison_n which_o infect_v that_o kingdom_n and_o the_o neighbour_n place_n come_v from_o geneva_n that_o the_o extirpation_n of_o that_o root_n geneva_n and_o to_o persuade_v y_z e_o king_n to_o make_v ware_n against_o geneva_n will_v take_v away_o a_o great_a nourishment_n of_o the_o evil_a that_o make_v war_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o
city_n promise_v to_o go_v thither_o in_o person_n but_o see_v it_o will_v be_v ill_o construe_v by_o the_o world_n he_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o accept_v of_o any_o city_n beyond_o the_o mountain_n no_o not_o to_o hear_v any_o proposition_n of_o it_o the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n propose_v milan_n and_o he_o condescend_v so_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o castle_n in_o his_o hand_n during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v to_o refer_v himself_o to_o a_o impossible_a condition_n he_o think_v also_o upon_o some_o of_o the_o venetian_a city_n but_o the_o republic_n excuse_v itself_o lest_o they_o shall_v make_v the_o turk_n suspicious_a of_o who_o force_n they_o be_v then_o afraid_a when_o he_o have_v consider_v all_o he_o find_v no_o fit_a place_n than_o trent_n for_o the_o council_n have_v be_v hold_v there_o twice_o before_o every_o one_o have_v experience_n of_o what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o bid_v in_o that_o place_n assembly_n who_o after_o consultation_n think_v trent_n the_o fit_a place_n for_o the_o assembly_n and_o therefore_o will_v more_o easy_o consent_v to_o go_v thither_o then_o elsewhere_o and_o there_o be_v also_o some_o appearance_n of_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o the_o council_n celebrate_v by_o julius_n be_v not_o finish_v but_o suspend_v he_o think_v to_o satisfy_v the_o french_a man_n by_o send_v cardinal_n tornon_n into_o france_n not_o in_o quality_n of_o a_o legate_n but_o with_o power_n when_o he_o be_v there_o and_o see_v there_o need_n to_o assemble_v there_o and_o send_v card._n tornon_n into_o france_n to_o hinder_v a_o nationall_n synod_n there_o some_o of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n such_o as_o the_o king_n and_o himself_o think_v fit_a but_o not_o all_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o appearance_n of_o a_o council_n and_o to_o treat_v with_o these_o but_o to_o resolve_v of_o nothing_o there_o be_v also_o two_o other_o accident_n of_o no_o less_o consideration_n which_o thrust_v the_o pope_n forward_o to_o speak_v more_o plain_o of_o a_o council_n one_o far_o off_o but_o import_v the_o loss_n of_o a_o kingdom_n the_o other_o concern_v one_o person_n only_o but_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n the_o nobility_n of_o scotland_n who_o have_v a_o pope_n scotland_n revolt_v from_o the_o pope_n long_a time_n make_v war_n to_o chase_v the_o french_a man_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o take_v the_o government_n out_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o queen_n regent_n and_o have_v ever_o encounter_v many_o difficulty_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a succour_n send_v she_o by_o her_o son_n in_o law_n the_o french_a king_n to_o maintain_v the_o kingdom_n for_o his_o wife_n final_o that_o they_o may_v quite_o free_v themselves_o they_o resolve_v to_o join_v with_o the_o english_a and_o incite_v the_o people_n against_o the_o regent_n to_o this_o end_n they_o give_v way_n to_o liberty_n of_o religion_n to_o which_o the_o people_n be_v incline_v by_o this_o mean_n they_o bring_v the_o frenchman_n into_o great_a strait_n and_o the_o old_a religion_n be_v little_o esteem_v for_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v blame_v because_o the_o world_n think_v that_o if_o the_o council_n have_v be_v begin_v all_o popular_a commotion_n will_v have_v be_v stop_v the_o other_o accident_n be_v that_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n have_v a_o long_a time_n hold_v intelligence_n with_o the_o protestant_a elector_n and_o prince_n of_o protestant_n maximilian_n be_v not_o without_o cause_n think_v to_o be_v a_o protestant_n germany_n and_o be_v former_o suspect_v for_o it_o by_o paul_n the_o four_o so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o refrain_v to_o object_v to_o the_o emperor_n in_o private_a discourse_n which_o he_o have_v with_o martin_n gusman_n his_o ambassador_n that_o his_o son_n be_v a_o favourer_n of_o heresy_n the_o same_o suspicion_n continue_v in_o the_o court_n after_o the_o death_n of_o paul_n the_o pope_n cause_v the_o count_n of_o arco_fw-la to_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o live_v as_o a_o catholic_a he_o will_v not_o confirm_v he_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n yea_o will_v deprive_v he_o of_o all_o dominion_n notwithstanding_o this_o advice_n come_v afterward_o to_o rome_n that_o he_o entertain_v a_o preacher_n and_o hear_v he_o often_o who_o have_v bring_v in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o diverse_a place_n but_o not_o in_o the_o city_n and_o the_o king_n himself_o say_v he_o can_v not_o receive_v it_o otherwise_o which_o although_o he_o put_v not_o in_o practice_n yet_o those_o word_n give_v the_o pope_n great_a suspicion_n especial_o because_o almost_o in_o all_o place_n of_o germany_n the_o communion_n of_o quick_o which_o two_o accident_n incite_v the_o pope_n to_o call_v the_o council_n quick_o the_o chalice_n be_v use_v by_o all_o that_o will_v and_o none_o hinder_v the_o priest_n to_o minister_v it_o for_o all_o these_o former_a respect_n the_o pope_n be_v resolute_a to_o make_v this_o great_a jump_n the_o three_o of_o june_n he_o call_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o spain_n portugal_n polonia_n venice_n and_o florence_n who_o appear_v all_o before_o his_o holiness_n except_o the_o ambassador_n of_o polonia_n that_o be_v sick_a he_o complain_v first_o that_o he_o can_v not_o call_v the_o french_a ambassador_n for_o fear_n of_o some_o question_n of_o precedency_n which_o be_v a_o cause_n to_o hinder_v the_o public_a benefit_n of_o consult_v on_o the_o common_a affair_n of_o christendom_n but_o those_o two_o king_n be_v cousin_n it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v resolve_v to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n he_o wherein_o he_o declare_v his_o purpose_n to_o all_o the_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n and_o especial_o of_o their_o own_o kingdom_n then_o he_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o have_v call_v they_o be_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o bring_v to_o effect_v remove_v all_o difficulty_n which_o prince_n for_o their_o own_o end_n may_v set_v on_o foot_n that_o the_o place_n shall_v be_v trent_n which_o have_v please_v twice_o can_v now_o be_v deny_v by_o none_o in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o a_o new_a place_n and_o the_o council_n celebrate_v there_o only_o suspend_v therefore_o take_v away_o the_o suspension_n the_o council_n be_v open_a as_o before_z and_o many_o good_a constitution_n have_v be_v make_v there_o it_o will_v not_o be_v fit_a to_o call_v they_o in_o question_n by_o make_v show_n of_o call_v a_o new_a council_n he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o do_v it_o quick_o because_o thing_n grow_v worse_a every_o day_n as_o appear_v in_o france_n where_o they_o treat_v of_o a_o nationall_n council_n which_o he_o neither_o will_v nor_o can_v endure_v because_o germany_n and_o every_o province_n will_v do_v the_o like_a that_o he_o will_v give_v order_n to_o his_o nuncij_fw-la with_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n to_o treat_v hereof_o with_o their_o majesty_n and_o do_v now_o intimate_v the_o same_o to_o all_o they_o that_o they_o may_v send_v their_o prince_n word_n of_o it_o for_o although_o he_o can_v both_o resolve_v and_o execute_v of_o himself_o yet_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o do_v it_o with_o their_o knowledge_n that_o they_o may_v put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o some_o thing_n for_o the_o common_a benefit_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n and_o favour_v it_o by_o treat_v with_o the_o protestant_n he_o add_v that_o he_o do_v believe_v that_o some_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n will_v go_v thither_o in_o person_n and_o that_o he_o be_v sure_o the_o marquis_n of_o brandeburg_n will_v vargas_n make_v a_o long_a answer_n relate_v what_o have_v be_v do_v in_o former_a counsel_n he_o discourse_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v counsel_n and_o then_o descend_v to_o the_o place_n and_o speak_v of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o trent_n where_o himself_o be_v present_a he_o distinguish_v general_n counsel_n from_o nationall_n much_o condemn_v that_o which_o be_v intimate_v in_o france_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n commend_v the_o pope_n purpose_n and_o promise_v the_o obedience_n of_o his_o master_n the_o venetian_a say_v that_o in_o time_n past_a never_o any_o better_a remedy_n be_v find_v then_o counsel_n and_o thank_v god_n for_o inspire_v his_o holiness_n to_o do_v so_o pious_a a_o work_n which_o be_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o religion_n and_o benefit_n of_o prince_n who_o can_v not_o hold_v their_o state_n in_o peace_n in_o change_n of_o religion_n the_o florentine_a ambassador_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n offer_v all_o assistance_n from_o the_o duke_n the_o pope_n write_v to_o his_o nuncio_n in_o germany_n france_n it_o but_o alwye_n utter_v something_o that_o may_v cross_v it_o and_o spain_n in_o
conformity_n of_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o ambassador_n yet_o he_o never_o talk_v of_o the_o council_n but_o he_o cast_v forth_o some_o seed_n of_o a_o contrary_a herb_n which_o may_v hinder_v the_o birth_n of_o it_o or_o choke_v it_o afterward_o be_v assure_v that_o when_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n do_v stand_v so_o that_o the_o life_n of_o it_o may_v do_v he_o service_n he_o can_v root_v out_o that_o which_o he_o have_v sow_v upon_o it_o he_o tell_v the_o same_o ambassador_n apart_o some_o more_o plain_o some_o in_o jest_n that_o to_o call_v the_o council_n with_o profit_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o think_v more_o of_o the_o end_n then_o of_o the_o beginning_n and_o of_o the_o execution_n then_o of_o the_o convocation_n prosecution_n that_o the_o convocation_n belong_v to_o he_o alone_o the_o prosecution_n to_o he_o and_o the_o prelate_n the_o execution_n to_o the_o prince_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o first_o of_o all_o they_o shall_v bind_v themselves_o to_o it_o and_o make_v a_o league_n and_o elect_v a_o general_a captain_n to_o go_v against_o the_o disobedient_a to_o execute_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n consider_v that_o without_o this_o it_o will_v be_v fruitless_a and_o dishonourable_a to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o to_o those_o prince_n who_o have_v send_v ambassador_n and_o afford_v favour_n and_o assistance_n the_o pope_n do_v not_o receive_v a_o conformable_a answer_n from_o his_o nuncij_fw-la the_o council_n the_o french_a king_n do_v not_o think_v trent_n a_o fit_a place_n for_o the_o council_n king_n of_o spain_n commend_v the_o council_n approve_v the_o place_n of_o trent_n promise_v to_o send_v his_o prelate_n to_o it_o and_o to_o favour_v it_o by_o all_o other_o mean_n but_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o french_a king_n the_o answer_n of_o this_o king_n be_v that_o he_o approve_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n but_o not_o the_o place_n of_o trent_n allege_v that_o his_o prelate_n can_v not_o go_v thither_o and_o propose_v for_o place_n more_o fit_a constance_n triers_n spire_n worm_n or_o aganoa_n he_o intimate_v also_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o make_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o thing_n begin_v in_o trent_n but_o to_o abandon_v reexamination_n nor_o that_o the_o doctrine_n already_o discuss_v there_o shall_v be_v maintain_v without_o reexamination_n they_o quite_o and_o make_v a_o whole_a new_a council_n this_o answer_n trouble_v the_o pope_n who_o think_v it_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o king_n own_o motion_n but_o from_o the_o hugonot_n but_o the_o emperor_n send_v a_o long_a writing_n in_o which_o he_o say_v he_o can_v promise_v nothing_o for_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n before_o he_o know_v their_o opinion_n which_o he_o can_v not_o do_v without_o a_o diet_n which_o if_o he_o will_v call_v it_o be_v necessary_a not_o to_o name_v the_o council_n because_o the_o prince_n will_v not_o go_v thither_o but_o pretend_v another_o cause_n to_o call_v it_o he_o may_v afterward_o speak_v be_v of_o who_o opinion_n the_o emperor_n be_v of_o it_o by_o occasion_n he_o add_v that_o for_o his_o patrimonial_a state_n he_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o synod_n without_o grant_v they_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o without_o a_o good_a reformation_n be_v make_v but_o above_o all_o that_o no_o mention_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v of_o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o thing_n begin_v in_o trent_n for_o the_o lutheran_n will_v never_o consent_v otherwise_o yea_o the_o very_a name_n of_o trent_n will_v make_v they_o refuse_v and_o he_o propose_v constance_n or_o ratisbon_n the_o pope_n see_v that_o the_o proposition_n of_o a_o diet_n do_v require_v the_o time_n of_o a_o year_n and_o perhaps_o of_o two_o and_o be_v glad_a of_o it_o but_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o occurrence_n of_o france_n require_v haste_n he_o tell_v every_o one_o to_o show_v his_o forwardness_n that_o he_o care_v not_o for_o one_o place_n more_o than_o another_o and_o will_v take_v spire_n collen_n or_o any_o other_o city_n which_o please_v the_o emperor_n so_o that_o the_o bishop_n may_v come_v and_o go_v in_o safety_n it_o not_o be_v convenient_a to_o secure_v those_o who_o have_v no_o voice_n in_o the_o council_n and_o leave_v other_o without_o security_n who_o certain_o have_v but_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o speak_v of_o revoke_v what_o be_v do_v in_o trent_n say_v he_o will_v spend_v his_o blood_n in_o maintain_v it_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n concern_v that_o which_o be_v of_o humane_a constitution_n as_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n these_o prohibition_n be_v make_v for_o a_o good_a end_n as_o he_o will_v not_o take_v they_o away_o of_o himself_o which_o he_o have_v power_n to_o do_v so_o he_o will_v refer_v all_o to_o the_o council_n howsoever_o he_o see_v they_o will_v never_o forsake_v their_o opinion_n whatsoever_o be_v grant_v they_o he_o complain_v of_o the_o emperor_n weakness_n who_o fear_v his_o own_o son_n no_o less_o than_o other_o and_o then_o desire_v the_o prelate_n shall_v be_v send_v into_o germany_n where_o he_o declare_v he_o have_v not_o power_n to_o secure_v they_o that_o he_o will_v go_v to_o constantinople_n so_o that_o he_o may_v have_v security_n which_o can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o german_n be_v almost_o in_o heretic_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n more_o potent_a than_o his_o father_n in_o the_o regard_v not_o one_o place_n more_o than_o another_o so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o italy_n which_o only_o be_v secure_a for_o the_o catholic_n therefore_o he_o answer_v the_o french_a king_n and_o the_o emperor_n in_o general_a both_o the_o pope_n answer_n to_o they_o both_o term_n that_o he_o be_v content_a with_o any_o secure_a place_n say_v that_o the_o security_n of_o the_o council_n have_v always_o be_v esteem_v necessary_a and_o be_v now_o as_o much_o as_o ever_o without_o make_v particular_a opposition_n against_o the_o place_n name_v by_o they_o but_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o catholic_a king_n he_o commend_v his_o good_a mind_n and_o confirm_v he_o in_o his_o purpose_n and_o for_o the_o subsidy_n he_o desire_v he_o interpose_v diverse_a difficulty_n as_o well_o to_o maintain_v the_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n as_o not_o to_o offend_v he_o and_o make_v he_o his_o opposite_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n the_o affair_n of_o the_o catholic_n wax_v every_o day_n more_o difficult_a for_o the_o king_n the_o low-countries_n man_n wax_v peremptory_a against_o their_o king_n hugonot_n in_o france_n grow_v strong_a and_o in_o scotland_n liberty_n of_o religion_n be_v grant_v to_o all_o by_o public_a decree_n and_o in_o flanders_n the_o humour_n be_v prepare_v to_o stir_v upon_o the_o first_o occasion_n which_o the_o king_n do_v appease_v by_o proceed_v slow_o grant_v they_o what_o they_o will_v though_o to_o his_o own_o loss_n and_o indignity_n first_o they_o refuse_v to_o contribute_v to_o the_o king_n before_o the_o spanish_a soldier_n be_v remoove_v out_o of_o the_o country_n when_o these_o be_v dismiss_v they_o will_v pay_v to_o none_o but_o to_o the_o people_n of_o their_o own_o country_n and_o only_o for_o the_o guard_n of_o strong_a place_n and_o those_o not_o to_o depend_v of_o the_o king_n minister_n the_o king_n endure_v all_o know_v that_o every_o little_a distaste_n will_v make_v they_o set_v on_o foot_n the_o pretence_n of_o religion_n and_o expect_v until_o the_o heat_n be_v extinguish_v which_o he_o do_v the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v discover_v that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o new_a opinion_n in_o spain_n be_v not_o dead_a but_o only_o cover_v for_o fear_n and_o that_o in_o savoy_n there_o be_v more_o heretic_n beside_o the_o old_a waldenses_n but_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v grieve_v most_o of_o all_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v by_o his_o nephew_n marcus_n altemps_n who_o afterward_o be_v cardinal_n persuade_v the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n to_o be_v a_o good_a catholic_a with_o many_o promise_n of_o honour_n and_o profit_n intimate_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o empire_n which_o he_o will_v hardly_o obtain_v in_o case_n he_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o king_n that_o he_o religion_n the_o answer_n of_o maximilian_n to_o y_z e_z pope_n nephew_n concern_v his_o religion_n thank_v his_o holiness_n but_o that_o his_o soul_n health_n be_v more_o dear_a to_o he_o than_o all_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n which_o answer_v they_o say_v in_o rome_n be_v a_o lutheran_n form_n of_o speech_n and_o signify_v a_o alienation_n from_o the_o obedience_n of_o that_o sea_n and_o
against_o with_o more_o severity_n mitigate_a the_o punishment_n of_o those_o who_o assemble_v without_o arm_n only_o for_o religion_n instruct_v and_o admonish_v they_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n to_o cause_v the_o prelate_n to_o reside_v hope_v that_o by_o these_o remedy_n all_o will_v be_v provide_v for_o without_o either_o general_n or_o nationall_n council_n the_o voice_n be_v not_o uniform_a a_o decree_n be_v make_v the_o 27._o of_o that_o month_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n at_o meaux_n the_o ten_o of_o december_n and_o if_o the_o general_n council_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v sudden_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v show_n the_o bishop_n shall_v assemble_v the_o 13._o of_o january_n to_o treat_v assembly_n the_o decree_n of_o this_o assembly_n of_o celebrate_v a_o nationall_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o punishment_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n be_v suspend_v except_o against_o those_o who_o take_v arm_n the_o pope_n inform_v of_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o fountainbleau_n write_v to_o cardinal_n tornon_n to_o hinder_v the_o meeting_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_z if_o he_o can_v not_o return_v to_o rome_n and_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o september_n he_o call_v the_o ambassador_n and_o tell_v they_o the_o neceseitie_n of_o the_o sudden_a celebration_n of_o a_o general_a council_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o frenchman_n to_o call_v a_o nationall_n which_o though_o he_o have_v give_v order_n to_o cardinal_n tornon_n to_o hinder_v yet_o he_o do_v not_o hope_v it_o can_v be_v do_v but_o he_o see_v sudden_o cause_v the_o pope_n to_o make_v show_v that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o call_v the_o council_n sudden_o a_o necessity_n to_o celebrate_v the_o general_a council_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v that_o the_o nationals_n be_v call_v for_o want_v of_o it_o therefore_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o open_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n take_v away_o the_o suspension_n that_o the_o place_n be_v most_o fit_a be_v between_o germany_n and_o italy_n though_o other_o propose_v spire_n triers_n and_o other_o place_n which_o he_o will_v accept_v if_o they_o be_v secure_a be_v ready_a to_o go_v to_o constantinople_n if_o he_o may_v with_o safety_n that_o one_o can_v not_o trust_v those_o who_o want_v faith_n that_o no_o catholic_a can_v be_v secure_a in_o those_o place_n no_o not_o the_o emperor_n himself_o that_o if_o they_o refuse_v trent_n they_o may_v find_v place_n in_o the_o dukedom_n of_o milan_n the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n in_o the_o state_n of_o venice_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n or_o florence_n concern_v the_o revocation_n of_o the_o thing_n already_o decide_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v that_o he_o will_v neither_o revoke_v nor_o confirm_v they_o but_o refer_v all_o to_o the_o council_n which_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v determine_v whatsoever_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n he_o do_v much_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o nationall_n council_n of_o france_n save_v that_o germany_n will_v follow_v the_o example_n and_o that_o some_o stir_n will_v be_v raise_v in_o italy_n if_o order_n be_v not_o take_v that_o they_o will_v submit_v the_o papacy_n to_o the_o council_n and_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o it_o but_o his_o resolution_n be_v this_o pro_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o religione_fw-la volumus_fw-la mori_fw-la desire_v the_o ambassador_n to_o speak_v their_o opinion_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o take_v time_n in_o regard_n the_o emperor_n affair_n will_v not_o permit_v he_o to_o consent_v the_o pope_n seem_v to_o be_v angry_a the_o ambassador_n add_v that_o it_o be_v good_a first_o to_o win_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n the_o pope_n answer_v more_o angry_o that_o there_o only_o wherein_o he_o be_v contradict_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n only_o be_v now_o no_o time_n to_o do_v it_o and_o the_o ambassador_n reply_v that_o he_o fear_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o heretic_n will_v be_v incite_v against_o italy_n the_o pope_n say_v aloud_o that_o god_n will_v not_o abandon_v his_o own_o cause_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v assist_v by_o the_o catholic_a prince_n with_o man_n and_o money_n for_o his_o defence_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n commend_v the_o pope_n purpose_n and_o say_v that_o his_o king_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o favour_v he_o and_o that_o to_o this_o end_n he_o have_v already_o send_v antonio_n di_fw-it toledo_n into_o france_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n venice_n and_o other_o offer_v the_o favour_n and_o assistance_n of_o their_o prince_n and_o in_o the_o end_n the_o pope_n give_v they_o order_n to_o signify_v his_o intention_n and_o so_o dismiss_v they_o afterward_o he_o receive_v answer_v from_o cardinal_n tornon_n that_o have_v try_v all_o mean_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o remove_v the_o king_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o council_n nor_o can_v hope_v for_o any_o better_a success_n hereafter_o yea_o that_o he_o see_v all_o thing_n to_o wax_v worse_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v send_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o final_a answer_n give_v to_o toledo_n write_v withal_o that_o the_o french_a king_n excuse_v himself_o that_o without_o a_o nationall_n council_n he_o can_v not_o remedy_v the_o disorder_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o to_o withstand_v inconvenience_n prince_n do_v that_o alone_a which_o they_o shall_v do_v together_o with_o the_o pope_n this_o letter_n trouble_v his_o holiness_n think_v he_o do_v infer_v that_o he_o may_v do_v the_o same_o also_o himself_o in_o flanders_n it_o be_v afterward_o discover_v that_o the_o pope_n purpose_n be_v if_o he_o can_v not_o absolute_o avoid_v the_o council_n to_o defer_v it_o at_o the_o least_o until_o he_o have_v set_v in_o order_n his_o domestical_a affair_n for_o be_v to_o hold_v a_o synod_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v a_o good_a example_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n and_o spend_v excessive_o in_o maintain_v poor_a prelate_n and_o officer_n and_o council_n the_o pope_n secret_a purpose_n be_v to_o avoid_v or_o deserre_v the_o council_n other_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o synod_n which_o will_v consume_v all_o the_o revenue_n and_o the_o business_n itself_o also_o will_v take_v up_o all_o his_o time_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o take_v care_n of_o his_o house_n but_o he_o resolve_v though_o against_o his_o will_n not_o to_o defer_v the_o convocation_n any_o long_o whereupon_o the_o twenty_o of_o will_n but_o make_v a_o contrary_a resolution_n against_o his_o will_n october_n he_o hold_v a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n in_o which_o he_o give_v they_o a_o account_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o toledo_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n his_o letter_n to_o he_o and_o of_o the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n tornon_n add_v a_o new_a advertisement_n send_v he_o out_o of_o france_n that_o although_o the_o general_a council_n be_v open_v they_o will_v not_o go_v thither_o if_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o consent_v to_o receive_v it_o these_o thing_n put_v they_o in_o a_o great_a confusion_n and_o all_o fear_v that_o though_o the_o general_a council_n shall_v proceed_v yet_o france_n will_v trance_n and_o be_v much_o trouble_v with_o the_o occurrence_n of_o trance_n make_v the_o nationall_n whence_o by_o consequence_n a_o alienation_n from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n will_v arise_v and_o a_o example_n to_o the_o residue_n of_o christendom_n to_o do_v the_o like_a either_o with_o or_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o prince_n some_o thought_n much_o of_o the_o protestation_n make_v to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v too_o liberal_a in_o offer_v that_o city_n but_o remember_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v lord_n of_o it_o without_o who_o consent_n he_o neither_o can_v nor_o aught_o to_o dispose_v of_o it_o in_o such_o a_o business_n who_o have_v declare_v himself_o already_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v he_o will_v first_o make_v a_o diet._n they_o be_v also_o much_o trouble_v with_o that_o which_o d._n antenio_n di_fw-it toledo_n write_v that_o all_o the_o grandee_n yea_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o do_v favour_v the_o new_a opinion_n to_o settle_v and_o augment_v their_o own_o estate_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o all_o the_o cardinal_n except_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n be_v of_o opinion_n to_o open_v the_o council_n remove_v the_o suspension_n the_o pope_n say_v the_o council_n shall_v begin_v at_o saint_n martin_n tide_n and_o consider_v the_o imminent_a danger_n and_o the_o hope_n to_o overcome_v they_o he_o sea_n his_o comfort_n be_v that_o the_o loss_n will_v be_v great_a to_o the_o french_a king_n then_o to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n resolve_v himself_o and_o do_v comfort_n also_o the_o cardinal_n and_o his_o other_o dependent_n
with_o it_o that_o the_o loss_n will_v be_v great_a to_o france_n and_o little_a to_o he_o for_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n receive_v yearly_a out_o of_o that_o kingdom_n but_o five_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o crown_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o king_n authority_n be_v great_a grant_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o dispose_v of_o benefice_n he_o will_v loose_v it_o all_o in_o regard_n the_o pope_n authority_n be_v take_v away_o the_o pragmatike_n will_v take_v place_n and_o the_o bishop_n will_v be_v elect_v by_o the_o canon_n the_o abbat_n by_o the_o monastery_n and_o the_o king_n bereave_v of_o all_o this_o therefore_o he_o be_v sorry_a for_o nothing_o but_o for_o the_o loss_n of_o so_o many_o soul_n but_o if_o god_n will_v correct_v they_o for_o their_o fault_n and_o infidelity_n he_o can_v not_o help_v it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o november_n letter_n come_v to_o rome_n from_o the_o emperor_n new_a the_o emperor_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o commuation_n of_o the_o old_a council_n and_o so_o the_o convocation_n of_o a_o new_a in_o which_o he_o say_v though_o in_o general_a term_n that_o concern_v the_o council_n he_o will_v do_v for_o his_o own_o person_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n please_v but_o add_v that_o to_o hold_v a_o council_n out_o of_o germany_n or_o to_o continue_v that_o of_o trent_n by_o take_v away_o the_o suspension_n will_v do_v no_o good_a but_o raise_v a_o great_a hatred_n in_o the_o protestant_n with_o danger_n that_o they_o will_v endeavour_n to_o hinder_v it_o with_o arm_n in_o which_o kind_n he_o have_v hear_v of_o diverse_a treaty_n but_o make_v a_o new_a council_n there_o be_v hope_n to_o persuade_v they_o to_o go_v thither_o this_o cause_v variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o the_o cardinal_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n all_o the_o thing_n already_o determine_v will_v be_v vain_a and_o void_a have_v never_o be_v confirm_v by_o any_o pope_n this_o be_v propose_v in_o congregation_n by_o his_o holiness_n whereof_o they_o consult_v opinion_n wherein_o the_o cardinal_n be_v divide_v in_o opinion_n and_o speak_v much_o without_o give_v of_o voice_n which_o be_v demand_v in_o another_o congregation_n carpi_n show_v at_o large_a that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o continue_v the_o council_n remove_v the_o suspension_n only_o and_o be_v follow_v by_o cesis_n and_o pisano_n but_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n who_o be_v next_o say_v that_o in_o a_o matter_n where_o they_o be_v to_o treat_v de_fw-fr summa_fw-la rerum_fw-la full_a of_o so_o many_o difficulty_n it_o be_v better_a to_o think_v a_o little_a more_o on_o it_o and_o this_o opinion_n be_v follow_v by_o all_o the_o other_o cardinal_n and_o fit_o the_o next_o evening_n a_o currier_n come_v in_o haste_n to_o rome_n out_o of_o france_n with_o protestation_n from_o the_o king_n that_o if_o the_o general_a rome_n the_o protestation_n of_o the_o french_a king_n send_v to_o rome_n council_n be_v not_o call_v he_o can_v no_o long_o defer_v the_o nationall_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o think_v of_o trent_n or_o any_o place_n in_o italy_n in_o regard_n the_o council_n have_v be_v desire_v so_o many_o year_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o germany_n and_o now_o the_o danger_n of_o france_n be_v add_v it_o be_v meet_v to_o hold_v it_o in_o a_o convenient_a place_n for_o both_o the_o nation_n otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v in_o vain_a if_o the_o german_n and_o frenchman_n go_v not_o thither_o add_v that_o if_o any_o place_n in_o france_n be_v choose_v it_o shall_v be_v most_o secure_a in_o the_o end_n the_o pope_n think_v not_o fit_a to_o delay_v it_o any_o more_o but_o the_o fifteen_o of_o november_n resolve_v in_o the_o consistory_n to_o make_v the_o next_o sunday_n a_o procession_n in_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n give_v council_n a_o procession_n and_o jubelie_o for_o the_o determination_n to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n a_o jubelie_o and_o sing_v the_o mass_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o determination_n make_v to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n in_o trent_n conclude_v that_o if_o after_o it_o be_v assemble_v it_o seem_v commodious_a to_o translate_v it_o to_o another_o place_n he_o will_v do_v it_o and_o go_v himself_o also_o in_o person_n so_o that_o it_o be_v secure_a he_o add_v that_o he_o can_v find_v arm_n to_o use_v if_o any_o go_v about_o to_o infringe_v the_o thing_n determine_v and_o begin_v to_o consider_v of_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o bull._n every_o day_n a_o congregation_n declare_v a_o great_a question_n in_o rome_n whether_o the_o continuation_n shall_v plain_o be_v declare_v be_v hold_v to_o resolve_v whether_o they_o shall_v plain_o declare_v the_o continuation_n take_v away_o the_o suspension_n as_o he_o desire_v that_o the_o thing_n determine_v may_v not_o be_v dispute_v on_o again_o or_o examine_v the_o imperialist_n and_o french_a man_n labour_v much_o with_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o deputy_n that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o new_a council_n that_o the_o dutch_a and_o frenchman_n may_v go_v thither_o say_v they_o may_v resolve_v in_o it_o that_o the_o thing_n already_o handle_v may_v not_o be_v handle_v again_o otherwise_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o speak_v of_o a_o council_n to_o reduce_v the_o protestant_n give_v they_o occasion_n at_o the_o first_o to_o refuse_v it_o and_o to_o say_v they_o can_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o those_o who_o have_v condemn_v they_o before_o they_o be_v hear_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o spaniard_n and_o duke_n of_o florence_n who_o be_v then_o in_o rome_n labour_v that_o the_o suspension_n only_o may_v be_v remove_v and_o a_o continuation_n declare_v the_o pope_n and_o deputy_n take_v a_o middle_a way_n hope_v both_o party_n will_v be_v satisfy_v a_o jubelie_o be_v publish_v and_o send_v into_o all_o place_n and_o the_o 24._o day_n the_o pope_n with_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n &_o all_o the_o court_n go_v on_o foot_n with_o a_o solemn_a procession_n from_o s._n peter_n church_n to_o minerva_n in_o which_o there_o be_v great_a confusion_n for_o the_o ambassador_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o go_v before_o the_o cross_n perceive_v that_o the_o bb._n do_v follow_v and_o after_o they_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n between_o 2._o minor_a cardinal_n they_o will_v have_v that_o place_n also_o whereupon_o there_o arise_v a_o disorder_n for_o compose_v whereof_o after_o some_o contestation_n the_o pope_n give_v they_o place_n between_o himself_o and_o the_o cardinal_n who_o go_v before_o he_o the_o 29._o day_n the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o consistory_n the_o bull_n whereof_o be_v entitle_v of_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o latin_a word_n be_v indictionis_fw-la and_o it_o be_v so_o print_v in_o many_o place_n though_o afterward_o when_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o council_n be_v print_v the_o word_n celebrationis_fw-la be_v use_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o bull_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o assumption_n do_v apply_v his_o mind_n council_n the_o bull_n of_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o the_o root_n out_o of_o heresy_n extinction_n of_o division_n and_o amendment_n of_o manner_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o he_o resolve_v to_o celebrate_v a_o general_a council_n that_o paul_n the_o three_o and_o julius_n have_v assemble_v it_o before_o but_o can_v not_o finish_v it_o and_o relate_v all_o the_o occurrence_n under_o those_o pope_n ascribe_v the_o success_n to_o diverse_a impediment_n promote_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n at_o the_o least_o to_o defer_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o can_v not_o absolute_o hinder_v say_v that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o heresy_n and_o division_n be_v multiply_v but_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o give_v peace_n to_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n he_o conceive_a hope_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o church_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o council_n which_o he_o will_v not_o defer_v any_o long_o that_o hee-might_a take_v away_o schism_n and_o heresy_n reform_v manner_n and_o preserve_v peace_n among_o christian_n therefore_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o advice_n of_o ferdinand_n emperor_n elect_v and_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n who_o he_o have_v find_v ready_a to_o help_v forward_o the_o celebration_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n he_o do_v intimate_v a_o general_a council_n in_o the_o city_n of_o trent_n to_o begin_v at_o easter_n remove_v all_o suspension_n whatsoever_o exhort_v and_o command_v under_o the_o canonical_a punishment_n all_o patriarch_n archbishop_n bishop_n abbat_n and_o other_o who_o have_v a_o decide_n voice_n by_o law_n privilege_n or_o ancient_a custom_n not_o
be_v lawful_o hinder_v to_o be_v there_o before_o that_o day_n admonish_v those_o also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n who_o have_v or_o may_v have_v any_o interest_n there_o pray_v the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n to_o send_v their_o proctor_n if_o they_o can_v be_v personal_o present_a and_o to_o cause_v their_o prelate_n to_o perform_v their_o duty_n without_o excuse_n or_o delay_n and_o to_o make_v the_o passage_n free_a and_o secure_a for_o they_o and_o their_o company_n as_o himself_o will_v do_v within_o his_o territory_n have_v no_o other_o end_n in_o celebrate_v the_o council_n but_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o reduce_n of_o the_o disperse_a sheep_n and_o the_o perpetual_a peace_n of_o christendom_n ordain_v that_o the_o bull_n shall_v be_v publish_v in_o rome_n and_o that_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o after_o the_o end_n of_o two_o month_n it_o shall_v bind_v all_o that_o be_v comprehend_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v personal_o intimate_v unto_o they_o the_o pope_n think_v he_o have_v satisfy_v himself_o those_o who_o will_v have_v a_o party_n do_v not_o please_v either_o party_n new_a council_n intimate_v and_o those_o who_o desire_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o old_a but_o as_o middle_a counsel_n do_v usual_o displease_v both_o party_n so_o the_o pope_n give_v satisfaction_n to_o none_o as_o shall_v be_v declare_v present_o after_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o bull_n the_o pope_n send_v nicheto_o into_o france_n with_o it_o with_o commission_n if_o the_o form_n do_v not_o please_v to_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o except_v against_o the_o word_n continuare_fw-la because_o it_o do_v not_o hinder_v they_o to_o speak_v again_o of_o the_o thing_n already_o propose_v he_o send_v it_o also_o to_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n he_o send_v likewise_o zacharias_n delphinus_n bishop_n of_o liesina_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o high_a germany_n and_o joannes_n franciscus_n comendone_v bishop_n of_o zante_n to_o those_o of_o lowe_n germany_n with_o letter_n to_o they_o all_o and_o with_o order_n first_o to_o receive_v instruction_n from_o the_o emperor_n how_o to_o treat_v with_o they_o and_o then_o to_o execute_v their_o ambassage_n he_o send_v also_o the_o abbot_n martinengo_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n to_o invite_v she_o and_o her_o bishop_n to_o the_o council_n be_v persuade_v so_o to_o do_v by_o the_o forename_a edward_n cerne_n who_o promise_v he_o that_o his_o nuncio_n shall_v be_v receive_v council_n the_o queen_n of_o england_n be_v invite_v to_o the_o council_n by_o one_o half_a of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o queen_n consent_n and_o although_o the_o pope_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n to_o send_v nuncij_fw-la into_o england_n and_o to_o prince_n elsewhere_o who_o do_v profess_v open_a separation_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n will_v be_v a_o disreputation_n to_o he_o yet_o he_o answer_v he_o will_v humble_v himself_o to_o heresy_n in_o regard_n whatsoever_o be_v do_v to_o gain_v soul_n to_o christ_n do_v beseem_v that_o sea_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n also_o he_o send_v canobius_fw-la into_o polonia_n with_o design_n to_o make_v he_o to_o go_v into_o moscovia_n to_o invite_v that_o prince_n and_o nation_n to_o the_o council_n though_o they_o have_v never_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n afterward_o he_o return_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n in_o consistory_n desire_v to_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o good_a life_n and_o opinion_n of_o diverse_a province_n fit_a to_o dispute_v and_o persuade_v the_o truth_n say_v he_o purpose_v to_o call_v many_o of_o they_o promise_v that_o after_o he_o have_v use_v all_o possible_a diligence_n to_o make_v all_o christian_n come_v thither_o and_o to_o unite_v they_o in_o religion_n though_o some_o or_o many_o refuse_v to_o come_v he_o will_v not_o forbear_v to_o proceed_v yet_o he_o be_v trouble_v because_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n unto_o who_o a_o great_a part_n of_o france_n be_v unite_v will_v deny_v to_o come_v or_o will_v demand_v exorbitant_a thing_n which_o he_o can_v not_o grant_v they_o and_o doubt_v they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o disturb_v the_o council_n with_o arm_n neither_o do_v he_o hope_v to_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o emperor_n against_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o small_a force_n he_o confess_v that_o the_o danger_n be_v great_a and_o the_o remedy_n small_a and_o be_v perplex_v and_o trouble_v in_o mind_n the_o bull_n of_o the_o council_n go_v through_o germany_n fall_v into_o protestant_n hand_n assemble_v at_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o salzemburg_n who_o do_v intimate_v a_o diet_n in_o namburg_n to_o begin_v the_o twenty_o of_o january_n vergerius_n write_v a_o book_n against_o this_o bull_n in_o which_o after_o a_o great_a invective_n bull._n vergerius_n write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o bull._n against_o the_o pomp_n luxury_n and_o ambition_n of_o the_o court_n he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n not_o to_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o servitude_n and_o oppression_n of_o poor_a soul_n that_o none_o be_v call_v but_o those_o who_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n to_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o not_o only_o all_o be_v exclude_v who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o man_n of_o the_o great_a understanding_n among_o themselves_o take_v away_o all_o liberty_n in_o which_o only_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o agreement_n at_o this_o time_n news_n come_v to_o rome_n that_o the_o french_a king_n have_v imprison_v navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v imprison_v and_o a_o guard_n be_v set_v upon_o y_o e_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n and_o set_v a_o guard_n upon_o the_o king_n of_o navare_fw-la which_o please_v the_o pope_n much_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o may_v whole_o disturb_v the_o nationall_n council_n and_o his_o hope_n be_v the_o strong_a that_o he_o shall_v receive_v no_o distaste_n because_o advice_n come_v that_o the_o king_n be_v very_o sick_a &_o in_o danger_n to_o die_v which_o hinder_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n in_o meaux_n and_o in_o the_o end_n there_o be_v great_a alteration_n for_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n die_v the_o five_o of_o december_n and_o charles_n the_o nine_o of_o the_o age_n of_o ten_o year_n succeed_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o minority_n succee_v the_o french_a king_n die_v &_o charles_n the_o 9_o succee_v the_o government_n fall_v principal_o upon_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n as_o first_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o queen_n in_o other_o adhered_a to_o he_o to_o maintain_v call_v continue_v confident_a 1560_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_n charles_n 9_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n &_o q._n mother_n govern_v france_n 〈…〉_o which_o make_v the_o protestant_n more_o confident_a the_o authority_n which_o she_o have_v take_v in_o the_o life_n time_n of_o her_o other_o 〈◊〉_d and_o navarre_n be_v content_a to_o participate_v with_o 〈…〉_o the_o better_a to_o maintain_v his_o own_o he_o do_v almost_o open_o favour_v the_o new_a religion_n and_o be_v whole_o govern_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o jasper_n coligni_n the_o admiral_n who_o do_v make_v profession_n of_o it_o so_o that_o the_o protestant_n be_v more_o confident_a to_o obtain_v liberty_n of_o religion_n as_o they_o desire_v they_o assemble_v almost_o public_o with_o much_o discontent_n and_o indignation_n of_o the_o people_n and_o danger_n of_o section_n hereupon_o the_o king_n mother_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o counsel_n resolve_v to_o hold_v the_o state_n in_o orleans_n and_o begin_v to_o do_v it_o the_o 13._o of_o december_n among_o other_o thing_n there_o propose_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n speak_v the_o state_n be_v hold_v in_o orlien_n where_o the_o chancellor_n begin_v to_o speak_v the_o chancellor_n say_v that_o religion_n be_v the_o most_o potent_a weapon_n overcom_v all_o affection_n and_o charity_n and_o be_v the_o forest_n bond_n of_o humane_a society_n that_o kingdom_n be_v more_o bound_v and_o more_o divide_v by_o religion_n then_o by_o the_o confine_n themselves_o that_o he_o that_o be_v move_v with_o religion_n contemn_v wife_n child_n and_o kindred_n if_o there_o be_v difference_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o same_o family_n the_o father_n agree_v not_o with_o his_o son_n nor_o the_o brother_n among_o themselves_o nor_o the_o husband_n with_o the_o wife_n to_o remedy_v these_o disorder_n there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o council_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v promise_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v shape_v out_o his_o own_o religion_n and_o bring_v in_o new_a rite_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o so_o trouble_v the_o public_a penny_n if_o the_o council_n fail_v by_o the_o pope_n default_n the_o king_n will_v make_v provision_n another_o way_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o
one_o shall_v amend_v himself_o because_o a_o good_a life_n be_v a_o vehement_a orator_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n hugonot_n and_o papist_n no_o less_o factious_a than_o those_o of_o the_o guelph_n and_o ghibiline_n be_v to_o be_v take_v away_o and_o arm_n to_o be_v take_v against_o those_o who_o cover_v their_o avarice_n ambition_n and_o desire_v of_o innovation_n with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o religion_n john_n angelo_n advocate_n in_o the_o parliament_n of_o bourdeaux_n speak_v for_o the_o three_o order_n john_n angelo_n speak_v for_o the_o three_o order_n order_n he_o speak_v much_o against_o the_o bad_a manner_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n note_v their_o ignorance_n avarice_n and_o luxury_n as_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o evil_n and_o do_v much_o discourse_n upon_o they_o in_o the_o end_n he_o demand_v that_o all_o may_v be_v redress_v by_o a_o sudden_a celebration_n of_o the_o council_n james_n earl_n of_o rochfort_n nobility_n james_n earl_n of_o rochfort_n speak_v for_o the_o nobility_n speak_v for_o the_o nobility_n who_o among_o other_o thing_n say_v that_o all_o the_o evil_n do_v arise_v from_o the_o large_a donation_n make_v by_o the_o king_n and_o other_o grandee_n to_o the_o church_n especial_o of_o jurisdiction_n a_o thing_n much_o inconvenient_a that_o he_o that_o ought_v to_o give_v himself_o whole_o to_o prayer_n and_o preach_v shall_v exercise_v power_n over_o the_o life_n and_o good_n of_o the_o king_n subject_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remedy_v these_o inconvenience_n and_o in_o the_o end_n he_o give_v a_o petition_n demand_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o nobility_n to_o have_v public_a church_n for_o their_o religion_n jacobus_n quintinus_n a_o burgundian_n speak_v for_o the_o clergy_n he_o say_v clergy_n jacobus_n quintinus_n speak_v for_o the_o clergy_n the_o state_n be_v assemble_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n not_o to_o amend_v the_o church_n which_o can_v err_v which_o be_v without_o blemish_n or_o wrinkle_n and_o will_v always_o remain_v without_o corruption_n though_o the_o discipline_n in_o some_o small_a part_n may_v need_v reformation_n therefore_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hearken_v unto_o who_o renew_v the_o sect_n long_o since_o bury_v demand_v church_n apart_o from_o the_o catholic_n but_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n and_o do_v not_o deserve_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v hear_v they_o who_o ought_v to_o force_v all_o his_o subject_n to_o believe_v and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o form_n prescribe_v by_o the_o 9_o 1561_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_z charles_n 9_o church_n that_o those_o who_o have_v forsake_v the_o kingdom_n for_o religion_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v suffer_v to_o return_v that_o those_o that_o be_v infect_v with_o here●i●_n aught_o to_o be_v proceed_v against_o capital_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n will_v easy_o be_v reform_v if_o the_o clergy_n be_v fry_v from_o paimene_n of_o t●●lls_n and_o election_n restore_v to_o the_o chapter_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1517_o wh●●●by_n the_o concordate_n the_o nomination_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n be_v give_v to_o the_o make_v the_o opinion_n of_o luther_n begin_v when_o the_o concordate_n be_v make_v king_n the_o heresy_n of_o luther_n begin_v who_o be_v follow_v by_o zainglius_fw-la and_o other_o in_o the_o end_n he_o demand_v that_o all_o immunity_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o clergy_n shall_v be_v confirm_v and_o all_o grievance_n remoove_v the_o king_n ordain_v that_o the_o prelate_n shall_v put_v themselves_o in_o order_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n which_o be_v intimate_v at_o trent_n command_v that_o all_o that_o king_n the_o ordination_n of_o the_o king_n be_v in_o prison_n for_o religion_n shall_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n their_o processes_n 〈◊〉_d the_o void_a their_o offence_n commit_v until_o that_o time_n pardon_v and_o their_o good_n restore_v he_o constitute_v a_o capital_a punishment_n for_o those_o who_o give_v offence_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n either_o in_o word_n or_o deed_n he_o admonish_v all_o to_o follow_v the_o rite_n use_v in_o the_o church_n without_o make_v any_o innovation_n the_o residue_n be_v defer_v until_o may_n next_o when_o the_o petition_n present_v by_o rotchfort_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o the_o pope_n understand_v of_o the_o death_n of_o king_n francis_n together_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o cardinal_n tornon_n that_o the_o queen_n be_v join_v with_o navarre_n be_v trouble_v in_o mind_n fear_v the_o reins_n will_v be_v more_o give_v to_o the_o protestant_n therefore_o he_o send_v lorenzo_n leutio_n bishop_n of_o eermo_n and_o cause_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o send_v io_n manriques_n to_o condele_n with_o the_o queen_n for_o the_o death_n of_o her_o son_n and_o to_o pray_v she_o to_o be_v careful_a of_o the_o religion_n in_o which_o ambassador_n the_o pope_n send_v a_o nuncto_n to_o the_o q._n mother_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n a_o ambassador_n she_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v to_o remember_v the_o great_a benefit_n receive_v from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o clement_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v schism_n to_o arise_v by_o too_o much_o licence_n nor_o to_o seek_v remedy_n elsewhere_o for_o the_o evil_n present_a and_o imminent_a but_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o which_o end_n the_o council_n be_v intimate_v that_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n she_o will_v take_v care_n that_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o swerve_v from_o true_a piety_n and_o that_o no_o prejudice_n shall_v be_v do_v to_o the_o council_n intimate_v the_o year_n 1560_o end_v thus_o leave_v some_o seed_n from_o whence_o great_a trouble_n do_v spring_v the_o next_o year_n manriques_n come_v into_o france_n and_o deliver_v 1561_o 1561_o his_o ambassage_n who_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o queen_n a_o pious_a and_o favourable_a answer_n concern_v religion_n and_o the_o council_n and_o speak_v again_o of_o the_o same_o subject_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v do_v continual_o exhort_v she_o to_o proceed_v with_o punishment_n against_o the_o hugonot_n add_v threat_n also_o to_o his_o exhortation_n navarre_n contrary_a to_o all_o the_o spanish_a design_n do_v oppose_v ambassador_n the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o pretension_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o navarre_n manriques_n do_v combine_v with_o the_o house_n of_o guise_n and_o other_o who_o have_v the_o same_o design_n to_o make_v he_o favour_v the_o catholic_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n to_o propose_v unto_o he_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n in_o france_n and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v divorce_v from_o his_o wife_n joan_n of_o alibert_n queen_n of_o navarre_n by_o inheritance_n and_o will_v retain_v right_a to_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n of_o which_o she_o shall_v be_v deprive_v for_o heresy_n by_o his_o holiness_n and_o will_v take_v to_o wife_n mary_n queen_n of_o scot_n by_o who_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n elizabeth_n be_v deprive_v by_o the_o pope●_n for_o effect_v all_o this_o the_o guisard_n promise_v he_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o the_o force_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n who_o for_o navarre_n will_v give_v he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o 〈◊〉_d nia_fw-la these_o thing_n they_o continual_o represent_v unto_o he_o in_o 〈◊〉_d ●ormes_n even_o until_o his_o death_n in_o germany_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n assemble_v 〈◊〉_d council_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d concern_v the_o council_n especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o council_n be_v ashamed_a that_o their_o religion_n shall_v be_v esteem_v a_o confusion_n for_o the_o variety_n of_o doctrine_n among_o the●_n 〈◊〉_d propose_n that_o they_o may_v first_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o then_o resolve_v whether_o they_o ought_v refuse_v refuse_v or_o accept_v the_o synod_n concern_v the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v that_o the_o difference_n be_v not_o essential_a and_o that_o the_o papist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d substantial_o differ_v dissent_v even_o in_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o religion_n they_o lay_v the_o augustan_n confession_n be_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o if_o they_o differ_v in_o any_o point_n not_o contain_v therein_o it_o will_v be_v of_o small_a 〈◊〉_d but_o there_o be_v diverse_a copy_n of_o that_o confession_n which_o differ_v in_o regard_n of_o diverse_a addition_n make_v in_o diverse_a of_o they_o some_o approve_v one_o and_o some_o another_o many_o thought_n they_o ought_v to_o take_v that_o only_a which_o be_v present_v to_o charles_n in_o the_o year_n 1530._o where_o unto_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pulatinate_n do_v not_o consent_n except_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o a_o proheme_n make_v unto_o it_o that_o the_o other_o edition_n do_v agree_v with_o it_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n answer_v they_o can_v
not_o stop_v the_o eye_n and_o ear_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o hear_v their_o difference_n and_o that_o if_o they_o will_v make_v show_n of_o union_n where_o they_o be_v at_o variance_n they_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o vanity_n and_o lie_v and_o after_o many_o contention_n they_o remain_v without_o agreement_n in_o that_o point_n for_o the_o council_n some_o thought_n fit_a to_o refuse_v it_o absolute_o and_o other_o be_v of_o opinion_n to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o make_v offer_n that_o they_o will_v go_v to_o a_o free_a and_o christian_a council_n and_o to_o propose_v the_o exception_n of_o the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o inconveniency_n of_o that_o place_n and_o other_o often_o time_n propose_v to_o show_v they_o do_v not_o refuse_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o lawful_a council_n and_o that_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hinder_v by_o they_o but_o by_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o coure_z of_o rome_n which_o will_v make_v the_o germane_a catholic_n more_o favourable_a 〈◊〉_d they_o and_o they_o conclude_v to_o make_v petition_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o this_o form_n the_o two_o nuncij_fw-la arrive_v in_o austria_n at_o the_o same_o time_n find_v the_o emperor_n own_o to_o which_o place_n y_z e_z pope_n two_o nuncij_fw-la be_v send_v by_o the_o emperor_n with_o three_o ambasdor_n of_o his_o own_o at_o vienna_n who_o give_v they_o counsel_n to_o go_v both_o immediate_o to_o n●umburg_n in_o saxenie_n where_o the_o protestant_n be_v assemble_v in_o a_o diet_n and_o to_o treat_v as_o modest_o with_o they_o as_o be_v possible_a take_v care_n not_o to_o exasperate_v or_o offend_v they_o for_o if_o they_o go_v to_o each_o of_o they_o into_o their_o own_o state_n they_o will_v be_v post_v from_o one_o to_o another_o and_o will_v never_o have_v any_o certain_a answer_n and_o when_o they_o have_v both_o perform_v this_o office_n joint_o they_o may_v divide_v themselves_o and_o god_n apart_o to_o who_o they_o be_v send_v he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o condition_n with_o which_o the_o protestant_n do_v former_o condescend_v to_o the_o council_n that_o if_o mention_n be_v make_v thereof_o again_o they_o may_v be_v prepare_v to_o reply_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n what_o they_o think_v fit_a the_o emperor_n send_v three_o ambassador_n of_o his_o own_o to_o go_v with_o they_o to_o the_o assembly_n and_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n do_v recommend_v they_o to_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n that_o they_o may_v go_v secure_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n have_v have_v audience_n at_o the_o diet_n exhort_v the_o prince_n to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n and_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o germany_n the_o prince_n after_o they_o have_v consult_v together_o thank_v caser_n and_o concern_v the_o council_n say_v they_o will_v not_o refuse_v it_o if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o beiudge_v if_o the_o bb._n be_v release_v of_o their_o oath_n make_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o the_o protestant_a theologi●es_n may_v have_v 〈◊〉_d but_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n admit_v no_o bishop_n to_o be_v in_o the_o council_n but_o such_o as_o be_v swear_v unto_o he_o against_o which_o they_o ambassdor_n the_o protestant_n answer_v to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ambassdor_n have_v always_o protest_v they_o can_v hardly_o agree_v unto_o it_o that_o they_o be_v will_v present_o to_o represent_v so_o much_o to_o the_o emperor_n with_o all_o respect_n defer_v their_o absolute_a answer_n until_o the_o prince_n then_o absent_a be_v inform_v afterward_o the_o pope_n nuncij_fw-la be_v bring_v in_o who_o have_v commend_v the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d and_o religion_n in_o reviue_v the_o council_n to_o extirpate_v 〈◊〉_d in_o regard_n there_o be_v as_o many_o religion_n and_o gospel_n as_o there_o be_v doctor_n say_v he_o have_v send_v t'invite_v they_o to_o help_v forward_o so_o laudable_a a_o enterprise_n promise_v that_o all_o shall_v be_v handle_v with_o christian_a charity_n and_o that_o their_o voice_n shall_v be_v free●_n they_o present_v also_o the_o pope_n brief_n write_v to_o each_o of_o they_o the_o next_o day_n all_o the_o brief_n seal_v as_o before_o be_v send_v back_o and_o the_o nuntij_fw-la call_v nuntij_fw-la and_o to_o the_o pope_n nuntij_fw-la to_o receive_v a_o answer_n which_o be_v to_o this_o effect_n that_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o reveal_v their_o pleasure_n concern_v the_o council_n to_o he_o who_o have_v no_o power_n either_o to_o call_v or_o hold_v it_o that_o they_o have_v deliver_v their_o mind_n and_o determination_n to_o the_o emperor_n their_o lord_n that_o to_o the_o nuncij_fw-la who_o be_v noble_o descend_v in_o a_o commonwealth_n which_o they_o love_v they_o offer_v all_o good_a office_n april_n the_o protestant_n do_v intimate_v another_o assembly_n to_o begin_v in_o april_n and_o will_v do_v more_o if_o they_o have_v not_o come_v from_o the_o pope_n thus_o they_o do_v end_v the_o assembly_n and_o do_v intimate_v another_o to_o begin_v in_o april_n to_o finish_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o unite_n themselves_o together_o the_o nuncio_n delphinus_n deliver_v his_o ambassage_n in_o diverse_a city_n as_o he_o return_v delphinus_n the_o negotiation_n of_o delphinus_n the_o senate_n of_o noremberg_n answer_v that_o they_o will_v not_o forsake_v the_o augustan_n confession_n not_o accept_v of_o the_o council_n as_o not_o have_v the_o condition_n require_v by_o the_o protestant_n the_o senate_n of_o argentine_n francfort_n ausburg_n and_o vlma_n answer_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n comendone_v part_v from_o the_o comendone_v of_o comendone_v diet_n go_v to_o lubec_n from_o whence_o he_o send_v to_o frederic_n king_n of_o denmark_n to_o demand_v his_o safe_a conduct_n to_o come_v to_o he_o to_o deliver_v to_o he_o the_o pope_n ambassage_n and_o invite_v he_o to_o favour_v the_o council_n he_o answer_v that_o neither_o christian_n his_o father_n nor_o himself_o have_v ever_o any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o he_o care_v not_o to_o receive_v any_o ambassage_n from_o he_o both_o the_o nuncij_fw-la have_v a_o favourable_a answer_n from_o the_o prelate_n prince_n and_o city_n catholic_n with_o promise_n of_o devotion_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o concern_v the_o council_n they_o say_v they_o be_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o consult_v together_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o lutheran_n jerolamus_fw-la martinengo_n send_v to_o martinengo_n of_o martinengo_n the_o queen_n of_o england_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n be_v in_o flanders_n receive_v commandment_n from_o she_o not_o to_o pass_v the_o sea_n and_o although_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o duke_n of_o alva_n do_v make_v earnest_a entreaty_n that_o he_o may_v be_v admit_v and_o hear_v commend_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o legation_n that_o be_v the_o union_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n yet_o the_o queen_n do_v persevere_v in_o her_o first_o resolution_n answer_v that_o she_o can_v not_o treat_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o authority_n be_v exclude_v out_o of_o england_n by_o consent_n of_o parliament_n canobius_fw-la when_o he_o have_v deliver_v his_o ambassage_n to_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n by_o who_o he_o be_v well_o receive_v can_v not_o go_v into_o moscovia_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n between_o that_o prince_n and_o the_o king_n but_o go_v into_o prussia_n he_o be_v answer_v by_o that_o duke_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n and_o can_v not_o consent_v to_o a_o popish_a council_n the_o swiss_n assemble_v in_o a_o diet_n at_o bada_fw-es hear_o the_o pope_n nuncio_n and_o receive_v the_o brief_a one_o of_o the_o burgomaster_n of_o zuric_n canobius_fw-la and_o of_o canobius_fw-la do_v kiss_v it_o the_o pope_n advertise_v hereof_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o tell_v it_o to_o all_o the_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o with_o much_o joy_n but_o have_v consult_v zuric_n the_o pope_n rejoice_v that_o his_o bull_n be_v kiss_v by_o a_o burgomaster_n of_o zuric_n of_o the_o business_n concern_v the_o council_n the_o catholic_n answer_v that_o they_o will_v send_v thither_o and_o the_o euangelique_n that_o they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o nuncij_fw-la in_o neumburg_n be_v publish_v in_o rome_n there_o be_v a_o whisper_n against_o the_o pope_n for_o send_v minister_n to_o the_o diet_n of_o the_o protestant_n wherein_o he_o excuse_v himself_o that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o his_o order_n but_o by_o the_o emperor_n to_o who_o direction_n he_o do_v defer_v the_o nuncij_fw-la for_o which_o he_o do_v not_o blame_v he_o in_o regard_n he_o do_v not_o care_n for_o nice_a point_n of_o honour_n but_o only_o for_o do_v of_o good_a the_o
emperor_n have_v consult_v council_n the_o emperor_n except_v against_o the_o bull_n of_o the_o council_n with_o his_o divine_n concern_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o council_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o as_o ferdinand_n he_o can_v total_o adhere_v to_o the_o will_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o be_v content_a with_o any_o form_n of_o the_o bull_n and_o endeavour_v that_o all_o germany_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o he_o but_o as_o emperor_n he_o can_v say_v nothing_o until_o he_o be_v inform_v what_o be_v do_v by_o the_o nuncij_fw-la and_o his_o ambassador_n who_o go_v to_o the_o diet_n of_o the_o protestant_n in_o neumburg_n he_o be_v almost_o secure_a that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o declare_v that_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o a_o continuation_n but_o a_o new_a indiction_n or_o that_o the_o point_n already_o decide_v may_v be_v review_v and_o handle_v again_o the_o bull_n will_v have_v be_v accept_v the_o french_a king_n write_v to_o his_o ambassador_n in_o rome_n the_o last_o of_o january_n king_n and_o so_o do_v the_o french_a king_n that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v reform_v in_o the_o bull_n before_o he_o can_v receive_v it_o for_o although_o the_o word_n indictio_fw-la be_v use_v in_o the_o title_n yet_o in_o the_o body_n of_o it_o there_o be_v word_n which_o do_v signify_v the_o remove_n of_o the_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n already_o begin_v which_o germany_n suspect_v will_v undoubted_o require_v a_o interpretation_n of_o they_o which_o will_v draw_v the_o council_n in_o length_n and_o not_o give_v the_o emperor_n satisfaction_n and_o they_o will_v cause_v so_o many_o division_n in_o christendom_n and_o so_o many_o difficulty_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o council_n in_o show_n only_o without_o fruit_n or_o profit_n that_o for_o his_o part_n he_o be_v please_v that_o trent_n shall_v be_v the_o place_n nor_o make_v any_o difference_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o new_a indiction_n or_o a_o continuation_n in_o regard_n his_o holiness_n be_v willing_a as_o he_o be_v tell_v by_o nicheto_o that_o the_o determination_n already_o make_v may_v be_v dispute_v and_o examine_v again_o wherein_o as_o the_o real_a performance_n will_v give_v satisfaction_n to_o all_o so_o to_o take_v away_o fear_v and_o secure_v every_o one_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v so_o much_o before_o hand_n take_v care_n to_o satisfy_v the_o emperor_n by_o all_o mean_n without_o who_o no_o good_a success_n of_o the_o council_n can_v be_v hope_v for_o he_o say_v that_o if_o all_o this_o be_v not_o perform_v he_o will_v as_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o brother_n be_v call_v a_o nationall_n council_n which_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o give_v order_n to_o his_o ambassador_n also_o to_o complain_v to_o his_o holiness_n that_o his_o brother_n have_v procure_v with_o such_o earnest_a entreaty_n the_o open_n of_o the_o council_n yet_o no_o honourable_a mention_n be_v particular_o make_v of_o he_o in_o the_o bull_n the_o reason_n whereof_o every_o one_o know_v to_o be_v because_o he_o will_v not_o name_v the_o french_a king_n immediate_o after_o the_o emperor_n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o respect_n the_o king_n to_o promote_v the_o business_n of_o religion_n write_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n and_o to_o be_v there_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o which_o letter_n he_o send_v a_o copy_n to_o rome_n the_o rope_n be_v advertise_v by_o his_o nuncio_n that_o the_o king_n speak_v against_o the_o answer_v to_o who_o the_o pope_n answer_v bull_n by_o instigation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o after_o he_o hear_v the_o ambassador_n proposition_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o marvel_v that_o the_o king_n who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o superior_a will_v subject_v himself_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o another_o prince_n &_o not_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o moderate_v whatsoever_o do_v concern_v religion_n say_v that_o his_o bull_n be_v approve_v by_o all_o other_o and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o reformation_n and_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v it_o shall_v stand_v as_o it_o do_v that_o for_o name_v the_o french_a king_n he_o have_v not_o think_v of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o cardinal_n to_o who_o the_o composition_n of_o it_o be_v commit_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o name_v the_o emperor_n and_o all_o king_n in_o general_a otherwise_o name_v one_o in_o particular_a it_o will_v have_v be_v necessary_a to_o have_v do_v the_o like_a in_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o himself_o take_v care_n only_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bull_n leave_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o the_o cardinal_n this_o answer_n do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o frenchman_n who_o think_v their_o preeminence_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o in_o general_a term_n in_o regard_n as_o well_o of_o their_o greatness_n as_o of_o their_o merit_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o the_o end_n the_o pope_n give_v they_o contentment_n say_v he_o can_v not_o have_v his_o eye_n upon_o all_o thing_n but_o will_v be_v careful_a not_o to_o commit_v any_o error_n hereafter_o yet_o he_o make_v no_o great_a account_n of_o that_o kingdom_n see_v that_o without_o any_o respect_n of_o his_o authority_n they_o intermedle_v in_o thing_n proper_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o in_o pardon_v heretic_n and_o order_v thing_n ecclesiastical_a though_o reserve_v france_n the_o pope_n do_v not_o esteem_n france_n to_o himself_o for_o the_o state_n assemble_v in_o orleans_n in_o january_n do_v ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v elect_v by_o the_o clergy_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o king_n twelve_o of_o the_o nobility_n and_o as_o many_o of_o the_o people_n that_o no_o money_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o rome_n for_o annat_n that_o all_o bishop_n and_o curate_n shall_v reside_v personal_o upon_o pain_n of_o lose_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o benefice_n that_o in_o every_o cathedral_n church_n a_o prebend_n shall_v be_v reserve_v for_o a_o reader_n in_o divinity_n and_o another_o for_o a_o schoolmaster_n that_o all_o abbat_n abbess_n prior_n and_o prioress_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n notwithstanding_o any_o exemption_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v exact_v for_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n for_o burial_n or_o other_o public_a function_n that_o prelate_n shall_v not_o use_v censure_n but_o for_o public_a fault_n and_o scandal_n that_o woman_n shall_v not_o make_v profession_n to_o be_v of_o any_o religious_a order_n before_o the_o age_n of_o twenty_o year_n nor_o man_n before_o the_o age_n of_o five_o and_o twenty_o until_o which_o time_n they_o may_v dispose_v of_o their_o good_n to_o who_o they_o please_v except_o to_o the_o monastery_n that_o the_o ecclesiastique_n shall_v not_o receive_v legacy_n or_o any_o thing_n leave_v unto_o they_o or_o give_v they_o by_o last_o will_n and_o other_o thing_n also_o be_v ordain_v for_o better_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o then_o publish_v yet_o the_o nuncio_n send_v they_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o that_o govern_v france_n think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o show_n only_o to_o those_o that_o require_v a_o reformation_n not_o care_v that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v execute_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o king_n divine_n in_o spain_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o bull_n because_o it_o do_v not_o plain_o say_v it_o be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n already_o begin_v yea_o they_o think_v though_o the_o affectation_n of_o ambiguity_n be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v plain_o a_o new_a intimation_n and_o some_o of_o they_o hold_v that_o bull._n the_o king_n of_o spain_n except_v against_o the_o bull._n it_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o a_o clear_a consequence_n that_o the_o determination_n make_v already_o in_o trent_n may_v be_v reexamined_a which_o they_o say_v be_v dangerous_a will_v embolden_v the_o protestant_n and_o may_v cause_v a_o new_a division_n among_o the_o catholic_n the_o king_n will_v not_o publish_v or_o receive_v the_o bull_n upon_o pretence_n that_o the_o word_n be_v ambiguous_a and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v express_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n and_o that_o the_o thing_n already_o determine_v may_v not_o be_v call_v into_o question_n but_o the_o hall_n and_o be_v angry_a with_o the_o ●ope_n for_o receive_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o k._n of_o navarre_n in_o the_o king_n hall_n true_a cause_n be_v for_o that_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n have_v send_v the_o bishop_n of_o cominge_n to_o tender_a his_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n
he_o receive_v he_o in_o the_o king_n hall_n and_o as_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n think_v it_o prejudicial_a to_o his_o possession_n of_o that_o kingdom_n to_o which_o he_o have_v no_o title_n but_o by_o the_o excommunication_n of_o julius_n the_o second_o and_o because_o he_o give_v audience_n to_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr car_n who_o come_v to_o entreat_v he_o in_o the_o same_o king_n name_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o kingdom_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o he_o or_o satisfaction_n give_v he_o and_o have_v promise_v his_o pain_n herein_o the_o pope_n send_v the_o bishop_n of_o terracina_n express_o into_o spain_n to_o justify_v and_o excuse_v what_o he_o spain_n for_o which_o two_o cause_n the_o pope_n send_v a_o nunci●_n into_o spain_n have_v do_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o to_o expound_v as_o it_o be_v by_o occasion_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o bull._n to_o those_o that_o be_v afraid_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o so_o great_a prince_n he_o answer_v that_o as_o a_o love_a father_n he_o have_v invite_v all_o but_o that_o he_o esteem_v the_o protestant_n as_o lose_v and_o that_o the_o catholic_n of_o germany_n can_v not_o adhere_v to_o the_o council_n without_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o other_o and_o raise_v a_o war_n and_o if_o any_o catholic_a prince_n will_v forsake_v he_o he_o will_v proceed_v by_o his_o own_o authority_n as_o do_v julius_n the_o three_o without_o the_o french_a king_n but_o he_o tell_v his_o inward_a friend_n that_o he_o account_v all_o these_o trouble_n to_o be_v indifferent_a in_o regard_n not_o know_v the_o issue_n of_o they_o he_o may_v as_o well_o hope_v for_o a_o good_a success_n as_o fear_v a_o bad_a in_o the_o mean_a space_n he_o see_v that_o he_o receive_v some_o benefit_n by_o this_o uncertain_a council_n because_o it_o serve_v he_o as_o a_o bridle_n for_o prince_n and_o prelate_n in_o attempt_v any_o novitie_n and_o for_o a_o colour_n to_o deny_v unpleasing_a stead_n the_o unccrtainty_n of_o y_fw-fr e_o council_n do_v stand_v the_o pope_n in_o some_o stead_n suit_n say_v that_o the_o council_n be_v open_v he_o ought_v to_o proceed_v wary_o and_o with_o respect_n and_o not_o to_o be_v prodigal_a in_o bestow_v grace_n and_o favour_n and_o when_o any_o great_a difficulty_n do_v arise_v he_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n only_o he_o be_v afraid_a that_o the_o bad_a affection_n of_o the_o protestant_n towards_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v cause_v some_o excursion_n into_o italy_n which_o ferrara_n a_o difference_n about_o precedence_n between_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n and_o of_o ferrara_n will_v be_v derive_v whole_o upon_o himself_o and_o he_o see_v a_o overture_n thereof_o by_o a_o difference_n of_o precedence_n between_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n and_o ferrara_n who_o descend_v to_o uncivil_a term_n cosmo_n duke_n of_o florence_n say_v he_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o florentine_a republic_n which_o be_v ever_o prefer_v before_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n alfonso_n duke_n of_o ferrara_n pretend_v that_o the_o dukedom_n have_v continue_v in_o the_o house_n of_o his_o progenitor_n for_o many_o succession_n whereas_o cosmo_n be_v the_o first_o duke_n of_o florence_n who_o precedency_n can_v not_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o right_n of_o the_o republic_n because_o it_o be_v no_o more_o in_o be_v this_o duke_n be_v favour_v by_o francis_n as_o cousin_n to_o henry_n the_o second_o and_o brother_n in_o law_n to_o those_o of_o the_o house_n of_o guise_n the_o other_o ground_v himself_o upon_o a_o sentence_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o in_o his_o favour_n alfonso_n make_v instance_n in_o germany_n that_o the_o emperor_n with_o the_o elector_n will_v be_v judge_n of_o it_o in_o a_o diet._n the_o pope_n think_v it_o dangerous_a that_o the_o diet_n of_o germany_n shall_v give_v sentence_n concern_v italy_n which_o do_v by_o consequence_n import_v a_o execution_n and_o danger_n of_o arm_n for_o remedy_v whereof_o he_o write_v to_o both_o the_o duke_n that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o give_v sentence_n in_o such_o cause_n command_v they_o both_o to_o show_v he_o their_o proof_n and_o to_o expect_v his_o determination_n and_o to_o be_v prepare_v for_o all_o event_n he_o resolve_v to_o fortify_v the_o castle_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o city_n leonina_n common_o call_v borgo_n and_o other_o place_n in_o his_o state_n as_o he_o think_v convenient_a and_o impose_v a_o tax_n of_o three_o julij_fw-la upon_o every_o measure_n of_o corn_n call_v a_o ruby_n throughout_o his_o whole_a territory_n and_o not_o to_o give_v cause_n of_o jealousy_n to_o prince_n he_o call_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n spain_n portugal_n and_o venice_n to_o who_o he_o impart_v his_o determination_n and_o his_o reason_n command_v they_o to_o advertise_v their_o prince_n of_o it_o and_o say_v that_o the_o subsidy_n lay_v upon_o his_o subject_n will_v be_v but_o small_a less_o than_o that_o which_o be_v impose_v by_o paul_n 4._o when_o he_o command_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o chair_n of_o saint_n peter_n because_o by_o his_o imposition_n the_o poor_a man_n pay_v but_o three_o julij_fw-la a_o year_n but_o by_o the_o feast_n of_o paul_n 4._o do_v lose_v five_o and_o that_o day_n work_n the_o time_n prefix_v to_o begin_v the_o council_n approach_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o council_n the_o pope_n appoint_v precedent_n for_o the_o council_n fail_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o he_o depute_a legate_n to_o preside_v hercules_n gonzaga_n cardinal_n of_o mantua_n a_o man_n eminent_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o house_n of_o his_o brother_n ferandus_n and_o of_o his_o own_o virtue_n he_o use_v the_o emperor_n to_o persuade_v he_o to_o accept_v and_o be_v confident_a of_o his_o worth_n and_o dexterity_n to_o he_o he_o join_v jacobus_n puteus_fw-la of_o nizza_n a_o excellent_a lawyer_n who_o be_v exercise_v a_o long_a time_n first_o in_o the_o rota_n and_o then_o in_o the_o signature_n say_v that_o he_o purpose_v to_o make_v three_o more_o and_o that_o if_o he_o can_v not_o find_v able_a man_n in_o the_o college_n he_o will_v create_v new_a cardinal_n divine_n and_o lawyer_n man_n of_o honesty_n for_o this_o employment_n and_o he_o call_v a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n to_o give_v order_n for_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o letter_n come_v very_o fit_o from_o the_o french_a king_n and_o in_o conformity_n of_o bull._n the_o french_a king_n accept_v the_o bull._n they_o his_o ambassador_n mounsiear_v of_o angolesme_fw-fr do_v declare_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o be_v content_a with_o the_o council_n upon_o any_o term_n be_v desirous_a to_o see_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o and_o that_o fruit_n which_o all_o christendom_n do_v require_v and_o he_o send_v mounsieur_fw-fr de_fw-fr ramboullet_n express_o unto_o he_o to_o make_v the_o same_o request_n and_o to_o represent_v unto_o he_o the_o necessity_n of_o france_n and_o to_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o instance_n make_v unto_o he_o herein_o by_o the_o state_n assemble_v in_o orleans_n signify_v unto_o he_o that_o if_o this_o remedy_n be_v not_o quick_o apply_v he_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o receive_v a_o medicine_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n by_o a_o assembly_n of_o his_o prelate_n in_o regard_n there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o compose_v the_o difference_n of_o religion_n but_o by_o a_o free_a general_n council_n or_o in_o defect_n thereof_o by_o a_o nationall_n the_o pope_n answer_v that_o none_o do_v desire_v the_o council_n more_o than_o himself_o the_o delay_n whereof_o proceed_v not_o from_o he_o but_o from_o the_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o prince_n for_o who_o satisfaction_n he_o have_v give_v such_o a_o form_n to_o the_o bull_n as_o seem_v most_o fit_a to_o content_v they_o all_o they_o change_v their_o opinion_n in_o france_n because_o be_v in_o as_o bad_a a_o state_n as_o may_v be_v think_v that_o every_o mutation_n make_v elsewhere_o will_v better_v their_o condition_n viterbo_n write_v out_o of_o spain_n that_o the_o king_n do_v approve_v his_o proposition_n and_o that_o after_o some_o consultation_n with_o his_o prelate_n be_v final_o resolve_v to_o accept_v the_o bull_n without_o make_v any_o difficulty_n and_o to_o send_v his_o prelate_n as_o spain_n and_o so_o do_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n soon_o as_o the_o season_n be_v fit_a for_o travel_v and_o a_o honourable_a ambassage_n to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n he_o send_v advice_n also_o that_o the_o prelate_n of_o portugal_n be_v already_o part_v from_o their_o house_n and_o that_o the_o king_n will_v send_v a_o ambassador_n but_o that_o he_o have_v perceive_v that_o
some_o of_o those_o prelate_n have_v a_o purpose_n divine_n the_o pope_n be_v trouble_v with_o the_o design_n of_o the_o portugal_n divine_n that_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v define_v in_o the_o synod_n which_o point_n they_o have_v study_v and_o cause_v many_o divine_n to_o do_v the_o like_a the_o pope_n be_v trouble_v with_o this_o advice_n and_o consider_v what_o he_o may_v look_v for_o when_o the_o prelate_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o council_n and_o do_v treat_v altogether_o who_o have_v such_o high_a thought_n before_o they_o part_v from_o home_n and_o fear_v that_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsel_n have_v a_o finger_n in_o it_o yet_o as_o a_o wise_a prince_n he_o consider_v that_o when_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v not_o that_o novitie_n only_o will_v be_v propose_v but_o many_o more_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o other_o as_o well_o as_o of_o himself_o say_v that_o every_o weight_n have_v his_o counterpoise_v and_o that_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v attempt_v not_o one_o in_o a_o thousand_o do_v take_v effect_n he_o be_v more_o attentive_a to_o the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o frenchman_n as_o be_v more_o imminent_a and_o of_o person_n who_o be_v not_o flegmaticall_a in_o resolve_v as_o the_o spaniard_n be_v therefore_o he_o impart_v to_o the_o ambassador_n every_o advice_n that_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o in_o diverse_a conference_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o think_v of_o nationall_n counsel_n assembly_n or_o colloquy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n because_o he_o can_v not_o but_o esteem_v they_o all_o for_o schismatical_a that_o he_o pray_v the_o king_n not_o to_o use_v those_o remedy_n which_o will_v certain_o reduce_v france_n not_o only_o into_o a_o worse_a condition_n but_o into_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o that_o the_o difficulty_n of_o spain_n be_v remoove_v the_o council_n shall_v certain_o be_v celebrate_v because_o those_o which_o do_v continue_v in_o germany_n be_v not_o considerable_a that_o the_o catholic_a prince_n and_o bishop_n will_v consent_v and_o perhaps_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n also_o as_o he_o have_v make_v show_n by_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o other_o assemble_v in_o neumburg_n that_o he_o hope_v the_o emperor_n will_v assist_v personal_o if_o there_o be_v need_n as_o himself_o do_v promise_v to_o do_v if_o he_o think_v it_o fit_a wherein_o he_o will_v not_o subject_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o but_o himself_o easter_n draw_v near_o which_o time_n be_v appoint_v to_o begin_v the_o council_n place_n one_o of_o the_o precedent_n fall_v sick_a and_o another_o be_v put_v in_o his_o place_n and_o cardinal_n puteus_fw-la be_v very_o sick_a he_o put_v in_o his_o room_n friar_n jerolamus_n cardinal_n seripando_n a_o divine_a of_o much_o fame_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o depart_v present_o and_o to_o pass_v by_o mantua_n take_v with_o he_o the_o other_o legate_n and_o to_o be_v at_o trent_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v notwithstanding_o which_o commandment_n they_o come_v not_o thither_o until_o the_o three_o feast_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o find_v there_o nine_o bishop_n who_o be_v arrive_v before_o they_o the_o pope_n be_v diligent_a to_o make_v the_o italian_a bishop_n put_v themselves_o in_o order_n and_o therefore_o write_v effect_v all_o error_n to_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n and_o to_o his_o nuncio_n there_o and_o cause_v his_o minister_n to_o persuade_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o state_n of_o milan_n to_o be_v ready_a for_o their_o journey_n to_o the_o council_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v he_o desire_v also_o the_o state_n of_o venice_n to_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o their_o territory_n in_o italy_n of_o candia_n dalmatia_n and_o cyprus_n with_o all_o possible_a expedition_n and_o to_o create_v ambassador_n to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n in_o the_o name_n of_o that_o republic_n the_o italian_a prelate_n be_v not_o easy_o move_v because_o they_o know_v the_o beginning_n can_v not_o be_v before_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o they_o the_o italian_a prelate_n be_v not_o so_o hasty_a to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n as_o y_z e_z pope_n will_v have_v have_v they_o emperor_n do_v come_v which_o be_v still_o prolong_v because_o the_o spaniard_n and_o frenchman_n be_v expect_v before_o who_o arrival_n in_o italy_n they_o think_v it_o superfluous_a to_o go_v to_o trent_n and_o many_o of_o they_o especial_o the_o courtier_n can_v not_o believe_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v counterfeit_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o be_v assure_v he_o can_v not_o avoid_v the_o council_n he_o do_v desire_v to_o see_v it_o quick_o he_o say_v he_o know_v what_o inconvenience_n the_o prolongation_n do_v cause_n but_o know_v not_o what_o the_o celebration_n may_v do_v and_o think_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o own_o person_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n may_v do_v he_o more_o hurt_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o expectation_n than_o they_o can_v do_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o and_o be_v of_o a_o resolute_a nature_n he_o use_v the_o proverb_n it_o be_v better_a to_o prove_v the_o evil_a once_o then_o always_o to_o fear_v it_o while_o these_o delay_n be_v use_v the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n make_v a_o composition_n montsenis_fw-la the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n make_v 〈◊〉_d composition_n with_o the_o waldense_n of_o montsenis_fw-la with_o the_o waldense_n of_o the_o valley_n of_o montsenis_fw-la for_o have_v make_v more_o than_o a_o year_n trial_n to_o reduce_v they_o by_o punishment_n and_o after_o they_o stand_v upon_o their_o guard_n as_o have_v be_v say_v maintain_v soldier_n against_o they_o for_o which_o the_o pope_n do_v assist_v he_o with_o money_n howsoever_o they_o proceed_v rather_o with_o skirmish_n than_o any_o set_a war_n because_o of_o the_o craggednesse_n of_o the_o country_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o they_o come_v to_o a_o formal_a battle_n in_o which_o the_o duke_n have_v a_o great_a overthrow_n lose_v seven_o thousand_o man_n and_o slay_v but_o fourteen_o of_o the_o enemy_n and_o although_o he_o do_v often_o repair_v his_o army_n yet_o he_o have_v always_o the_o worse_a overthrow_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o great_a overthrow_n therefore_o consider_v he_o do_v nothing_o but_o make_v his_o rebel_n more_o warlike_a consume_v his_o own_o country_n and_o spend_v his_o money_n he_o resolve_v to_o receive_v they_o into_o favour_n and_o make_v a_o agreement_n with_o they_o the_o five_o of_o june_n in_o which_o he_o pardon_v all_o fault_n past_a give_v they_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n assign_v they_o certain_a place_n where_o they_o may_v make_v their_o congregation_n in_o other_o place_n give_v they_o leave_v to_o comfort_v the_o sick_a and_o do_v other_o duty_n of_o religion_n but_o not_o to_o preach_v give_v leave_n to_o those_o that_o be_v flee_v to_o return_v again_o and_o restitution_n of_o good_n to_o those_o that_o be_v banish_v it_o be_v agree_v also_o that_o the_o duke_n may_v send_v away_o which_o of_o their_o pastor_n he_o please_v and_o that_o they_o may_v provide_v themselves_o of_o other_o that_o the_o roman_a religion_n may_v be_v exercise_v in_o all_o place_n but_o no_o man_n enforce_v to_o profess_v it_o the_o pope_n be_v much_o distaste_v that_o a_o italian_a prince_n assist_v by_o he_o and_o not_o so_o potent_a but_o that_o pope_n which_o give_v distaste_n to_o the_o pope_n he_o may_v still_o have_v need_n of_o he_o shall_v permit_v heretic_n to_o live_v free_o in_o his_o state_n and_o the_o example_n do_v trouble_v he_o above_o all_o because_o it_o will_v be_v allege_v to_o he_o by_o great_a prince_n when_o they_o will_v permit_v another_o religion_n he_o make_v a_o bitter_a complaint_n hereof_o in_o the_o consistory_n compare_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n with_o that_o duke_n who_o have_v at_o the_o same_o time_n discover_v three_o thousand_o lutheran_n who_o go_v out_o of_o cosenza_n and_o retire_v themselves_o to_o the_o mountain_n to_o live_v according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n do_v hang_v some_o burn_v other_o and_o put_v the_o rest_n into_o the_o galley_n and_o he_o exhort_v all_o the_o cardinal_n to_o think_v of_o a_o remedy_n but_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o oppress_v a_o few_o disarm_v person_n far_o from_o help_n and_o over_o come_v a_o great_a number_n of_o arm_a man_n in_o a_o place_n advantageous_a for_o they_o with_o potent_a succour_n at_o their_o shoulder_n the_o duke_n send_v to_o iustific_a his_o cause_n and_o the_o pope_n not_o able_a to_o answer_v his_o reason_n be_v pacify_v in_o france_n though_o the_o queen_n and_o prelate_n do_v desire_v to_o satisfy_v the_o pope_n in_o refer_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o council_n yet_o a_o congregation_n of_o the_o france_n who_o be_v pacify_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n be_v offend_v with_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o prelate_n
in_o france_n prelate_n be_v put_v in_o order_n in_o which_o howsoever_o the_o ambassador_n assure_v the_o pope_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o doctrine_n nor_o any_o thing_n preludiciall_a to_o his_o authority_n but_o only_o a_o course_n set_v down_o how_o to_o pay_v the_o king_n debt_n to_o provide_v against_o some_o abuse_n and_o to_o consult_v what_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o general_a council_n yet_o his_o holiness_n be_v not_o satisfy_v yea_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o they_o think_v that_o to_o provide_v against_o abuse_n be_v to_o hinder_v the_o profit_n of_o the_o court_n and_o that_o to_o consult_v of_o the_o council_n be_v to_o join_v with_o the_o spaniard_n whereof_o he_o have_v some_o intelligence_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o council_n even_o over_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o dissension_n between_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n spread_v also_o over_o all_o the_o province_n because_o every_o one_o seek_v to_o increase_v his_o faction_n there_o be_v a_o great_a liberty_n of_o speak_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n be_v plain_o discover_v and_o protect_v by_o the_o great_a about_o the_o king_n with_o much_o indignation_n of_o the_o catholic_n whereupon_o there_o be_v contention_n and_o discord_n throughout_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n call_v one_o another_o in_o scorn_n papist_n and_o hugonot_n the_o preacher_n make_v the_o people_n tumultuous_a and_o every_o one_o have_v diverse_a end_n he_o plain_o see_v that_o if_o the_o catholic_a party_n have_v not_o all_o the_o same_o aim_n some_o great_a inconvenience_n will_v arise_v for_o prevent_v whereof_o and_o to_o cross_v those_o design_n he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o have_v a_o minister_n there_o a_o man_n of_o authority_n and_o not_o a_o french_a man_n who_o will_v have_v more_o interest_n in_o the_o kingdom_n then_o in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o resolve_v to_o send_v a_o legatethither_o and_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o all_o the_o cardinal_n he_o make_v choice_n ferrara_n into_o which_o kingdom_n he_o send_v for_o legate_n the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n of_o ferrara_n in_o who_o all_o necessary_a quality_n do_v concur_v singular_a wisdom_n dexterity_n in_o negotiation_n nobility_n of_o birth_n be_v ally_v to_o the_o royal_a house_n of_o france_n brother_n in_o law_n to_o the_o king_n great_a aunt_n daughter_n of_o lewis_n the_o 12_o and_o so_o near_o a_o cousin_n to_o those_o of_o guise_n the_o duke_n wife_n be_v the_o cardinal_n niece_n that_o they_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o favour_v he_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o nearness_n in_o blood_n he_o give_v he_o four_o particular_a commission_n to_o favour_v the_o catholic_n and_o oppose_v the_o protestant_n to_o divert_v the_o nationall_n synod_n and_o commission_n and_o give_v he_o four_o commission_n assembly_n of_o the_o prelate_n to_o solicit_v the_o go_n of_o the_o prelate_n to_o the_o council_n and_o to_o cause_v a_o abrogation_n of_o the_o constitution_n make_v in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a while_o the_o legate_n be_v prepare_v to_o go_v there_o fall_v our_o a_o accident_n which_o make_v the_o king_n near_a friend_n fear_v the_o catholic_n as_o much_o as_o the_o protestant_n for_o the_o fourteen_o of_o july_n arthurus_n defiderius_fw-la be_v apprehend_v spain_n a_o supplication_n send_v out_o of_o france_n into_o spain_n near_o to_o orleans_n who_o be_v send_v into_o spain_n with_o a_o supplication_n write_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n in_o which_o they_o demand_v the_o assistance_n of_o that_o king_n against_o the_o protestant_n because_o they_o can_v not_o be_v suppress_v by_o a_o boy_n and_o a_o woman_n with_o other_o more_o secret_a instruction_n in_o cipher_n to_o be_v impart_v to_o his_o majesty_n this_o man_n be_v imprison_v and_o interrogated_a of_o the_o confederate_n discover_v some_o who_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o make_v know_v for_o which_o cause_n they_o resolve_v to_o proceed_v no_o further_o but_o condemn_v he_o to_o make_v honourable_a satisfaction_n to_o tear_v the_o supplication_n and_o to_o be_v perpetual_a prisoner_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o carthusian_n but_o many_o of_o his_o confession_n be_v divulge_v the_o king_n counsel_n think_v fit_a to_o give_v the_o other_o party_n some_o satisfaction_n whereupon_o the_o king_n do_v prohibit_v the_o name_n of_o hugonote_n and_o papist_n ordain_v that_o no_o man_n under_o pretence_n of_o discover_v the_o congregation_n for_o religion_n which_o be_v forbid_v shall_v enter_v with_o protestant_n the_o king_n make_v a_o ocdination_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o protestant_n many_o or_o few_o into_o another_o man_n house_n that_o those_o who_o be_v in_o prison_n for_o religion_n shall_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o that_o those_o which_o flee_v since_o the_o time_n of_o francis_n the_o first_o might_n return_n and_o repossess_v their_o good_n in_o case_n they_o will_v live_v like_o catholic_n or_o if_o they_o will_v not_o may_v sell_v they_o and_o go_v to_o another_o place_n the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n do_v oppose_v and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o grant_n of_o liberty_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v never_o know_v in_o france_n that_o the_o return_n of_o the_o fugitive_n will_v cause_v great_a trouble_n and_o that_o the_o liberty_n to_o sell_v their_o good_n and_o go_v to_o another_o place_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o do_v not_o give_v leave_n to_o carry_v foorthany_n great_a quantity_n of_o money_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o opposition_n the_o edict_n be_v execute_v so_o that_o the_o protestant_n be_v increase_v in_o number_n and_o make_v more_o and_o great_a assembly_n than_o they_o be_v wont_a the_o king_n with_o the_o queen_n and_o prince_n go_v into_o the_o parliament_n to_o provide_v a_o remedy_n by_o the_o mature_a counsel_n of_o man_n skilful_a in_o matter_n of_o state_n and_o justice_n the_o chancellor_n say_v they_o be_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o religion_n but_o of_o make_v provision_n against_o daily_a tumult_n which_o do_v arise_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o it_o lest_o be_v make_v licontious_a by_o raise_v of_o stir_n they_o may_v lay_v aside_o all_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n there_o be_v three_o opinion_n 1._o to_o suspend_v all_o punishment_n against_o the_o protestant_n until_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o council_n 2._o that_o they_o shall_v be_v capital_o proceed_v against_o 3._o that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o eclesiasticall_a court_n forbid_v their_o congregation_n either_o public_a or_o private_a and_o liberty_n to_o preach_v or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o after_o the_o roman_a fashion_n in_o conclusion_n they_o take_v a_o middle_a course_n and_o make_v a_o edict_n which_o be_v call_v the_o edict_n of_o july_n that_o all_o shall_v abstain_v from_o do_v injury_n and_o live_v in_o peace_n july_n the_o edict_n of_o july_n that_o the_o preacher_n shall_v not_o raise_v tumult_n upon_o pain_n of_o death_n that_o none_o shall_v preach_v or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o according_a to_o the_o roman_a rite_n that_o the_o ecclesiastique_n shall_v be_v judge_n of_o heresy_n that_o if_o the_o person_n guilty_a be_v deliver_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n no_o great_a punishment_n shall_v be_v inflict_v then_o banishment_n and_o this_o to_o continue_v till_o a_o general_n or_o national_a council_n do_v determine_v otherwise_o that_o all_o those_o who_o have_v move_v any_o tumult_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v pardon_v live_v hereafter_o in_o peace_n and_o like_o catholic_n afterward_o treat_v how_o to_o accommodate_v the_o controversy_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v meet_v in_o poisi_n the_o ten_o poisi_n a_o colloquy_n be_v ordain_v at_o poisi_n of_o august_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_a minister_n shall_v have_v a_o safe_a conduct_n to_o come_v thither_o this_o be_v contradict_v by_o many_o of_o the_o catholic_n who_o think_v it_o strange_a dishonourable_a and_o dangerous_a to_o put_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o predecessor_n receive_v until_o that_o time_n to_o compromise_v and_o in_o hazard_n heresique_n in_o which_o the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n undertake_v to_o confute_v the_o heresique_n but_o they_o yield_v at_o the_o last_o because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n promise_v large_o that_o he_o will_v confute_v the_o heretic_n and_o take_v the_o burden_n upon_o himself_o wherein_o he_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o queen_n who_o know_v his_o desire_n to_o make_v ostentation_n of_o his_o wit_n be_v willing_a to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n the_o pope_n have_v news_n at_o once_o of_o these_o two_o edict_n in_o which_o he_o find_v some_o thing_n to_o commend_v and_o something_o to_o blame_v he_o commend_v the_o parliament_n for_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n and_o blame_v it_o because_o they_o have_v order_v it_o contrary_n
to_o the_o decretal_n not_o to_o proceed_v to_o any_o great_a censure_v then_o banishment_n his_o conclusion_n be_v that_o when_o the_o malady_n be_v great_a than_o the_o remedy_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v make_v light_a by_o patience_n but_o the_o imminent_a danger_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o prelate_n especial_o together_o with_o the_o protestant_n he_o think_v be_v intolerable_a and_o say_v he_o will_v do_v the_o best_a he_o can_v to_o hinder_v it_o wherein_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v yet_o he_o be_v without_o fault_n therefore_o he_o treat_v effectual_o with_o the_o ambassador_n and_o with_o the_o king_n by_o his_o nuncio_n that_o see_v the_o assembly_n can_v not_o be_v omit_v yet_o at_o the_o least_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n may_v be_v expect_v that_o be_v make_v in_o presence_n of_o a_o apostolical_a legate_n with_o absolute_a authority_n it_o may_v be_v lawful_a he_o write_v also_o to_o the_o prelate_n that_o their_o power_n do_v not_o extend_v so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v decree_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n or_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o that_o if_o they_o go_v beyond_o their_o bound_n he_o will_v not_o only_o make_v all_o void_a but_o proceed_v against_o they_o with_o all_o severity_n neither_o the_o nuncio_n nor_o the_o ambassador_n can_v prevail_v in_o regard_n that_o not_o only_o the_o pope_n adversary_n do_v oppose_v but_o even_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n himself_o with_o his_o adherent_n and_o it_o be_v tell_v the_o nuncio_n in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v rest_v secure_a because_o nothing_o shall_v be_v resolve_v on_o but_o by_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o cardinal_n but_o for_o all_o this_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n do_v precipitate_v and_o in_o rome_n cardinal_n the_o council_n of_o the_o french_a king_n determine_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n ought_v to_o precede_v the_o cardinal_n it_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o great_a fall_n that_o there_o be_v a_o controversy_n for_o precedency_n between_o the_o cardinal_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n continue_v in_o 〈…〉_o outoise_n the_o king_n counsel_n do_v determine_v it_o against_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o cardinal_n chastillon_n and_o of_o armignac_n do_v yield_v though_o tornon_n lorraine_n and_o guise_n depart_v disdain_v and_o murmur_v at_o their_o colleague_n and_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o three_o order_n who_o speak_v against_o the_o clergy_n be_v hear_v with_o applause_n object_v to_o they_o ignorance_n and_o luxury_n demand_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o the_o revenue_n and_o a_o nationall_n council_n hold_v wherein_o the_o king_n or_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n shall_v preside_v and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n those_o who_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o romish_a ceremony_n may_v assemble_v and_o preach_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o public_a minister_n of_o the_o king_n that_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v against_o he_o they_o treat_v also_o of_o apply_v to_o the_o public_a a_o part_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n against_o that_o order_n and_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o do_v favour_v the_o protestant_n do_v still_o increase_v the_o clergy_n to_o free_v themselves_o be_v force_v to_o promise_v to_o pay_v the_o king_n four_o ten_o yearly_a for_o six_o year_n and_o so_o the_o humour_n stir_v against_o they_o be_v quiet_v and_o mother_n the_o pope_n be_v discontent_v with_o a_o letter_n send_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o queen_n mother_n which_o be_v the_o great_a precipice_n the_o queen_n write_v a_o long_a letter_n to_o the_o pope_n date_v the_o four_o of_o august_n show_v the_o imminent_a danger_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o exhort_v he_o to_o use_v some_o remedy_n she_o say_v there_o be_v so_o many_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o reduce_v they_o either_o by_o law_n or_o force_n that_o many_o of_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v draw_v other_o by_o their_o example_n that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o they_o who_o deny_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o six_o counsel_n many_o do_v advise_v to_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o this_o do_v not_o please_v and_o that_o it_o seem_v better_a to_o expect_v a_o general_n council_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o urgent_a necessity_n and_o danger_n of_o delay_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o usesome_a particular_a remedy_n by_o make_v colloquy_n of_o both_o party_n by_o admonish_v they_o to_o abstain_v from_o injury_n contention_n and_o offensive_a word_n by_o clear_n the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o be_v not_o alien_v as_o yet_o take_v from_o the_o place_n of_o adoration_n the_o image_n prohibit_v by_o god_n and_o condemn_v by_o s._n gregory_n by_o remove_v from_o baptism_n spittle_n and_o exorcism_n and_o other_o thing_n not_o institute_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o restore_v the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o communion_n and_o prayer_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n that_o the_o first_o sunday_n in_o every_o month_n or_o more_o often_o the_o curate_n shall_v call_v those_o who_o will_v communicate_v and_o sing_v psalm_n in_o the_o vulgar_a shall_v in_o the_o same_o also_o pray_v for_o the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n for_o the_o salubrity_n of_o the_o air_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n then_o expound_v the_o place_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o of_o s._n paul_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n they_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o communion_n that_o the_o feast_n of_o corpus_n christi_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o because_o it_o be_v institute_v only_o for_o pomp_n that_o if_o the_o latin_a tongue_n must_v be_v use_v in_o prayer_n yet_o the_o vulgar_a shall_v be_v add_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o all_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n shall_v not_o be_v diminish_v nor_o the_o doctrine_n change_v in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o take_v away_o the_o ministry_n because_o the_o minister_n have_v err_v it_o be_v think_v that_o she_o write_v these_o thing_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o john_n monluc_n bishop_n of_o valence_n with_o too_o much_o french_a liberty_n and_o they_o trouble_v the_o pope_n very_o much_o consider_v the_o time_n full_a of_o suspicion_n when_o a_o nationall_n council_n be_v speak_v of_o and_o a_o colloquy_n intimate_v in_o poisi_n have_v well_o consider_v all_o he_o resolve_v to_o dissemble_v and_o not_o to_o answer_v but_o only_o that_o the_o council_n draw_v near_o whatsoever_o be_v think_v necessary_a may_v be_v there_o propose_v with_o assure_a hope_n that_o no_o resolution_n shall_v be_v make_v but_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n these_o occurrence_n do_v confirm_v the_o pope_n in_o his_o opinion_n that_o the_o council_n be_v profitable_a both_o for_o himself_o and_o the_o court_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o celebrate_v it_o for_o his_o defence_n against_o the_o preparation_n which_o be_v and_o may_v be_v make_v and_o he_o show_v token_n of_o joy_n for_o the_o letter_n which_o come_v unto_o he_o the_o 24_o of_o august_n from_o the_o emperor_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o emperor_n but_o be_v comfort_v by_o another_o receive_v from_o the_o emperor_n do_v absolute_o consent_v unto_o the_o council_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o declare_v himself_o until_o then_o that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o win_v the_o prince_n of_o germany_n but_o now_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o more_o he_o pray_v he_o to_o continue_v his_o endeavour_n in_o hasten_v the_o celebration_n have_v call_v together_o all_o the_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n and_o most_o of_o the_o cardinal_n so_o that_o it_o be_v almost_o a_o consistory_n he_o show_v the_o letter_n to_o they_o all_o say_v it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v write_v in_o letter_n of_o gold_n that_o the_o council_n will_v be_v most_o profitable_a that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v defer_v that_o it_o will_v be_v souniversall_a that_o the_o city_n of_o trent_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o receive_v it_o and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o think_v of_o translate_n it_o to_o a_o place_n more_o large_a and_o fertile_a his_o discourse_n be_v approve_v by_o all_o that_o stand_v by_o though_o some_o think_v it_o dangerous_a to_o name_v the_o translation_n in_o the_o beginning_n in_o regard_n that_o every_o little_a suspicion_n may_v either_o hinder_v or_o delay_v the_o council_n other_o believe_v that_o this_o will_v not_o displease_v the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o cast_v forth_o that_o word_n to_o open_v a_o gate_n where_o the_o difficulty_n may_v enter_v it_o be_v not_o only_o resolve_v but_o general_o know_v that_o none_o
of_o the_o dutch_a prelate_n will_v come_v to_o trent_n and_o a_o doubt_n make_v also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o colloquy_n institute_v that_o the_o frenchman_n will_v treat_v only_o among_o themselves_o and_o that_o the_o council_n will_v consist_v of_o noen_n but_o italian_n except_o some_o few_o spaniard_n the_o italian_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o a_o few_o of_o they_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n so_o that_o many_o of_o they_o use_v mean_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v except_v who_o tell_v they_o plain_o that_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o the_o vltramontans_n will_v come_v pope_n the_o italian_n desire_v to_o be_v excuse_v from_o go_v to_o the_o council_n but_o can_v obtain_v leave_n of_o the_o pope_n full_a of_o hope_n to_o subject_v the_o popedom_n to_o the_o council_n which_o be_v the_o common_a interest_n of_o italy_n whereby_o it_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o nation_n they_o ought_v to_o go_v all_o thither_o for_o the_o public_a defence_n that_o he_o will_v not_o exempt_v any_o but_o rather_o take_v all_o hope_n from_o they_o say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v assure_v thereof_o see_v how_o diligent_a he_o be_v in_o send_v the_o legate_n thither_o for_o beside_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n and_o scripando_n he_o have_v send_v stanislaus_n osius_n cardinal_n of_o varmia_n the_o next_o day_n have_v publish_v the_o emperor_n letter_n he_o call_v a_o general_a congregation_n of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n though_o it_o be_v sunday_n he_o treat_v of_o many_o particular_n concern_v the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o council_n and_o promise_v to_o assist_v the_o poor_a prelate_n with_o money_n but_o upon_o condition_n they_o shall_v go_v thither_o and_o allow_v they_o but_o eight_o day_n to_o begin_v their_o journey_n he_o show_v how_o necessary_a the_o council_n be_v in_o regard_n religion_n be_v banish_v or_o endanger_v in_o some_o place_n every_o day_n and_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n for_o in_o scotland_n in_o a_o assembly_n of_o all_o the_o nobility_n of_o scotland_n the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o scotland_n the_o kingdom_n it_o be_v constitute_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o exercise_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n in_o august_n the_o prelate_n do_v assemble_v in_o poist_a where_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n without_o make_v any_o conclusion_n afterward_o the_o protestant_a minister_n be_v come_v in_o number_n fourteen_o who_o be_v call_v and_o secure_v by_o a_o safe_a conduct_n among_o who_o peter_n martyr_n a_o florentine_a who_o come_v from_o zuric_n and_o theodore_n beza_n who_o come_v from_o geneva_n be_v the_o chief_a they_o give_v a_o petition_n to_o the_o king_n which_o have_v four_o part_n 1._o that_o france_n the_o colloquy_n of_o poisi_n in_o france_n the_o bishop_n may_v not_o be_v judge_n in_o that_o business_n 2._o that_o the_o king_n with_o his_o counselor_n will_v preside_v 3._o that_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v decide_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 4._o that_o that_o which_o be_v agree_v on_o and_o decree_v may_v be_v write_v by_o notary_n elect_v by_o both_o party_n the_o queen_n will_v have_v one_o of_o the_o four_o secretary_n of_o the_o king_n to_o write_v and_o grant_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v preside_v but_o so_o that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v commit_v to_o writing_n allege_v that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o they_o nor_o profitable_a for_o the_o king_n consider_v the_o present_a time_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n desire_v the_o king_n presence_n in_o the_o public_a assembly_n that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o frequent_a and_o adorn_v to_o make_v ostentation_n of_o his_o worth_n promise_v himself_o a_o certain_a victory_n many_o of_o the_o divine_n persuade_v the_o queen_n not_o to_o suffer_v the_o king_n to_o be_v present_a that_o those_o tender_a care_n may_v not_o be_v envenom_a by_o pestiferous_a doctrine_n before_o the_o party_n be_v call_v to_o the_o combat_n the_o prelate_n make_v a_o procession_n and_o do_v all_o communicate_v except_o the_o cardinal_n chastillon_n and_o five_o bishop_n the_o other_o protest_v one_o to_o another_o that_o they_o mean_v not_o to_o handle_v point_n of_o doctrine_n nor_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o second_o of_o september_n they_o begin_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n queen_n prince_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o the_o king_n counsellor_n together_o with_o six_o cardinal_n and_o forty_o bishop_n the_o king_n as_o he_o be_v instruct_v make_v a_o exhortation_n that_o be_v assemble_v to_o remedy_v the_o tumult_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o bitere_o in_o which_o the_o king_n speak_v bitere_o correct_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v amiss_o he_o desire_v they_o shall_v not_o depart_v before_o all_o difference_n be_v compose_v the_o chancellor_n speak_v more_o at_o large_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o king_n name_n and_o say_v particular_o that_o the_o disease_n be_v large_a and_o the_o chancellor_n at_o large_a urgent_a do_v require_v a_o present_a cure_n that_o the_o remedy_n which_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o the_o council_n beside_o that_o it_o will_v be_v slow_a will_v proceed_v from_o man_n who_o be_v stranger_n know_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o france_n and_o be_v bind_v to_o follow_v the_o pope_n will_n that_o the_o prelate_n present_a know_v the_o need_v of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o near_o in_o blood_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o execute_v this_o good_a work_n that_o although_o the_o council_n intimate_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v hold_v yet_o the_o like_a of_o this_o have_v be_v do_v at_o other_o time_n and_o be_v not_o without_o example_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a many_o counsel_n be_v hold_v at_o once_o and_o that_o many_o time_n the_o error_n of_o a_o general_a council_n have_v be_v correct_v by_o a_o national_a as_o arianisme_n establish_v by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o arimini_fw-la be_v condemn_v in_o france_n by_o a_o council_n call_v by_o s._n hilary_n he_o exhort_v all_o to_o aim_v at_o the_o same_o end_n and_o the_o more_o learned_a not_o to_o contemn_v their_o inferior_n nor_o these_o to_o envy_v those_o to_o avoid_v curlous_a question_n not_o to_o be_v averse_a from_o the_o protestant_n who_o be_v their_o brethren_n regenerate_v in_o the_o same_o baptism_n worshipper_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n he_o exhort_v the_o bishop_n to_o treat_v with_o they_o courteous_o seek_v to_o reduce_v they_o but_o without_o severity_n consider_v that_o much_o be_v attribute_v to_o they_o in_o that_o they_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n say_v that_o this_o do_v constrain_v they_o to_o proceed_v with_o sincerity_n and_o that_o in_o so_o do_v they_o shall_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o their_o adversary_n but_o transgress_v the_o office_n of_o just_a judge_n all_o will_v be_v in vain_o and_o to_o no_o purpose_n the_o cardinal_n tornon_n rise_v up_o and_o have_v thank_v the_o king_n queen_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o assistance_n they_o afford_v to_o that_o assembly_n say_v that_o the_o chancellor_n proposition_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o not_o to_o be_v handle_v or_o answer_v upon_o the_o sudden_a and_o therefore_o desire_v they_o may_v be_v commit_v to_o writing_n the_o better_a to_o deliberate_v upon_o they_o the_o chancellor_n do_v refuse_v and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n do_v urge_v it_o the_o queen_n perceive_v that_o this_o be_v require_v by_o the_o two_o cardinal_n to_o begin_v the_o queen_n mother_n command_v beza_n to_o begin_v draw_v the_o business_n in_o length_n give_v order_n to_o beza_n to_o speak_v who_o have_v pray_v on_o his_o knee_n and_o recite_v the_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n complain_v that_o they_o be_v account_v turbulent_a and_o seditious_a perturber_n of_o the_o public_a peace_n though_o they_o have_v no_o other_o end_n then_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n nor_o desire_v to_o assemble_v themselves_o but_o to_o serve_v he_o and_o obey_v the_o magistrate_n appoint_v by_o he_o then_o he_o declare_v in_o what_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o what_o they_o dissent_v he_o speak_v of_o faith_n good_a work_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n sin_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n obedience_n to_o magistrate_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o speak_v heat_n who_o show_v too_o much_o heat_n with_o such_o heat_n that_o he_o give_v but_o ill_a satisfaction_n to_o those_o of_o his_o own_o party_n so_o that_o he_o be_v command_v to_o conclude_v and_o have_v present_v the_o confession_n of_o his_o church_n and_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v examine_v he_o make_v a_o end_n the_o cardinal_n tornon_n full_a of_o disdain_n rise_v up_o and_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n even_o force_v their_o conscience_n have_v consent_v to_o hear_v these_o new_a
evangelist_n before_o see_v they_o will_v speak_v many_o injurious_a thing_n against_o god_n and_o that_o but_o for_o the_o respect_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o king_n they_o will_v have_v rise_v and_o disturb_v the_o disdain_v whereat_o cardinal_n tornon_n disdain_v assembly_n therefore_o he_o pray_v his_o majesty_n not_o to_o believe_v what_o they_o have_v say_v because_o the_o prelate_n will_v disproove_v it_o so_o that_o he_o shall_v see_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o lie_n and_o demand_v a_o day_n time_n to_o answer_v require_v that_o all_o shall_v be_v remoove_v from_o thence_o that_o they_o may_v not_o hear_v those_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o the_o queen_n think_v herself_o to_o be_v touch_v answer_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v but_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n counsel_n and_o parliament_n of_o paris_n not_o to_o change_v or_o innovate_v any_o thing_n in_o religion_n but_o to_o compose_v the_o difference_n and_o to_o reduce_v those_o that_o wander_v into_o the_o right_a way_n which_o the_o bishop_n be_v bind_v in_o wisdom_n to_o procure_v by_o all_o good_a mean_n the_o assembly_n be_v dissolve_v the_o bishop_n and_o divine_n consult_v among_o themselves_o what_o to_o do_v some_o of_o they_o will_v have_v have_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n write_v unto_o which_o if_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o subscribe_v they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n without_o any_o further_a disputation_n which_o opinion_n seem_v too_o hard_o after_o much_o discourse_n they_o resolve_v to_o answer_v two_o of_o the_o point_v propose_v by_o beza_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v again_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o the_o month_n the_o catholic_n the_o card._n of_o lorraine_n speak_v for_o the_o catholic_n cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n queen_n and_o prince_n make_v a_o long_a oration_n and_o say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v a_o member_n not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o care_n to_o defend_v it_o and_o that_o for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o contain_v the_o elect_a only_o any_o yet_o can_v not_o err_v that_o when_o any_o particular_a church_n be_v in_o a_o error_n recourse_n must_v be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decree_n of_o the_o general_a counsel_n consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o above_o all_o to_o the_o scripture_n expound_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o heretic_n fail_v in_o this_o have_v run_v into_o inextricable_a error_n as_o the_o modern_n for_o example_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o which_o by_o a_o incurable_a itch_n of_o curious_a question_n they_o have_v use_v that_o which_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n for_o a_o bond_n of_o union_n to_o make_v a_o irreconciliable_a rent_n in_o the_o church_n and_o then_o he_o handle_v this_o matter_n and_o conclude_v that_o if_o the_o protestant_n will_v not_o change_v their_o opinion_n herein_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n of_o composition_n when_o he_o have_v make_v a_o end_n all_o the_o bishop_n stand_v up_o and_o say_v they_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o faith_n they_o pray_v the_o king_n to_o persevere_v in_o it_o add_v that_o if_o the_o protestant_n will_v subscribe_v to_o this_o article_n they_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o dispute_v the_o rest_n but_o if_o not_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v any_o more_o audience_n but_o to_o be_v chase_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a kingome_n beza_n ask_v leave_v to_o answer_v present_o suffer_v to_o who_o beza_n be_v willing_a to_o answer_v and_o be_v not_o suffer_v but_o it_o seem_v not_o fit_a to_o equalise_v a_o private_a minister_n to_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n cardinal_n the_o assembly_n be_v dissolve_v the_o prelate_n be_v willing_a the_o colloquy_n shall_v have_v be_v thus_o end_v but_o the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n tell_v they_o it_o be_v dishonourable_a therefore_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o day_n it_o be_v assemble_v again_o in_o presence_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o the_o prince_n beza_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n day_n but_o speak_v another_o day_n and_o of_o the_o condition_n and_o authority_n thereof_o of_o counsel_n show_v they_o may_v err_v and_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o scripture_n claudeus_n espenseus_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v always_o desire_v a_o colloquy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o abhor_v the_o punishment_n which_o the_o poor_a unfortunate_a people_n endure_v but_o he_o much_o marvel_v by_o what_o authority_n and_o by_o who_o the_o protestant_n be_v call_v into_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n who_o have_v lay_v hand_n on_o they_o to_o make_v they_o espenseus_n and_o be_v answer_v by_o claudius_n espenseus_n ordinary_a minister_n and_o if_o they_o pretend_v a_o extraordinary_a vocation_n where_o be_v the_o miracle_n to_o demonstrate_v it_o then_o he_o treat_v of_o tradition_n he_o show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o controversy_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n recourse_n must_v be_v have_v to_o the_o father_n and_o that_o many_o thing_n be_v believe_v by_o tradition_n only_o as_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n and_o the_o virginity_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o birth_n he_o add_v that_o no_o general_a council_n be_v ever_o correct_v by_o another_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n diverse_a reply_n and_o disputation_n pass_v on_o both_o side_n between_o the_o divine_n who_o be_v present_a and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a contention_n the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n make_v a_o silence_n propose_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v resolute_a not_o to_o proceed_v any_o further_a if_o that_o article_n be_v not_o agree_v on_o and_o then_o demand_v of_o the_o minister_n if_o they_o be_v prepare_v to_o subscribe_v the_o augustan_n confession_n in_o that_o article_n beza_n ask_v whether_o he_o propose_v that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o and_o whether_o himself_o and_o the_o other_o prelate_n will_v subscribe_v to_o the_o other_o point_n of_o that_o confession_n and_o receive_v no_o answer_n either_o of_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o he_o demand_v that_o that_o which_o be_v propose_v to_o be_v subscribe_v unto_o shall_v be_v put_v in_o writing_n that_o they_o may_v consult_v of_o it_o and_o so_o the_o colloquy_n be_v put_v off_o till_o the_o next_o day_n in_o which_o beza_n who_o begin_v to_o speak_v do_v much_o provoke_v the_o bishop_n for_o have_v justify_v his_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n he_o discourse_v of_o the_o vocation_n bishop_n beza_n speak_v again_o and_o provoke_v the_o bishop_n and_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n show_v what_o simony_n be_v commit_v and_o demand_v how_o it_o can_v be_v account_v lawful_a the_o pass_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o point_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n propose_v unto_o he_o he_o say_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v first_o subscribe_v by_o those_o who_o do_v propose_v it_o the_o party_n not_o be_v able_a to_o agree_v a_o spanish_a jesuite_n one_o of_o the_o train_n of_o the_o cardinal_n jesuite_n the_o sauciness_n of_o a_o spanish_a jesuite_n of_o ferrara_n who_o be_v at_o the_o colloquy_n have_v reproach_v the_o protestant_n do_v reprehend_v the_o queen_n for_o meddle_v in_o matter_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o she_o but_o to_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n and_z bishop_n this_o arrogancy_n trouble_v the_o queen_n patience_n but_o for_o the_o pope_n sake_n and_o the_o legate_n she_o dissemble_v final_o not_o be_v able_a to_o conclude_v any_o thing_n by_o this_o manner_n of_o parley_n it_o be_v take_v a_o new_a course_n be_v take_v order_v that_o two_o bishop_n and_o three_o divine_n of_o the_o most_o moderate_a shall_v confer_v with_o five_o of_o the_o protestant_n minister_n to_o see_v if_o they_o can_v find_v out_o a_o way_n to_o make_v a_o agreement_n they_o assay_v to_o frame_v a_o article_n of_o the_o eucharist_n former_a which_o do_v as_o little_a good_a as_o the_o former_a in_o general_a term_n take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n which_o may_v give_v satisfaction_n to_o both_o party_n which_o because_o they_o can_v not_o do_v they_o conclude_v the_o colloquy_n this_o do_v minister_v much_o matter_n of_o discourse_n some_o say_v it_o be_v a_o bad_a example_n to_o treat_v of_o error_n once_o condemn_v and_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o hear_v those_o who_o deny_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n which_o have_v continue_v so_o long_o and_o be_v so_o much_o confirm_v especial_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o ignorant_a people_n and_o that_o although_o nothing_o be_v resolve_v against_o the_o true_a religion_n it_o have_v make_v the_o heretic_n bold_a and_o grieve_v the_o
presence_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n resolve_v that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o be_v overcome_v with_o reason_n he_o will_v after_o he_o have_v time_n to_o put_v himself_o in_o order_n overcome_v they_o by_o force_n she_o cause_v he_o also_o to_o treat_v with_o the_o cardinal_n farnese_n legate_n of_o auignion_n to_o resign_v that_o legation_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o bourbon_n whereunto_o farnese_n have_v give_v consent_n the_o ambassador_n speak_v of_o it_o to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o name_n of_o he_o and_o of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n say_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v be_v free_v from_o charge_n and_o the_o city_n secure_v from_o the_o hugonot_n who_o will_v not_o attempt_v aught_o against_o it_o be_v in_o the_o protection_n of_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n not_o only_o those_o who_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n but_o every_o one_o of_o any_o mean_a judgement_n know_v that_o this_o be_v do_v to_o take_v with_o ease_n the_o dominion_n of_o that_o city_n from_o rome_n and_o unite_v it_o to_o france_n therefore_o the_o pope_n deny_v it_o absolute_o and_o relate_v the_o proposition_n in_o consistory_n as_o if_o some_o great_a prejudice_n have_v be_v conceal_v under_o it_o which_o do_v not_o appear_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n and_o he_o much_o complain_v of_o the_o queen_n and_o king_n of_o navarre_n who_o have_v often_o promise_v he_o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o france_n against_o his_o authority_n yet_o they_o do_v favour_n heresy_n and_o be_v author_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o prelate_n colloquy_n and_o of_o other_o prejudicial_a thing_n he_o say_v his_o gentleness_n be_v ill_o require_v and_o therefore_o that_o he_o will_v begin_v the_o council_n sudden_o &_o by_o mean_n thereof_o make_v know_v the_o reverence_n which_o secular_a prince_n owe_v to_o the_o church_n he_o use_v the_o same_o complaint_n and_o threat_n to_o the_o ambassador_n who_o have_v reply_v that_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o legation_n be_v to_o a_o good_a end_n and_o that_o all_o the_o action_n of_o the_o queen_n be_v do_v with_o maturity_n and_o justice_n add_v that_o the_o council_n be_v more_o desire_v by_o the_o king_n then_o by_o his_o holiness_n hope_v it_o will_v proceed_v with_o the_o same_o equity_n and_o respect_n towards_o all_o prince_n not_o make_v difference_n of_o they_o he_o use_v these_o word_n to_o mock_v the_o pope_n who_o have_v grant_v a_o little_a before_o a_o great_a subsidy_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o be_v pay_v by_o the_o clergy_n after_o he_o have_v obtain_v of_o he_o the_o simple_a annates_fw-la but_o the_o pope_n suspect_v the_o petition_n of_o auignion_n and_o consider_v that_o the_o vassal_n of_o that_o city_n be_v all_o protestant_n fear_v it_o may_v be_v usurp_v by_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n do_v present_o dispatch_v thither_o fabri●ius_n sorbellone_n with_o two_o thousand_o foot_n to_o lie_v there_o in_o garrison_n and_o give_v the_o government_n thereof_o to_o lorenzo_n lenci_n bishop_n of_o fermo_n as_o vice-legate_n after_o the_o colloquy_n be_v end_v and_o the_o protestant_n depart_v the_o prelate_n remain_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o subsidy_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n which_o the_o queen_n think_v will_v give_v suspicion_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o often_o complaint_n assure_v he_o that_o they_o remain_v only_o to_o consult_v of_o the_o king_n debt_n and_o that_o the_o congregation_n be_v end_v she_o will_v immediate_o give_v order_n to_o the_o bishop_n to_o put_v themselves_o in_o a_o readiness_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n notwithstanding_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n cup._n a_o treaty_n in_o france_n about_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup._n with_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n propose_v that_o if_o it_o be_v allow_v the_o prosperous_a course_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o protestant_n will_v be_v interrupt_v in_o regard_n that_o many_o who_o do_v adhere_v unto_o they_o do_v begin_v to_o believe_v they_o from_o this_o point_n who_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o they_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v free_o by_o the_o church_n and_o those_o who_o understand_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n do_v consider_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n a_o faction_n will_v arise_v between_o the_o reformatist_n themselves_o some_o few_o of_o the_o bishop_n think_v fit_v it_o shall_v be_v constitute_v by_o the_o edict_n and_o immediate_o execute_v say_v that_o the_o whole_a communion_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o custom_n only_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n which_o forbid_v the_o bishop_n to_o return_v to_o the_o former_a use_n but_o the_o mayor_n part_n will_v not_o consent_v it_o shall_v be_v do_v but_o by_o grant_n or_o at_o the_o least_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n some_o few_o will_v not_o agree_v to_o any_o innovation_n but_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v to_o the_o great_a number_n this_o be_v much_o urge_v by_o lorraine_n who_o to_o obtain_v the_o pope_n consent_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o gain_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n and_o to_o win_v he_o the_o better_a he_o persuade_v the_o queeneto_o hearken_v to_o his_o proposition_n and_o to_o grant_v he_o something_o the_o cardinal_n have_v proceed_v so_o sweet_o and_o courteous_o with_o every_o one_o even_o of_o the_o contrary_a religion_n that_o he_o have_v gain_v the_o good_a will_n of_o many_o who_o do_v oppose_v he_o at_o the_o first_o and_o his_o negotiation_n be_v examine_v it_o be_v grant_v by_o a_o brief_a of_o the_o king_n advise_v faculty_n leave_n be_v give_v to_o the_o legate_n by_o the_o king_n brief_a to_o exercise_v his_o faculty_n thereunto_o by_o the_o most_o intimate_a of_o his_o counsel_n that_o the_o capitulation_n of_o orleans_n concern_v matter_n of_o benefice_n shall_v be_v suspend_v and_o that_o the_o legate_n may_v exercise_v his_o faculty_n but_o so_o as_o that_o he_o shall_v first_o promise_v under_o his_o hand_n write_v that_o he_o will_v not_o use_v they_o and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v provide_v against_o all_o the_o abuse_n and_o disorder_n which_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n and_o dispatch_n of_o the_o bull_n in_o rome_n notwithstanding_o the_o coancelor_n refuse_v to_o subscribe_v and_o subscribe_v which_o the_o chancellor_n refuse_v to_o subscribe_v seal_v the_o brief_a according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o remove_v he_o from_o his_o resolution_n it_o be_v subscribe_v by_o the_o queen_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o by_o the_o principal_a officer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n wherewith_o the_o legate_n be_v content_a more_o regard_v the_o preservation_n of_o his_o own_o honour_n than_o the_o service_n of_o he_o that_o send_v he_o for_o this_o favour_n he_o be_v content_a to_o th●nke_v well_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o to_o write_v thereof_o to_o rome_n which_o he_o do_v with_o such_o a_o temper_n that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o court_n be_v distaste_v crown_n the_o assembly_n of_o po●si_n give_v the_o k._n power_n to_o sell_v church_n land_n to_o the_o value_n of_o 100000._o crown_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o poisie_n the_o prelate_n grant_v power_n to_o the_o king_n to_o sell_v 100000._o crown_n of_o the_o yearly_a rent_n of_o the_o land_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v allow_v it_o the_o king_n give_v order_n to_o his_o ambassador_n in_o rome_n to_o make_v request_n for_o it_o show_v the_o necessity_n and_o utility_n of_o the_o grant_n which_o the_o ambassador_n do_v just_o the_o day_n before_o letter_n come_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o card_n of_o ferrara_n which_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o difficulty_n overcome_v and_o how_o he_o have_v obtain_v a_o suspension_n of_o the_o capitulation_n of_o orleans_n against_o the_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n and_o leave_v to_o use_v the_o faculty_n of_o a_o legate_n which_o thing_n he_o say_v be_v more_o hardly_o compass_v because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n from_o who_o he_o expect_v favour_n have_v oppose_v he_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o he_o make_v a_o full_a narration_n france_n the_o legate_n inform_v the_o pope_n that_o there_o be_v but_o two_o way_n to_o preserve_v religion_n in_o france_n of_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n in_o france_n show_v the_o danger_n that_o it_o will_v be_v quite_o extinguish_v and_o the_o remedy_n to_o preserve_v it_o which_o be_v only_o two_o one_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o to_o interest_n he_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o the_o other_o to_o grant_v the_o people_n general_o the_o
regard_n of_o his_o fatherly_a affection_n and_o that_o the_o legate_n be_v in_o trent_n already_o and_o many_o of_o the_o italian_a and_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o the_o rest_n in_o their_o journey_n they_o shall_v immediate_o send_v a_o ambassador_n and_o their_o bishop_n beside_o he_o command_v the_o legate_n to_o use_v all_o diligence_n to_o hinder_v the_o preach_n and_o assemble_v of_o the_o protestant_n and_o to_o encourage_v the_o divine_n give_v they_o indulgence_n and_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o promise_v they_o temporal_a assistance_n also_o but_o that_o himself_o shall_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v present_a at_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o avoid_v all_o banquet_n where_o any_o of_o they_o be_v in_o company_n at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o polonian_a prelate_n come_v to_o trent_n who_o have_v visit_v trent_n two_o polonian_a prelate_n cometo_o trent_n the_o legate_n and_o show_v the_o devotion_n of_o their_o church_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n relate_v how_o the_o lutheran_n attempt_v to_o bring_v their_o doctrine_n into_o that_o kingdom_n and_o the_o foundation_n which_o be_v already_o lay_v in_o some_o part_n to_o oppose_v who_o plot_n the_o bishop_n be_v always_o to_o be_v vigilant_a that_o they_o be_v all_o desirous_a to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o common_a cause_n which_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v for_o the_o cause_n aforesaid_a so_o important_a and_o necessary_a they_o have_v send_v their_o proctor_n to_o give_v voice_n as_o if_o the_o prelate_n be_v present_a and_o they_o demand_v to_o have_v as_o many_o voice_n as_o they_o have_v commission_n from_o the_o bishop_n who_o for_o lawful_a cause_n can_v not_o part_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o legate_n answer_v in_o general_a term_n mean_v to_o resolve_v with_o mature_a deliberation_n confequence_n who_o desire_v to_o have_v as_o many_o voice_n as_o they_o have_v commission_n from_o the_o bishop_n their_o request_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n where_o it_o be_v resect_v for_o fear_n of_o dangerous_a confequence_n and_o the_o pope_n who_o they_o have_v advise_v hereof_o propose_v it_o in_o consistory_n where_o the_o cardinal_n without_o difficulty_n concur_v in_o the_o negative_a because_o it_o be_v determine_v before_o that_o the_o resolution_n shall_v be_v make_v as_o former_o they_o have_v be_v by_o plurality_n of_o voice_n and_o not_o by_o nation_n which_o be_v therather_o think_v to_o be_v necessary_a because_o there_o be_v a_o fame_n that_o the_o frenchman_n though_o catholic_n come_v with_o sorbonicall_a and_o parliamentary_a mind_n full_o bend_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n no_o further_o than_o they_o please_v and_o it_o be_v know_v before_o that_o the_o spaniard_n have_v some_o humour_n to_o subject_v the_o pope_n to_o the_o council_n and_o the_o legate_n have_v often_o send_v advice_n from_o trent_n suspect_v the_o deseigne_n of_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a prelate_n be_v suspect_v that_o some_o bad_a ambitious_a humour_n to_o enlarge_v the_o episcopal_a authority_n be_v discover_v and_o in_o particular_a the_o spaniard_n do_v propose_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o restrain_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o least_o so_o far_o as_o that_o he_o may_v not_o derogate_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o council_n say_v that_o otherwise_o the_o labour_n and_o cost_n will_v be_v all_o in_o vain_a if_o for_o small_a cause_n and_o sometime_o without_o any_o he_o may_v dispense_v with_o they_o as_o he_o daily_o do_v with_o all_o the_o canon_n the_o cardinal_n see_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o oppose_v these_o attempt_n but_o by_o send_v a_o great_a number_n of_o italian_a prelate_n who_o be_v unite_v together_o will_v overcome_v part_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o pope_n resolve_v to_o send_v many_o italian_a prelate_n to_o trent_n to_o make_v a_o mayor_n part_n all_o the_o vltramontans_n and_o this_o remedy_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n if_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o absent_a be_v admit_v for_o the_o spaniard_n and_o frenchman_n will_v cause_v all_o their_o bishop_n to_o send_v proxy_n and_o it_o will_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o give_v voice_n not_o by_o head_n but_o by_o nation_n therefore_o it_o be_v write_v to_o trent_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v large_a promise_n to_o the_o polonian_n but_o conclude_v that_o the_o council_n be_v a_o continuation_n and_o the_o same_o which_o be_v begin_v under_o paulus_n the_o three_o so_o that_o the_o order_n then_o practise_v and_o continuate_o keep_v with_o good_a fruit_n as_o do_v appear_v must_v be_v still_o observe_v among_o which_o one_o be_v that_o the_o absent_a shall_v have_v no_o voice_n with_o which_o if_o they_o do_v dispense_v all_o other_o national_a will_v pretend_v the_o like_a with_o much_o confusion_n that_o whatsoever_o request_n polonia_n do_v make_v for_o any_o thing_n more_o the_o polonian_a prelate_n seem_v to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o a_o courteous_a negative_a but_o depart_v &_o return_v no_o more_o that_o be_v proper_a to_o itself_o and_o will_v not_o raise_v any_o stir_n in_o other_o country_n shall_v be_v grant_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o that_o most_o noble_a nation_n the_o polonian_n seem_v to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o answer_n yet_o pretend_v business_n at_o venice_n they_o depart_v and_o return_v no_o more_o a_o letter_n which_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n write_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n cause_v much_o joy_n in_o rome_n in_o which_o he_o advertise_v the_o pope_n of_o the_o negotiation_n of_o montbrun_n send_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o queen_n of_o france_n and_o of_o the_o answer_n which_o he_o give_v he_o promise_v to_o assist_v his_o holiness_n to_o purge_v christendom_n of_o heresy_n king_n john_n tancherel_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n for_o defend_v in_o y_z e_z school_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v king_n with_o all_o the_o force_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o state_n and_o to_o send_v potent_a and_o speedy_a aid_n to_o any_o prince_n that_o will_v cleanse_v his_o country_n of_o that_o contagion_n but_o the_o bad_a conceit_n which_o the_o court_n have_v of_o the_o frenchman_n be_v increase_v by_o a_o advice_n send_v from_o paris_n that_o the_o parliament_n have_v with_o much_o solemoitie_n condemn_v to_o recant_v one_o john_n tancherel_n a_o bachelor_n of_o divinity_n because_o with_o intelligence_n of_o some_o divine_n he_o have_v propose_v and_o defend_v public_a question_n that_o the_o pope_n vicar_n of_o christ_n be_v monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v deprive_v king_n and_o prince_n who_o disobey_v his_o commandment_n of_o their_o kingdom_n state_n and_o digmty_n who_o be_v accuse_v cite_v and_o have_v confess_v the_o fact_n do_v fly_v and_o the_o judge_n as_o in_o a_o comedy_n cause_v the_o beadell_n of_o the_o university_n to_o represent_v his_o person_n and_o to_o make_v a_o public_a satisfaction_n and_o recantation_n forbid_v the_o divine_n to_o dispute_v such_o question_n hereafter_o make_v they_o go_v to_o the_o king_n to_o ask_v pardon_n for_o have_v suffer_v so_o important_a a_o matter_n to_o be_v dispute_v on_o and_o to_o promise_v to_o oppose_v themselves_o always_o against_o that_o doctrine_n they_o speak_v of_o the_o frenchman_n as_o of_o lose_a sheep_n who_o deny_v the_o authority_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o s._n peter_n rome_n for_o which_o the_o frenchman_n be_v much_o censure_v in_o rome_n to_o feed_v the_o whole_a flock_n and_o to_o loose_v and_o bind_v which_o do_v consist_v principal_o in_o punish_v the_o delict_n which_o give_v scandal_n or_o offence_n against_o the_o church_n in_o common_a without_o difference_n of_o prince_n or_o subject_a the_o example_n of_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o and_o five_o frederic_n the_o first_o and_o second_o and_o lewis_n of_o bavaria_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n philippus_n augustus_n and_o pulcher_n be_v allege_v as_o also_o the_o famous_a say_n of_o the_o canonist_n in_o this_o point_n they_o say_v the_o pope_n ought_v to_o cite_v the_o whole_a parliament_n to_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o divine_a aught_o to_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n also_o to_o be_v examine_v before_o any_o thing_n else_o be_v do_v and_o approve_a and_o the_o contrary_n condemn_v the_o pope_n do_v moderate_o complain_v hereof_o and_o think_v it_o better_a distaste_n but_o the_o pope_n dissemble_v his_o distaste_n to_o dissemble_v because_o as_o he_o say_v the_o great_a sore_n of_o france_n do_v make_v this_o insensible_a the_o court_n be_v persuade_v that_o neither_o ambassador_n nor_o bishop_n will_v be_v send_v out_o of_o france_n to_o trent_n and_o discourse_v what_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o pope_n to_o do_v to_o force_v they_o to_o accept_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n which_o the_o pope_n be_v by_o all_o mean_n resolve_v to_o open_a at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o new_a year_n he_o impart_v this_o
grant_v in_o congregation_n this_o be_v agree_v on_o among_o the_o legate_n because_o have_v discover_v the_o difficulty_n especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o inquisition_n of_o rome_n and_o spain_n they_o have_v write_v whatsoever_o have_v be_v speak_v as_o well_o concern_v this_o point_n as_o the_o index_n and_o expect_v a_o answer_n from_o rome_n where_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o a_o rage_n for_o the_o edict_n of_o france_n and_o impatient_a because_o they_o do_v nothing_o in_o the_o council_n he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o good_a that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v long_o out_o of_o their_o residency_n especial_o to_o handle_v superficial_o point_v already_o decide_v in_o other_o counsel_n he_o have_v former_o suspect_v the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o do_v it_o then_o much_o more_o because_o he_o think_v their_o ill_a affection_n be_v increase_v for_o give_v the_o king_n leave_v to_o sell_v four_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n of_o yearly_a rent_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n for_o ten_o year_n and_o thirty_o thousand_o crown_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o land_n hold_v in_o vassalage_n of_o the_o church_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o great_a diminution_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n lewis_n s._n gelais_n lord_n of_o lansac_n send_v out_o of_o france_n express_o to_o give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o say_v that_o the_o king_n see_v the_o great_a care_n of_o his_o holiness_n concern_v the_o council_n have_v elect_v for_o his_o ambassador_n to_o that_o place_n mounseur_fw-fr di_fw-fr candall●_n and_o cause_v four_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n to_o go_v thither_o of_o who_o he_o give_v he_o a_o list_n he_o relate_v what_o have_v happen_v in_o france_n since_o the_o death_n of_o francis_n and_o the_o kingdom_n a_o ambassador_n be_v send_v out_o of_o france_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n necessity_n to_o proceed_v with_o moderation_n as_o well_o because_o their_o force_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o use_v rigour_n as_o also_o because_o if_o they_o have_v be_v they_o shall_v have_v imbrue_v themselves_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o great_a of_o the_o nobility_n which_o will_v have_v alien_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o bring_v all_o matter_n to_o a_o worse_a estate_n and_o that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o hope_n but_o in_o the_o council_n in_o which_o all_o nation_n even_o the_o german_n themselves_o will_v assist_v for_o religion_n be_v establish_v in_o germany_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_v to_o do_v the_o like_a in_o france_n but_o think_v it_o impossible_a to_o make_v those_o who_o will_v not_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n to_o accept_v the_o decree_n thereof_o and_o that_o the_o french_a protestant_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o dutch._n therefore_o he_o entreat_v his_o holiness_n that_o to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n only_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o place_n and_o form_n of_o proceed_v he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o yield_v unto_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a benefit_n which_o will_v ensue_v the_o pope_n answer_v first_o concern_v the_o council_n that_o from_o the_o answer_v to_o who_o the_o pope_n answer_v begin_n of_o his_o papacy_n he_o be_v resolve_v to_o call_v it_o that_o he_o have_v be_v hinder_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n both_o which_o notwithstanding_o have_v at_o this_o present_a ambassador_n and_o prelate_n there_o that_o none_o remain_v but_o the_o frenchman_n who_o have_v most_o need_n of_o the_o council_n that_o he_o have_v omit_v nothing_o to_o invite_v the_o dutch_a protestant_n even_o with_o the_o indignity_n of_o that_o sea_n that_o he_o will_v continue_v and_o will_v give_v they_o what_o security_n they_o can_v require_v that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o honest_a to_o subject_v the_o council_n to_o their_o discretion_n and_o that_o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o come_v especial_o have_v be_v invite_v they_o ought_v to_o proceed_v without_o they_o but_o for_o the_o thing_n do_v in_o france_n he_o brief_o say_v he_o can_v not_o commend_v they_o and_o pray_v god_n to_o pardon_v the_o author_n of_o so_o great_a inconvenience_n and_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v pass_v those_o bound_n if_o he_o have_v know_v what_o be_v in_o do_v in_o france_n at_o that_o same_o time_n when_o lansac_n make_v relation_n unto_o he_o of_o what_o have_v be_v do_v for_o the_o fourteen_o of_o february_n the_o queen_n give_v order_n in_o s._n german_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n and_o of_o seez_fw-fr and_o the_o divine_n butiglier_fw-it espensous_n and_o picorellius_n shall_v consent_v what_o may_v be_v do_v religion_n a_o treaty_n in_o france_n about_o a_o concord_n in_o religion_n for_o a_o beginning_n of_o concord_n who_o propose_v the_o point_n follow_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v absolute_o forbid_v to_o make_v a_o image_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n or_o of_o any_o person_n not_o name_v in_o the_o martyrology_n accept_v by_o the_o church_n that_o the_o image_n shall_v not_o have_v any_o crown_n or_o garment_n put_v upon_o they_o or_o vow_n or_o oblation_n make_v unto_o they_o nor_o shall_v be_v carry_v in_o procession_n except_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n wherewith_o the_o protestant_n seem_v to_o rest_v content_a howsoever_o concern_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n they_o make_v some_o resistance_n say_v that_o constantine_n be_v the_o first_o which_o do_v propose_v it_o to_o be_v worship_v contrary_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o nicholaus_fw-la magliardus_fw-la deane_n of_o the_o sorbon_n together_o with_o other_o divine_n do_v oppose_v and_o defend_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n though_o he_o confess_v there_o be_v many_o abuse_n in_o it_o in_o the_o same_o month_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n write_v to_o the_o elector_n palatine_n the_o duke_n of_o wittenberg_n and_o philip_n of_o hassia_n that_o howsoever_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v in_o the_o colloquy_n of_o poisi_n nor_o in_o this_o last_o about_o image_n yet_o he_o will_v still_o labour_v to_o reform_v religion_n not_o so_o as_o to_o trouble_v the_o public_a quiet_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o bring_v it_o in_o by_o little_a and_o little_a at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n go_v to_o tavern_n a_o castle_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o strasburg_n and_o there_o meet_v christopher_n wittenberg_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n write_v to_o the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n a_o parley_n between_o the_o guisard_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o wittenberg_n duke_n of_o wittenberg_n with_o some_o minister_n of_o the_o augustane_n confession_n they_o be_v together_o three_o day_n and_o those_o of_o guise_n expound_v to_o the_o duke_n what_o favour_n be_v do_v to_o the_o augustan_n confession_n in_o the_o colloquy_n of_o poisi_n and_o the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o reformatist_n of_o france_n do_v make_v in_o accept_v it_o desire_v that_o germany_n will_v join_v with_o they_o to_o hinder_v the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la not_o that_o the_o amendment_n of_o religion_n which_o they_o much_o desire_v may_v be_v delay_v but_o that_o a_o pestiferous_a poison_n may_v not_o take_v root_n not_o only_o in_o france_n but_o in_o germany_n also_o this_o they_o do_v that_o the_o war_n now_o approach_v they_o may_v more_o easy_o have_v assistance_n or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o it_o may_v be_v deny_v to_o their_o enemy_n this_o parley_n be_v get_v great_a suspicion_n in_o rome_n trent_n and_o france_n the_o cardinal_n and_o his_o adherent_n justify_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o christendom_n to_o have_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n against_o the_o hugonot_n of_o france_n and_o there_o be_v a_o fame_n that_o the_o cardinal_n do_v true_o desire_v a_o union_n in_o religion_n with_o germany_n and_o that_o as_o he_o detest_v the_o confession_n of_o geneva_n so_o he_o incline_v to_o that_o of_o ausburg_n and_o desire_v to_o see_v it_o plant_v in_o france_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o after_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v end_v he_o say_v he_o have_v former_o believe_v that_o confession_n but_o that_o afterward_o he_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n and_o think_v that_o all_o good_a christian_n ought_v to_o do_v the_o like_a concern_v the_o sermon_n public_o make_v in_o france_n though_o there_o be_v sedition_n in_o many_o place_n which_o do_v hinder_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o reformatist_n yet_o there_o be_v then_o 2150._o assembly_n which_o france_n 2150_o reform_a church_n in_o france_n be_v call_v church_n the_o six_o and_o twenty_o of_o february_n be_v come_v the_o session_n be_v hold_v in_o trent_n antonius_n helius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v mass_n and_o antonius_n 26._o the_o session_n february_n 26._o
the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o council_n be_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o church_n pius_n the_o four_o have_v upon_o good_a reason_n think_v it_o necessary_a in_o these_o time_n in_o which_o philip_n king_n of_o spain_n desire_v to_o have_v be_v personal_o present_a to_o give_v example_n to_o other_o prince_n but_o because_o he_o can_v he_o have_v send_v the_o marquis_n to_o assist_v and_o favour_v it_o as_o much_o as_o possible_o he_o can_v know_v that_o howsoever_o the_o church_n be_v defend_v by_o god_n yet_o sometime_o it_o have_v need_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o man_n that_o the_o ambassador_n do_v not_o think_v it_o needful_a to_o exhort_v the_o synod_n know_v their_o incredible_a and_o almost_o divine_a wisdom_n that_o he_o see_v good_a foundation_n lay_v already_o and_o the_o thing_n now_o treat_v on_o manage_v with_o art_n which_o do_v mitigate_v and_o exasperate_v so_o that_o hope_v that_o their_o future_a action_n will_v be_v correspondent_a he_o will_v only_o promise_v all_o good_a office_n endeavour_n and_o favour_n from_o the_o king_n the_o speaker_n answer_v in_o the_o counsel_n name_n that_o the_o come_n of_o a_o ambassador_n from_o so_o great_a a_o king_n have_v give_v courage_n and_o hope_n of_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o remedy_n which_o it_o shall_v use_v for_o the_o evil_n of_o christendom_n will_v be_v profitable_a therefore_o it_o do_v embrace_v his_o majesty_n with_o all_o good_a affection_n thank_v he_o offer_v to_o requite_v his_o merit_n and_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o it_o can_v for_o his_o honour_n and_o do_v as_o it_o ought_v receive_v the_o mandate_n in_o speaker_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o speaker_n the_o congregation_n of_o the_o 18._o the_o ambassador_n of_o cosmo_n duke_n of_o florence_n and_o sienna_n be_v receive_v who_o after_o his_o mandate_n be_v read_v make_v a_o oration_n oration_n the_o ambassador_n of_o florence_n be_v receive_v and_o make_v a_o oration_n in_o which_o he_o show_v at_o large_a the_o affinity_n of_o his_o duke_n with_o the_o pope_n exhort_v the_o father_n to_o purge_v the_o church_n and_o declare_v the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n offer_v all_o possible_a assistance_n from_o his_o duke_n as_o he_o have_v do_v before_o to_o the_o pope_n for_o preservation_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n the_o speaker_n thank_v he_o in_o the_o synod_n name_n and_z have_v make_v a_o reverend_a commemoration_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o and_o clement_n the_o seven_o add_v that_o they_o be_v assemble_v only_o for_o this_o end_n and_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o of_o compose_v all_o dissension_n chase_v away_o the_o darkness_n of_o ignorance_n and_o manifest_v the_o truth_n melchior_n lusi_n ambassador_n of_o the_o catholic_a swiss_n and_o joachimus_n propostus_n receive_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o catholic_a swiss_n be_v receive_v a_o abbot_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o abbat_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n of_o that_o nation_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o 20._o in_o who_o name_n a_o oration_n be_v make_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o the_o consul_n of_o the_o 7._o canton_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o filial_a duty_n towards_o the_o church_n have_v send_v ambassador_n to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n and_o to_o promise_v obedience_n and_o to_o make_v know_v to_o all_o that_o they_o do_v not_o yield_v to_o any_o in_o their_o desire_n to_o assist_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o former_o they_o have_v in_o the_o time_n of_o julius_n 2_o and_o leo_n 10_o as_o also_o when_o they_o fight_v with_o the_o neighbour_n canton_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o religion_n slay_v zuinglius_fw-la the_o most_o wicked_a enemy_n the_o church_n have_v who_o body_n they_o seek_v among_o the_o dead_a and_o burn_v it_o to_o testify_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v irreconciliable_a war_n with_o the_o other_o canton_n so_o long_o as_o they_o continue_v to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n they_o be_v situate_v at_o the_o confine_n of_o italy_n as_o a_o castle_n to_o resist_v the_o northern_a evil_n that_o it_o can_v penetrate_v within_o the_o bowel_n of_o that_o country_n the_o synod_n answer_v by_o the_o speaker_n that_o the_o piety_n and_o good_a deed_n of_o the_o heluetian_o towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n be_v many_o and_o great_a but_o no_o obedience_n or_o office_n more_o opportune_a than_o the_o ambassage_n send_v and_o the_o offer_v make_v to_o the_o synod_n that_o they_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o ambassador_n and_o have_v beside_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n much_o confidence_n in_o that_o famous_a nation_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o six_o of_o april_n andreas_n dudicius_n bishop_n of_o receive_v the_o orator_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o hungary_n be_v receive_v tinia_n and_o johannes_n collosarinus_n of_o canadia_n orator_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o hungary_n be_v receive_v the_o first_o make_v a_o oration_n and_o say_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o strigonium_n the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n have_v receive_v great_a joy_n for_o three_o thing_n for_o the_o assumption_n of_o pius_n 4._o to_o the_o papacy_n for_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o for_o the_o deputation_n of_o the_o apostolical_a legate_n to_o preside_v in_o it_o he_o show_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o prelate_n towards_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o call_v the_o cardinal_n of_o varmia_n for_o a_o witness_n thereof_o who_o do_v know_v they_o and_o converse_v with_o they_o he_o expound_v the_o devotion_n of_o the_o hungarian_n and_o the_o service_n they_o do_v to_o all_o christendom_n in_o maintain_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o the_o particular_a diligence_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o oppose_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o heretic_n he_o relate_v the_o common_a desire_n of_o they_o all_o to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n if_o their_o presence_n have_v not_o be_v necessary_a at_o home_n to_o defend_v their_o castle_n against_o the_o turk_n who_o be_v at_o their_o confine_n and_o to_o keep_v watch_n against_o the_o heretic_n so_o that_o be_v force_v to_o perform_v this_o duty_n by_o they_o their_o orator_n they_o recommend_v themselves_o to_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o council_n offer_v to_o receive_v and_o observe_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v decree_v by_o it_o the_o secretary_n answer_v in_o the_o counsel_n name_n that_o the_o synod_n be_v assure_v of_o the_o joy_n which_o the_o hungarian_n conceive_v for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o general_n council_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o pray_v god_n for_o the_o happy_a issue_n of_o it_o that_o they_o desire_v to_o have_v see_v the_o prelate_n in_o person_n but_o see_v they_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o cause_v prove_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o varmia_n it_o do_v accept_v their_o excuse_n hope_v that_o christian_a religion_n will_v receive_v profit_n by_o their_o presence_n in_o their_o own_o church_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v recommend_v their_o action_n to_o they_o the_o orator_n be_v honest_a and_o religious_a father_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o do_v embrace_v both_o they_o and_o their_o mandate_n in_o the_o congregation_n daily_o hold_v from_o the_o seven_o day_n until_o the_o 18_o the_o father_n contention_n the_o article_n of_o residence_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o and_o cause_v a_o contention_n speak_v of_o the_o 4._o first_o article_n but_o very_o confuse_o of_o the_o first_o concern_v residence_n of_o those_o who_o assist_v in_o the_o first_o council_n when_o this_o point_n be_v handle_v which_o be_v do_v with_o some_o difference_n or_o rather_o controversy_n there_o be_v but_o five_o bishop_n in_o this_o and_o yet_o at_o the_o first_o propose_v hereof_o they_o present_o divide_v themselves_o into_o part_n as_o remember_v the_o ancient_a contention_n which_o happen_v in_o no_o other_o question_n neither_o at_o that_o time_n nor_o in_o the_o time_n of_o julius_n nor_o at_o this_o present_a some_o say_v the_o cause_n be_v for_o that_o the_o other_o discussion_n be_v theological_a be_v not_o well_o understand_v and_o be_v handle_v speculative_o by_o the_o learned_a without_o any_o passion_n but_o of_o hatred_n against_o the_o protestant_n who_o do_v trouble_v they_o by_o set_v on_o foot_n those_o question_n but_o this_o touch_v the_o prelate_n in_o their_o own_o person_n the_o courtier_n be_v move_v with_o ambition_n or_o oblige_v to_o follow_v that_o opinion_n which_o be_v most_o commodious_a for_o their_o patron_n other_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o envy_n who_o not_o hope_v to_o raise_v themselves_o to_o that_o height_n in_o which_o the_o courtier_n be_v desire_v to_o pull_v they_o low_o and_o so_o to_o become_v equal_a in_o this_o article_n every_o one_o labour_v according_a to_o his_o passion_n and_o keep_v a_o strict_a account_n of_o his_o own_o
church_n of_o his_o diocese_n and_o the_o commendatary_n not_o subject_a to_o any_o superintendencie_n suffer_v the_o building_n to_o fall_v and_o diminish_v or_o whole_o take_v away_o other_o necessary_a expense_n have_v no_o other_o end_n then_o according_a to_o the_o proëme_n of_o the_o bull_n to_o maintain_v their_o own_o state_n let_v all_o go_v to_o desolation_n it_o seem_v a_o indecencie_n that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v meddle_v with_o that_o which_o be_v recommend_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o another_o and_o therefore_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o make_v a_o mannerly_a provision_n against_o this_o disorder_n grant_v the_o bishop_n authority_n to_o visit_v and_o superintend_v but_o as_o delegate_n of_o his_o holiness_n the_o twelve_o proposition_n be_v make_v to_o remedy_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o collector_n collector_n the_o abuse_n and_o impiety_n of_o collector_n because_o the_o ancient_a institution_n be_v degenerate_v also_o for_o hospital_n spital_n place_n for_o education_n of_o orphan_n and_o such_o like_a be_v institute_v in_o diverse_a place_n for_o necessity_n without_o any_o maintenance_n but_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o faithful_a some_o godly_a person_n undertake_v the_o charge_n to_o go_v about_o and_o ask_v they_o at_o man_n house_n and_o for_o their_o credit_n have_v letter_n testimonial_a from_o the_o bishop_n other_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o bishop_n obtain_v faculty_n from_o the_o pope_n with_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n which_o be_v easy_o grant_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o profit_n which_o come_v to_o the_o court_n for_o the_o dispatch_n of_o the_o bull_n this_o institution_n be_v immediate_o turn_v into_o excessive_a abuse_n and_o the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o arm_n collect_v be_v bestow_v in_o the_o right_a course_n those_o also_o who_o have_v obtain_v power_n to_o collect_v do_v substitute_n also_o base_a and_o infamous_a person_n divide_v the_o alm_n with_o they_o the_o collector_n likewise_o to_o gain_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v use_v a_o thousand_o sacrilegious_a and_o wicked_a artifices_fw-la wear_v a_o certain_a form_n of_o habit_n carry_v fire_n water_n bell_n and_o other_o instrument_n to_o make_v a_o noise_n that_o they_o may_v amaze_v the_o vulgar_a and_o breed_v superstition_n in_o they_o tell_v false_a miracle_n preach_v false_a indulgence_n ask_v alm_n with_o imprecation_n and_o threat_n of_o evil_a and_o misfortune_n against_o those_o that_o will_v not_o give_v and_o use_v many_o other_o impiety_n like_v to_o these_o so_o that_o the_o world_n be_v much_o scandalize_v but_o no_o provision_n can_v be_v make_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o apostolical_a grant_n the_o prelate_n enlarge_v themselves_o in_o this_o matter_n relate_v the_o abuse_n and_o impiety_n aforesaid_a and_o many_o more_o show_v that_o remedy_n have_v be_v former_o use_v but_o without_o effect_n and_o so_o will_v all_o other_o prove_v that_o shall_v be_v attempt_v only_o one_o remain_v which_o be_v to_o abolish_v whole_o the_o name_n and_o use_v of_o collector_n in_o which_o opinion_n all_o concur_v at_o this_o time_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o banaria_n come_v who_o refuse_v venice_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o banaria_n contest_v for_o preceed●ce_n with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o venice_n to_o present_v themselves_o in_o congregation_n except_o they_o may_v have_v precedence_n of_o the_o ambassador_n of_o venice_n whereunto_o they_o deny_v to_o yield_v the_o legate_n interpose_v a_o delay_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v answer_n from_o rome_n the_o pope_n understanding_n how_o the_o voice_n be_v give_v in_o the_o congregation_n concern_v residency_n and_o that_o the_o spaniard_n do_v all_o hold_n together_o make_v a_o bad_a prognostique_n and_o think_v that_o union_n can_v not_o be_v without_o the_o king_n knowledge_n he_o say_v he_o have_v a_o long_a time_n know_v by_o great_a experience_n spain_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n be_v much_o perpleze_v with_o advice_n send_v unto_o they_o from_o trent_n and_o spain_n that_o the_o vltramontan_n prelate_n do_v envy_v the_o greatness_n of_o italy_n &_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o for_o the_o suspicion_n which_o he_o have_v of_o the_o king_n be_v ill_o satisfy_v with_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v fail_v of_o the_o promise_n which_o he_o make_v unto_o he_o to_o preserve_v his_o authority_n the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o his_o discourse_n be_v that_o if_o the_o prince_n will_v abandon_v he_o he_o will_v have_v recourse_n to_o heaven_n that_o he_o have_v a_o million_o of_o gold_n and_o know_v where_o to_o get_v another_o and_o beside_o that_o god_n will_v provide_v for_o his_o church_n the_o court_n also_o do_v perceive_v with_o great_a passion_n in_o what_o danger_n they_o be_v and_o think_v that_o these_o novity_n do_v aim_v to_o make_v many_o pope_n or_o none_o at_o all_o and_o to_o hinder_v all_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o chancery_n advice_n come_v to_o he_o also_o from_o his_o nuncio_n in_o spain_n that_o the_o king_n be_v ill_o please_v with_o the_o proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la constitute_v in_o the_o first_o session_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o please_v with_o it_o because_o by_o the_o distaste_n of_o other_o he_o perceive_v they_o have_v design_n to_o propose_v something_o to_o his_o prejudice_n yet_o he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v excuse_v to_o the_o king_n that_o it_o be_v do_v without_o his_o privity_n howsoever_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o repress_v the_o petulancy_n of_o unquiet_a spirit_n say_v that_o the_o council_n will_v be_v like_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n if_o every_o turbulent_a person_n may_v move_v humour_n as_o he_o list_v that_o the_o legate_n be_v discreet_a and_o do_v reverence_v his_o majesty_n and_o will_v propose_v whatsoever_o shall_v please_v he_o and_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o all_o wise_a and_o godly_a person_n but_o with_o the_o king_n ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o who_o speak_v thereof_o he_o proceed_v somewhat_o rough_o first_o he_o complain_v that_o he_o have_v do_v bad_a office_n herein_o then_o relate_v how_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n as_o it_o be_v seditious_o proceed_v in_o the_o council_n he_o show_v that_o the_o decree_n be_v holy_a and_o necessary_a and_o that_o no_o prejudice_n be_v do_v to_o any_o insay_v that_o the_o legate_n shall_v propose_v vargas_n answer_v that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v only_o the_o legate_n shall_v propose_v no_o man_n will_v have_v complain_v but_o that_o ablative_a proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la do_v deprive_v the_o bishop_n of_o power_n to_o propose_v and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o change_v it_o into_o another_o kind_n of_o speech_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n answer_v with_o some_o disdain_n that_o he_o have_v something_o else_o to_o do_v then_o to_o think_v cvius_fw-la generis_fw-la &_o cvius_fw-la casus_fw-la the_o pope_n suspicion_n do_v not_o want_v ground_n have_v discover_v that_o the_o ambassador_n have_v send_v many_o post_n into_o spain_n and_o unto_o trent_n exhort_v the_o spanish_a prelate_n to_o maintain_v their_o liberty_n and_o defire_v the_o king_n that_o the_o council_n may_v not_o be_v hold_v in_o subjection_n but_o in_o the_o court_n many_o prelate_n have_v write_v to_o their_o friend_n from_o trent_n diverse_o according_a to_o their_o affection_n there_o be_v a_o great_a tumult_n or_o rather_o a_o astonishment_n every_o one_o think_v he_o do_v already_o see_v rome_n empty_a of_o prelate_n and_o deprive_v of_o all_o prerogative_n and_o eminency_n it_o do_v appear_v plain_o that_o the_o cardinal_n reside_v in_o rome_n shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o have_v bishopricke_n that_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n be_v forbid_v that_o no_o bishop_n or_o curate_n may_v have_v any_o office_n in_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o dispense_v in_o any_o of_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a which_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o his_o power_n so_o that_o his_o authority_n will_v be_v much_o diminish_v and_o they_o remember_v the_o say_n of_o livy_n that_o the_o majesty_n of_o a_o prince_n be_v hardly_o bring_v from_o the_o height_n to_o the_o middle_n but_o be_v easy_o cast_v headlong_o from_o the_o middle_n to_o the_o bottom_n they_o discourse_v how_o much_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n will_v be_v enlarge_v who_o will_v draw_v unto_o they_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n deny_v the_o pope_n authority_n for_o reservation_n that_o the_o bishop_n beyond_o the_o mountain_n and_o some_o italian_n also_o have_v ever_o show_v a_o bad_a mind_n towards_o the_o court_n for_o envy_n and_o because_o they_o can_v not_o so_o easy_o have_v place_n in_o it_o and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o who_o remanie_fw-fr in_o place_n the_o most_o remote_a from_o rome_n for_o conscience_n sake_n because_o they_o will_v do_v worse_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o case_n they_o be_v
able_a that_o these_o hypoctiticall_a purstan_n have_v a_o great_a ambition_n than_o the_o rest_n though_o cover_v and_o will_v fain_o advance_v themselves_o by_o the_o ruin_n of_o other_o as_o paul_n the_o four_o do_v very_o well_o show_v by_o effect_n and_o because_o the_o spaniard_n be_v unite_v in_o this_o and_o exhort_v by_o vargas_n to_o persevere_v many_o do_v whisper_v that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o first_o mover_n who_o to_o gain_v subsidy_n from_o the_o clergy_n have_v two_o difficulty_n to_o overcome_v one_o in_o have_v the_o pope_n consent_n the_o other_o in_o take_v away_o the_o resistance_n make_v by_o chapter_n and_o college_n who_o be_v the_o prime_n of_o the_o nobility_n exempt_v from_o bishop_n &_o most_o of_o they_o have_v receive_v benefice_n by_o the_o pope_n collation_n do_v oppose_v themselves_o without_o respect_n do_v purpose_n to_o advance_v the_o bishop_n who_o do_v whole_o depend_v on_o he_o and_o receive_v their_o bishopricke_n by_o his_o presentation_n by_o free_v of_o they_o from_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o subiect_v the_o chapter_n and_o college_n unto_o they_o and_o so_o by_o their_o mean_n to_o gain_v a_o easy_a and_o absolute_a dominion_n over_o the_o clergy_n the_o court_n do_v general_o complain_v of_o all_o the_o legate_n for_o propose_v the_o article_n or_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v propose_v say_v that_o it_o be_v former_o ordain_v with_o great_a art_n that_o they_o only_o shall_v propose_v only_o to_o resist_v the_o attempt_n of_o those_o who_o be_v ill_o affect_v to_o rome_n and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v excuse_v because_o they_o have_v a_o example_n of_o a_o disorder_n which_o this_o dispute_n cause_v in_o the_o first_o council_n above_o all_o they_o complain_v of_o mantua_n and_o seripando_n and_o especial_o of_o mantua_n because_o with_o his_o reputation_n and_o credit_n he_o may_v easy_o have_v withstand_v all_o inconvenience_n they_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o other_o legate_n more_o incline_v to_o the_o common_a good_a not_o prince_n nor_o friar_n but_o such_o as_o have_v pass_v through_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o court._n and_o the_o general_a voice_n do_v design_n john_n baptista_n cigala_n card._n of_o s._n clement_n in_o the_o first_o place_n because_o he_o have_v show_v himself_o a_o stout_a champion_n for_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o the_o office_n of_o referendarie_n and_o auditor_n of_o the_o chamber_n with_o much_o commendation_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v superior_a to_o mantua_n aught_o to_o hold_v the_o first_o place_n which_o will_v make_v he_o retire_v the_o pope_n cause_v many_o congregation_n to_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o cardinal_n depute_v to_o consult_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n who_o have_v think_v of_o diverse_a remedy_n to_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o this_o evil_a he_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o business_n much_o more_o quiet_o and_o correct_o then_o before_o he_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o residency_n be_v the_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la yea_o he_o commend_v they_o for_o speak_v according_a to_o their_o conscience_n and_o sometime_o he_o add_v that_o perhaps_o that_o opinion_n be_v the_o better_a but_o he_o complain_v of_o those_o who_o refer_v themselves_o unto_o he_o because_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v that_o every_o one_o may_v deliver_v his_o own_o opinion_n and_o not_o lay_v the_o thing_n of_o difficulty_n upon_o the_o back_n of_o another_o that_o themselves_o may_v avoid_v hatred_n and_o envy_n the_o difference_n between_o his_o legate_n do_v displease_v he_o which_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v publish_v with_o scandal_n but_o conceal_v they_o to_o have_v compose_v they_o between_o themselves_o or_o refer_v they_o to_o he_o and_o as_o he_o be_v please_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v deliver_v his_o opinion_n free_o so_o he_o blame_v the_o practice_n which_o many_o use_v to_o subvert_v other_o with_o deceit_n and_o almost_o with_o violence_n and_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v trouble_v with_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v concern_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n and_o that_o to_o consult_v of_o the_o matter_n thereof_o at_o rome_n be_v to_o violate_v it_o say_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a thing_n that_o he_o who_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o cardinal_n who_o be_v principal_a member_n and_o other_o prelate_n in_o rome_n who_o have_v voice_n in_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v account_v stranger_n and_o may_v not_o be_v inform_v of_o what_o be_v handle_v and_o speak_v their_o opinion_n whereas_o those_o who_o have_v no_o lawful_a part_n in_o it_o hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o intermeddle_v and_o that_o in_o a_o ill_a sort_n that_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o prelate_n go_v to_o trent_n with_o commission_n from_o their_o prince_n according_a to_o which_o they_o proceed_v that_o the_o ambassador_n by_o letter_n and_o persuasion_n do_v compel_v they_o to_o follow_v the_o interest_n of_o their_o master_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o no_o man_n say_v which_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a this_o he_o amplify_v in_o all_o his_o discourse_n with_o much_o vehemency_n add_v that_o to_o say_v the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a be_v a_o colour_n use_v by_o he_o who_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o see_v a_o good_a end_n thereof_o hope_v to_o dissolve_v it_o or_o to_o take_v from_o it_o all_o reputation_n all_o which_o he_o hold_v to_o be_v secret_a favourer_n of_o heresy_n final_o after_o he_o have_v confer_v and_o often_o consult_v with_o all_o the_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o of_o this_o particular_a the_o nine_o of_o may_n assemble_v all_o the_o cardinal_n he_o cause_v the_o advice_n send_v from_o trent_n to_o be_v read_v and_o declare_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o former_a consultation_n and_o the_o necessity_n to_o walk_v cunning_o and_o constant_o in_o this_o business_n intimate_v that_o many_o have_v conspire_v against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n afterward_o he_o cause_v the_o answer_n to_o be_v read_v which_o he_o purpose_v shall_v be_v send_v to_o trent_n which_o in_o substance_n do_v contain_v two_o point_n that_o the_o counsel_n be_v free_a on_o his_o part_n and_o ever_o shall_v trent_n the_o pope_n answer_n send_v to_o trent_n that_o it_o be_v fit_a he_o shall_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o head_n and_o receive_v that_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o ask_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n who_o do_v uniform_o commend_v the_o answer_n some_o tell_v he_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o legate_n it_o be_v good_a to_o send_v other_o some_o of_o the_o most_o extraordinary_a person_n and_o other_o say_v that_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o business_n do_v require_v that_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o whole_a college_n shall_v go_v to_o bolonia_n that_o they_o may_v be_v near_o to_o trent_n and_o to_o give_v better_a assistance_n as_o occasion_n shall_v be_v offer_v whereunto_o the_o pope_n answer_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o go_v not_o only_o to_o bolonia_n but_o to_o trent_n also_o if_o there_o be_v need_n and_o all_o the_o cardinal_n offer_v to_o follow_v he_o they_o consult_v of_o send_v legate_n a_o consultation_n in_o rome_n about_o send_v other_o legate_n other_o legate_n and_o resolve_v not_o to_o speak_v any_o more_o of_o it_o as_o yet_o because_o mantua_n will_v depart_v which_o will_v be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n to_o the_o reputation_n of_o the_o council_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o opinion_n which_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o spain_n and_o almost_o all_o prince_n have_v of_o his_o honesty_n and_o of_o the_o credit_n he_o have_v with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o trent_n the_o letter_n be_v dispatch_v he_o deal_v with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o venice_n sea_n the_o pope_n make_v plot_n to_o maintain_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o florence_n that_o their_o prince_n will_v recommend_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o papacy_n to_o their_o ambassador_n in_o trent_n and_o command_v they_o to_o cause_v the_o prelate_n of_o their_o state_n not_o to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o parley_n against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o not_o to_o be_v so_o earnest_a in_o the_o point_n of_o residency_n afterward_o he_o call_v all_o the_o bishop_n remain_v at_o court_n and_o show_v they_o what_o service_n their_o presence_n may_v do_v in_o trent_n and_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o he_o load_v they_o with_o promise_n give_v money_n to_o those_o who_o be_v poor_a and_o dispatch_v they_o to_o the_o council_n this_o he_o do_v to_o increase_v the_o number_n against_o they_o shall_v speak_v of_o residency_n and_o because_o 40._o frenchman_n be_v expect_v from_o who_o he_o can_v not_o prognosticate_v any_o good_a and_o not_o to_o have_v france_n his_o
the_o venetian_n and_o the_o speaker_n do_v in_o a_o few_o word_n thank_v all_o those_o prince_n for_o have_v offer_v their_o assistance_n for_o the_o security_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n afterward_o the_o masse-bishop_n pronounce_v the_o decree_n in_o this_o substance_n that_o the_o synod_n for_o some_o just_a and_o honest_a cause_n have_v determine_v to_o defer_v the_o do_v i●_n which_o nothing_o be_v do_v promulgation_n of_o the_o decree_n appoint_v for_o that_o time_n until_o the_o four_o of_o june_n for_o which_o day_n it_o do_v intimate_v the_o next_o session_n and_o nothing_o else_o be_v do_v in_o this_o meeting_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o session_n be_v celebrate_v the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n part_v ambassador_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n part_v from_o trent_n 2._o day_n before_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n from_o trent_n say_v he_o must_v return_v to_o his_o government_n of_o milan_n because_o of_o some_o new_a stir_n raise_v by_o the_o hugonot_n in_o the_o delphinate_a but_o it_o be_v know_v that_o those_o force_n be_v not_o able_a to_o issue_v out_o of_o the_o country_n and_o that_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n be_v between_o milan_n and_o they_o many_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v commission_n from_o his_o king_n so_o to_o do_v who_o desirous_a that_o the_o council_n shall_v proceed_v will_v not_o have_v it_o interrupt_v by_o the_o controversy_n of_o precedence_n which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v avoid_v if_o he_o and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n have_v be_v in_o trent_n together_o lewis_n s_o gelais_n lord_n of_o lansac_n chief_a of_o the_o french_a ambassage_n arrive_v two_o day_n after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o other_o and_o be_v meet_v trent_n the_o french_a ambassador_n come_v to_o trent_n upon_o the_o way_n by_o many_o of_o the_o prelate_n and_o partieular_o by_o the_o spaniard_n the_o next_o day_n arnold_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n precedent_n of_o paris_n and_o guido_n faber_n lord_n of_o pibrac_n gown_a man_n colleague_n of_o the_o ambassage_n do_v arrive_v also_o at_o this_o time_n advice_n come_v to_o the_o council_n how_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v censure_v the_o father_n for_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n and_o many_o receive_a letter_n from_o the_o cardinal_n their_o patron_n full_a of_o complaint_n renew_v the_o pope_n indignation_n against_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n be_v renew_v reprehension_n and_o exhortation_n which_o letter_n they_o show_v to_o many_o on_o the_o other_o side_n news_n come_v to_o rome_n of_o what_o happen_v in_o trent_n afterward_o the_o pope_n do_v renew_v and_o augment_v his_o disdain_n against_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n for_o have_v omit_v the_o occasion_n to_o declare_v the_o continuation_n be_v requestd_a to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n of_o spain_n he_o be_v sorry_a to_o see_v that_o cardinal_n join_v with_o the_o spaniad_n in_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n and_o opposite_a to_o they_o in_o the_o continuation_n which_o be_v to_o cross_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o no_o man_n though_o of_o a_o dull_a wit_n will_v have_v forbear_v to_o have_v make_v that_o declaration_n because_o if_o it_o have_v succeed_v well_o it_o have_v be_v much_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n if_o not_o the_o council_n have_v be_v dissolve_v a_o thing_n of_o no_o less_o benefit_n they_o begin_v in_o rome_n to_o consult_v again_o of_o send_v other_o legate_n and_o particular_o the_o cardinal_n of_o saint_n clement_n dessign_v to_o lay_v the_o principal_a charge_n and_o the_o instruction_n upon_o he_o and_o not_o to_o take_v the_o first_o place_n from_o mantua_n and_o so_o to_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o depart_v they_o think_v to_o ordain_v he_o bishop_n news_n be_v come_v a_o little_a before_o of_o the_o death_n of_o francis_n tornon_n deane_n by_o which_o one_o of_o the_o six_o bishopricke_n be_v void_a the_o emperor_n advertise_v of_o the_o proposition_n to_o declare_v the_o continuation_n be_v move_v and_o send_v the_o pope_n word_n that_o whensoever_o it_o be_v do_v he_o will_v recall_v his_o ambassador_n from_o trent_n who_o he_o command_v that_o if_o the_o resolution_n be_v make_v they_o shall_v present_o depart_v not_o expect_v the_o publication_n therefore_o his_o holiness_n be_v in_o hope_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o council_n may_v be_v end_v and_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o angry_a with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n for_o suffer_v such_o a_o occasion_n to_o pass_v and_o begin_v to_o think_v how_o it_o may_v be_v reviue_v the_o court_n as_o well_o to_o imitate_v their_o prince_n as_o for_o their_o own_o interest_n continue_v their_o complaint_n and_o murmur_n against_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o council_n and_o most_o of_o all_o against_o that_o cardinal_n and_o against_o seripando_n and_o varmiense_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n and_o especial_o the_o spaniard_n complain_v of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o court._n of_o he_o for_o hold_v the_o council_n in_o servitude_n to_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o leave_v free_a power_n to_o handle_v and_o determine_v all_o thing_n and_o not_o to_o meddle_v himself_o and_o yet_o beside_o that_o nothing_o be_v propose_v but_o what_o pope_n the_o prelate_n of_o the_o council_n compl_a 〈…〉_o of_o the_o pope_n please_v the_o legate_n who_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v command_v from_o rome_n when_o a_o proposition_n be_v make_v in_o which_o 70._o bishop_n do_v uniform_o agree_v they_o be_v hinder_v even_o to_o speak_v thereof_o that_o the_o council_n ought_v to_o be_v free_a and_o exempt_a from_o all_o prevention_n concurrence_n and_o intercession_n of_o any_o other_o power_n and_o yet_o law_n be_v give_v they_o what_o to_o handle_v and_o limitation_n and_o correction_n make_v of_o the_o thing_n handle_v and_o decree_v which_o continue_v they_o can_v true_o be_v call_v a_o council_n that_o there_o be_v among_o they_o more_o than_o forty_o stipendary_n of_o the_o pope_n some_o receive_n thirty_o some_o sixty_o crown_n a_o month_n and_o that_o other_o be_v terrify_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o cardinal_n and_o other_o courtier_n they_o complain_v of_o the_o court_n that_o not_o endure_v a_o reformation_n they_o hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o calumniate_v reprehend_v and_o censure_n that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n that_o have_v see_v how_o they_o proceed_v against_o a_o necessary_a and_o small_a reformation_n they_o must_v needs_o expect_v a_o great_a commotion_n and_o contradiction_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o touch_v at_o the_o quick_a that_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o bridle_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o passionate_a and_o make_v show_v at_o the_o least_o see_v that_o he_o will_v not_o beety_v real_o that_o the_o council_n may_v proceed_v with_o sincerity_n and_o liberty_n paulus_n emilius_n verallus_n bishop_n of_o capoccio_n come_v to_o bad_a term_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n in_o a_o meeting_n of_o many_o bishop_n for_o paris_n have_v dislike_v bishop_n a_o passage_n concern_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n the_o course_n of_o determine_v by_o plurality_n of_o voice_n and_o the_o other_o answer_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v equal_a paris_n ask_v he_o how_o many_o soul_n be_v under_o his_o charge_n who_o answer_v that_o he_o have_v five_o hundred_o then_o paris_n reply_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o person_n he_o yield_v unto_o he_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o those_o who_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o he_o that_o speak_v of_o five_o hundred_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v equal_a to_o he_o that_o speak_v of_o five_o hundred_o thousand_o thing_n stand_v in_o these_o term_n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n make_v until_o the_o 20._o day_n in_o which_o the_o french_a ambassador_n who_o have_v impart_v their_o instruction_n to_o the_o imperialist_n and_o hold_v correspondence_n according_a to_o the_o oration_n the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n and_o one_o of_o they_o make_v a_o oration_n command_n of_o their_o master_n present_v themselves_o the_o mandate_n of_o their_o ambassage_n be_v exhibit_v and_o read_v guide_v faber_n make_v a_o long_a oration_n in_o which_o have_v expound_v the_o continual_a desire_n of_o the_o king_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v assemble_v in_o a_o fit_a place_n not_o suspect_v and_o the_o request_n he_o have_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o christian_a prince_n for_o it_o he_o tell_v they_o what_o fruit_n may_v be_v expect_v from_o the_o open_n of_o it_o he_o add_v that_o as_o those_o do_v much_o err_v who_o will_v innovate_v all_o therite_v of_o the_o church_n so_o to_o maintain_v all_o of_o they_o obstinate_o not_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o present_a time_n and_o the_o public_a good_a deserve_v no_o less_o reprehension_n he_o declare_v very_o particular_o the_o
temptation_n which_o the_o devil_n will_v use_v to_o divert_v the_o father_n from_o the_o right_a way_n say_v that_o if_o they_o give_v ear_n to_o he_o they_o will_v make_v counsel_n lose_v all_o authority_n add_v that_o many_o counsel_n have_v be_v hold_v in_o germany_n and_o italy_n with_o no_o fruit_n or_o very_o little_a of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o free_a nor_o lawful_a because_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o will_n of_o another_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v careful_a to_o use_v well_o the_o power_n and_o liberty_n give_v they_o by_o god_n for_o if_o in_o private_a cause_n they_o deserve_v severe_a punishment_n who_o do_v gratify_v any_o man_n against_o justice_n they_o deserve_v it_o much_o more_o who_o be_v judge_n in_o cause_n divine_a do_v follow_v a_o popular_a applause_n or_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v make_v gown_a slave_n to_o the_o prince_n to_o who_o they_o be_v oblige_v and_o say_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v examine_v himself_o what_o passion_n do_v possess_v he_o and_o because_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o former_a synod_n have_v make_v a_o prejudice_n to_o this_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o show_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v past_a that_o every_o one_o may_v dispute_v without_o be_v burn_v that_o public_a faith_n be_v not_o break_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v call_v for_o from_o heaven_n only_o and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o that_o council_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o paul_n 3._o and_o prosecute_v by_o julius_n 3._o in_o turbulent_a time_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o arm_n which_o be_v dissolve_v without_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a but_o a_o new_a free_a peaceable_a and_o lawful_a council_n call_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n to_o which_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o republic_n do_v give_v consent_n to_o which_o germany_n will_v run_v and_o bring_v with_o the_o author_n of_o the_o new_a dispute_n the_o most_o grave_a and_o eloquent_a man_n which_o it_o have_v he_o conclude_v that_o they_o the_o ambassador_n do_v promise_v to_o this_o end_n the_o assistance_n of_o the_o king_n it_o seem_v that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o legate_n themselves_o do_v not_o take_v those_o word_n well_o to_o which_o the_o speaker_n not_o know_v make_v to_o which_o the_o speaker_n know_v not_o what_o answer_n to_o make_v what_o to_o answer_v nor_o what_o compliment_n to_o make_v the_o congregation_n end_v with_o the_o oration_n the_o next_o day_n the_o same_o ambassador_n go_v to_o the_o legate_n assemble_v for_o that_o purpose_n where_o they_o excuse_v the_o french_a prelate_n for_o not_o come_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o tumult_n promise_v that_o when_o they_o be_v end_v as_o they_o hope_v new_a the_o french_a ambassador_n demand_v of_o the_o legate_n a_o declaration_n that_o the_o council_n be_v new_a they_o will_v be_v short_o they_o shall_v come_v with_o speed_n afterward_o they_o declare_v that_o the_o hugonot_n do_v suspect_v the_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n and_o do_v require_v a_o new_a that_o the_o king_n have_v treat_v hereof_o with_o the_o emperor_n who_o desire_v the_o same_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o confessionist_n that_o he_o have_v demand_v the_o same_o also_o of_o the_o pope_n who_o answer_v that_o the_o difference_n be_v only_o between_o they_o and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o that_o it_o concern_v not_o he_o but_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n therefore_o they_o demand_v a_o declaration_n in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o indication_n be_v new_a and_o not_o in_o these_o word_n indicendo_fw-la continuamus_fw-la &_o continuando_fw-la indicimus_fw-la which_o be_v a_o ambiguity_n not_o befit_v christian_n and_o impli_v a_o contradiction_n and_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n already_o make_v by_o the_o council_n be_v not_o receive_v by_o the_o french_a church_n nor_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o that_o henry_n 2._o do_v protest_v against_o it_o that_o concern_v this_o point_n they_o be_v address_v to_o they_o the_o legate_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v often_o say_v that_o the_o question_n of_o indiction_n or_o continuation_n be_v not_o he_o and_o that_o he_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n and_o have_v deliver_v this_o petition_n by_o word_n they_o leave_v it_o also_o in_o writing_n the_o legate_n after_o they_o have_v consult_v together_o answer_v in_o write_v also_o that_o they_o admit_v the_o excuse_n of_o the_o bishop_n absent_a but_o that_o they_o can_v answer_v to_o who_o the_o legate_n answer_v not_o defer_v the_o discussion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n until_o their_o come_n because_o the_o father_n who_o be_v present_a will_v be_v incommodate_v too_o much_o that_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o indiction_n of_o the_o council_n be_v new_a but_o to_o preside_v only_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n and_o the_o will_n of_o the_o synod_n the_o frenchman_n be_v content_v with_o the_o answer_n for_o the_o present_a have_v determine_v together_o with_o the_o imperialist_n not_o to_o proceed_v further_o so_o long_o as_o in_o the_o act_n mention_n be_v not_o make_v of_o continuation_n consider_v that_o the_o spaniard_n have_v make_v request_n in_o the_o first_o session_n that_o the_o continuation_n shall_v be_v declare_v and_o receive_v much_o contradiction_n there_o be_v danger_n that_o the_o council_n will_v have_v be_v dissolve_v but_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o legate_n publish_v by_o the_o french_a man_n that_o their_o authority_n be_v to_o preside_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o synod_n make_v the_o spaniard_n say_v that_o those_o word_n do_v subject_a the_o legate_n to_o the_o council_n whereas_o indeed_o they_o make_v themselves_o lord_n over_o it_o and_o granata_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a dominion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o of_o a_o lord_n also_o the_o legate_n propose_v nothing_o for_o the_o next_o session_n the_o prelate_n who_o favour_v residency_n begin_v to_o discourse_v again_o of_o it_o and_o persuade_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o france_n portugal_n and_o all_o the_o other_o to_o move_v the_o legate_n that_o it_o may_v be_v decide_v in_o the_o next_o session_n allege_v residence_n the_o spaniard_n require_v a_o determination_n in_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n that_o it_o have_v be_v propose_v and_o dispute_v it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a scandal_n to_o leave_v it_o undecided_a and_o will_v show_v that_o it_o be_v for_o some_o particular_a interest_n see_v that_o the_o principal_a prelate_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o great_a number_n do_v desire_v the_o determination_n of_o it_o the_o french_a man_n together_o with_o the_o imperialist_n make_v instance_n that_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v not_o be_v handle_v protestant_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o french_a king_n &_o emperor_n demand_v of_o the_o legate_n that_o y_z e_z point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o protestant_n in_o absence_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o do_v impugn_v they_o until_o their_o contumacy_n be_v manifest_a in_o regard_n the_o disputation_n be_v superfluous_a where_o there_o be_v none_o to_o contradict_v especial_o there_o be_v matter_n enough_o beside_o in_o which_o the_o world_n do_v agree_v that_o be_v a_o good_a reformation_n of_o manner_n that_o the_o english_a ambassador_n in_o france_n have_v declare_v that_o his_o queen_n will_v send_v to_o the_o council_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o other_o protestant_n will_v do_v the_o like_a so_o that_o a_o general_a reunion_n of_o the_o church_n will_v succeed_v and_o that_o one_o may_v assure_v himself_o to_o see_v this_o effect_v if_o a_o good_a reformation_n be_v make_v cardinal_n simoneta_n answer_v this_o second_o proposition_n that_o the_o business_n seem_v easy_a but_o be_v not_o so_o because_o all_o consist_v in_o the_o disposition_n of_o benefice_n in_o which_o the_o abuse_n proceed_v from_o king_n and_o prince_n this_o trouble_v all_o the_o ambassador_n because_o of_o the_o nomination_n and_o disposition_n which_o prince_n do_v exercise_n and_o especial_o the_o french_a king_n but_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o residence_n do_v molest_v the_o legate_n more_o nor_o be_v the_o father_n pacify_v with_o the_o excuse_n former_o use_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o sufficient_o digest_v that_o there_o be_v not_o time_n enough_o before_o the_o session_n to_o make_v it_o clear_a and_o for_o other_o consideration_n and_o the_o heat_n grow_v so_o great_a that_o some_o of_o the_o vltramontans_n be_v agree_v to_o protest_v and_o depart_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o stop_v the_o motion_n for_o the_o ambassador_n fear_v that_o the_o council_n will_v be_v interrupt_v and_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v cherish_v every_o occasion_n cease_v
of_o the_o chalice_n upon_o their_o hand_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o difficulty_n that_o the_o thing_n propose_v be_v diverse_a and_o concern_v diverse_a subject_n which_o can_v be_v all_o digest_v together_o that_o therefore_o they_o will_v communicate_v to_o the_o prelate_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v those_o which_o have_v affinity_n with_o the_o other_o reformation_n the_o ambassador_n know_v that_o they_o speak_v this_o that_o they_o may_v not_o publish_v their_o writing_n in_o congregation_n that_o by_o gain_v time_n they_o may_v delude_v the_o emperor_n expectation_n but_o yet_o at_o that_o time_n they_o say_v no_o more_o afterward_o consult_v together_o they_o hold_v it_o expedient_a to_o inform_v the_o emperor_n well_o as_o well_o of_o this_o particular_a as_o general_o of_o the_o manner_n how_o they_o proceed_v in_o the_o council_n and_o to_o do_v this_o the_o bishop_n of_o prague_n ride_v post_n that_o council_n the_o bishop_n of_o prague_n go_v by_o post_n to_o inform_v the_o emperor_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o council_n he_o may_v return_v before_o the_o session_n the_o legate_n perceive_v that_o the_o council_n stand_v upon_o bad_a term_n in_o many_o respect_n but_o especial_o for_o the_o distaste_n and_o suspicion_n of_o the_o pope_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o inform_v he_o full_o of_o all_o that_o be_v past_a and_o imminent_a for_o this_o friar_z leonardus_n marinus_n archbishop_n of_o lanciano_n be_v choose_v because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o spirit_n and_o acceptable_a to_o pope_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lanciano_n to_o inform_v the_o pope_n the_o pope_n promote_v and_o much_o favour_v by_o he_o and_o a_o friend_n also_o to_o seripando_n who_o instruction_n be_v to_o inform_v the_o popeful_o to_o excuse_v the_o legate_n and_o to_o pacify_v his_o holiness_n he_o carry_v the_o common_a letter_n of_o the_o legate_n for_o his_o credence_n to_o which_o simoneta_n make_v much_o and_o long_a difficulty_n to_o subscribe_v nor_o will_v have_v do_v it_o but_o that_o they_o agree_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v write_v particular_a letter_n of_o his_o own_o simoneta_n write_v that_o he_o do_v think_v to_o send_v the_o archbishop_n of_o rosano_n for_o his_o particular_a to_o give_v a_o more_o exact_a information_n but_o that_o be_v better_o advise_v he_o afterward_o resolve_v to_o expect_v the_o event_n of_o lanciano_n his_o journey_n the_o mutual_a distaste_v and_o detraction_n of_o the_o roman_n against_o the_o trentines_n and_o of_o these_o against_o those_o do_v increase_v at_o the_o arrival_n of_o every_o currier_n in_o trent_n the_o favourer_n of_o residence_n do_v bewail_v the_o misery_n of_o the_o church_n the_o servitude_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o manifest_a desperation_n to_o see_v the_o church_n reform_v in_o rome_n the_o opposite_n lament_v that_o a_o schism_n be_v plot_v in_o the_o council_n yea_o a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n they_o say_v that_o the_o vltramontans_n for_o malice_n and_o envy_n against_o the_o italian_n do_v aim_v not_o so_o much_o at_o the_o depression_n as_o at_o the_o abolition_n of_o the_o papacy_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n because_o christ_n have_v make_v it_o so_o the_o total_a destruction_n of_o the_o whole_a building_n must_v needs_o ensue_v the_o pope_n receive_v new_a advice_n daily_o and_o always_o worse_o as_o every_o day_n some_o novity_n do_v happen_v in_o trent_n beside_o the_o accident_n occur_v in_o germany_n and_o france_n contrary_a to_o his_o affair_n be_v still_o more_o displease_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o mayor_n part_n for_o residency_n do_v not_o so_o much_o trouble_v he_o as_o the_o practice_n which_o be_v make_v especial_o by_o the_o ambassador_n perceive_v that_o the_o prince_n be_v interest_v in_o it_o against_o his_o authority_n he_o see_v the_o emperor_n be_v whole_o bend_v to_o make_v his_o son_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o ready_a to_o give_v all_o satisfaction_n to_o germany_n and_o therefore_o have_v cause_v these_o article_n of_o reformation_n to_o be_v present_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o call_v to_o he_o the_o amb._n prague_n to_o find_v a_o way_n how_o to_o propose_v they_o in_o council_n and_o establish_v they_o he_o know_v the_o french_a king_n be_v exhaust_v compass_v with_o infinite_a difficulty_n and_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v force_v to_o compound_v with_o the_o hugonot_n which_o if_o it_o happen_v the_o french_a prelate_n may_v run_v to_o the_o council_n join_v with_o the_o spaniard_n and_o make_v themselves_o author_n of_o other_o proposition_n against_o the_o papal_a authority_n he_o think_v to_o calm_v the_o tempest_n which_o he_o see_v prepare_v against_o he_o both_o with_o deed_n and_o word_n by_o levy_v four_o thousand_o swiss_n and_o three_o thousand_o dutch_a horseman_n he_o send_v to_o auignion_n nicolas_n gamba●a_n with_o five_o hundred_o foot_n and_o a_o hundred_o protestant_n the_o pope_n treat_v a_o common_a league_n of_o all_o catholic_a prince_n against_o the_o protestant_n light-horseman_n give_v money_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n to_o put_v himself_o in_o arm_n and_o oppose_v if_o the_o hugonot_n will_v descend_v into_o italy_n and_o to_o engage_v all_o prince_n he_o resolve_v to_o treat_v a_o league_n defensive_a of_o all_o catholic_n against_o the_o plot_n of_o the_o protestant_n in_o every_o place_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o make_v they_o condescend_v if_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n yet_o for_o this_o at_o the_o least_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o suspicion_n in_o italy_n he_o think_v it_o not_o hard_a to_o induce_v all_o for_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n be_v whole_o he_o in_o savoy_n he_o have_v interest_n for_o the_o succour_n he_o send_v he_o and_o for_o the_o danger_n he_o be_v in_o the_o venetian_n desire_v to_o keep_v the_o vltramontans_n out_o of_o italy_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v need_v of_o he_o for_o naples_n and_o milan_n and_o france_n for_o the_o actual_a necessity_n in_o which_o it_o be_v therefore_o he_o make_v the_o proposition_n in_o rome_n to_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n and_o the_o venetian_n and_o send_v the_o abbot_n of_o saint_n saluto_n for_o this_o end_n into_o france_n and_o the_o lord_n odescalco_n into_o spain_n to_o who_o also_o he_o give_v instruction_n to_o complain_v to_o the_o king_n that_o the_o spanish_a bishop_n be_v unite_v against_o his_o authority_n and_o to_o show_v he_o that_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v fit_a to_o make_v a_o schism_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o foresee_v the_o issue_n of_o that_o project_n to_o any_o that_o do_v know_v though_o but_o superficial_o the_o end_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o emperor_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n condescend_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v give_v suspicion_n to_o the_o protestant_n the_o french_a king_n be_v so_o far_o from_o hinder_v the_o passage_n to_o the_o hugonot_n in_o italy_n that_o he_o will_v have_v be_v content_a to_o have_v see_v his_o whole_a kingdom_n rid_v of_o they_o spain_n have_v great_a possession_n in_o those_o part_n it_o but_o can_v effect_v it_o do_v more_o fear_n and_o abhor_v a_o union_n of_o italian_a prince_n then_o desire_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o heretic_n the_o venetian_n and_o duke_n of_o florence_n can_v not_o consent_v to_o any_o thing_n which_o may_v trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o italy_n and_o so_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o league_n be_v not_o embrace_v by_o any_o of_o the_o prince_n every_o one_o allege_v a_o particular_a cause_n and_o all_o one_o common_a that_o it_o will_v hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o council_n which_o many_o believe_v will_v not_o have_v displease_v his_o holiness_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o again_o propose_v in_o consistory_n the_o declaration_n of_o the_o continuation_n and_o that_o himself_o will_v make_v a_o declaration_n concern_v residency_n which_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o perform_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o cardinal_n carpi_n follow_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o other_o cardinal_n that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v good_a service_n for_o his_o holiness_n nor_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n to_o make_v himself_o author_n of_o odious_a thing_n which_o may_v alien_n the_o mind_n of_o one_o party_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n for_o that_o time_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o forbear_v to_o complain_v in_o consistory_n of_o all_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o french_a he_o say_v that_o lansac_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o ambassador_n the_o pope_n complain_v of_o the_o ambassador_n ambassador_n of_o the_o hugonot_n by_o his_o proposition_n desire_v that_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n the_o protestant_n of_o suisserland_n saxony_n and_o wittenberg_n shall_v be_v expect_v at_o the_o council_n who_o be_v declare_v enemy_n and_o rebel_n and_o have_v no_o other_o end_n then_o to_o
the_o private_a mass_n in_o which_o the_o priest_n alone_o do_v receive_v the_o communion_n without_o other_o communicant_n be_v unlawful_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v take_v away_o 6._o whether_o the_o mingle_n of_o water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o mass_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n 7._o whether_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n do_v contain_v error_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v abrogate_a 8._o whether_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o pronounce_v soft_o and_o in_o secret_a the_o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n be_v damnable_a 9_o whether_o the_o mass_n ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v only_o in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n understand_v by_o all_o 10._o whether_o to_o attribute_v certain_a mass_n to_o certain_a saint_n be_v a_o abuse_n 11._o whether_o the_o ceremony_n vestment_n and_o other_o external_a sign_n which_o the_o church_n use_v aught_o to_o be_v take_v away_o 12._o whether_o to_o say_v that_o our_o lord_n be_v mystical_o sacrifice_v by_o we_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v give_v we_o to_o eat_v 13._o whether_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n only_o or_o propitiatory_a for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o divine_n shall_v speak_v whether_o these_o article_n be_v erroneous_a or_o false_a or_o heretical_a and_o whether_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o synod_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v divide_v they_o so_o that_o the_o seventeen_o first_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o seven_o first_o article_n and_o the_o other_o concern_v the_o six_o follow_v the_o french_a ambassador_n think_v still_o they_o have_v small_a reputation_n in_o the_o council_n in_o respect_n of_o other_o and_o after_o that_o the_o decree_n aforesaid_a come_v forth_o be_v more_o jealous_a than_o before_o because_o mention_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o divine_n to_o what_o king_n each_o do_v belong_v which_o be_v not_o do_v concern_v the_o prelate_n and_o none_o will_v be_v present_a for_o france_n they_o doubt_v also_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n some_o prejudice_n may_v arise_v to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o kingdom_n therefore_o they_o do_v present_o and_o afterward_o upon_o other_o occasion_n france_n the_o french_a ambassador_n write_v to_o their_o king_n for_o prelate_n o●_n doctor_n to_o be_v send_v out_o of_o france_n send_v advice_n into_o france_n that_o the_o disputation_n will_v pass_v only_o between_o the_o italian_n spaniard_n and_o portugal_n that_o france_n will_v have_v no_o part_n if_o his_o majesty_n do_v not_o present_o dispatch_v away_o some_o prelate_n or_o doctor_n especial_o because_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n contain_v in_o the_o article_n propose_v be_v to_o be_v handle_v which_o also_o will_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o obtain_v or_o hinder_v other_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o majesty_n desire_n and_o the_o content_n of_o their_o instruction_n that_o until_o then_o they_o have_v propose_v none_o of_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n because_o not_o have_v suffrage_n to_o maintain_v they_o no_o account_n will_v have_v be_v make_v of_o their_o remonstrance_n that_o the_o council_n will_v not_o hearken_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o as_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o profit_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n because_o the_o pope_n be_v lord_n of_o the_o proposition_n it_o have_v be_v determine_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o ever_o since_o observe_v that_o nothing_o council_n and_o complain_v of_o the_o proceed_n in_o council_n may_v be_v propose_v but_o by_o the_o legate_n as_o also_o of_o the_o resolution_n because_o so_o many_o prelate_n be_v his_o pensioner_n and_o stand_v at_o his_o devotion_n that_o it_o be_v resolve_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o reform_v the_o court_n but_o reserve_v that_o whole_a business_n to_o his_o holiness_n that_o the_o spaniard_n who_o be_v very_o zealous_a for_o the_o reformation_n be_v cool_v and_o put_v in_o fear_n by_o the_o reprehension_n of_o their_o king_n that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n so_o long_o as_o the_o case_n stand_v thus_o to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n but_o what_o please_v the_o pope_n because_o no_o instance_n make_v by_o all_o the_o ambassador_n and_o prince_n which_o be_v in_o trent_n have_v be_v able_a to_o persuade_v a_o good_a reformation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n howsoever_o article_n conformable_a not_o only_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o even_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o have_v be_v present_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o in_o stead_n of_o those_o they_o propose_v point_n of_o the_o present_a controversy_n of_o doctrine_n though_o they_o have_v be_v tell_v it_o be_v superfluous_a in_o absence_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o that_o if_o they_o propose_v any_o thing_n concern_v manner_n it_o be_v of_o small_a importance_n and_o of_o no_o fruit_n the_o pope_n daily_o advise_v of_o the_o diverse_a occurrence_n in_o trent_n do_v fear_n that_o no_o decree_n will_v be_v publish_v in_o the_o session_n at_o the_o day_n appoint_v but_o understand_v how_o happ_o it_o pass_v be_v exceed_v glad_a and_o the_o more_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o legate_n and_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n he_o can_v not_o conceal_v his_o joy_n but_o impart_v it_o in_o consistory_n and_o speak_v of_o it_o to_o the_o ambassador_n and_o thank_v the_o cardinal_n of_o arragon_n brother_n of_o pescara_n to_o who_o he_o do_v attribute_v this_o service_n and_o be_v whole_o bend_v to_o conclude_v the_o council_n quick_o and_o find_v that_o nothing_o can_v prolong_v it_o but_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n and_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o he_o be_v whole_o intent_n to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n that_o they_o shall_v assure_v thereof_o the_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n who_o speak_v of_o it_o and_o that_o themselves_o shall_v dispatch_v the_o other_o matter_n which_o they_o may_v do_v in_o three_o session_n more_o he_o commend_v they_o for_o have_v reserve_v power_n to_o abbreviate_v the_o time_n prefix_v exhort_v they_o to_o make_v use_n thereof_o he_o add_v that_o know_v it_o be_v hard_a to_o make_v a_o good_a resolution_n in_o the_o council_n in_o matter_n of_o residence_n because_o many_o prelate_n have_v deliver_v their_o opinion_n to_o a_o good_a end_n be_v interest_v in_o their_o honour_n they_o shall_v procure_v that_o it_o may_v be_v refer_v unto_o he_o and_o likewise_o shall_v free_v themselves_o from_o instance_n make_v by_o prince_n for_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n by_o make_v the_o same_o reference_n and_o if_o any_o difficulty_n hard_o to_o be_v resolve_v shall_v happen_v in_o any_o of_o the_o point_n which_o remain_v to_o be_v handle_v they_o shall_v propose_v the_o remit_v of_o it_o to_o he_o also_o because_o he_o can_v more_o easy_o decide_v any_o thing_n in_o consistory_n call_v some_o doctor_n if_o there_o be_v occasion_n then_o in_o trent_n where_o man_n diverse_a interest_n make_v the_o resolution_n impossible_a or_o very_o long_o the_o first_o congregation_n of_o the_o divine_n be_v hold_v the_o next_o day_n in_o the_o afternoon_n rule_n the_o jesuite_n will_v not_o observe_v y_z e_o rule_n in_o which_o the_o order_n of_o speak_v but_o half_o a_o hour_n be_v so_o well_o observe_v that_o salmeron_n the_o jesuite_n spend_v the_o whole_a time_n himself_o with_o much_o sauciness_n say_v he_o be_v send_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o be_v to_o speak_v of_o important_a and_o necessary_a matter_n no_o time_n be_v to_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o he_o and_o discourse_v on_o the_o seven_o article_n speak_v only_o common_a thing_n which_o deserve_v not_o particular_a mention_n the_o next_o morning_n he_o be_v imitate_v by_o his_o fellow_n torre_n who_o spend_v that_o whole_a congregation_n also_o and_o rather_o repeat_v the_o thing_n speak_v before_o then_o add_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o but_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o come_v in_o the_o end_n to_o the_o place_n of_o s._n john_n if_o you_o eat_v not_o etc._n etc._n he_o say_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o sacramental_a communion_n and_o add_v that_o in_o the_o first_o point_n of_o doctrine_n publish_v in_o the_o last_o session_n it_o seem_v that_o doubt_n be_v make_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v in_o the_o next_o that_o nothing_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o that_o passage_n but_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o if_o any_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n he_o appeal_v to_o the_o synod_n the_o legate_n be_v much_o offend_v at_o his_o speech_n as_o well_o because_o it_o cross_v the_o determination_n displease_v with_o who_o the_o legate_n be_v displease_v of_o the_o council_n as_o because_o it_o show_v a_o necessity_n of_o
dignity_n hereupon_o the_o legate_n be_v content_a not_o only_o to_o propose_v it_o again_o without_o the_o clause_n but_o to_o use_v persuasion_n themselves_o also_o and_o to_o employ_v other_o and_o the_o day_n follow_v which_o be_v the_o next_o day_n before_o the_o pope_n the_o grant_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n session_n the_o decree_n correct_v do_v pass_v by_o the_o mayor_n part_n though_o contradict_v by_o all_o of_o the_o negative_a to_o the_o great_a joy_n of_o the_o legate_n and_o papalin_n aswell_o because_o the_o session_n be_v not_o prolong_v which_o they_o great_o fear_v as_o also_o because_o they_o think_v it_o more_o honour_n for_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o grace_n shall_v total_o depend_v on_o his_o authority_n the_o ambassador_n be_v well_o satisfy_v with_o this_o particular_a but_o perceive_v that_o the_o session_n will_v be_v in_o order_n and_o that_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n can_v not_o be_v hinder_v as_o they_o have_v desire_v in_o the_o emperor_n name_n they_o join_v with_o the_o frenchman_n who_o be_v mal-content_a because_o the_o request_n which_o their_o king_n have_v make_v in_o rome_n be_v deny_v therefore_o the_o same_o day_n in_o the_o afternoon_n all_o the_o ambassador_n ambassador_n a_o general_a consultation_n of_o the_o ambassador_n meet_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o imperialist_n say_v they_o will_v consult_v of_o a_o thing_n common_a to_o all_o prince_n the_o venetian_n and_o florentive_a be_v call_v excuse_v themselves_o say_v they_o can_v not_o come_v without_o express_a commission_n from_o their_o master_n in_o that_o assembly_n the_o bishop_n of_o five_o church_n make_v a_o long_a discourse_n to_o show_v that_o hitherto_o nothing_o of_o worth_n have_v be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n that_o they_o have_v vain_o dispute_v of_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o do_v the_o heretic_n no_o good_a who_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o change_v their_o opinion_n nor_o the_o catholic_n who_o be_v sufficient_o persuade_v already_o that_o for_o reformation_n nothing_o have_v be_v propose_v but_o thing_n of_o no_o moment_n of_o notary_n receiver_n and_o such_o like_a that_o it_o do_v plain_o appear_v that_o the_o legate_n will_v make_v the_o next_o session_n according_a to_o the_o same_o stile_n and_o afterward_o spend_v the_o time_n in_o dispute_n decide_v of_o doctrine_n make_v canon_n of_o order_n marriage_n or_o some_o other_o sleight_n matter_n to_o avoid_v as_o they_o have_v do_v the_o substantial_a point_n of_o reformation_n and_o by_o these_o and_o other_o reason_n well_o amplify_v he_o persuade_v the_o ambassador_n to_o join_v together_o and_o to_o go_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o desire_v that_o for_o that_o session_n they_o will_v omit_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o doctrine_n or_o canon_n because_o it_o be_v now_o time_n to_o think_v upon_o a_o good_a reformation_n to_o take_v away_o so_o great_a abuse_n to_o correct_v bad_a manner_n and_o to_o labour_v that_o the_o council_n may_v not_o be_v unfruitful_a the_o spanish_a secretary_n will_v not_o assent_v for_o his_o king_n desire_v that_o the_o continuation_n shall_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n fear_v he_o shall_v prejudice_n himself_o if_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v which_o be_v to_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n and_o reformation_n together_o shall_v be_v change_v because_o that_o alteration_n may_v be_v use_v for_o a_o argument_n that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a council_n the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n have_v make_v a_o long_a unconclude_a speech_n to_o show_v he_o desire_v a_o reformation_n but_o upon_o more_o please_a term_n retire_v from_o the_o company_n the_o susse_n see_v the_o example_n of_o those_o two_o and_o that_o the_o venetian_n be_v not_o present_a fear_v to_o commit_v a_o error_n say_v it_o be_v good_a to_o consider_v of_o it_o again_o before_o they_o resolve_v all_o the_o other_o be_v resolute_a to_o go_v lansac_n by_o consent_n speak_v for_o they_o all_o say_v they_o be_v send_v by_o their_o prince_n to_o assist_v and_o favour_v the_o council_n and_o to_o procure_v that_o the_o proceed_n shall_v be_v pertinent_a not_o by_o dispute_v of_o doctrine_n whereof_o none_o of_o they_o be_v catholic_n do_v doubt_n and_o be_v superfluous_a in_o absence_n of_o those_o who_o do_v they_o who_o choose_v lansac_n to_o speak_v for_o they_o impugn_v it_o but_o by_o make_v a_o good_a holy_a and_o absolute_a reformation_n of_o manner_n now_o because_o notwithstanding_o all_o their_o remonstrance_n they_o see_v they_o will_v determine_v principal_a point_n of_o controversed_a doctrine_n and_o touch_v the_o reformation_n but_o slight_o he_o pray_v they_o to_o change_v their_o purpose_n and_o to_o employ_v the_o next_o session_n in_o reformation_n only_o propose_v more_o important_a and_o necessary_a argument_n than_o those_o whereof_o hitherto_o they_o have_v speak_v the_o legate_n answer_v in_o the_o usual_a form_n that_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o legate_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o legate_n they_o be_v to_o do_v the_o service_n of_o god_n procure_v the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o satisfy_v and_o gratify_v all_o prince_n but_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a to_o break_v the_o order_n always_o observe_v in_o the_o council_n to_o handle_v doctrine_n and_o reformation_n together_o that_o the_o thing_n already_o do_v be_v but_o a_o beginning_n that_o they_o have_v a_o good_a intention_n to_o do_v better_a that_o they_o will_v most_o ready_o receive_v the_o article_n which_o the_o ambassador_n will_v propose_v that_o they_o marvel_v that_o the_o article_n determine_v at_o poisi_n in_o france_n be_v not_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n who_o will_v have_v approve_v they_o lansac_n reply_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v refer_v all_o matter_n concern_v religion_n to_o the_o council_n the_o french_a prelate_n when_o they_o come_v will_v propose_v both_o those_o and_o many_o other_o thing_n the_o legate_n answer_v they_o shall_v be_v welcome_a and_o willing_o hear_v but_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n to_o defer_v the_o session_n in_o regard_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v handle_v in_o it_o in_o prejudice_n of_o their_o proposition_n that_o most_o of_o the_o father_n be_v resolve_v the_o session_n shall_v be_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o give_v they_o distaste_n and_o that_o if_o they_o expect_v in_o trent_n with_o great_a discommodity_n those_o who_o live_v at_o their_o ease_n and_o defer_v their_o come_n which_o they_o promise_v it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o discontent_n they_o more_o by_o make_v they_o remain_v idle_a this_o cunning_a persuasion_n be_v not_o strong_o oppose_v by_o the_o ambassador_n they_o hold_v the_o congregation_n and_o frame_v the_o decree_n which_o be_v establish_v when_o they_o come_v to_o appoint_v the_o time_n and_o the_o matter_n for_o the_o next_o session_n granata_n counsel_v they_o to_o prolong_v the_o time_n that_o the_o frenchman_n and_o polonian_n may_v have_v space_n not_o only_o to_o come_v but_o to_o inform_v themselves_o and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o proceed_v to_o a_o precise_a declaration_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v but_o stand_v upon_o the_o general_a as_o former_o they_o have_v do_v and_o resolve_v according_a to_o occurrence_n for_o so_o many_o person_n be_v to_o come_v it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o that_o they_o will_v bring_v some_o new_a matter_n which_o may_v cause_v new_a determination_n this_o opinion_n be_v follow_v by_o the_o spaniard_n and_o many_o other_o and_o be_v like_a to_o have_v be_v general_o approve_v but_o it_o be_v noise_v that_o the_o pope_n absolute_a commandment_n be_v come_v that_o the_o session_n shall_v not_o be_v defer_v above_o two_o month_n and_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n and_o marriage_n shall_v be_v handle_v together_o the_o papalin_n be_v induce_v to_o persuade_v that_o the_o time_n may_v not_o be_v prolong_v and_o that_o both_o those_o sacrament_n may_v be_v discuss_v the_o legate_n show_v they_o be_v force_v to_o make_v the_o decree_n in_o conformity_n hereof_o but_o there_o be_v two_o other_o true_a cause_n of_o it_o the_o one_o the_o quick_a dispatch_n of_o the_o council_n because_o they_o hope_v by_o so_o do_v to_o finish_v all_o in_o that_o session_n alone_o the_o other_o that_o the_o spaniard_n and_o other_o favourer_n of_o the_o reformation_n may_v not_o have_v time_n be_v busy_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o handle_v any_o thing_n of_o importance_n and_o particular_o that_o they_o may_v be_v hinder_v to_o promote_v or_o insist_v upon_o residence_n after_o that_o this_o point_n be_v establish_v all_o the_o decree_n be_v read_v together_o new_a contradiction_n be_v raise_v beside_o the_o usual_a contention_n which_o the_o legate_n can_v hardly_o stop_v with_o fair_a word_n the_o congregation_n last_v until_o two_o hour_n within_o
for_o the_o defer_v of_o it_o wherefore_o though_o the_o time_n be_v past_a they_o come_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o tell_v they_o they_o have_v a_o new_a commission_n from_o the_o king_n to_o make_v request_n that_o they_o will_v labour_v in_o the_o reformation_n and_o for_o point_n of_o doctrine_n expect_v the_o come_n of_o his_o prelate_n add_v that_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o matrimony_n be_v dispute_v by_o the_o divine_n and_o handle_v by_o the_o prelate_n no_o more_o point_n of_o doctrine_n will_v remain_v and_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n wherefore_o then_o request_n be_v that_o they_o will_v be_v please_v to_o defer_v they_o until_o the_o end_n of_o october_n employ_v themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n or_o one_o day_n in_o that_o and_o another_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n not_o defer_v as_o they_o have_v do_v all_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n until_o the_o last_o day_n immediate_o before_o the_o session_n so_o that_o there_o scarce_o remain_v time_n so_o much_o as_o to_o see_v the_o article_n much_o less_o to_o consult_v upon_o they_o the_o legate_n answer_v that_o their_o proposition_n do_v desire_v to_o be_v weigh_v well_o answer_v to_o which_o the_o legate_n answer_v and_o that_o they_o will_v be_v careful_a to_o give_v they_o all_o possible_a satisfaction_n demand_v a_o copy_n of_o their_o instruction_n that_o they_o may_v resolve_v the_o better_a the_o ambassador_n give_v they_o a_o writing_n of_o this_o tenor_n that_o the_o king_n have_v see_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o july_n concern_v the_o communion_n sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la and_o defer_v two_o article_n in_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o those_o propose_v in_o the_o congregation_n concern_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n howsoever_o he_o commend_v that_o which_o be_v do_v yet_o he_o can_v conceal_v that_o which_o be_v general_o speak_v that_o be_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o manner_n be_v either_o quite_o omit_v or_o slender_o handle_v and_o the_o controversed_a point_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o all_o the_o father_n do_v agree_v hasty_o determine_v which_o although_o he_o think_v to_o be_v false_a yet_o he_o desire_v that_o the_o proposition_n of_o his_o ambassador_n may_v be_v expound_v as_o necessary_a to_o provide_v for_o the_o good_a of_o christendom_n and_o the_o calamity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o have_v find_v by_o experence_n that_o neither_o severity_n nor_o moderation_n have_v be_v able_a to_o reduce_v those_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o general_n council_n which_o he_o have_v obtain_v of_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o tumult_n of_o france_n do_v hinder_v the_o come_n of_o his_o prelate_n that_o he_o see_v well_o that_o the_o constancy_n and_o rigour_n in_o continue_v the_o form_n begin_v by_o the_o legate_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o reconcile_v peace_n and_o make_v a_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n that_o his_o desire_n be_v that_o nothing_o may_v be_v do_v to_o alien_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o adversary_n now_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o council_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v invite_v and_o in_o case_n they_o come_v receive_v as_o child_n with_o all_o humanity_n hope_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o will_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o bring_v back_o to_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o all_o that_o be_v in_o trent_n do_v profess_v the_o same_o religion_n and_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v make_v doubt_n of_o any_o part_n thereof_o he_o think_v the_o disputation_n and_o censure_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v not_o only_o superfluous_a but_o impertinent_a for_o the_o catholic_n and_o a_o cause_n to_o separate_v the_o adversary_n the_o more_o for_o he_o that_o think_v they_o will_v receive_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o they_o have_v not_o assist_v do_v not_o know_v they_o well_o neither_o will_v any_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o this_o mean_n but_o argument_n minister_v of_o write_v more_o book_n therefore_o the_o king_n think_v it_o better_a to_o omit_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n until_o the_o other_o of_o reformation_n be_v well_o set_v in_o order_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n at_o which_o every_o one_o must_v aim_v that_o the_o council_n which_o now_o be_v great_a and_o will_v be_v great_a by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n may_v produce_v fruit_n afterward_o the_o king_n demand_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o his_o bishop_n the_o next_o session_n may_v be_v put_v off_o until_o the_o end_n of_o october_n or_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o decree_v defer_v or_o a_o new_a order_n expect_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o he_o have_v write_v labour_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n and_o because_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o counsel_n be_v not_o observe_v that_o king_n and_o prince_n or_o their_o ambassador_n may_v declare_v the_o necessity_n of_o their_o state_n his_o majesty_n demand_v that_o their_o authority_n may_v be_v preserve_v and_o all_o revoke_v which_o have_v be_v do_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o same_o day_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n come_v to_o the_o legate_n require_v ambassador_n the_o petition_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n that_o the_o article_n send_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o present_v by_o they_o may_v be_v propose_v and_o be_v very_o earnest_a that_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o that_o the_o reformation_n may_v be_v serviceable_a not_o only_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o for_o the_o church_n of_o every_o particular_a kingdom_n their_o desire_n be_v that_o two_o of_o every_o nation_n may_v be_v depute_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o which_o do_v deserve_v to_o be_v propose_v and_o discuss_v in_o council_n the_o legate_n make_v a_o common_a answer_n to_o they_o both_o that_o they_o can_v not_o alter_v without_o great_a prejudice_n the_o order_n set_v down_o which_o be_v to_o handle_v doctrine_n and_o reformation_n both_o together_o and_z if_o they_o shall_v that_o other_o prince_n will_v oppose_v but_o to_o content_v they_o they_o will_v ordain_v that_o the_o divine_n and_o prelate_n shall_v examine_v the_o matter_n of_o order_n only_o and_o afterward_o handle_v some_o point_n of_o reformation_n observe_v still_o the_o former_a use_n that_o every_o one_o of_o what_o condition_n soever_o may_v put_v they_o the_o legate_n in_o mind_n of_o what_o they_o think_v necessary_a profitable_a or_o convenient_a which_o be_v a_o great_a liberty_n then_o to_o have_v two_o depute_a for_o every_o nation_n and_o afterward_o they_o will_v treat_v of_o matrimony_n the_o ambassador_n be_v not_o one_o jot_n content_v the_o legate_n send_v all_o their_o demand_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o frenchman_n complain_v to_o all_o man_n of_o this_o austerity_n and_o for_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v late_o command_v other_o prelate_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n that_o he_o may_v exceed_v in_o number_n which_o the_o papalin_n themselves_o do_v not_o like_v shall_v be_v do_v so_o open_o and_o just_a when_o the_o news_n be_v spread_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n desire_v to_o be_v secure_v by_o a_o mayor_n part_n yet_o so_o as_o not_o to_o have_v it_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n it_o be_v do_v but_o the_o pope_n do_v of_o set_a purpose_n proceed_v 〈◊〉_d open_o that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n may_v know_v that_o his_o attempt_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o so_o resolve_v not_o to_o come_v or_o that_o the_o frenchman_n may_v take_v some_o ●easion_n to_o make_v the_o council_n dissolve_v neither_o be_v the_o pope_n o●●ly_o of_o 〈…〉_o pinion_v but_o all_o the_o court_n fear_v some_o great_a prejudice_n by_o the_o cardinal_n design_n which_o howsoever_o they_o may_v not_o succeed_v a_o thing_n which_o they_o can_v scarce_o hope_v hope_v 〈…〉_o yet_o his_o come_n only_o will_v hinder_v prolong_v and_o disturb_v the_o council_n ferra●●_n tell_v lorraine_n his_o kinsman_n 〈◊〉_d his_o journey_n will_v be_v of_o no_o moment_n and_o of_o small_a reputation_n to_o himself_o in_o regard_n he_o will_v arr●ue_v after_o all_o be_v determine_v and_o biancheto_o a_o familiar_a friend_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o armignac_n who_o also_o have_v credit_n with_o lorraine_n 〈◊〉_d as_o much_o to_o they_o both_o and_o the_o secretary_n of_o seripando_n who_o have_v 〈…〉_o ritie_n 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n ferrier_n ●olde_v he_o the_o same_o all_o which_o be_v though_o too_o be_v do_v 〈◊〉_d by_o commission_n from_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o please_v he_o at_o the_o least_o but_o t●●ir_a care_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o
discourse_n of_o the_o ambassador_n lansac_n be_v receive_v with_o reformation_n the_o legate_n be_v much_o trouble_v with_o the_o speech_n that_o past_v concern_v reformation_n great_a applause_n make_v in_o a_o assembly_n of_o many_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n in_o which_o he_o conclude_v that_o if_o the_o reformation_n propose_v and_o demand_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v so_o fear_v and_o abhor_v yet_o at_o the_o least_o a_o way_n ought_v to_o be_v find_v out_o without_o make_v new_a constitution_n to_o cause_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v establish_v in_o ancient_a counsel_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o remove_v the_o impediment_n which_o do_v nourish_v the_o abuse_n the_o legate_n cause_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o imperialist_n and_o all_o the_o instance_n make_v unto_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n until_o that_o day_n and_o their_o own_o answer_n to_o be_v put_v together_o and_o a_o abstract_n to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o assembly_n in_o france_n and_o of_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n all_o which_o they_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o tell_v he_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o entertain_v they_o any_o more_o with_o pope_n and_o send_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n word_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o show_v the_o world_n by_o some_o effect_n that_o they_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o handle_v this_o matter_n and_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o some_o sort_n to_o the_o ambassdour_n of_o prince_n especial_o in_o that_o which_o they_o desire_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o country_n yet_o with_o such_o circumspection_n as_o that_o they_o may_v not_o prejudice_n the_o papal_a authority_n or_o prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o pope_n see_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o french_a king_n which_o do_v import_v the_o prolong_n of_o the_o council_n be_v much_o displease_v for_o he_o have_v conceive_v hope_n that_o all_o which_o do_v remain_v to_o be_v discuss_v may_v be_v define_v in_o the_o next_o session_n of_o the_o 12._o of_o november_n or_o if_o not_o yet_o that_o the_o council_n will_v be_v conclude_v suspend_v or_o dissolve_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n at_o the_o late_a he_o therefore_o answer_v the_o french_a ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o who_o desire_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o their_o prelate_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n handle_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o he_o be_v inform_v that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n mean_v to_o tarry_v until_o the_o surprise_n of_o burges_n &_o to_o attend_v the_o king_n to_o orlience_n so_o that_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o france_n will_v be_v very_o late_a and_o perhaps_o never_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o entertain_v so_o many_o prelate_n in_o trent_n upon_o design_n so_o remote_a that_o the_o demand_n for_o delay_n be_v not_o make_v because_o the_o frenchman_n desire_v to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n but_o to_o put_v himself_o and_o the_o prelate_n to_o more_o charge_n protest_v that_o if_o his_o money_n be_v consume_v by_o this_o mean_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o continue_v in_o assist_v the_o king_n he_o make_v it_o a_o great_a matter_n that_o their_o prelate_n have_v be_v expect_v eighteen_o month_n and_o himself_o lead_v along_o with_o diverse_a frivolous_a excuse_n he_o complain_v of_o his_o condition_n that_o if_o the_o council_n use_v any_o respect_n towards_o he_o which_o it_o do_v but_o seldom_o the_o ambassador_n there_o present_a say_v it_o be_v not_o free_a and_o yet_o themselves_o to_o desire_v he_o to_o ordain_v a_o dilation_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n more_o unjust_a and_o more_o abhor_a by_o the_o father_n than_o any_o other_o his_o conclusion_n be_v that_o when_o he_o have_v assurance_n or_o likelihood_n of_o their_o come_n he_o will_v endeavour_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v expect_v say_v he_o have_v give_v order_n to_o be_v advertise_v by_o a_o express_a currier_n of_o the_o cardinal_n departure_n that_o he_o may_v present_o employ_v himself_o in_o the_o business_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n he_o think_v it_o not_o just_a that_o the_o father_n shall_v be_v idle_a he_o say_v the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o be_v defer_v then_o this_o of_o doctrine_n which_o do_v not_o concern_v he_o as_o be_v a_o good_a catholic_a who_o will_v undoubted_o not_o dissent_v from_o other_o but_o in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o hear_v he_o because_o it_o do_v concern_v he_o as_o be_v a_o second_o pope_n have_v many_o benefice_n and_o a_o revenue_n of_o three_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n of_o church_n live_n whereas_o himself_o have_v but_o one_o benefice_n wherewith_o he_o be_v content_a that_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v reform_v himself_o and_o all_o part_n of_o the_o court_n to_o the_o hindrance_n and_o loss_n of_o many_o of_o his_o officer_n and_o will_v do_v more_o but_o that_o he_o see_v plain_o that_o by_o diminish_v his_o revenue_n and_o by_o weaken_v the_o force_n and_o the_o sinew_n of_o his_o stae_fw-la he_o encourage_v the_o adversary_n and_o expose_v all_o catholic_n who_o be_v under_o his_o protection_n to_o the_o injury_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o for_o the_o country_n which_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o he_o in_o temporal_a matter_n he_o say_v the_o overthrow_n of_o discipline_n do_v arise_v from_o themselves_o and_o from_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n who_o with_o unfit_a and_o importunate_a request_n do_v force_n he_o to_o make_v extraordinary_a provision_n and_o grant_v unusual_a dispensation_n that_o his_o condition_n be_v miserable_a who_o if_o he_o do_v deny_v unfit_a request_n make_v unto_o he_o every_o one_o complain_v of_o the_o injury_n if_o he_o grant_v they_o all_o the_o inconvenience_n ensue_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o and_o man_n begin_v to_o speak_v of_o reformation_n as_o the_o king_n ambassador_n have_v do_v in_o trent_n in_o such_o general_a term_n that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v what_o they_o mean_v he_o say_v let_v they_o come_v to_o particular_n and_o say_v what_o they_o will_v have_v reform_v in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o they_o shall_v have_v satisfaction_n in_o four_o day_n that_o the_o prelate_n in_o poisi_n have_v make_v many_o constitution_n which_o he_o will_v confirm_v when_o he_o shall_v be_v request_v but_o to_o stand_v upon_o universality_n only_o and_o to_o find_v fault_n with_o all_o that_o be_v do_v without_o propose_v any_o thing_n show_v they_o bear_v no_o good_a affection_n the_o four_o rank_n of_o theologue_n remain_v who_o be_v to_o handle_v the_o superiority_n priest_n the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n above_o priest_n of_o bishop_n above_o priest_n those_o who_o speak_v first_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n thomas_n and_o bonaventure_n who_o say_v a_o priest_n have_v two_o power_n one_o to_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o other_o to_o remit_v sin_n in_o the_o former_a whereof_o a_o priest_n be_v equal_a in_o regard_n a_o bishop_n have_v not_o great_a authority_n than_o a_o simple_a priest_n but_o inferior_a in_o the_o late_a because_o not_o the_o power_n only_o of_o order_n but_o of_o jurisdiction_n also_o be_v require_v other_o add_v that_o it_o be_v a_o more_o excellent_a action_n to_o give_v authority_n to_o consecrate_v then_o to_o consecrate_v and_o therefore_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v superior_a in_o this_o also_o who_o can_v only_o do_v it_o himself_o but_o ordain_v priest_n and_o give_v they_o authority_n but_o this_o be_v dispute_v sufficient_o they_o return_v to_o handle_v the_o article_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n as_o be_v the_o same_o with_o this_o point_n of_o superiority_n and_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o it_o do_v consist_v in_o order_n jurisdiction_n or_o in_o both_o antonius_n of_o mont._n alcino_n a_o franciscan_a say_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o imaginary_a superiority_n consist_v in_o preeminence_n or_o perfection_n of_o action_n but_o in_o superiority_n of_o government_n so_o that_o it_o may_v make_v law_n give_v command_n and_o judge_v cause_n as_o well_o in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n as_o in_o the_o external_a which_o superiority_n be_v to_o be_v discuss_v because_o it_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o lutheran_n he_o say_v there_o must_v be_v a_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o govern_v it_o the_o unity_n whereof_o can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v preserve_v he_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o example_n of_o bee_n and_o crane_n say_v that_o in_o every_o particular_a church_n a_o special_a authority_n be_v necessary_a to_o govern_v it_o which_o be_v in_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v part_n of_o the_o charge_n the_o totality_n whereof_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o contain_v authority_n to_o judge_v and_o to_o make_v process_n and_o law_n it_o must_v
the_o germane_a in_o the_o diet_n to_o go_v and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o council_n for_o so_o long_o as_o the_o dutch_a and_o frenchman_n continue_v in_o their_o resolution_n not_o to_o go_v to_o it_o nor_o acknowledge_v it_o the_o father_n do_v in_o vain_a abide_v there_o to_o their_o great_a cost_n and_o incommoditie_n and_o when_o his_o majesty_n shall_v see_v they_o can_v be_v persuade_v he_o will_v procure_v a_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n think_v it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a service_n to_o god_n and_o benefit_n to_o the_o church_n to_o leave_v matter_n undecided_a and_o in_o the_o state_n they_o be_v expect_v a_o more_o fit_a time_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o those_o who_o be_v separate_v then_o by_o precipitate_v as_o have_v be_v do_v until_o that_o time_n the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n in_o absence_n of_o those_o who_o have_v put_v they_o in_o disputation_n to_o make_v the_o protestant_n irreconciliable_a without_o any_o benefit_n of_o the_o catholic_n say_v that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n they_o may_v treat_v of_o the_o reformation_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a good_n may_v be_v distribute_v to_o person_n of_o desert_n and_o all_o have_v part_n of_o they_o and_o the_o revenue_n may_v be_v well_o dispense_v and_o the_o part_n belong_v to_o the_o poor_a not_o usurp_v by_o any_o and_o such_o other_o thing_n in_o the_o end_n he_o demand_v of_o they_o whether_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n come_v with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n the_o difference_n between_o spain_n and_o france_n for_o precedence_n will_v cease_v the_o legate_n answer_v to_o this_o last_o that_o they_o do_v not_o see_v what_o pretence_n the_o frenchman_n can_v have_v to_o contend_v and_o for_o the_o rest_n they_o say_v they_o can_v not_o forbear_v to_o handle_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n but_o that_o with_o they_o they_o will_v handle_v the_o reformation_n effectual_o according_a to_o the_o order_n set_v down_o by_o the_o synod_n they_o commend_v the_o emperor_n intention_n to_o desire_v the_o protestant_n to_o submit_v but_o add_v that_o for_o this_o hope_n the_o council_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v prolong_v for_o the_o emperor_n charles_n in_o the_o papacy_n of_o julius_n the_o 3._o make_v mean_n for_o the_o same_o and_o obtain_v it_o also_o but_o the_o dutchman_n proceed_v with_o dissimulation_n to_o the_o damage_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n himself_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v the_o council_n shall_v change_v its_o pace_n before_o the_o emperor_n be_v assure_v of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n aswell_o catholic_n as_o protestant_n and_o what_o kind_n of_o obedience_n they_o will_v yield_v to_o the_o decree_n make_v already_o and_o to_o be_v make_v in_o this_o council_n and_o in_o the_o former_a require_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o synod_n with_o authentical_a mandate_n of_o the_o province_n and_o prince_n and_o obligation_n from_o they_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n that_o their_o cost_n and_o labour_n may_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a and_o laugh_v at_o and_o in_o conformity_n hereof_o they_o answer_v the_o emperor_n a_o congregation_n be_v hold_v the_o 25._o of_o october_n to_o rece●ue_v valentinus_n erbu●us_a receive_v the_o ambassador_n of_o polonia_n be_v receive_v bishop_n of_o premisa_n ambassador_n of_o polonia_n who_o make_v a_o short_a spe_fw-mi 〈…〉_o concern_v the_o king_n devotion_n the_o tumult_n of_o the_o kingdom_n about_o religion_n the_o necessity_n of_o a_o good_a reformation_n the_o use_v of_o some_o remission_n in_o yield_v to_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o people_n in_o matter_n which_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la the_o speaker_n answer_v in_o the_o synod_n name_n thank_v the_o king_n and_o the_o ambassador_n and_o offer_v to_o give_v assistance_n in_o all_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o kingdom_n the_o legate_n do_v not_o permit_v that_o any_o thing_n else_o shall_v be_v handle_v in_o that_o congregation_n for_o the_o cause_n which_o shall_v be_v relate_v the_o court_n in_o rome_n and_o the_o pope_n minister_n in_o trent_n be_v no_o less_o trouble_v with_o the_o spaniard_n and_o their_o adherent_n in_o council_n then_o with_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o come_n of_o lorraine_n and_o of_o the_o frenchman_n with_o which_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o move_v so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v hope_n that_o some_o rub_n may_v stop_v they_o as_o after_o that_o certain_a news_n come_v that_o they_o will_v court_n the_o come_n of_o the_o french_a prelate_n do_v much_o trouble_n the_o pope_n and_o court_n keep_v the_o day_n of_o all_o saint_n with_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n the_o cardinal_n either_o vain_o or_o of_o purpose_n make_v it_o know_v at_o the_o french_a court_n before_o he_o part_v and_o in_o many_o place_n in_o the_o journey_n that_o he_o will_v handle_v diverse_a thing_n in_o diminution_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o commodity_n of_o the_o court_n which_o be_v report_v diverse_a way_n both_o in_o rome_n and_o trent_n make_v a_o impression_n in_o both_o place_n that_o the_o general_a intention_n of_o the_o frenchman_n be_v to_o prolong_v the_o council_n and_o according_a to_o occasion_n to_o discover_v and_o put_v in_o practice_v their_o particular_a design_n and_o they_o have_v conjecture_n to_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o other_o prince_n and_o lord_n of_o germany_n and_o howsoever_o they_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o catholic_a king_n hold_v not_o full_a intelligence_n with_o they_o yet_o they_o have_v strong_a argument_n to_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o his_o design_n be_v to_o prolong_v the_o council_n or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o to_o suffer_v it_o to_o end_n to_o cross_v this_o purpose_n they_o begin_v how_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n begin_v determine_v to_o propose_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o to_o let_v the_o ambassador_n understand_v that_o they_o will_v make_v provision_n for_o they_o because_o all_o prince_n who_o desire_v a_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n will_v not_o willing_o endure_v any_o at_o all_o of_o themselves_o so_o that_o they_o think_v that_o if_o any_o matter_n of_o importance_n be_v handle_v to_o their_o prejudice_n they_o will_v forbear_v and_o make_v their_o prelate_n forbear_v also_o to_o speak_v of_o thing_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n therefore_o after_o some_o packet_n have_v pass_v between_o rome_n and_o trent_n it_o be_v judge_v a_o good_a course_n the_o abuse_n be_v collect_v which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v principal_o in_o france_n and_o partly_o in_o other_o dominion_n and_o hence_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n begin_v which_o in_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o follow_v will_v afford_v we_o much_o matter_n beside_o in_o rome_n it_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o good_a remedy_n that_o the_o legate_n shall_v bridle_v the_o transcendent_a boldness_n of_o the_o prelate_n use_v their_o authority_n and_o superiority_n more_o than_o they_o have_v do_v and_o in_o trent_n it_o be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o good_a course_n to_o keep_v the_o prelate_n their_o adherent_n unite_a well_o edify_v and_o satisfy_v for_o howsoever_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o contrary_a part_n may_v increase_v yet_o they_o shall_v ever_o exceed_v in_o number_n and_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o they_o think_v fit_v also_o proceed_v to_o finish_v the_o council_n or_o suspend_v or_o translate_v it_o they_o write_v also_o and_o make_v many_o of_o the_o popish_a prelate_n to_o write_v to_o their_o friend_n and_o patron_n in_o rome_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o better_a resolution_n or_o provision_n then_o to_o give_v occasion_n which_o may_v easy_o be_v do_v that_o some_o prince_n may_v desire_v the_o suspension_n not_o suffer_v any_o to_o slip_v and_o for_o this_o end_n they_o demand_v diverse_a brief_n to_o be_v send_v from_o rome_n in_o matter_n of_o translation_n suspension_n etc._n etc._n that_o they_o may_v make_v use_n of_o they_o as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v they_o counsel_v the_o pope_n also_o to_o go_v to_o bolonia_n in_o person_n for_o beside_o the_o receive_n of_o more_o frequent_a and_o fresh_a advice_n and_o the_o sudden_a make_n of_o incident_a and_o necessary_a provision_n he_o may_v have_v a_o colourable_a reason_n to_o translate_v the_o council_n to_o that_o city_n upon_o every_o small_a occasion_n or_o to_o suspend_v it_o desire_v he_o that_o as_o they_o have_v impart_v nothing_o to_o the_o cardinal_n madruccio_n so_o nothing_o may_v come_v to_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n his_o uncle_n who_o for_o many_o respect_n and_o particular_a interest_n will_v certain_o use_v all_o mean_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v transfer_v from_o trent_n to_o quench_v the_o boil_a heat_n in_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o institution_n of_o
bishop_n that_o it_o may_v not_o increase_v by_o mean_n of_o so_o many_o who_o be_v prepare_v to_o contradict_v laynez_n they_o will_v not_o hold_v any_o congregation_n for_o many_o day_n but_o this_o leisure_n do_v strengthen_v their_o opinion_n and_o they_o speak_v of_o no_o matter_n but_o of_o this_o in_o every_o corner_n and_o almost_o every_o day_n three_o or_o four_o of_o they_o join_v together_o and_o go_v to_o some_o of_o the_o legate_n to_o renew_v the_o instance_n and_o one_o day_n the_o bishop_n of_o gadici_n with_o four_o more_o have_v after_o the_o proposition_n make_v add_v that_o as_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o jurisdiction_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o they_o be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v express_v in_o the_o canon_n the_o legate_n believe_v that_o the_o spaniard_n acknowledge_v their_o error_n will_v confess_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o derive_v from_o he_o but_o desire_v a_o further_a declaration_n that_o bishop_n say_v that_o as_o a_o prince_n do_v institute_v in_o a_o city_n a_o judge_n of_o the_o first_o instance_n and_o a_o judge_n of_o appeal_n who_o though_o he_o be_v superior_a yet_o can_v take_v authority_n from_o the_o other_o nor_o usurp_v the_o cause_n belong_v to_o he_o so_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n have_v institute_v all_o bishop_n and_o the_o pope_n superior_a in_o who_o the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v yet_o so_o that_o other_o have_v they_o depend_v on_o christ_n alone_o five_o church_n complain_v to_o every_o one_o that_o so_o much_o time_n be_v lose_v without_o hold_v any_o congregation_n which_o may_v be_v profitable_o spend_v but_o that_o the_o legate_n do_v according_a to_o their_o use_n purposely_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v spend_v in_o vain_a that_o they_o may_v give_v forth_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n the_o last_o day_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v time_n to_o consider_v much_o less_o to_o speak_v of_o they_o but_o the_o legate_n be_v not_o idle_a still_o think_v how_o they_o may_v find_v a_o form_n for_o this_o canon_n which_o may_v be_v receive_v and_o change_v it_o more_o than_o once_o a_o day_n which_o form_n go_v about_o and_o show_v the_o hesitation_n of_o the_o legate_n the_o spaniard_n be_v not_o only_o encourage_v in_o their_o opinion_n but_o speak_v also_o with_o more_o liberty_n so_o that_o in_o a_o meeting_n of_o many_o prelate_n segovia_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o say_v that_o one_o word_n will_v be_v cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n seven_o day_n be_v pass_v without_o any_o congregation_n the_o thirty_o of_o october_n the_o legate_n be_v in_o consultation_n as_o in_o the_o day_n before_o all_o the_o spaniard_n with_o some_o other_o require_v audience_n and_o make_v a_o new_a instance_n that_o the_o institution_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la may_v be_v define_v say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o do_v they_o shall_v fail_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o necessary_a in_o these_o time_n for_o clear_v of_o the_o catholic_a truth_n and_o protest_v they_o will_v assist_v no_o more_o in_o congregation_n or_o session_n this_o be_v diwlge_v many_o italian_a prelate_n agree_v together_o in_o the_o house_n of_o cardinal_n simoneta_n in_o the_o chamber_n of_o julius_n simoneta_n bishop_n of_o pescara_n and_o come_v to_o the_o legate_n the_o next_o morning_n three_o patriarch_n six_o arch_a bishop_n and_o eleven_o bishop_n with_o a_o request_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v put_v into_o the_o canon_n that_o the_o superiority_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la in_o regard_n it_o savour_v of_o ambition_n and_o be_v unseemly_a that_o themselves_o shall_v give_v sentence_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o because_o the_o great_a part_n will_v not_o have_v it_o put_v in_o the_o occasion_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n which_o they_o will_v and_o aught_o to_o confirm_v when_o this_o be_v know_v in_o trent_n many_o do_v believe_v that_o this_o instance_n be_v procure_v by_o the_o legate_n themselves_o whereupon_o after_o evensong_n a_o great_a number_n assemble_v themselves_o in_o the_o vestry_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o spanish_a opinion_n &_o other_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o b._n of_o modena_n for_o the_o same_o end_n and_o there_o be_v four_o other_o assembly_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o otranto_n taranto_n rosano_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o parma_n the_o tumult_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o the_o legate_n be_v afraid_a of_o some_o scandal_n and_o think_v they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n hold_v the_o session_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o discuss_v some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o propose_v some_o matter_n of_o reformation_n before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o article_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o motion_n and_o simoneta_n complain_v often_o that_o he_o have_v little_a assistance_n from_o mantua_n and_o seripando_n who_o howsoever_o they_o do_v some_o thing_n yet_o can_v not_o hide_v their_o thought_n which_o do_v incline_v to_o the_o adversary_n letter_n of_o credence_n come_v from_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n to_o the_o principal_a pescara_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n spanish_a prelate_n with_o commission_n to_o his_o secretary_n to_o use_v the_o strong_a persuasion_n with_o they_o and_o to_o advise_v they_o not_o to_o touch_v any_o thing_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o holy_a sea_n assure_v they_o that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v displease_v and_o that_o great_a inconvenience_n in_o his_o kingdom_n will_v ensue_v say_v it_o can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o their_o wisdom_n that_o they_o will_v resolve_v in_o any_o particular_a before_o they_o understand_v his_o majesty_n pleasure_n and_o he_o give_v he_o order_n to_o advise_v whether_o any_o of_o the_o prelate_n make_v small_a account_n of_o this_o admonition_n or_o be_v refractory_a in_o obey_v because_o it_o be_v the_o king_n pleasure_n that_o they_o shall_v stand_v unite_v in_o the_o devotion_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o shall_v dispatch_v granata_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n express_a currier_n if_o there_o be_v occasion_n granata_n answer_v that_o he_o never_o mean_v to_o say_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o think_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v speak_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o holiness_n be_v assure_v that_o if_o their_o authority_n be_v diminish_v the_o obedience_n to_o the_o holy_a sea_n will_v decrease_v also_o though_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o oldage_n he_o know_v that_o it_o will_v not_o happen_v in_o his_o time_n that_o his_o opinion_n be_v catholic_a for_o which_o he_o will_v be_v content_a to_o die_v that_o see_v such_o contrariety_n he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o remain_v in_o trent_n because_o he_o expect_v but_o small_a fruit_n and_o therefore_o have_v demand_v leave_n to_o depart_v of_o his_o holiness_n and_o his_o majesty_n much_o desire_v to_o return_v that_o at_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o spain_n he_o receive_v no_o commandment_n from_o the_o king_n and_o his_o minister_n but_o to_o aim_v at_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o quiet_a &_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v true_o perform_v that_o he_o think_v he_o have_v not_o cross_v the_o king_n will_v though_o he_o make_v not_o protession_n to_o dive_v into_o it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o prince_n when_o they_o be_v request_v especial_o by_o their_o minister_n do_v easy_o content_v they_o with_o general_a term_n segovia_n answer_v that_o his_o meaning_n never_o be_v to_o do_v the_o pope_n any_o segovia_n the_o answer_n of_o segovia_n ill_a office_n but_o that_o he_o can_v not_o gainsay_v his_o opinion_n because_o it_o be_v for_o the_o catholic_a truth_n nor_o can_v speak_v more_o than_o he_o have_v speak_v already_o have_v never_o since_o see_v or_o study_v any_o thing_n concern_v this_o matter_n afterward_o they_o retire_v all_o together_o and_o send_v to_o the_o king_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o family_n of_o segovia_n with_o instruction_n to_o inform_v his_o majesty_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o prelate_n can_v be_v reprehend_v if_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o promote_v the_o project_n of_o rome_n because_o they_o can_v not_o propose_v any_o thing_n but_o only_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n concern_v that_o which_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o legate_n as_o his_o majesty_n do_v well_o know_v that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a so_o interrogate_v they_o and_o bind_v they_o to_o answer_v against_o their_o conscience_n that_o they_o be_v assure_v they_o shall_v offend_v god_n and_o his_o majesty_n if_o they_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o speak_v out_o of_o season_n because_o they_o
impertinent_o with_o superfluous_a question_n which_o then_o be_v wise_o bury_v in_o silence_n that_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o handle_v any_o thing_n now_o but_o that_o which_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o decree_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o ambassador_n lansac_n who_o have_v often_o show_v by_o good_a reason_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v require_v but_o that_o residence_n shall_v be_v execute_v and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o show_v whence_o the_o obligation_n come_v among_o other_o particle_n there_o be_v in_o the_o decree_n that_o the_o bishop_n reside_v shall_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v ten_o subside_n or_o any_o other_o tax_n impose_v by_o what_o authority_n soever_o though_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n this_o move_v all_o the_o ambassador_n very_o much_o but_o lansac_n dissemble_v complain_v that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n have_v name_v he_o without_o tell_v he_o of_o it_o before_o grant_v he_o have_v speak_v so_o much_o unto_o he_o but_o as_o a_o particular_a friend_n not_o as_o a_o ambassador_n and_o to_o make_v his_o complaint_n the_o more_o grievous_a he_o find_v fault_n also_o that_o the_o catholic_a king_n be_v name_v before_o the_o most_o christian_n of_o the_o ten_o he_o say_v nothing_o hope_v that_o by_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v and_o by_o some_o opposition_n which_o the_o favourer_n of_o ius_fw-la divinum_fw-la will_v make_v that_o form_n of_o decree_n will_v be_v hinder_v five_o church_n say_v only_o that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o emperor_n mind_n be_v as_o the_o cardinal_n have_v propose_v but_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n demand_v open_o that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v amend_v so_o that_o they_o may_v not_o prejudice_n the_o grace_n grant_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n for_o the_o subsidy_n of_o the_o galley_n the_o legate_n do_v believe_v they_o have_v by_o this_o mean_v gain_v the_o prelate_n but_o after_o they_o understand_v the_o exception_n for_o spain_n they_o begin_v to_o say_v among_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v favour_v in_o that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v grant_v for_o in_o spain_n and_o france_n and_o unden_v every_o other_o prince_n they_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o pay_v and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n also_o with_o a_o non_fw-la obstantibus_fw-la the_o grace_n will_v be_v make_v of_o no_o force_n the_o next_o day_n they_o pass_v from_o residence_n to_o episcopal_a order_n and_o segovia_n reply_v that_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n de_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v handle_v and_o segonia_n a_o difference_n between_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o segonia_n resolve_v in_o the_o same_o council_n under_o julius_n the_o three_o with_o a_o general_a consent_n and_o that_o himself_o have_v deliver_v his_o opinion_n therein_o and_o specify_v the_o day_n and_o hour●_n when_o it_o be_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n cause_v the_o act_n of_o that_o time_n to_o be_v search_v and_o that_o to_o be_v read_v by_o the_o secretary_n which_o be_v then_o define_v to_o be_v publish_v expound_v they_o so_o as_o that_o he_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o decide_v nor_o examine_v nor_o propose_v in_o that_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v say_v by_o segovia_n the_o bishop_n answer_v though_o reverent_o in_o appearance_n there_o pass_v so_o many_o reply_n that_o they_o be_v force_v to_o break_v up_o the_o congregation_n and_o because_o some_o will_v perhaps_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o of_o they_o speak_v with_o most_o reason_n it_o will_v be_v fit_a to_o recite_v here_o that_o which_o be_v then_o decide_v in_o the_o congregation_n though_o not_o publish_v in_o session_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o sudden_a dissolution_n of_o that_o council_n before_o relate_v three_o head_n of_o doctrine_n be_v then_o compose_v the_o three_o where_o of_o be_v inscribe_v of_o the_o hierarchy_n and_o of_o the_o difference_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o have_v speak_v much_o of_o the_o hierarchy_n it_o say_v thus_o afterward_o as_o it_o be_v translate_v verbatim_o out_o of_o the_o latin_a beside_o the_o holy_a synod_n do_v teach_v that_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v bearken_v unto_o who_o say_v that_o bishop_n be_v not_o institute_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la it_o appear_v manifest_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o christ_n our_o lord_n have_v himself_o call_v the_o apostle_n and_o promote_v they_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o apostleship_n into_o who_o place_n the_o bishop_n be_v subrogated_a neither_o ought_v we_o to_o think_v that_o this_o so_o eminent_a and_o necessary_a a_o degree_n have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o humane_a institution_n for_o so_o we_o shall_v detract_v from_o and_o disesteem_v the_o divine_a providence_n for_o fail_v in_o the_o most_o noble_a thing_n these_o be_v the_o word_n use_v in_o that_o point_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v note_v also_o eight_o canon_n the_o last_o whereof_o say_v thus_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o bishop_n be_v not_o institute_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o be_v not_o superior_a to_o priest_n or_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o ordain_v or_o that_o this_o do_v belong_v to_o priest_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n every_o one_o be_v prepossess_v with_o a_o opinion_n do_v find_v it_o in_o all_o this_o that_o be_v read_v and_o it_o be_v not_o wonder_n if_o each_o of_o those_o two_o prelate_n do_v find_v his_o own_o in_o the_o same_o word_n which_o the_o papalin_n do_v interpret_v only_o of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o the_o spaniard_n of_o all_o which_o contain_v order_n and_o jurisdiction_n yet_o some_o of_o the_o popish_a prelate_n do_v believe_v that_o mantua_n studious_o feign_v to_o think_v as_o they_o do_v cause_v the_o old_a determination_n to_o be_v read_v not_o to_o confirm_v his_o own_o opinion_n but_o the_o spanish_a which_o secret_o he_o defend_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v enter_v into_o italy_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o deny_v the_o frenchman_n to_o cause_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v expect_v and_o he_o write_v to_o trent_n that_o they_o shall_v prolong_v the_o session_n yet_o not_o so_o as_o to_o pass_v november_n the_o legate_n receive_v advice_n that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v upon_o the_o lago_n di_fw-it garda_fw-it in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o nine_o of_o november_n mantua_n propose_v the_o defer_v of_o the_o session_n until_o the_o 26._o of_o the_o same_o month_n which_o lorraine_n not_o know_v send_v carlo_n de_fw-fr grassi_n bishop_n of_o monte_fw-fr finscove_n and_o write_v letter_n also_o to_o the_o legate_n that_o if_o it_o will_v please_v they_o to_o tarry_v for_o he_o he_o will_v be_v in_o trent_n within_o a_o few_o day_n and_o they_o resolve_v to_o make_v no_o more_o congregation_n until_o his_o come_n to_o give_v he_o the_o more_o satisfaction_n the_o bishop_n relate_v that_o the_o cardinal_n do_v show_v a_o good_a intention_n in_o all_o his_o discourse_n and_o that_o he_o will_v send_v his_o opinion_n to_o his_o holiness_n that_o he_o may_v see_v they_o that_o the_o prelate_n in_o his_o company_n come_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o with_o a_o good_a mind_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o do_v hope_n that_o their_o come_n will_v make_v a_o concord_n in_o the_o council_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v diligent_a in_o make_v a_o fruitful_a reformation_n without_o any_o respect_n of_o their_o own_o interest_n and_o many_o such_o thing_n he_o say_v which_o though_o they_o be_v testify_v by_o grassi_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferriores_fw-la yet_o the_o popish_a prelate_n do_v believe_v they_o only_o in_o compliment_n and_o purpose_v to_o use_v all_o the_o remedy_n desseign_v both_o in_o trent_n and_o rome_n lorraine_n enter_v trent_n and_o be_v meet_v a_o mile_n on_o the_o way_n by_o card._n madruccio_n trent_n the_o entry_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n into_o trent_n and_o many_o prelate_n and_o by_o all_o the_o legate_n at_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n from_o which_o place_n he_o be_v accompany_v to_o the_o house_n where_o he_o be_v lodge_v he_o ride_v between_o the_o cardinal_n mantua_n and_o seripando_n which_o honour_n they_o think_v necessary_a to_o do_v unto_o he_o because_o the_o same_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o by_o monte_n and_o sancta_fw-la croce_n legate_n in_o bolonia_n when_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o that_o city_n at_o the_o time_n when_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n for_o the_o cap._n in_o the_o evening_n he_o go_v to_o visit_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n and_o have_v audience_n the_o next_o day_n before_o the_o legate_n speech_n he_o visit_v the_o card._n of_o mantua_n have_v audience_n the_o next_o day_n
notice_n that_o the_o cardinal_n hold_v great_a intelligence_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o which_o be_v of_o more_o importance_n with_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n who_o be_v manifest_o incline_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n who_o do_v undoubted_o hate_v the_o council_n and_o will_v be_v glad_a it_o may_v not_o proceed_v but_o dissolve_v in_o some_o advantageous_a manner_n for_o they_o and_o dishonourable_a for_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o the_o synod_n they_o suspect_v also_o the_o catholic_a king_n in_o regard_n of_o a_o advice_n which_o come_v to_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n that_o the_o instruction_n be_v already_o make_v in_o spain_n for_o that_o count_n it_o be_v resolve_v to_o send_v martin_n gazdellone_n who_o have_v be_v secretary_n to_o charles_n the_o five_o to_o bring_v he_o instruction_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n which_o they_o will_v not_o commit_v to_o writing_n by_o reason_n of_o diverse_a advice_n which_o late_o have_v come_v unto_o they_o and_o confront_v this_o with_o another_o advice_n receive_v out_o of_o france_n that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n have_v before_o he_o depart_v communicate_v to_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n the_o petition_n he_o purpose_v to_o handle_v in_o council_n and_o know_v assure_o that_o he_o have_v be_v solicit_v by_o germany_n to_o make_v instance_n for_o the_o reformation_n they_o doubt_v that_o the_o come_n of_o that_o cardinal_n may_v hatch_v some_o great_a novitie_n and_o be_v not_o please_v one_o jot_n with_o his_o speech_n in_o the_o audience_n concern_v the_o come_n of_o the_o dutchman_n to_o the_o council_n consider_v the_o conference_n he_o have_v with_o the_o duke_n of_o wittenberg_n in_o sum_n presuppose_v that_o a_o person_n of_o so_o great_a authority_n and_o wisdom_n will_v not_o have_v come_v without_o a_o sure_a ground_n to_o build_v his_o design_n upon_o they_o resolve_v to_o send_v present_o all_o these_o consideration_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o have_v observe_v that_o whensoever_o any_o extraordinary_n come_v to_o trent_n or_o depart_v the_o prelate_n take_v occasion_n to_o talk_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o cause_n to_o whisper_v to_o make_v a_o noise_n and_o to_o lay_v plot_n also_o which_o now_o that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v come_v may_v produce_v more_o dangerous_a effect_n they_o dispatch_v secret_o and_o write_v that_o order_n may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o currier_n to_o leave_v their_o guide_n and_o baggage_n at_o the_o next_o post_n to_o trent_n and_o enter_v slow_o into_o the_o city_n with_o the_o dispatch_n only_o the_o cardinal_n go_v not_o into_o the_o congregation_n at_o the_o day_n appoint_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o small_a fever_n which_o have_v seize_v on_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o desire_v they_o will_v proceed_v slow_o that_o he_o may_v be_v present_a before_o the_o resolution_n trent_n the_o legate_n desire_v the_o order_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o currier_n to_o enter_v secret_o into_o trent_n the_o legate_n resolve_v to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n and_o therefore_o they_o begin_v the_o congregation_n late_a than_o they_o be_v wont_a in_o which_o the_o french_a bishop_n and_o abbat_n be_v present_a a_o general_a muster_n be_v make_v the_o number_n of_o the_o prelate_n be_v find_v to_o be_v two_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o and_o a_o place_n assign_v to_o every_o one_o the_o next_o day_n there_o be_v some_o difficulty_n about_o precedence_n they_o make_v a_o new_a assignation_n of_o place_n make_v all_o the_o prelate_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n one_o by_o one_o and_o conduct_v every_o one_o to_o his_o seat_n in_o those_o congregation_n none_o of_o the_o frenchman_n speak_v either_o because_o they_o expect_v the_o cardinal_n to_o begin_v or_o because_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o see_v the_o manner_n first_o the_o nineteenth_o of_o november_n the_o archbishop_n of_o otranto_n appoint_v a_o banquet_n at_o night_n for_o many_o prelate_n and_o he_o that_o have_v banquet_n a_o factious_a banquet_n the_o charge_n to_o invite_v they_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o fail_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o service_n they_o may_v do_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n by_o come_v thither_o it_o be_v immediate_o publish_v in_o trent_n that_o the_o popish_a prelate_n be_v assemble_v to_o make_v a_o combination_n against_o the_o frenchman_n this_o distaste_a they_o much_o and_o the_o more_o because_o after_o the_o banquet_n they_o be_v assure_v that_o such_o discourse_n have_v be_v use_v at_o the_o table_n and_o observe_v that_o since_o their_o come_n some_o new_a prelate_n do_v arrive_v every_o day_n they_o think_v they_o be_v mistrust_v and_o hold_v to_o be_v opposite_n therefore_o the_o legate_n to_o make_v show_n of_o all_o confidence_n and_o respect_n of_o honour_n to_o the_o cardinal_n in_o the_o visitation_n which_o each_o of_o they_o make_v while_o he_o be_v sick_a they_o persuade_v he_o to_o take_v so_o good_a a_o occasion_n to_o compose_v the_o controversy_n which_o the_o question_n have_v make_v a_o thing_n which_o will_v be_v easy_a for_o he_o and_o of_o great_a reputation_n because_o no_o man_n have_v be_v able_a to_o effect_v it_o the_o cardinal_n seem_v to_o be_v willing_a and_o offer_v his_o endeavour_n the_o pope_n who_o in_o those_o day_n have_v be_v in_o some_o danger_n by_o reason_n of_o sick_a a_o plot_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n when_o the_o pope_n be_v sick_a a_o great_a unexpected_a accident_n have_v recover_v his_o health_n receive_v advice_n from_o the_o legate_n and_o from_o diverse_a other_o place_n by_o which_o the_o frenchman_n have_v pass_v all_o uniform_o full_a of_o their_o design_n beside_o when_o he_o be_v sick_a mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr isle_n use_v practice_n and_o lay_v plot_n that_o if_o he_o have_v die_v the_o pope_n may_v be_v create_v in_o trent_n by_o nation_n and_o the_o sea_n hold_v vacant_a until_o the_o reformation_n be_v make_v for_o so_o the_o council_n will_v be_v free_a and_o the_o new_a pope_n will_v accept_v the_o reformation_n which_o be_v establish_v before_o his_o creation_n this_o move_v he_o most_o of_o all_o as_o well_o because_o every_o man_n and_o prince_n especial_o be_v displease_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v desseign_v to_o be_v holiness_n trouble_v his_o holiness_n do_v after_o their_o death_n as_o also_o because_o he_o be_v by_o this_o most_o assure_a that_o the_o frenchman_n be_v resolve_v to_o reform_v the_o court_n and_o the_o popedom_n these_o thing_n and_o the_o difference_n in_o trent_n about_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n and_o residence_n cause_v he_o to_o hold_v a_o congregation_n every_o day_n and_o he_o can_v not_o forbear_v to_o tell_v every_o one_o that_o he_o have_v no_o business_n more_o important_a and_o dangerous_a to_o he_o then_o the_o conncell_n and_o relate_v in_o consistory_n the_o difference_n in_o trent_n about_o the_o institution_n and_o the_o new_a proposition_n of_o residence_n he_o break_v out_o into_o this_o exclamation_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n benefice_v by_o he_o be_v his_o opposite_n and_o that_o he_o maintain_v a_o army_n of_o enemy_n in_o trent_n there_o be_v a_o opinion_n that_o he_o secret_o wish_v some_o good_a success_n to_o the_o hugonot_n in_o france_n and_o some_o advantage_n to_o the_o protestant_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o germany_n that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v dissolve_v and_o not_o by_o his_o mean_n but_o exclaim_v and_o make_v he_o exclaim_v be_v whole_o bend_v to_o provide_v remedy_n he_o give_v order_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o other_o he_o send_v some_o bishop_n to_o trent_n and_o withhold_v other_o be_v not_o part_v from_o rome_n as_o yet_o to_o depart_v immediate_o and_o cause_v marcus_n antonius_n boba_n bishop_n of_o asti_n ambassador_n for_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n reside_v with_o he_o to_o go_v thither_o also_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o forbid_v the_o archbishop_n of_o turris_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o cesena_n to_o go_v thither_o the_o former_a because_o he_o have_v defend_v residence_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la with_o more_o constancy_n than_o the_o time_n do_v comport_v in_o the_o council_n under_o paul_n the_o other_o because_o he_o be_v a_o familiar_a friend_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o naples_n of_o who_o he_o doubt_v much_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o slaughter_n of_o his_o two_o uncle_n and_o of_o the_o execution_n make_v against_o his_o person_n and_o he_o fear_v because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o count_n of_o montebello_n father_n of_o the_o cardinal_n have_v in_o his_o custody_n a_o obligation_n under_o s●monie_n fear_v to_o be_v accuse_v of_o s●monie_n his_o hand_n by_o which_o be_v cardinal_n in_o the_o conclave_n he_o promise_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o naples_n for_o his_o voice_n to_o be_v pope_n but_o howsoever_o his_o great_a diffidence_n be_v in_o the_o frenchman_n yet_o he_o think_v
fit_a to_o dissemble_v it_o he_o send_v into_o france_n forty_o thousand_o crown_n the_o residue_n of_o the_o hundred_o thousand_o which_o he_o promise_v and_o he_o cause_v sebastianus_n gualterus_n bishop_n of_o viterbo_n and_o ludovicus_fw-la antinori_fw-la to_o go_v to_o trent_n who_o have_v be_v in_o france_n have_v some_o acquaintance_n with_o some_o of_o those_o prelate_n and_o have_v make_v themselves_o know_v to_o the_o cardinal_n under_o colour_n to_o honour_v he_o and_o he_o write_v to_o this_o cardinal_n and_o to_o lansac_n letter_n full_a of_o compliment_n and_o confidence_n yet_o they_o think_v that_o these_o man_n be_v send_v to_o discover_v the_o cardinal_n intention_n and_o to_o observe_v his_o proceed_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v receive_v advice_n from_o rome_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v exhort_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o be_v so_o much_o afraid_a in_o regard_n the_o cardinal_n also_o will_v find_v difficulty_n and_o impediment_n more_o than_o he_o believe_v he_o shall_v and_o say_v that_o himself_o will_v make_v more_o to_o arise_v the_o 22._o of_o november_n the_o cardinal_n resolve_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n the_o day_n follow_v and_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o king_n letter_n shall_v be_v read_v and_o himself_o make_v a_o speech_n but_o lorraine_n propose_v also_o that_o the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n shall_v make_v another_o to_o this_o the_o legate_n do_v not_o consent_n because_o if_o this_o have_v be_v once_o permit_v both_o he_o and_o all_o other_o ambassador_n will_v still_o be_v desirous_a to_o speak_v and_o propose_v with_o danger_n of_o make_v great_a confusion_n but_o conceal_v this_o cause_n they_o say_v that_o neither_o in_o this_o council_n nor_o under_o paul_n or_o julius_n it_o be_v ever_o permit_v to_o ambassador_n to_o speak_v in_o congregation_n but_o only_o when_o they_o be_v first_o receive_v and_o that_o without_o the_o pope_n consent_n they_o can_v not_o yield_v to_o such_o a_o novitie_n but_o lorraine_n answer_v that_o the_o king_n letter_n and_o the_o instruction_n be_v new_a it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o new_a ambassage_n and_o that_o the_o first_o entrance_n after_o many_o answer_n and_o reply_n lorraine_n have_v give_v his_o word_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o desire_v to_o speak_v any_o more_o the_o legate_n to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v cause_n of_o open_a distaste_n be_v content_v therefore_o the_o next_o day_n the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v the_o king_n letter_n be_v read_v with_o this_o inscription_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o reverend_a father_n assemble_v in_o trent_n to_o celebrate_v the_o sacred_a council_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o call_v he_o to_o the_o kingdom_n it_o have_v please_v he_o also_o to_o afflict_v he_o with_o many_o war_n but_o have_v so_o open_v his_o eye_n that_o howsoever_o he_o be_v young_a he_o know_v that_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o evil_n be_v leter_n the_o french_a king_n leter_n the_o diversity_n of_o religion_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o divine_a illumination_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o make_v instance_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o they_o be_v then_o assemble_v know_v that_o in_o they_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v find_v the_o most_o proper_a remedy_n to_o the_o like_a infirmity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v grieve_v that_o be_v the_o first_o to_o procure_v so_o good_a a_o work_n he_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o send_v his_o prelate_n with_o the_o first_o the_o cause_n whereof_o be_v notorious_a he_o think_v he_o be_v sufficient_o excuse_v and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v now_o arrive_v accompany_v with_o other_o prelate_n that_o two_o principal_a cause_n have_v move_v he_o to_o send_v that_o cardinal_n the_o first_o his_o own_o great_a and_o frequent_a instance_n to_o have_v leave_n to_o satisfy_v his_o duty_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o place_n he_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n the_o second_o because_o be_v of_o his_o privy_a council_n and_o exercise_v from_o his_o youth_n in_o the_o most_o important_a affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o know_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o better_a than_o any_o other_o and_o whence_o the_o occasion_n do_v arise_v so_o that_o he_o will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o relation_n unto_o they_o conformable_a to_o the_o charge_n which_o be_v give_v he_o and_o demand_v in_o his_o name_n the_o remedy_n which_o be_v expect_v from_o their_o wisdom_n and_o fatherly_a affection_n as_o well_o for_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o for_o the_o general_a good_a of_o all_o christendom_n he_o beseech_v they_o to_o proceed_v herein_o with_o their_o wont_a sincerity_n that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o a_o holy_a reformation_n and_o that_o the_o ancient_a lustre_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v appear_v in_o the_o union_n of_o all_o christendom_n in_o one_o religion_n which_o will_v be_v a_o work_n worthy_a of_o they_o desire_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n recompense_v by_o god_n and_o commend_v by_o all_o prince_n in_o conclusion_n for_o the_o particular_n he_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o cardinal_n pray_v they_o to_o believe_v he_o in_o whatsoever_o he●_n shall_v say_v unto_o they_o on_o his_o part_n after_o this_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v in_o the_o begin_n he_o show_v the_o misery_n ●oraine_a the_o speech_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ●oraine_a of_o the_o kingdom_n deplore_v the_o war_n the_o demolition_n of_o church_n occision_n of_o religious_a person_n conculcation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n burn_v of_o the_o library_n image_n and_o relic_n of_o saint_n overthrow_v of_o the_o monument_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o bishop_n and_o expulsion_n of_o the_o true_a pastor_n and_o pass_v to_o civil_a matter_n he_o show_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n usurpation_n of_o his_o rent_n violation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o sedition_n raise_v among_o the_o people_n he_o attribute_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o this_o to_o the_o corruption_n of_o manner_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o negligence_n in_o repress_v heresy_n and_o in_o use_v remedy_n institute_v by_o god_n turn_v to_o the_o ambass_n of_o prince_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o that_o which_o they_o do_v now_o behold_v at_o leisure_n in_o france_n they_o shall_v find_v at_o home_n when_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_o to_o repent_v if_o france_n tumble_v down_o with_o its_o own_o weight_n shall_v fall_v upon_o place_n near_o unto_o it_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n and_o good_a disposition_n of_o the_o king_n the_o counsel_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o of_o the_o other_o prince_n but_o say_v the_o principal_a matter_n be_v expect_v from_o the_o synod_n whence_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n aught_o to_o come_v that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n be_v assure_v hereof_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o observance_n towards_o that_o synod_n and_o of_o his_o sorrow_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n do_v demand_v two_o thing_n of_o they_o the_o first_o that_o they_o will_v avoid_v new_a discord_n new_a and_o unprofitable_a question_n and_o cause_n a_o suspension_n of_o arm_n among_o all_o prince_n and_o state_n that_o scandal_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o the_o protestant_n and_o occasion_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o synod_n do_v more_o labour_n to_o incite_v prince_n to_o war_n and_o to_o make_v confederation_n and_o league_n then_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o peace_n that_o king_n henry_n have_v first_o establish_v it_o and_o then_o francis_n continue_v it_o and_o that_o the_o present_a king_n under_o age_n and_o his_o mother_n have_v always_o desire_v it_o which_o how_o soever_o it_o have_v unhappy_o succeed_v yet_o they_o may_v fear_v that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o war_n will_v be_v more_o unfortunate_a for_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n one_o can_v help_v another_o he_o therefore_o desire_v that_o some_o account_n may_v be_v hold_v of_o those_o who_o be_v go_v astray_o from_o the_o church_n pardon_v they_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v do_v without_o offend_a god_n and_o hold_v they_o for_o friend_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a even_o as_o far_o as_o unto_o the_o altar_n the_o second_o request_n common_a to_o the_o king_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v that_o a_o reformation_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n shall_v be_v handle_v serious_o wherein_o the_o king_n do_v admonish_v and_o conjure_v they_o by_o christ_n our_o lord_n who_o will_v come_v to_o judgement_n that_o if_o they_o mean_v to_o restore_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o retain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n they_o will_v not_o balance_v the_o incommodity_n
of_o the_o french_a man_n with_o their_o own_o he_o say_v he_o be_v glad_a that_o italy_n be_v all_o in_o peace_n and_o that_o spain_n do_v govern_v the_o helm_n but_o that_o france_n be_v fall_v and_o scarce_o hold_v it_o with_o one_o finger_n he_o add_v that_o if_o they_o will_v demand_v who_o have_v cause_v this_o tempest_n and_o fortune_n he_o can_v say_v nothing_o but_o this_o that_o this_o fortune_n be_v come_v by_o our_o own_o mean_n cast_v we_o into_o the_o sea_n therefore_o that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o boldness_n and_o courage_n to_o look_v unto_o themselves_o and_o the_o whole_a flock_n in_o the_o end_n he_o say_v he_o have_v end_v his_o legation_n and_o that_o the_o ambassador_n will_v say_v the_o rest_n but_o himself_o and_o the_o prelate_n who_o come_v with_o he_o do_v protest_v that_o after_o god_n they_o will_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o most_o bless_a pope_n pius_n acknowledge_v his_o primacy_n on_o earth_n above_o all_o church_n who_o command_n they_o will_v never_o refuse_v that_o they_o do_v reverence_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o of_o the_o general_a synod_n that_o they_o do_v honour_v the_o legate_n offer_v concord_n and_o union_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o be_v glad_a that_o the_o ambassador_n be_v witness_n of_o what_o they_o say_v all_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o speak_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n in_o few_o word_n commend_v he_o for_o the_o pain_n he_o have_v take_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n say_v that_o answer_n the_o answer_n all_o the_o synod_n be_v glad_a of_o his_o come_n make_v honourable_a mention_n of_o his_o brother_n who_o in_o their_o profession_n show_v no_o less_o readiness_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o answer_n which_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o zara_n depute_v hereunto_o shall_v make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n who_o say_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v sorry_a to_o hear_v of_o the_o sedition_n and_o difference_n of_o religion_n in_o france_n who_o quiet_a and_o tranquillity_n be_v always_o dear_a unto_o they_o and_o the_o more_o then_o because_o by_o the_o narration_n of_o his_o excellency_n they_o be_v so_o lively_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n but_o hope_v that_o short_o the_o king_n imitate_v the_o virtue_n of_o his_o predecessor_n will_v be_v able_a to_o repress_v they_o that_o the_o synod_n will_v labour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o make_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n know_v to_o reform_v manner_n and_o restore_v tranquillity_n to_o the_o church_n which_o end_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o attain_v if_o they_o be_v assist_v by_o his_o excellency_n and_o the_o prelate_n who_o come_v with_o he_o he_o speak_v large_o in_o commendation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o conclude_v that_o the_o synod_n thank_v god_n for_o his_o come_n and_o give_v he_o joy_n of_o it_o and_o offer_v to_o give_v care_n to_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o ambassador_n in_o fit_a time_n and_o place_n not_o doubt_v but_o that_o it_o will_v be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n benefit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o great_a dignity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n afterward_o the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n speak_v he_o begin_v with_o the_o commendation_n ambassador_n the_o speech_n of_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n the_o french_a ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n disposition_n incline_v to_o religion_n which_o appear_v more_o by_o the_o come_n and_o discourse_n of_o the_o cardinal_n by_o who_o it_o may_v be_v know_v how_o great_a care_n france_n do_v take_v of_o the_o good_a of_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o every_o on_o may_v see_v that_o most_o potent_a reason_n have_v induce_v the_o king_n to_o send_v he_o in_o regard_n he_o have_v ever_o employ_v he_o in_o his_o counsel_n in_o the_o great_a affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o the_o king_n can_v appease_v all_o the_o sedition_n in_o three_o day_n and_o keep_v all_o his_o subject_n in_o their_o natural_a obedience_n if_o he_o aim_v only_o at_o his_o own_o good_a and_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o retain_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o france_n for_o which_o he_o expose_v to_o danger_n the_o kingdom_n his_o life_n and_o the_o good_n of_o all_o the_o grandee_n and_o noble_n and_o descend_v to_o the_o request_n he_o add_v that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v troublesome_a nor_o obstinate_a in_o they_o that_o they_o do_v demand_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n demand_v that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n do_v request_n that_o which_o constantine_n the_o great_a request_v of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o all_o his_o demand_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o old_a counsel_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a constitution_n decree_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o father_n that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n do_v demand_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o its_o integrity_n by_o mean_n of_o they_o the_o father_n constitute_v by_o christ_n as_o the_o chief_a judge_n not_o by_o a_o decree_n with_o a_o general_a clause_n but_o according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o express_a word_n of_o that_o perpetual_a and_o divine_a edict_n against_o which_o neither_o usurpation_n nor_o prescription_n can_v take_v place_n so_o that_o those_o good_a order_n which_o the_o devil_n have_v take_v away_o by_o force_n and_o conceal_v a_o long_a time_n may_v be_v restore_v as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o captivity_n to_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n he_o exemplify_v in_o darius_n who_o compose_v the_o tumult_n of_o judea_n not_o by_o arm_n but_o by_o execute_v the_o ancient_a edict_n of_o cyrus_n in_o josias_n who_o reform_v religion_n by_o cause_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o be_v read_v and_o observe_v which_o have_v be_v conceal_v by_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n then_o he_o speak_v acute_o and_o say_v if_o they_o shall_v demand_v why_o france_n be_v not_o in_o peace_n he_o can_v answer_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o jehu_n say_v to_o joram_n how_o can_v there_o be_v peace_n there_o remain_v and_o conceal_v the_o word_n follow_v but_o add_v you_o know_v the_o text_n then_o he_o say_v that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o serious_o labour_v in_o the_o reformation_n the_o assistance_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o other_o prince_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o the_o blood_n of_o those_o who_o perish_v though_o just_o for_o their_o own_o sin_n will_v be_v require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o they_o the_o father_n he_o conclude_v that_o before_o they_o will_v descend_v to_o the_o particular_n which_o they_o mean_v to_o demand_v they_o desire_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o handle_v may_v be_v dispatch_v quick_o that_o they_o may_v as_o soon_o as_o be_v possible_a apply_v themselves_o to_o other_o matter_n of_o more_o weight_n and_o of_o great_a necessity_n in_o that_o time_n the_o bite_a liberty_n of_o this_o ambassador_n do_v no_o less_o displease_v then_o that_o of_o his_o colleague_n pibrac_n at_o their_o first_o come_v to_o trent_n but_o the_o fear_n they_o have_v of_o the_o frenchman_n make_v they_o forget_v all_o the_o next_o day_n the_o congregation_n be_v continue_v and_o the_o first_o be_v all_o spend_v by_o friar_n jaspar_n of_o casal_n bishop_n of_o liria_n who_o to_o inform_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n of_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o spaniard_n do_v recapitulate_v with_o great_a eloquence_n whatsoever_o they_o have_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n he_o add_v beside_o that_o nothing_o be_v more_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o lutheran_n then_o to_o say_v that_o bishop_n be_v institute_v by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n that_o by_o this_o mean_n their_o novitie_n be_v approve_v in_o make_v preacher_n or_o predicant_o or_o minister_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o stead_n of_o bishop_n institute_v by_o christ_n he_o say_v that_o to_o he_o that_o read_v the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n gregory_n to_o john_n of_o constantinople_n and_o to_o other_o against_o he_o for_o call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n it_o do_v plain_o appear_v that_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v from_o christ_n if_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n be_v from_o he_o also_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n make_v a_o congregation_n of_o prelate_n and_o french_a divine_n in_o his_o own_o house_n to_o understand_v their_o opinion_n concern_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n in_o which_o it_o be_v uniform_o resolve_v among_o they_o that_o they_o do_v receive_v it_o from_o god_n and_o that_o it_o do_v
in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o particular_a of_o that_o of_o constance_n which_o say_v plain_o that_o it_o have_v authority_n immediate_o from_o christ_n but_o he_o add_v that_o speak_v of_o counsel_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o head_n shall_v be_v join_v with_o it_o and_o that_o nothing_o be_v of_o more_o service_n for_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n then_o to_o confirm_v well_o the_o pope_n authority_n that_o himself_o will_v never_o consent_v to_o determine_v any_o thing_n in_o diminution_n thereof_o and_o that_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n of_o france_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o return_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n and_o speak_v still_o with_o the_o same_o ambiguity_n he_o conclude_v in_o the_o end_n that_o the_o question_n be_v boundless_a afterward_o exhort_v the_o father_n to_o leave_v it_o and_o himself_o give_v a_o form_n to_o the_o canon_n in_o which_o the_o word_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v omit_v and_o instead_o of_o they_o it_o be_v say_v institute_v by_o christ_n the_o french_a prelate_n who_o speak_v then_o after_o lorraine_n and_o the_o day_n follow_v use_v not_o the_o same_o ambiguity_n nor_o the_o same_o respect_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n but_o maintain_v open_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n be_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la allege_v the_o reason_n deliver_v by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o expound_v they_o who_o howsoever_o while_o they_o speak_v lean_v his_o head_n upon_o his_o hand_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v displease_v yet_o they_o note_v he_o for_o ambition_n as_o if_o he_o have_v purposely_o procure_v a_o comment_n to_o be_v make_v upon_o his_o opinion_n but_o the_o spaniard_n be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o the_o french_a man_n though_o they_o do_v open_o defend_v their_o opinion_n as_o well_o because_o the_o cardinal_n have_v speak_v ambiguous_o as_o for_o that_o he_o and_o the_o other_o prelate_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o institution_n and_o superiorritie_n of_o bishop_n de_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la to_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v determine_v in_o council_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v omit_v and_o they_o be_v more_o displease_v with_o the_o form_n of_o the_o canon_n propose_v by_o the_o cardinal_n in_o which_o the_o word_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v leave_v out_o howsoever_o more_o for_o their_o satisfaction_n then_o for_o any_o other_o respect_n these_o word_n be_v put_v in_o that_o they_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n the_o frenchman_n and_o spaniard_n have_v the_o same_o end_n to_o provide_v against_o the_o ambition_n and_o avarice_n of_o the_o court_n which_o do_v domineer_v at_o their_o pleasure_n with_o precept_n unprofitable_a and_o of_o no_o fruit_n and_o draw_v a_o great_a quantity_n of_o money_n from_o christian_a nation_n by_o collation_n of_o benefice_n and_o dispensation_n but_o the_o spaniard_n judge_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o devotion_n which_o the_o people_n of_o their_o country_n bear_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o inclination_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o his_o counsel_n abhor_v novity_n if_o this_o have_v be_v do_v direct_o and_o open_o it_o will_v have_v raise_v a_o scandal_n and_o can_v not_o have_v be_v effect_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v easy_o have_v interpose_v so_o many_o difficulty_n with_o the_o prince_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o have_v be_v able_a to_o come_v to_o the_o declaration_n thereof_o but_o that_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o nation_n they_o ought_v to_o take_v their_o aim_n afar_o off_o and_z by_o declare_v that_o jurisdiction_n and_o residence_n be_v from_o christ_n and_o de_fw-fr inre_fw-fr divino_fw-la to_o put_v that_o order_n in_o reputation_n with_o the_o people_n to_o withstand_v the_o violent_a course_n which_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n may_v take_v against_o their_o person_n that_o so_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n they_o meght_n have_v mean_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o people_n restore_v the_o liberty_n usurp_v by_o the_o roman_n but_o the_o frenchman_n who_o by_o nature_n do_v proceed_v open_o and_o with_o passion_n esteem_v these_o art_n vain_a they_o say_v there_o will_v not_o want_v mean_n at_o rome_n to_o make_v they_o unprofitable_a and_o that_o they_o require_v so_o much_o time_n before_o they_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o effect_v that_o no_o good_a hope_n can_v be_v conceive_v of_o they_o that_o the_o true_a mean_n be_v without_o art_n direct_o and_o plain_o to_o rush_v down_o the_o abuse_n which_o be_v too_o clear_a and_o manifest_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o great_a difficulty_n to_o obtain_v this_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a end_n than_o there_o be_v to_o obtain_v the_o pretence_n which_o be_v obtain_v will_v be_v as_o much_o as_o nothing_o and_o their_o counsel_n be_v no_o less_o different_a in_o another_o particular_a also_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o judge_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v so_o firm_a and_o stable_a that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v alter_v but_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n between_o the_o frenchman_n and_o spaniard_n about_o the_o manner_n how_o to_o order_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n may_v neither_o be_v derogate_a from_o nor_o alter_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o dispensation_n non_fw-la obstanties_n and_o such_o other_o clause_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o the_o frenchman_n disseign_v that_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v decide_v or_o a_o constitution_n make_v that_o the_o decree_n thereof_o can_v nither_o be_v derogate_a from_o nor_o dispense_v with_o which_o will_v be_v a_o absolute_a remedy_n the_o spaniard_n think_v it_o a_o hard_a point_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v attempt_v because_o the_o pope_n will_v always_o be_v favour_v by_o prince_n when_o he_o shall_v complain_v that_o his_o authoritiy_n be_v diminish_v and_o will_v be_v assist_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o italian_a prelate_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o country_n and_o for_o many_o private_a interest_n and_o for_o themselves_o they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a that_o the_o council_n shall_v make_v the_o decree_n purpose_v afterward_o to_o obtain_v a_o pragmatique_a from_o the_o king_n upon_o they_o by_o which_o mean_v they_o will_v so_o be_v establish_v that_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n to_o the_o contrary_n can_v not_o enter_v into_o spain_n the_o legate_n dispatch_v a_o express_a currier_n with_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o of_o the_o animadversion_n of_o some_o canonist_n make_v upon_o it_o show_v that_o the_o papal_a authority_n be_v in_o question_n demand_v that_o order_n shall_v be_v send_v they_o what_o to_o do_v whereof_o the_o cardinal_n when_o he_o know_v it_o be_v very_o sensible_a and_o complain_v that_o have_v give_v the_o copy_n before_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o legate_n seem_v to_o be_v please_v they_o have_v afterward_o show_v so_o much_o distrust_n of_o he_o he_o rome_n the_o legate_n send_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o card_n of_o loreine_a to_o rome_n say_v he_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o fear_n be_v apprehend_v by_o every_o thing_n that_o either_o himself_o or_o any_o of_o the_o french_a prelate_n say_v or_o do_v he_o complain_v that_o his_o nation_n be_v wrong_v by_o the_o italian_n affirm_v that_o with_o his_o displease_v wherewith_o he_o be_v displease_v own_o ear_n he_o have_v hard_o some_o italian_a prelate_n scornful_o use_v that_o scurrile_a proverb_n which_o be_v already_o make_v common_a throughout_o all_o trent_n that_o be_v that_o from_o the_o spanish_a scab_n we_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o french_a pox_n of_o which_o the_o other_o frenchman_n do_v complain_v upon_o every_o occasion_n and_o the_o spaniard_n also_o who_o complaint_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v do_v more_o incite_v the_o curious_a and_o trent_n a_o disgrace_n full_a proverb_n in_o trent_n the_o suspicion_n and_o diffidence_n btweene_n the_o nation_n do_v with_o very_o great_a danger_n increase_n neither_o be_v the_o legate_n and_o wise_a sort_n of_o prelate_n able_a to_o stop_v the_o motion_n though_o they_o oppose_v both_o with_o authority_n and_o with_o persuasion_n the_o frenchmen_n be_v provoke_v do_v resolve_v to_o make_v proof_n of_o their_o liberty_n and_o agree_v that_o in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n shall_v not_o be_v present_a and_o that_o their_o prelate_n who_o be_v to_o speak_v shall_v use_v freedom_n and_o that_o if_o they_o be_v reprehend_v their_o ambassador_n shall_v protest_v and_o lansac_n that_o they_o may_v know_v it_o and_o beware_v in_o presence_n of_o many_o of_o they_o say_v to_o antonius_n lecius_fw-la bishop_n of_o orange_n one_o of_o the_o speaker_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o speak_v free_o
and_o without_o fear_n and_o that_o the_o king_n protection_n be_v sufficient_a to_o maintain_v he_o this_o be_v report_v to_o the_o legate_n be_v a_o cause_n that_o they_o be_v hear_v with_o much_o patience_n though_o they_o say_v that_o the_o institution_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n authority_n the_o french_a opinion_n concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n be_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n but_o in_o degree_n of_o superiority_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v confine_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o canon_n relate_v and_o commend_v the_o stile_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o france_n that_o when_o any_o pope_n bull_n be_v present_v which_o contain_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n receive_v in_o france_n they_o pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v abusive_a and_o forbid_v the_o execution_n this_o liberty_n make_v the_o papalin_n use_v more_o respect_n in_o their_o speech_n though_o the_o proverb_n please_v they_o so_o well_o that_o sometime_o some_o of_o the_o merry_a prelate_n can_v not_o forbear_v to_o use_v it_o the_o pretence_n for_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v the_o advice_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n which_o come_v to_o trent_n that_o day_n this_o france_n the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n make_v a_o great_a change_n in_o trent_n and_o in_o france_n prince_n wound_v with_o a_o bullet_n at_o the_o siege_n of_o rouen_n in_o september_n be_v never_o well_o cure_v and_o at_o the_o last_o died_z near_o unto_o his_o death_n he_o receive_v the_o communion_n after_o the_o catholic_a manner_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o his_o physician_n visentius_n laurus_fw-la and_o afterward_o waver_v towards_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o so_o die_v the_o ten_o of_o november_n this_o accident_n make_v a_o great_a mutation_n in_o the_o council_n and_o lorraine_n do_v sudden_o change_v all_o his_o design_n for_o that_o king_n have_v a_o principal_a hand_n in_o the_o commission_n give_v to_o the_o cardinal_n at_o his_o departure_n so_o that_o he_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o after_o his_o death_n the_o queen_n and_o other_o will_v continue_v in_o the_o same_o heat_n beside_o he_o see_v a_o manifest_a change_n in_o the_o whole_a government_n and_o therefore_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o france_n that_o himself_o may_v bear_v part_n of_o it_o also_o for_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v in_o open_a dissension_n distrust_v the_o queen_n and_o those_o who_o have_v power_n with_o she_o the_o cardinal_n of_o bourbon_n uncapable_a montpensier_n in_o small_a credit_n the_o constable_n old_a of_o who_o many_o also_o be_v emulous_a he_o have_v a_o great_a conceit_n that_o his_o brother_n may_v be_v the_o chief_a for_o arm_n and_o himself_o for_o counsel_n and_o he_o ruminate_v these_o thing_n in_o his_o mind_n think_v but_o little_a of_o the_o council_n and_o of_o trent_n where_o he_o be_v the_o other_o frenchman_n say_v open_o they_o ought_v to_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n because_o he_o begin_v to_o waver_v and_o to_o join_v his_o own_o interest_n with_o those_o of_o his_o brother_n and_o of_o the_o other_o hugonot_n the_o next_o day_n be_v the_o eight_o of_o december_n be_v all_o spend_v in_o ceremony_n for_o the_o election_n of_o maximilian_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o prague_n sing_v the_o mass_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n the_o bishop_n of_o tininia_n make_v a_o sermon_n in_o commendation_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o cardinal_n and_o ambassador_n be_v invite_v by_o prague_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o diet_n be_v assemble_v in_o francfort_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n send_v not_o only_o to_o demand_v assistance_n from_o the_o protestant_a prince_n but_o also_o to_o treat_v a_o union_n of_o the_o hugonot_n with_o those_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o ausburg_n and_o in_o particular_a to_o make_v a_o joint_a demand_n for_o a_o free_a new_a council_n in_o which_o the_o resolution_n of_o trent_n may_v be_v examine_v the_o frenchman_n of_o the_o old_a catholic_a religion_n give_v hope_n also_o that_o they_o will_v agree_v unto_o it_o because_o it_o have_v be_v promise_v to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n who_o afterward_o be_v create_v cardinal_n della_fw-it bordissiera_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v but_o the_o dutch_a protestant_n be_v most_o averse_a from_o the_o council_n so_o long_o as_o germany_n may_v be_v in_o peace_n without_o it_o and_o therefore_o a_o book_n be_v print_v in_o francfort_n full_a of_o excuse_n and_o reason_n why_o they_o neither_o will_v nor_o can_v come_v to_o trent_n with_o protestation_n of_o the_o nullity_n of_o all_o that_o be_v and_o will_v be_v do_v in_o that_o place_n the_o king_n be_v first_o anoint_v and_o crown_v king_n of_o bohemia_n in_o prague_n bohemia_n the_o coronation_n of_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n in_o presence_n of_o his_o father_n the_o emperor_n by_o that_o archbishop_n who_o go_v from_o trent_n into_o bohemia_n to_o perform_v that_o ceremony_n that_o the_o king_n may_v have_v a_o voice_n in_o the_o imperial_a diet._n be_v come_v to_o francfort_n they_o be_v force_v to_o expect_v until_o the_o canon_n of_o colon_n have_v elect_v their_o archbishop_n because_o that_o sea_n be_v then_o void_a so_o that_o the_o prince_n have_v much_o time_n to_o handle_v many_o matter_n expect_v still_o in_o that_o place_n that_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o may_v be_v full_a by_o the_o coronation_n in_o bohemia_n and_o the_o election_n in_o colen_n they_o be_v trouble_v in_o rome_n with_o these_o thimg_n and_o afraid_a that_o the_o diet_n will_v send_v to_o trent_n to_o protest_v and_o that_o some_o new_a form_n will_v be_v use_v in_o the_o coronation_n and_o the_o old_a abolish_v which_o will_v show_v a_o inclination_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a rite_n or_o that_o some_o promise_n will_v be_v make_v by_o the_o new_a king_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o pope_n authority_n but_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n use_v much_o art_n to_o divert_v the_o handle_n of_o point_n of_o religion_n before_o the_o election_n which_o be_v make_v the_o 24_o of_o november_n and_o the_o coronation_n the_o last_o roman_n the_o election_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n of_o that_o month_n in_o which_o the_o elector_n and_o other_o protestant_a prince_n stand_v at_o the_o mass_n until_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v and_o then_o they_o go_v forth_o this_o only_o be_v new_a but_o the_o pope_n nuncio_n take_v place_n above_o the_o electour_n and_o ambassador_n the_o coronation_n be_v past_a the_o emperor_n begin_v to_o practice_v with_o some_o of_o the_o protestant_n that_o they_o will_v adhere_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n who_o not_o to_o be_v prevent_v assemble_v themselves_o together_o present_v to_o the_o emperor_n the_o answer_n promise_v 20._o month_n before_o to_o his_o ambassador_n in_o the_o assembly_n at_o namburg_n which_o be_v defer_v until_o then_o council_n condition_n require_v by_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n before_o they_o will_v assist_v the_o council_n in_o which_o have_v declare_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o have_v inmany_a imperial_a diet_n appeal_v and_o do_v appeal_v again_o unto_o a_o free_a council_n they_o add_v the_o condition_n which_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v necessary_a with_o which_o they_o offeredto_o assist_v in_o a_o future_a general_a council_n 1._o that_o it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o germany_n 2._o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v intimate_v by_o the_o pope_n 3._o that_o he_o shall_v not_o preside_v but_o be_v part_n of_o the_o council_n subject_a to_o the_o determination_n thereof_o 4._o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n shall_v be_v free_v from_o their_o oath_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o may_v free_o and_o without_o impediment_n deliver_v their_o opinion_n 5._o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o the_o council_n and_o all_o human_a authority_n exclude_v 6._o that_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n send_v to_o the_o council_n may_v not_o only_o have_v a_o consult_v but_o decide_v voice_n also_o and_o may_v have_v a_o safeconduct_a both_o for_o their_o person_n and_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n 7._o that_o the_o decision_n in_o council_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v as_o in_o secular_a matter_n by_o plurality_n of_o voice_n but_o the_o more_o sound_a opinion_n prefer_v that_o be_v those_o which_o be_v regulate_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 8._o that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n shall_v be_v make_v void_a because_o it_o be_v partial_a celebrate_v by_o one_o part_n only_o and_o not_o govern_v according_a to_o promise_v 9_o that_o if_o a_o concord_n in_o
of_o the_o church_n have_v absolute_a power_n to_o restrain_v and_o amplify_v that_o which_o be_v give_v as_o seem_v good_a unto_o he_o then_o he_o write_v that_o in_o the_o particular_a of_o residence_n it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o dispense_v they_o shall_v by_o all_o good_a caution_n of_o word_n reserve_v his_o authority_n in_o the_o decree_n in_o which_o the_o word_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v put_v as_o catharinus_n have_v well_o prove_v from_o who_o opinion_n be_v catholic_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o depart_v for_o hold_v the_o session_n he_o write_v confuse_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v defer_v above_o fifteen_o day_n nor_o celebrate_v before_o the_o matter_n be_v in_o order_n that_o the_o envious_a may_v not_o take_v occasion_n to_o calumniate_v a_o solemn_a ambassage_n from_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n pass_v by_o trent_n to_o go_v rome_n the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n sond_v ambassador_n to_o rome_n to_o rome_n to_o obtain_v of_o the_o pope_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup._n they_o have_v audience_n with_o the_o legate_n and_o secret_a conference_n with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n this_o waken_v the_o controversy_n in_o that_o matter_n which_o be_v asleep_a and_o the_o spaniard_n and_o many_o italian_n howsoever_o the_o matter_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o mayor_n part_n say_v it_o will_v be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o council_n if_o while_o that_o last_v that_o use_n shall_v be_v permit_v and_o all_o the_o father_n be_v in_o a_o hurly_n burly_n because_o letter_n come_v from_o rome_n to_o diverse_a prelate_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v suspend_v which_o report_n be_v confirm_v by_o don_n john_n manriques_n who_o pass_v by_o trent_n from_o germany_n to_o rome_n but_o the_o legate_n have_v receive_v the_o pope_n letter_n think_v it_o impossible_a to_o execute_v the_o order_n he_o have_v send_v and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v he_o a_o more_o particular_a account_n of_o the_o occurrence_n than_o can_v be_v do_v by_o writing_n and_o make_v he_o understand_v that_o the_o council_n can_v be_v govern_v as_o at_o rome_n they_o think_v it_o can_v that_o they_o may_v receive_v a_o more_o plain_a instruction_n from_o his_o holiness_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v and_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o send_v a_o man_n of_o judgement_n well_o inform_v and_o of_o credit_n with_o the_o pope_n they_o find_v none_o better_a than_o the_o bishop_n of_o ventimiglia_n who_o they_o resolve_v to_o dispatch_v with_o speed_n the_o holiday_n pope_n the_o legate_n send_v the_o b._n of_o ventimiglia_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o christmas_n approach_v give_v they_o fit_a occasion_n first_o to_o proceed_v slow_o and_o afterward_o to_o intermit_v the_o congregation_n and_o so_o to_o have_v leisure_n to_o make_v that_o dispatch_n which_o be_v do_v the_o six_o and_o twenty_o of_o december_n the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o news_n come_v to_o trent_n of_o the_o battle_n in_o france_n which_o happen_v the_o seventeenth_o of_o the_o month_n in_o which_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n france_n the_o battle_n &_o other_o trouble_v in_o france_n be_v take_v prisoner_n that_o kingdom_n be_v very_o turbulent_a all_o that_o year_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n which_o give_v a_o beginning_n first_o unto_o a_o gentle_a and_o afterward_o unto_o a_o furious_a war_n for_o the_o hugonot_n increase_a in_o paris_n to_o the_o great_a discontent_n of_o the_o catholic_n who_o be_v many_o in_o the_o city_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n the_o constable_n with_o his_o son_n and_o the_o house_n of_o guise_n with_o some_o other_o to_o hinder_v the_o greatness_n unto_o which_o that_o prince_n do_v aspire_v make_v a_o league_n and_o desseigned_a to_o make_v themselves_o leader_n of_o the_o people_n of_o paris_n and_o to_o chase_v by_o their_o mean_n from_o that_o city_n and_o the_o court_n the_o prince_n and_o his_o follower_n each_o of_o they_o depart_v from_o his_o house_n to_o go_v towards_o paris_n and_o in_o the_o journey_n slay_v and_o disperse_v the_o hugonot_n who_o they_o find_v assemble_v in_o diverse_a place_n they_o enter_v into_o paris_n and_o have_v draw_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n to_o their_o side_n and_o cause_v the_o city_n to_o arm_v in_o their_o favour_n the_o queen_n be_v constrain_v to_o join_v with_o they_o hereupon_o the_o prince_n go_v out_o of_o paris_n and_o retire_v with_o his_o adherent_n to_o orlience_n manifest_v and_o writing_n pass_v on_o both_o side_n each_o protest_v they_o do_v nothing_o but_o for_o the_o liberty_n and_o service_n of_o the_o king_n but_o the_o constable_n and_o guise_n wax_v every_o day_n strong_a in_o april_n the_o prince_n write_v to_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o france_n demand_v soldier_n and_o money_n and_o declare_v war_n against_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o catholic_a party_n call_v they_o perturber_n of_o the_o public_a quiet_n and_o violater_n of_o the_o king_n edict_n publish_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o reformatist_n the_o prince_n letter_n be_v accompany_v with_o other_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o orleans_n and_o of_o some_o other_o city_n which_o cause_v those_o of_o that_o religion_n to_o arm_n and_o there_o fall_v out_o a_o accident_n which_o do_v incite_v they_o more_o for_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o edict_n of_o january_n whereof_o we_o have_v already_o make_v mention_n be_v publish_v again_o in_o paris_n with_o a_o addition_n that_o neither_o in_o the_o suburb_n of_o the_o city_n nor_o within_o the_o space_n of_o a_o league_n any_o assembly_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v hold_v or_o sacrament_n administer_v but_o after_o the_o old_a rite_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o may_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n make_v all_o the_o reformatist_n go_v out_o of_o paris_n but_o proceed_v with_o such_o moderation_n that_o none_o of_o they_o be_v offend_v war_n break_v forth_o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o france_n between_o these_o party_n and_o that_o summer_n there_o be_v at_o the_o least_o ●●urteene_v formal_a army_n all_o at_o one_o time_n in_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o son_n fight_v against_o their_o father_n brother_n against_o brother_n and_o even_o woman_n take_v arm_n on_o both_o side_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o religion_n there_o be_v almost_o no_o part_n in_o dolphinie_n languedoc_n and_o gascoigne_n which_o be_v not_o vex_v oftentimes_o the_o catholic_n remain_v conqueror_n in_o some_o place_n and_o the_o reformatist_n in_o other_o with_o such_o variety_n of_o accident_n that_o it_o will_v be_v redious_a to_o repeat_v they_o and_o beside_o our_o purpose_n which_o require_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v relate_v by_o we_o but_o concern_v trent_n except_o those_o which_o have_v a_o connexion_n with_o the_o council_n as_o the_o thing_n follow_v have_v where_o the_o hugonot_n overcome_v the_o image_n be_v beat_v down_o the_o altar_n destroy_v the_o church_n spoil_v and_o the_o ornament_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n melt_v to_o make_v money_n for_o soldier_n pay_v where_o the_o catholic_n be_v conqueror_n they_o burn_v the_o bibles_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n rebaptised_a child_n and_o remarry_v those_o who_o have_v be_v marry_v according_a to_o the_o new_a ceremony_n and_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o clergy_n on_o both_o side_n be_v most_o miserable_a who_o whensoever_o they_o be_v take_v be_v cruel_o murder_v without_o all_o humanity_n in_o julie_n the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n make_v a_o decree_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o slay_v all_o the_o hugonot_n which_o by_o public_a order_n be_v read_v every_o sunday_n in_o every_o parish_n afterward_o they_o add_v another_o declare_v they_o rebel_n public_a enemy_n themselves_o infamous_a and_o all_o their_o posterity_n and_o the_o good_n of_o those_o who_o take_v arm_n in_o orleans_n confiscate_v paris_n a_o bloody_a decree_n make_v by_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n except_o conde_n upon_o pretence_n that_o they_o hold_v he_o by_o force_n and_o howsoever_o there_o be_v many_o treaty_n between_o the_o party_n and_o a_o verbal_a conference_n also_o between_o the_o queen_n mother_n and_o the_o prince_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o grandee_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o find_v out_o any_o mean_n of_o composition_n but_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n be_v dead_a who_o perhaps_o will_v not_o have_v suffer_v they_o to_o proceed_v to_o a_o open_a war_n the_o queen_n resolve_v to_o regain_v obedience_n france_n the_o low_a country_n do_v ●●itate_v france_n with_o arm_n demand_v aid_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n and_o because_o the_o people_n of_o the_o low_a country_n do_v learn_v by_o this_o example_n to_o be_v more_o contumacious_a and_o obstinate_a the_o king_n authority_n diminish_v every_o day_n and_o can_v not_o be_v repair_v by_o the_o governor_n and_o the_o
king_n refuse_v to_o go_v thither_o to_o oppose_v his_o person_n against_o the_o ill_a disposition_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o dessigne_n of_o the_o grandee_n as_o granuel_n the_o chief_a in_o that_o government_n have_v give_v he_o counsel_n for_o that_o wise_a king_n know_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o be_v contemn_v to_o his_o face_n and_o doubt_v that_o in_o stead_n of_o gain_v flanders_n he_o shall_v make_v it_o more_o contumacious_a and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n loose_a spain_n but_o he_o think_v army_n the_o queen_n mother_n resuse_v the_o spanish_a army_n that_o by_o subdue_a the_o frenchman_n who_o rebel_v against_o their_o king_n he_o may_v make_v a_o absolute_a provision_n against_o the_o contumacy_n of_o his_o own_o subject_n and_o therefore_o he_o offer_v the_o queen_n great_a assistance_n of_o man_n and_o money_n sufficient_a to_o subject_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n unto_o she_o but_o the_o queen_n refuse_v the_o man_n and_o demand_v the_o money_n know_v that_o if_o she_o have_v receive_v a_o spanish_a army_n she_o shall_v have_v be_v force_v to_o govern_v france_n not_o according_a to_o her_o own_o interest_n but_o of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n yet_o take_v a_o middle_a course_n she_o receive_v six_o thousand_o man_n with_o which_o and_o with_o her_o own_o force_n conduct_v by_o the_o constable_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n the_o battle_n be_v make_v the_o seaventeenth_o day_n aforesaid_a in_o which_o three_o thousand_o hugonot_n and_o five_o thousand_o catholic_n be_v slay_v and_o the_o general_n on_o both_o side_n conde_n and_o the_o constable_n take_v prisoner_n neither_o of_o the_o army_n be_v discomfit_v by_o venue_n of_o the_o lieutenant_n on_o both_o side_n guise_n for_o the_o catholic_n and_o colignie_n for_o the_o hugonot_n the_o queen_n do_v make_v guise_n the_o general_n which_o do_v not_o deter_v collignie_n from_o maintain_v his_o army_n preserve_v the_o place_n he_o possess_v and_o make_v some_o progress_n also_o for_o this_o victory_n for_o so_o it_o be_v call_v though_o it_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n thanks_n be_v give_v to_o god_n in_o trent_n by_o all_o the_o father_n assemble_v together_o make_v a_o procession_n &_o sing_v a_o mass_n franciscus_n belcarrus_n bishop_n of_o metz_n make_v a_o oration_n also_o in_o which_o relate_v all_o the_o story_n of_o the_o confusion_n of_o france_n since_o the_o death_n of_o francis_n the_o second_o and_o the_o success_n of_o the_o last_o war●e_n france_n solemnity_n be_v use_v in_o trent_n for_o the_o victory_n in_o france_n he_o give_v the_o praise_n of_o all_o that_o be_v well_o do_v to_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n only_o he_o say_v martin_n luther_n be_v cause_n of_o all_o those_o trouble_n who_o though_o but_o a_o little_a spark_n have_v raise_v a_o great_a fire_n first_o in_o germany_n and_o afterward_o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o christendom_n except_o italy_n and_o spain_n he_o exhort_v the_o father_n to_o assist_v the_o christian_a commonwealth_n because_o they_o only_o be_v able_a to_o extinguish_v that_o flame_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v the_o six_o and_o twenty_o year_n since_o paul_n the_o three_o begin_v to_o heal_v this_o disease_n by_o intimate_v the_o council_n there_o which_o be_v first_o defer_v then_o dissemble_v and_o final_o celebrate_v with_o diverse_a faction_n until_o it_o be_v transfer_v to_o bolonia_n where_o there_o be_v many_o dilation_n and_o great_a contention_n and_o more_o bitter_a faction_n then_o before_o afterward_o it_o be_v recall_v to_o trent_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n dissolve_v now_o that_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o last_o there_o be_v no_o more_o place_n for_o dissimulation_n because_o the_o council_n will_v either_o reconcile_v the_o whole_a world_n or_o cast_v it_o headlong_o into_o a_o infallible_a ruin_n therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o the_o father_n shall_v not_o regard_v their_o private_a interest_n nor_o have_v particular_a design_n nor_o speak_v in_o favour_n of_o other_o in_o regard_n the_o cause_n of_o religion_n be_v in_o question_n which_o will_v be_v utter_o overthrow_v if_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o any_o thing_n beside_o this_o liberty_n of_o speech_n he_o temper_v with_o flattery_n first_o towards_o the_o pope_n then_o towards_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o of_o polonia_n he_o pass_v to_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o queen_n mother_n of_o france_n and_o of_o the_o king_n of_o portugal_n and_o in_o the_o end_n exhort_v they_o to_o reform_v the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n have_v receive_v news_n of_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v very_o glad_a particular_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o brother_n and_o desire_v the_o more_o to_o return_v quick_o into_o france_n to_o assist_v he_o in_o the_o court_n and_o in_o the_o king_n council_n and_o to_o raise_v himself_o also_o one_o degree_n high_o in_o regard_n navarre_n and_o the_o constable_n to_o who_o he_o be_v neccessary_o to_o yield_v be_v both_o take_v away_o the_o pope_n be_v full_a of_o suspicion_n for_o the_o journey_n to_o ispruc_n which_o the_o emperor_n ispruc_n the_o pope_n be_v trouble_v that_o the_o emperor_n will_v go_v to_o ispruc_n have_v publish_v think_v he_o will_v not_o go_v thither_o without_o great_a design_n and_o without_o assurance_n to_o effect_v they_o he_o believe_v he_o have_v secret_a intelligence_n with_o france_n and_o spain_n but_o know_v not_o to_o what_o end_n but_o only_o in_o general_n that_o it_o be_v a_o plot_n against_o he_o therefore_o he_o resolve_v to_o go_v in_o person_n to_o bolonia_n to_o send_v eight_o or_o ten_o cardinal_n to_o trent_n to_o make_v great_a alliance_n with_o the_o italian_a prince_n and_o to_o confirm_v the_o prelate_n his_o adherent_n in_o council_n until_o be_v can_v find_v some_o occasion_n to_o dissolve_v or_o suspend_v it_o and_o ●o_o hinder_v all_o treaty_n in_o trent_n of_o reform_v the_o court_n he_o labour_v much_o himself_o in_o that_o business_n he_o reform_v the_o rota_n publish_v a_o brief_a date_v the_o seven_o and_o twenty_o of_o december_n in_o which_o he_o ordain_v that_o no_o audit●r_n shall_v proceed_v to_o a_o definitive_a howsoever_o the_o case_n may_v be_v plain_a before_o he_o make_v the_o proposition_n to_o the_o whole_a college_n without_o 2._o 1563_o pius_fw-la 4._o fe●●inand_n elizabeth_n charles_n 9_o philip_z 2._o consent_n of_o the_o party_n that_o the_o sentence_n propound_v in_o writing_n shall_v be_v produce_v within_o fifteen_o day_n that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o auditor_n themselves_o or_o of_o their_o kinsfolk_n unto_o the_o second_o degree_n or_o of_o any_o of_o their_o family_n shall_v not_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o rota_n that_o the_o party_n shall_v not_o be_v force_v to_o receve_v a_o advocate_n that_o no_o decision_n shall_v be_v make_v against_o those_o which_o be_v print_v except_o two_o three_o of_o the_o voice_n do_v consent_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o remit_v every_o cause_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v criminal_a in_o the_o same_o bull_n he_o make_v also_o a_o tax_n for_o moderation_n of_o fee_n he_o reform_v likewise_o by_o other_o bull_n publish_v the_o first_o of_o the_o next_o januarie_n the_o signature_n of_o justice_n the_o tribunal_n of_o rome_n the_o office_n of_o the_o friscall_v advocate_n ordain_v what_o fee_n they_o shall_v have_v but_o the_o usual_a extorsion_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v redress_v by_o those_o provision_n that_o by_o transgress_v the_o new_a order_n they_o learn_v to_o violate_v the_o old_a which_o be_v in_o some_o use_n the_o courtier_n in_o rome_n think_v the_o catholic_n in_o france_n have_v get_v a_o absolute_a victory_n and_o that_o the_o hugonot_n be_v reduce_v to_o nothing_o be_v exceed_o glad_a for_o believe_v that_o france_n have_v obtain_v that_o by_o arm_n which_o it_o expect_v from_o the_o synod_n and_o there_o be_v no_o further_o regard_v to_o be_v have_v of_o germany_n which_o protest_v against_o it_o they_o think_v that_o all_o cause_n of_o hold_v the_o council_n be_v cease_v so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v suspend_v or_o defer_v and_o themselves_o deliver_v from_o fear_n which_o have_v increase_v every_o week_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o novity_n which_o happen_v in_o trent_n but_o the_o pope_n make_v no_o great_a matter_n of_o it_o for_o be_v inform_v that_o the_o catholic_a force_n be_v not_o augment_v nor_o the_o hugonot_n diminish_v and_o that_o this_o battle_n will_v give_v occasion_n to_o treat_v a_o peace_n which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o his_o prejudice_n nor_o without_o give_v matter_n of_o more_o novity_n in_o trent_n he_o be_v more_o afraid_a and_o trouble_v then_o before_o and_o the_o year_n 1562._o end_v thus_o a_o congregation_n in_o trent_n have_v be_v hold_v the_o thirty_o of_o the_o month_n in_o which_o it_o be_v
proportion_n of_o the_o diocese_n shall_v preach_v every_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n &_o in_o lent_n on_o fast_v day_n and_o in_o advent_a and_o as_o often_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v fit_a 10._o that_o the_o parish_n priest_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o as_o often_o as_o he_o have_v auditor_n 11._o that_o the_o abbot_n and_o conuentuall_a prior_n shall_v read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o institute_v a_o hospital_n so_o that_o the_o ancient_a school_n and_o hospitality_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o monastery_n 12._o that_o bishop_n parish_n priest_n abbat_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n unable_a to_o perform_v their_o charge_n shall_v receive_v coadjutor_n or_o leave_v their_o benefice_n 13._o that_o concern_v the_o catechism_n and_o summarie_a instruction_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o shall_v be_v ordain_v which_o the_o emperor_n have_v propose_v to_o the_o council_n 14._o that_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v more_o than_o one_o benefice_n take_v away_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o person_n and_o of_o benefice_n compatible_a and_o incompatible_a a_o new_a division_n not_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o ancient_a decree_n and_o a_o cause_n of_o many_o trouble_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o regular_a benefice_n shall_v be_v give_v into_o regular_o and_o secular_a to_o secular_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o who_o now_o have_v two_o or_o more_o shall_v retain_v that_o only_o which_o he_o shall_v choose_v within_o a_o short_a time_n or_o shall_v incur_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n 16._o that_o to_o take_v away_o all_o note_n of_o avarice_n from_o the_o clergy_n nothing_o be_v take_v upon_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o for_o the_o administration_n of_o holy_a thing_n but_o that_o provision_n be_v make_v that_o the_o curate_n with_o two_o clerk_n or_o more_o may_v have_v whereon_o to_o live_v and_o maintain_v hospitality_n which_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n by_o unite_n benefice_n or_o assign_v ten_o unto_o they_o or_o where_o that_o can_v be_v do_v the_o prince_n may_v provide_v for_o they_o by_o 〈◊〉_d or_o collection_n impose_v upon_o the_o parish_n 17._o that_o in_o parish_n mass_n the_o gospel_n be_v expound_v clear_o according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o prayer_n which_o the_o parish-priest_n make_v together_o with_o the_o people_n be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v end_v in_o latin_a public_a prayer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n likewise_o and_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n or_o in_o other_o hour_n spiritual_a hymn_n or_o psalm_n of_o david_n approve_v by_o the_o bishop_n may_v be_v sing_v in_o the_o same_o language_n 18._o that_o the_o ancient_a decree_n of_o leo_n and_o gelasius_n for_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v renew_v 19_o that_o before_o the_o administration_n of_o every_o sacrament_n a_o exposition_n be_v make_v in_o the_o vulgar_a so_o that_o the_o ignorant_a may_v understand_v their_o use_n and_o efficacy_n 20._o that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n benefice_n may_v not_o be_v confer_v by_o the_o vicar_n but_o by_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o within_o the_o term_n of_o six_o month_n otherwise_o that_o the_o collation_n may_v be_v devolue_v to_o the_o next_o superior_a and_o by_o degree_n to_o the_o pope_n 21._o that_o the_o mandate_n of_o provision_n expectative_n regress_n resignation_n in_o confidence_n and_o commendae_n be_v revoke_v and_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n 22._o that_o the_o resignation_n in_o favour_n be_v whole_o exterminate_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o election_n of_o one_o self_n or_o a_o demand_v of_o a_o successor_n a_o thing_n prohibit_v by_o the_o canon_n 23._o that_o simple_a priory_n from_o which_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n be_v take_v away_o contrary_a to_o the_o foundation_n and_o assign_v to_o a_o perpetual_a vicar_n with_o a_o small_a portion_n of_o tithe_n or_o of_o other_o renenue_n be_v restore_v to_o their_o former_a state_n at_o the_o first_o vacancy_n 24._o that_o benefice_n unto_o which_o no_o office_n of_o preach_v administer_a the_o sacrament_n nor_o any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a charge_n be_v annex_v may_v have_v some_o spiritual_a cure_n impose_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o bishop_n with_o the_o council_n of_o the_o chapter_n or_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o next_o parish_n because_o no_o benefice_n ought_v or_o can_v be_v without_o a_o office_n 25._o that_o pension_n be_v not_o impose_v upon_o benefice_n and_o those_o abolish_v which_o be_v impose_v already_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n may_v be_v spend_v in_o maintain_v the_o pastor_n and_o poor_a and_o in_o other_o work_n of_o piety_n 26._o that_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n throughout_o the_o whole_a diocese_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o bishop_n all_o exemption_n be_v take_v away_o but_o of_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o order_n and_o monastery_n subject_a unto_o they_o and_o those_o who_o make_v general_a chapter_n to_o who_o exemption_n be_v grant_v by_o a_o lawful_a title_n but_o yet_o with_o provision_n that_o they_o be_v not_o exempt_v from_o correction_n 27._o that_o the_o bishop_n may_v not_o use_v jurisdiction_n and_o handle_v matter_n of_o great_a weight_n concern_v the_o diocese_n without_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o that_o the_o canon_n may_v reside_v continual_o in_o the_o church_n be_v of_o good_a conversation_n learned_a and_o at_o the_o least_o 25._o year_n of_o age_n in_o regard_n the_o law_n not_o give_v they_o the_o free_a disposition_n of_o their_o good_n before_o that_o time_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v counselor_n to_o bishop_n 28_o that_o the_o degree_n of_o affinity_n consanguinity_n and_o spiritual_a kindred_n be_v observe_v or_o reform_v and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o dispense_v therein_o but_o with_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o public_a good_a 29._o that_o in_o regard_n many_o trouble_n have_v rise_v by_o mean_n of_o image_n the_o synod_n will_v make_v provision_n that_o the_o people_n may_v be_v teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v concern_v they_o and_o that_o the_o abuse_n and_o superstition_n if_o any_o be_v use_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o they_o may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v concern_v indulgence_n pilgrimage_n relic_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o company_n or_o confraternity_n 30._o that_o the_o public_a and_o ancient_a penance_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n forgrievous_a &_o public_a offence_n be_v restore_v and_o bring_v into_o use_n as_o also_o fasting_n and_o other_o exercise_n of_o sorrow_n and_o public_a prayer_n to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n 31._o that_o excommunication_n be_v not_o decree_v for_o every_o sort_n of_o offence_n or_o contumacy_n but_o only_o for_o the_o great_a and_o in_o which_o the_o offender_n do_v persevere_v after_o admonition_n 32._o that_o to_o abbreviate_v or_o quite_o take_v away_o suit_n of_o law_n for_o benefice_n by_o which_o the_o whole_a clergy_n be_v blemish_v the_o distinction_n of_o petitorie_a and_o possessory_a new_o invent_v in_o those_o cause_n may_v be_v take_v away_o nomination_n of_o university_n abolish_v and_o a_o commandment_n give_v to_o bishop_n to_o give_v benefice_n not_o to_o those_o that_o seek_v they_o but_o to_o those_o that_o avoid_v they_o and_o be_v worthy_a of_o they_o and_o their_o merit_n will_v be_v know_v if_o after_o their_o degree_n receive_v in_o the_o university_n they_o shall_v have_v spend_v some_o time_n in_o preach_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n 33._o that_o there_o be_v a_o suit_n for_o a_o benefice_n a_o economique_a may_v be_v create_v and_o arbitrator_n elect_v by_o the_o litigant_n which_o in_o case_n they_o refuse_v to_o do_v that_o the_o bishop_n may_v nominate_v and_o that_o these_o may_v determine_v the_o controversy_n within_o six_o month_n and_o that_o no_o appeal_n may_v lie_v from_o they_o 34_o that_o the_o episcopal_a synod_n may_v be_v hold_v once_o a_o year_n at_o the_o least_o and_o the_o provincial_n once_o in_o every_o three_o year_n and_o the_o general_n if_o the_o ere_o be_v none_o impediment_n every_o ten_o year_n the_o first_o of_o januarie_n vintimiglia_n arrive_v in_o rome_n have_v make_v the_o journey_n rome_n the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o vintimiglia_n in_o rome_n in_o seven_o day_n he_o present_v the_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o declare_v his_o credence_n relate_v the_o cogitation_n and_o diverse_a end_n and_o humour_n which_o be_v in_o the_o council_n and_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o legate_n and_o other_o good_a servant_n of_o his_o holiness_n think_v the_o difficulty_n ought_v to_o be_v manage_v the_o pope_n hold_v a_o congregation_n the_o three_o day_n and_o give_v account_n of_o the_o relation_n of_o vintimiglia_n
ambassador_n make_v a_o great_a and_o long_a instance_n to_o the_o legate_n to_o handle_v the_o reformation_n and_o to_o propose_v their_o petition_n before_o they_o begin_v to_o treat_v of_o matrimony_n they_o answer_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v not_o to_o receive_v law_n from_o other_o that_o if_o thing_n convenient_a be_v propose_v by_o prince_n consideration_n be_v to_o be_v have_v of_o they_o at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o precedent_n shall_v think_v fit_a that_o if_o in_o their_o petition_n any_o thing_n be_v find_v belong_v to_o order_n they_o will_v propose_v it_o together_o and_o afterward_o the_o other_o thing_n in_o their_o time_n this_o answer_v not_o content_v the_o ambassador_n they_o desire_v that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o make_v the_o proposition_n they_o will_v be_v content_a that_o themselves_o may_v do_v it_o or_o else_o give_v they_o a_o plain_a negative_a add_v as_o it_o be_v in_o form_n of_o a_o protestation_n that_o if_o they_o continue_v to_o give_v these_o ambiguous_a answer_n they_o will_v hold_v they_o to_o be_v equivalent_a to_o a_o scornful_a negative_a the_o legate_n take_v three_o day_n time_n to_o give_v a_o more_o precise_a answer_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n desire_a lorraine_n to_o pacify_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o content_v to_o expect_v until_o they_o have_v receive_v a_o answer_n from_o rome_n concern_v the_o article_n which_o they_o have_v send_v thither_o the_o next_o day_n the_o article_n of_o matrimony_n be_v give_v forth_o to_o be_v discuss_v dispute_v the_o article_n to_o be_v dispute_v by_o the_o divine_n the_o week_n follow_v in_o which_o a_o dispute_n present_o arise_v between_o the_o french_a and_o spaniard_n about_o precedence_n which_o can_v not_o be_v compose_v to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o both_o party_n but_o by_o change_v the_o order_n observe_v until_o then_o and_o by_o give_v precedence_n according_a to_o promotion_n unto_o the_o doctorship_n the_o pope_n divine_n oppose_v say_v that_o the_o difficulty_n be_v between_o the_o french_a and_o spaniard_n the_o provision_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o they_o alone_o and_o their_o place_n not_o alter_v which_o be_v undoubted_o the_o first_o the_o legate_n say_v they_o have_v reason_n conclude_v that_o the_o first_o rank_n in_o which_o the_o papalin_n be_v shall_v speak_v as_o former_o they_o have_v do_v and_o the_o other_o prelate_n a_o question_n of_o precedence_n between_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a prelate_n three_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o promotion_n wherewith_o the_o frenchman_n be_v not_o content_a except_o one_o of_o they_o be_v put_v into_o the_o first_o rank_n the_o spanish_a secretary_n desire_v that_o a_o public_a instrument_n may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o decree_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o if_o any_o frenchman_n speak_v before_o the_o spaniard_n it_o be_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o precedence_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o conclusion_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o all_o a_o instrument_n be_v make_v and_o a_o grant_n to_o the_o frenchman_n that_o after_o salmeron_n the_o first_o of_o the_o popish_a divine_n the_o dean_n of_o paris_n will_v speak_v and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o first_o rank_n shall_v proceed_v according_a to_o promotion_n the_o article_n be_v eight_o upon_o which_o they_o be_v to_o dispute_v whether_o they_o be_v heretical_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v condemn_v 1._o that_o matrimony_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o god_n but_o a_o humane_a introduction_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o have_v no_o promise_n of_o grace_n 2._o that_o the_o parent_n may_v make_v void_a secret_a marriage_n and_o that_o those_o which_o be_v so_o contract_v be_v not_o true_a marriage_n yea_o that_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o hereafter_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v void_a in_o the_o church_n 3._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o case_n the_o wife_n be_v divorce_v for_o cause_n of_o fornication_n to_o marry_v another_o in_o the_o life_n time_n of_o the_o former_a and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o make_v a_o divorce_n for_o any_o cause_n but_o fornication_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o have_v many_o wife_n and_o that_o the_o prohibition_n for_o marriage_n in_o certain_a time_n of_o the_o year_n be_v a_o tyranny_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n 5._o that_o matrimony_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o chastity_n and_o that_o god_n give_v more_o grace_n to_o those_o that_o be_v marry_v then_o to_o other_o 6._o that_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o west_n may_v lawful_o contract_v matrimony_n notwithstanding_o the_o vow_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o that_o to_o say_v the_o contrary_n be_v to_o condemn_v matrimony_n and_o that_o all_o those_o who_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o chastity_n may_v marry_v 7._o that_o the_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n mention_v in_o the_o eighteen_o of_o leviticus_fw-la aught_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o 8._o that_o inability_n to_o carnal_a copulation_n and_o ignorance_n in_o the_o contract_n of_o marriage_n be_v only_a cause_n to_o dissolve_v matrimony_n contract_v and_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o matrimony_n do_v belong_v to_o secular_a prince_n of_o which_o article_n that_o they_o may_v brief_o speak_v they_o be_v divide_v into_o four_o part_n according_a to_o the_o four_o rank_n of_o divine_n and_o two_o appoint_v for_o each_o the_o bishop_n of_o renes_fw-la ambassador_n of_o france_n to_o the_o emperor_n arrive_v in_o trent_n who_o have_v treat_v with_o lorraine_n that_o cardinal_n go_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o ever_o since_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o france_n he_o have_v have_v commission_n from_o the_o king_n to_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n which_o he_o will_v do_v within_o a_o few_o day_n because_o he_o will_v be_v in_o ispruc_n and_o because_o renes_fw-la be_v come_v to_o fetch_v he_o he_o give_v a_o account_n also_o of_o the_o journey_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o letter_n in_o which_o he_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o italian_n in_o council_n add_v that_o if_o they_o so_o continue_v he_o will_v pray_v god_n that_o he_o may_v do_v some_o thing_n for_o his_o holy_a service_n they_o have_v talk_v of_o this_o journey_n a_o month_n before_o and_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v publish_v the_o suspicion_n be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v foresee_v all_o man_n assure_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v to_o make_v a_o combination_n concern_v the_o council_n and_o particular_o to_o bring_v in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o cardinal_n have_v say_v to_o many_o prelate_n upon_o diverse_a occasion_n that_o the_o emperor_n ispruc_n discourse_n about_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n his_o go_v to_o ispruc_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o of_o france_n will_v never_o leave_v to_o make_v petition_n for_o reformation_n until_o they_o have_v obtain_v the_o use_n of_o the_o chalice_n though_o they_o be_v to_o remain_v two_o year_n in_o council_n but_o that_o favour_n be_v grant_v they_o will_v easy_o be_v quiet_v and_o that_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o those_o prince_n be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o retain_v those_o kingdom_n in_o obedience_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o obtain_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o opposition_n of_o the_o cardinal_n who_o abhor_v the_o grant_n that_o it_o be_v not_o hitherto_o obtain_v in_o council_n because_o the_o business_n be_v not_o well_o manage_v and_o that_o there_o be_v hope_n that_o use_v good_a mean_n it_o may_v be_v gain_v but_o those_o who_o do_v more_o attentive_o mark_v the_o cardinal_n proceed_n observe_v a_o great_a variety_n in_o his_o speech_n for_o sometime_o he_o say_v that_o in_o case_n matter_n be_v not_o resolve_v he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o depart_v at_o easter_n or_o at_o whitsuntide_n sometime_o that_o he_o will_v remain_v in_o trent_n two_o year_n sometime_o propose_v mean_n to_o dispatch_v the_o council_n and_o sometime_o take_v course_n to_o make_v it_o everlasting_a manifest_a argument_n that_o as_o yet_o he_o know_v not_o his_o own_o intention_n and_o they_o suspect_v his_o cautelous_a proceed_n which_o do_v argue_v a_o desire_n to_o justify_v his_o reason_n by_o art_n and_o make_v his_o cause_n honest_a and_o consider_v that_o in_o ispruc_n will_v be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n the_o archbishop_n of_o salzburg_n and_o the_o archduke_n ferdinand_n it_o be_v think_v that_o this_o conference_n must_v needs_o produce_v some_o novity_n especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o small_a satisfaction_n which_o the_o council_n have_v hitherto_o give_v the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o union_n in_o all_o matter_n between_o france_n and_o he_o and_o it_o may_v be_v think_v also_o that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n so_o near_o
unto_o he_o in_o blood_n will_v adhere_v to_o that_o party_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v diwlge_v that_o by_o his_o letter_n of_o the_o eight_o of_o june_n he_o have_v give_v commission_n to_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n to_o hold_v intelligence_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n in_o these_o day_n friar_n felicianus_fw-la ninguarda_fw-it proctor_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o salzburg_n present_v the_o letter_n of_o that_o prince_n and_o make_v instance_n that_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n may_v give_v voice_n in_o congregation_n affirm_v that_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v other_o bishop_n of_o germany_n will_v send_v proctor_n if_o otherwise_o both_o himself_o and_o other_o will_v depart_v because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v idle_a it_o be_v answer_v that_o consideration_n shall_v be_v have_v of_o it_o and_o a_o resolution_n take_v according_a to_o right_n and_o they_o give_v a_o acount_n hereof_o to_o rome_n and_o will_v not_o resolve_v so_o much_o as_o this_o small_a particular_a without_o advice_n from_o thence_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o great_a business_n in_o both_o place_n there_o be_v no_o more_o speech_n of_o it_o the_o nine_o of_o february_n the_o first_o congregation_n of_o divine_n be_v hold_v to_o dispute_v of_o matrimony_n salmeron_n speak_v in_o a_o very_a lofty_a stile_n and_o concern_v the_o first_o article_n deliver_v the_o usual_a say_n of_o the_o schoolman_n for_o the_o second_o he_o allege_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o matrimony_n receive_v perfection_n only_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o contractor_n neither_o have_v the_o father_n or_o any_o other_o any_o authority_n over_o it_o he_o defend_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n who_o attribute_n power_n to_o the_o father_n to_o make_v it_o void_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v very_o great_a concern_v the_o matter_n of_o sacrament_n that_o it_o can_v alter_v whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n that_o the_o condition_n of_o public_a and_o secret_a be_v accidental_a the_o church_n have_v power_n therein_o he_o show_v the_o great_a inconvenience_n of_o secret_a marriage_n and_o innumerable_a adultery_n which_o follow_v and_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o use_v a_o remedy_n by_o make_v they_o void_a he_o insist_v much_o upon_o this_o inextricable_a case_n if_o after_o matrimony_n contract_v and_o consummate_v in_o secret_a one_o do_v contract_n in_o public_a with_o another_o from_o which_o be_v desirous_a to_o depart_v and_o return_v to_o the_o first_o lawful_a wife_n be_v force_v by_o censure_n to_o remain_v in_o the_o public_a contract_n the_o poor_a man_n be_v entangle_v on_o both_o side_n either_o in_o perpetual_a adultery_n or_o in_o censure_n with_o scandal_n of_o his_o neighbour_n the_o next_o day_n the_o dean_n of_o paris_n follow_v who_o speak_v copious_o out_o of_o school_n doctrine_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o marriage_n of_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v receive_v in_o it_o and_o of_o condemn_v he_o that_o do_v affirm_v it_o to_o be_v a_o humane_a invention_n but_o upon_o the_o article_n of_o clandestine_v matrimony_n have_v dispute_v that_o they_o be_v true_a marriage_n and_o sacrament_n he_o put_v a_o doubt_n whether_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o make_v they_o void_a he_o contradict_v the_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n over_o the_o matter_n of_o sacrament_n he_o discourse_v that_o the_o church_n can_v make_v any_o sacrament_n which_o be_v now_o lawful_a to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n for_o hereafter_o he_o exemplify_v in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o go_v through_o all_o the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v not_o such_o as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o hinder_v all_o sin_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v 1500._o year_n subject_a to_o that_o which_o be_v now_o describe_v to_o be_v intolerable_a and_o which_o be_v of_o no_o less_o importance_n secret_a marriage_n have_v be_v account_v good_a even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o no_o man_n have_v ever_o think_v to_o make_v a_o nullity_n in_o they_o howsoever_o a_o public_a contract_n have_v often_o follow_v they_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v insoluble_a though_o it_o have_v inconvenience_n on_o both_o side_n that_o the_o marriage_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n a_o pattern_n for_o all_o other_o be_v without_o witness_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v not_o disesteem_v but_o the_o italian_a prelate_n be_v well_o please_v that_o have_v once_o name_v the_o pope_n he_o give_v he_o this_o epithet_n with_o the_o exposition_n follow_v governor_n and_o moderator_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v of_o the_o universal_a and_o this_o do_v minister_v much_o discourse_n for_o the_o papalin_n conclude_v that_o it_o may_v likewise_o be_v say_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o institution_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o govern_v the_o universal_a church_n but_o the_o french_a man_n answer_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o say_v absolute_o the_o church_n universal_a by_o which_o be_v understand_v the_o universality_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o say_v the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o universal_a where_o the_o word_n roman_n do_v declare_v the_o word_n universal_a infer_v that_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a and_o that_o all_o place_n in_o which_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n over_o all_o the_o church_n be_v understand_v disiunctive_o not_o coniunctive_o that_o be_v over_o every_o part_n of_o the_o church_n not_o over_o all_o together_o the_o eleven_o of_o february_n the_o frenchman_n present_v in_o congregation_n a_o letter_n from_o their_o king_n of_o the_o eighteen_o of_o january_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o howsoever_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n have_v impart_v to_o the_o synod_n the_o happy_a victory_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o religion_n who_o boldness_n he_o have_v and_o do_v daily_a oppose_v without_o respect_n of_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n even_o expose_v his_o own_o life_n as_o become_v the_o elder_a and_o most_o christian_a son_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o himself_o be_v willing_a to_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o joy_n also_o know_v that_o the_o wholesome_a remedy_n for_o the_o evil_n congregation_n letter_n from_o the_o french_a k._n be_v present_v in_o congregation_n which_o do_v afflict_v christian_a province_n have_v always_o be_v expect_v from_o counsel_n he_o desire_v of_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n a_o emendation_n and_o reformation_n answerable_a to_o the_o expectation_n the_o world_n have_v conceive_v of_o they_o and_o that_o as_o himself_o and_o so_o many_o beside_o have_v consecrate_v life_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n in_o those_o war_n so_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o charge_n will_v speech_n and_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n make_v a_o speech_n with_o sincerity_n of_o conscience_n be_v careful_a of_o the_o business_n for_o which_o they_o be_v assemble_v the_o letter_n be_v read_v the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n speak_v to_o the_o father_n in_o this_o substance_n that_o they_o have_v understand_v by_o the_o king_n letter_n and_o before_o by_o the_o oration_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n the_o desolation_n of_o france_n and_o some_o victory_n of_o the_o king_n he_o will_v not_o relate_v they_o again_o but_o only_o say_v that_o the_o last_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o force_n of_o the_o enemy_n be_v miraculous_a whereof_o this_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o be_v overcome_v yet_o he_o do_v live_v and_o commit_v spoil_n run_v through_o the_o very_a bowel_n of_o france_n but_o he_o say_v he_o will_v turn_v his_o speech_n to_o they_o only_o who_o be_v the_o only_a refuge_n of_o the_o misery_n without_o who_o france_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o preserve_v the_o table_n of_o shipwreck_n he_o exemplify_v in_o the_o army_n of_o israel_n which_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o overcome_v amalec_n if_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n lift_v up_o to_o god_n underprop_a by_o aaron_n and_o ur_fw-la have_v not_o assist_v the_o combartant_n that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n do_v not_o want_v force_n a_o valiant_a captain_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n the_o queen_n mother_n to_o manage_v the_o affair_n of_o war_n and_o peace_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o aaron_n and_o ur_fw-la but_o themselves_o to_o hold_v up_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n with_o decree_n of_o the_o synod_n without_o which_o the_o enemy_n will_v never_o be_v reconcile_v nor_o the_o catholic_n preserve_v in_o the_o faith_n that_o the_o humour_n of_o christian_n now_o be_v not_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v fifty_o year_n since_o that_o all_o catholic_n be_v
say_v that_o howsoever_o the_o oriental_a church_n and_o the_o occidental_a do_v differ_v in_o regard_n this_o do_v admit_v to_o priesthood_n and_o holy_a order_n continent_n person_n only_o and_o that_o do_v admit_v marry_v man_n yet_o no_o church_n do_v ever_o grant_v that_o priest_n may_v marry_v and_o that_o this_o be_v so_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o by_o reason_n of_o vow_n or_o of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n and_o therefore_o that_o absolute_o they_o be_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n who_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o priest_n to_o marry_o though_o they_o restrain_v not_o themselves_o to_o the_o west_n nor_o make_v mention_n of_o vow_n or_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o other_o say_v that_o no_o disp_n 〈…〉_o can_v be_v grant_v for_o priest_n to_o marry_v for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o some_o say_v that_o matrimony_n be_v forbid_v to_o two_o sort_n of_o person_n for_o two_o cause_n to_o secular_a clerk_n in_o regard_n of_o holy_a order_n by_o ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o regular_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o solemn_a vow_n that_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n by_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o pope_n or_o in_o case_n that_o remain_v in_o force_n still_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v with_o it_o they_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o the_o use_n of_o antiquity_n that_o if_o a_o priest_n do_v marry_v the_o marriage_n be_v good_a but_o the_o man_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o ministry_n which_o have_v continual_o be_v observe_v until_o the_o time_n of_o innocenntius_n the_o 2._o who_o first_o of_o all_o the_o pope_n ordain_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o nullity_n in_o the_o marriage_n but_o with_o those_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o continency_n by_o solemn_a vow_n this_o be_v the_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la they_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v not_o dispense_v they_o allege_v innocentius_n the_o three_o who_o affirm_v that_o the_o observation_n of_o chastity_n and_o the_o abdication_n of_o the_o propriety_n of_o good_n do_v so_o cleave_v to_o the_o bone_n of_o munke_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v therein_o then_o they_o add_v the_o opinion_n of_o saint_n thomas_n and_o of_o other_o doctor_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o solemn_a vow_n be_v a_o consecration_n of_o the_o man_n to_o god_n and_o that_o because_o no_o man_n can_v make_v a_o thing_n consecrate_v to_o return_v to_o humane_a use_n no_o man_n likewise_o can_v make_v a_o monk_n to_o return_v to_o the_o power_n of_o marry_v and_o that_o all_o catholic_a writer_n do_v condemn_v luther_n and_o his_o sectary_n of_o heresy_n for_o say_v that_o munkship_n be_v a_o humane_a invention_n and_o do_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n whereunto_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v be_v direct_o contrary_a other_o do_v maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v even_o with_o these_o also_o and_o marvel_v at_o those_o who_o grant_v the_o dispensation_n of_o simple_a vow_n do_v deny_v that_o of_o solemn_a as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o most_o clear_a by_o the_o determination_n of_o boniface_n the_o eigth_n that_o every_o solemnity_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la make_v use_n also_o of_o the_o example_n of_o thing_n consecrate_v to_o prove_v their_o opinion_n for_o as_o a_o thing_n consecrate_v remain_v so_o can_v be_v employ_v in_o humane_a use_n but_o yet_o the_o consecration_n may_v be_v remoove_v and_o the_o thing_n make_v profane_a whereby_o it_o may_v lawful_o return_v to_o a_o promiscuons_a use_n so_o a_o man_n consecrate_v to_o munkship_n remain_v so_o can_v marry_v but_o the_o munkship_n and_o consecration_n arise_v from_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o vow_n which_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la be_v remove_v he_o may_v without_o any_o hindrance_n live_v as_o other_o do_v they_o bring_v place_n of_o saint_n austin_n by_o which_o it_o do_v manifest_o appear_v that_o in_o his_o time_n some_o munke_n do_v marry_v and_o howsoever_o it_o be_v think_v they_o offend_v in_o it_o yet_o the_o marriage_n be_v lawful_a and_o saint_n austin_n reprehend_v those_o who_o do_v separate_v they_o they_o say_v moreover_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o dispense_v with_o priest_n or_o to_o take_v away_o the_o precept_n of_o continency_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n have_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o demand_v of_o his_o holiness_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n request_v also_o that_o marry_a man_n may_v have_v leave_n to_o preach_v under_o which_o name_n all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n be_v understand_v exercise_v by_o parish-priest_n in_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n many_o reason_n be_v allege_v to_o persuade_v the_o grant_n which_o be_v resolve_v into_o two_o scandal_n give_v by_o incontinens_fw-la priest_n and_o want_v of_o continent_n person_n sit_v to_o exercise_v the_o ministry_n and_o the_o famous_a say_n of_o pope_n pin_n the_o second_o be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o many_o that_o priest_n be_v by_o the_o occidental_a church_n forbid_v to_o marry_v for_o good_a reason_n but_o there_o be_v strong_a reason_n to_o restore_v marriage_n to_o they_o again_o those_o of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o wise_a physician_n to_o cure_v one_o disease_n by_o cause_v a_o great_a that_o if_o priest_n be_v in_o continent_n and_o ignorant_a yet_o the_o priesthood_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prostitute_v to_o 〈…〉_o d_o 〈◊〉_d and_o here_o many_o pope_n be_v allege_v who_o do_v not_o permit_v it_o because_o they_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o attend_v to_o the_o flesh_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o carnal_a estate_n that_o the_o true_a remedy_n be_v to_o make_v provision_n of_o continent_n and_o learned_a person_n by_o education_n by_o diligence_n by_o reward_n and_o punishment_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n not_o to_o ordain_v any_o but_o m●n_z of_o a_o approve_a life_n and_o for_o doctrine_n to_o cause_n homily_n and_o catechism_n to_o be_v print_v in_o the_o dutch_a and_o french_a tongue_n compose_v by_o learned_a and_o religios_fw-la man_n to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n out_o of_o the_o book_n by_o the_o 〈…〉_o learned_a priest_n by_o which_o mean_v the_o parish_n priest_n though_o unsufficient_a may_v satisfy_v the_o people_n the_o legate_n be_v blame_v for_o suffer_v this_o article_n to_o be_v dispute_v as_o be_v dangerous_a because_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o marry_a priest_n will_v turn_v their_o affection_n marry_v the_o principal_a reason_n why_o priest_n be_v forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o love_n to_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o by_o consequence_n to_o their_o house_n and_o country_n so_o that_o the_o strict_a dependence_n which_o the_o clergy_n have_v on_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n will_v cease_v and_o to_o grant_v marriage_n to_o priest_n will_v destroy_v the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n and_o make_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o but_o the_o legate_n excuse_v themselves_o that_o to_o please_v the_o bishop_n of_o five_o church_n who_o have_v make_v this_o request_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n also_o &_o to_o make_v the_o imperialist_n not_o to_o be_v so_o earnest_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n which_o be_v of_o more_o importance_n they_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v to_o this_o disputation_n the_o frenchman_n perceive_v it_o be_v the_o more_o common_a opinion_n that_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o consult_v together_o whether_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o demand_v a_o dispensation_n for_o the_o cardinal_n of_o borbon_n as_o lorraine_n and_o the_o ambassador_n have_v commission_n lorraine_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a say_v that_o without_o doubt_n the_o council_n will_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o cause_n be_v reasonable_a and_o urgent_a in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a he_o shall_v have_v posterity_n the_o king_n be_v young_a there_o be_v two_o brother_n and_o other_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n catholic_n and_o for_o govern_v during_o the_o minority_n of_o the_o king_n he_o may_v do_v it_o remain_v in_o the_o clergy_n that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o french_a and_o italian_n about_o reformation_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n their_o opposity_n will_v diligent_o oppose_v this_o demand_n that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o go_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o expect_v a_o better_a occasion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o that_o time_n to_o provide_v that_o no_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o prejudice_n of_o it_o some_o thought_n that_o lorraine_n do_v not_o like_a in_o his_o private_a opinion_n that_o borbon_n shall_v marry_v in_o regard_n it_o may_v cause_v a_o emulation_n or_o diminution_n of_o his_o house_n
the_o world_n and_o laughter_n of_o those_o who_o have_v forsake_v the_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o will_v be_v incite_v to_o retain_v their_o opinion_n with_o great_a obstinacy_n there_o have_v be_v no_o session_n hold_v of_o a_o long_a time_n that_o while_o prince_n do_v labour_n to_o unite_v the_o adversary_n differ_v in_o opinion_n the_o father_n come_v to_o contention_n unworthy_a of_o they_o that_o there_o be_v a_o fame_n that_o his_o holiness_n mean_v to_o dissolve_v or_o suspend_v the_o council_n perhaps_o move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o present_a state_n thereof_o but_o that_o his_o opinion_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o it_o have_v be_v better_a it_o have_v never_o be_v begin_v then_o leave_v unperfect_a with_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o world_n contempt_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n prejudice_n of_o this_o and_o other_o future_a general_a counsel_n loss_n of_o that_o small_a remainder_n of_o catholic_n and_o opinion_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o dissolution_n or_o suspension_n be_v only_o to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n that_o in_o the_o intimation_n of_o it_o his_o holiness_n do_v desire_v his_o consent_n and_o of_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n which_o he_o do_v in_o imitation_n of_o his_o predecessor_n who_o always_o have_v think_v it_o necessary_a for_o many_o respect_n that_o the_o same_o reason_n do_v conclude_v that_o it_o can_v be_v dissolve_v or_o suspend_v without_o the_o same_o consent_n and_o he_o exbort_v he_o not_o to_o hearken_v to_o those_o who_o will_v have_v he_o to_o dissolve_v it_o a_o thing_n shameful_a and_o unprofitable_a which_o undoubted_o will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o nationall_n counsel_n so_o much_o abhor_v by_o his_o hol._n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n which_o as_o they_o have_v be_v hinder_v by_o prince_n to_o preserve_v the_o pope_n authority_n so_o they_o can_v be_v deny_v or_o defer_v any_o more_o he_o persuade_v he_o to_o maintain_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v impeach_v principal_o by_o three_o cause_n one_o because_o every_o thing_n be_v first_o consult_v of_o at_o rome_n another_o because_o the_o legate_n have_v assume_v to_o themselves_o only_o the_o liberty_n of_o propose_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o because_o of_o the_o practice_n which_o some_o prelate_n interest_v in_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v make_v he_o say_v that_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a and_o the_o common_a opinion_n be_v that_o the_o abuse_n have_v their_o beginning_n and_o growth_n in_o rome_n it_o be_v fit_a for_o common_a satisfaction_n that_o the_o reformation_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o council_n and_o not_o in_o that_o city_n and_o therefore_o desire_v his_o holiness_n to_o be_v content_a that_o the_o demand_v exhibit_v by_o his_o ambassador_n and_o by_o other_o prince_n may_v be_v propose_v in_o the_o conclusion_n he_o tell_v he_o he_o purpose_v to_o assist_v in_o council_n personal_o and_o exhort_v his_o holiness_n to_o do_v the_o like_a this_o letter_n be_v dispatch_v the_o three_o of_o march_n and_o it_o give_v much_o offence_n offend_v with_o which_o his_o holiness_n be_v offend_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o think_v that_o the_o emperor_n do_v embrace_v much_o more_o than_o his_o authority_n do_v reach_v unto_o and_o pass_v the_o term_n of_o his_o predecessor_n man_n more_o potent_a than_o himself_o but_o he_o be_v displease_v more_o when_o he_o be_v advise_v by_o his_o nuncio_n that_o he_o have_v send_v copy_n of_o the_o same_o letter_n to_o other_o prince_n and_o to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n also_o which_o can_v be_v do_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o incite_v they_o against_o he_o and_o to_o justify_v his_o own_o action_n beside_o doctor_n scheld_n great_a chancellor_n to_o the_o emperor_n persuade_v delphinus_n the_o pope_n nuncio_n in_o that_o court_n that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o word_n vniversalem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la may_v be_v take_v away_o which_o do_v infer_v the_o superiority_n of_o the_o pope_n above_o the_o council_n say_v that_o these_o time_n do_v not_o comport_v they_o shall_v be_v use_v and_o that_o the_o emperor_n and_o himself_o also_o do_v know_v that_o charles_n the_o five_o of_o happy_a memory_n do_v hold_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n in_o this_o article_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v take_v heed_n of_o give_v occasion_n to_o his_o majesty_n and_o other_o prince_n to_o declare_v what_o they_o think_v 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n consider_v that_o lorraine_n also_o have_v write_v that_o it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o word_n vniversalem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &c_n &c_n and_o the_o advice_n which_o come_v from_o trent_n that_o the_o cardinal_n say_v that_o neither_o himself_n nor_o the_o french_a prelate_n can_v endure_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o canonize_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o all_o 〈…〉_o ance_n which_o when_o man_n come_v to_o speak_v plain_o in_o the_o discussion_n of_o this_o point_n will_v have_v more_o favourer_n than_o be_v believe_v &_o that_o they_o be_v deceive_v who_o think_v she_o contrary_a which_o show_v clear_o that_o he_o have_v treat_v hereof_o at_o the_o emperor_n court_n these_o thing_n consider_v the_o pope_n think_v fit_a to_o make_v a_o good_a answer_n and_o to_o send_v about_o also_o to_o justify_v himself_o therefore_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o have_v call_v the_o council_n with_o the_o participation_n of_o he_o and_o of_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n not_o because_o thus_o and_o answer_v the_o letter_n thus_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n have_v need_v in_o govern_v the_o church_n to_o expect_v the_o consent_n of_o any_o authority_n whatsoever_o because_o he_o have_v plenitude_n of_o power_n from_o christ_n that_o all_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v be_v assemble_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o any_o prince_n ever_o interpose_v but_o as_o a_o mere_a executor_n of_o his_o will_n he_o have_v never_o have_v any_o purpose_n either_o to_o dissolve_v or_o to_o suspend_v the_o council_n but_o have_v always_o purpose_v to_o give_v a_o complete_a end_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n that_o by_o consult_v rome_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n which_o be_v dispute_v in_o trent_n the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o only_o not_o hinder_v but_o promote_v rather_o that_o no_o council_n be_v ever_o celebrate_v in_o absence_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o that_o he_o have_v send_v instruction_n which_o the_o father_n have_v also_o follow_v that_o the_o instruction_n do_v still_o remain_v which_o pope_n celestinus_fw-la send_v the_o ephesine_a council_n pope_n leo_n to_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n pope_n agatho_n to_o than_o of_o trullus_n pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o to_o the_o second_o of_o nice_a pope_n adrian_n the_o second_o to_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o for_o propose_v in_o the_o council_n it_o have_v always_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n whensoever_o he_o have_v be_v present_a yea_o he_o alone_o have_v resolve_v and_o the_o council_n do_v nothing_o but_o approve_v that_o in_o absence_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o legate_n have_v ever_o propose_v or_o other_o depute_v by_o they_o in_o conformity_n whereof_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v determine_v that_o the_o legate_n shall_v propose_v that_o this_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o keep_n of_o order_n in_o regard_n there_o will_v be_v a_o great_a confusion_n if_o the_o prelate_n 〈…〉_o iltuous_o and_o one_o against_o another_o may_v set_v on_o foot_n matter_n seditious_a and_o in_o convenient_a that_o the_o legae_n have_v never_o refuse_v to_o propose_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v profitable_a that_o the_o practice_n make_v by_o dide●s_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n have_v much_o displease_v he_o that_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n be_v full_a that_o the_o pope_n successor_n of_o peter_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n be_v rastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o many_o conventicle_n and_o 〈◊〉_d have_v be_v make_v in_o trent_n against_o this_o truth_n how_o soever_o the_o church_n have_v always_o use_v this_o form_n of_o speech_n as_o his_o majesty_n may_v feel_v 〈◊〉_d the_o place_n which_o he_o send_v he_o cite_v in_o a_o paper_n enclose_v 〈…〉_o present_a quotation_n a_o paper_n full_a of_o quotation_n 〈◊〉_d have_v 〈◊〉_d because_o his_o legate_n use_v 〈…〉_o bad_a 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o g_o take_v occasion_n to_o speak_v against_o the_o libert_n of_o the_o council_n have_v 〈…〉_o to_o be_v contemn_v so_o that_o the_o council_n may_v be●_n 〈…〉_o that_o for_o reformation_n he_o de_fw-fr 〈…〉_o it_o shall_v 〈…〉_o and_o absolute_a and_o have_v continual_o solicit_v his_o legate_n to_o resolve_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d concern_v the_o court_n the_o
residence_n be_v exquisite_o observe_v by_o all_o before_o any_o canon_n or_o humane_a decree_n be_v make_v because_o every_o one_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n but_o since_o that_o some_o have_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o there_o be_v no_o obligation_n but_o that_o which_o be_v derive_v from_o humane_a law_n howsoever_o these_o have_v often_o be_v renew_v and_o fortify_v with_o penalty_n yet_o all_o have_v still_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o the_o same_o day_n cardinal_n seripando_n die_v to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o of_o all_o trent_n have_v in_o the_o morning_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o he_o take_v out_o of_o his_o bed_n upon_o his_o knee_n after_o that_o he_o return_v into_o his_o bed_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o five_o prelate_n and_o of_o the_o secretary_n of_o venice_n and_o florence_n and_o of_o all_o his_o family_n he_o make_v a_o long_a oration_n seripando_n the_o death_n of_o seripando_n in_o latin_a until_o his_o spirit_n do_v fail_v he_o he_o confess_v his_o faith_n whole_o comfortable_a to_o the_o catholic_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n speak_v of_o the_o work_n of_o a_o christian_a of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n recommend_v the_o progress_n of_o it_o to_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n but_o strive_v to_o set_v down_o the_o mean_n his_o spirit_n do_v fail_v he_o and_o he_o say_v that_o god_n have_v forbid_v he_o to_o proceed_v further_o but_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n will_v speak_v himself_o in_o time_n and_o place_n and_o so_o pass_v without_o say_v any_o more_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n write_v from_o the_o emperor_n court_n to_o martin_n gusdelun_n the_o secretary_n and_o send_v a_o copy_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o he_o from_o the_o king_n in_o which_o his_o majesty_n do_v advise_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v complain_v to_o he_o of_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o howsoever_o he_o believe_v that_o his_o holiness_n be_v not_o well_o inform_v think_v that_o the_o prelate_n will_v show_v devotion_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n yet_o he_o give_v order_n to_o the_o count_n that_o at_o his_o come_n to_o trent_n he_o shall_v cause_v they_o to_o favour_v the_o pope_n as_o far_o as_o their_o conscience_n can_v permit_v and_o so_o to_o carry_v themselves_o that_o his_o holiness_n may_v not_o have_v cause_n to_o complain_v of_o he_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o count_n write_v also_o to_o granata_n segovia_n and_o leon._n the_o eighteen_o of_o march_n in_o which_o no_o congregation_n be_v hold_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o obsequy_n of_o seripando_n the_o french_a ambassador_n appear_v solemn_o before_o the_o two_o legate_n and_o complain_v that_o these_o eleven_o month_n since_o the_o first_o day_n of_o their_o arrival_n in_o trent_n until_o then_o they_o have_v make_v know_v the_o desolation_n of_o france_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o christendom_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o declare_v that_o the_o most_o unecessary_a and_o principal_a remedy_n be_v a_o good_a entire_a reformation_n of_o manner_n and_o s_o 〈…〉_o moderation_n of_o positive_a law_n and_o have_v always_o receive_v good_a hope_n and_o gracious_a word_n but_o can_v never_o see_v any_o effect_n of_o they_o that_o the_o reformation_n be_v avoid_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o father_n and_o theologue_n be_v now_o more_o hard_a and_o severe_a the_o 〈…〉_o i●_n 〈◊〉_d yield_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n they_o pray_v they_o to_o consider_v how_o many_o good_a man_n dye_v before_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o good_a work_n for_o the_o public_a service_n whereof_o the_o cardinal_n of_o m_o 〈…〉_o and_o seripando_n be_v example_n desire_v they_o to_o do_v something_o for_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o conscience_n while_o they_o have_v ti_fw-mi 〈…〉_o the_o 〈◊〉_d answer_v that_o they_o be_v displease_v with_o this_o long_o defer_v of_o matter_n 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d and_o seripando_n be_v cause_n that_o themselves_o 〈…〉_o so_o great_a a_o weight_n pray_v they_o to_o expect_v 〈◊〉_d and_o n_o 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d will_v present_o arrive_v they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o 〈…〉_o the_o 〈◊〉_d there_o because_o the_o imp_n 〈…〉_o make_v instance_n 〈◊〉_d will_v 〈…〉_o lie_v expect_v the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n in_o rome_n who_o together_o with_o lewis_n 〈…〉_o make_v request_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o a_o general_a reformation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o member_n may_v be_v make_v not_o in_o rome_n but_o in_o the_o council_n and_o also_o that_o the_o decree_n that_o the_o legate_n only_o may_v propose_v in_o council_n shall_v be_v revoke_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n in_o propound_v what_o they_o think_v profitable_a these_o for_o their_o church_n and_o those_o for_o their_o state_n rome_n the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o king_n of_o spain_n in_o rome_n this_o instance_n the_o emperor_n the_o tight_a fit_n shall_v be_v first_o make_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o afterward_o to_o the_o council_n notwithstanding_o these_o prince_n be_v not_o absolute_o of_o one_o mind_n for_o howsoever_o don_n lewis_n make_v the_o same_o demand_n apart_o yet_o afterward_o he_o desire_v the_o pope_n to_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n not_o to_o seek_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v give_v commission_n to_o his_o ambassador_n to_o go_v to_o trent_n and_o persuade_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o or_o if_o it_o be_v that_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n shall_v oppose_v it_o he_o exhort_v the_o pope_n to_o endeavour_n to_o win_v the_o heretic_n by_o gentleness_n not_o send_v nuncij_fw-la but_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o other_o prince_n of_o authority_n to_o accept_v the_o demand_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o to_o leave_v the_o council_n free_a that_o all_o may_v propose_v and_o no_o practice_n be_v use_v in_o make_v the_o resolution_n the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o ambassador_n be_v that_o the_o decree_n answer_n the_o pope_n answer_n proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la shall_v be_v so_o expound_v that_o every_o one_o may_v propose_v what_o he_o will_v and_o that_o to_o the_o legate_n which_o part_v late_o he_o have_v give_v liberty_n to_o resolve_v all_o thing_n which_o may_v occur_v in_o council_n without_o write_v at_o all_o that_o the_o reformation_n be_v desire_v by_o he_o and_o that_o he_o have_v often_o make_v instance_n for_o it_o and_o that_o if_o the_o world_n will_v have_v have_v it_o from_o rome_n it_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v by_o this_o time_n and_o put_v in_o execution_n also_o but_o see_v they_o will_v have_v it_o from_o trent_n if_o it_o be_v not_o effect_v the_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o 〈…〉_o ed_z only_o to_o the_o difficulty_n which_o be_v among_o the_o father_n that_o he_o desire_v to_o see_v a_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o do_v procure_v and_o solicit_v it_o nor_o have_v ever_o any_o thought_n to_o suspend_v it_o that_o in_o conformity_n hereof_o he_o will_v write_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o do_v write_v that_o the_o decree_n proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la be_v make_v to_o take_v away_o confusion_n but_o that_o his_o will_n be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o prelate_n shall_v be_v hinder_v to_o propose_v what_o he_o think_v fit_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v dispatch_v the_o 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n without_o expect_v any_o order_n from_o rome_n but_o this_o letter_n be_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n and_o not_o to_o work_v any_o effect_n for_o morone_n the_o prime_a legate_n morone_n secret_n instruction_n give_v to_o cardinal_n morone_n have_v instruction_n apart_o to_o give_v a_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o order_n also_o which_o shall_v come_v from_o rome_n the_o pope_n answer_v don_n lewis_n in_o particular_a that_o he_o have_v open_v the_o council_n upon_o promise_n of_o his_o majesty_n that_o he_o will_v protect_v it_o and_o pre●●rue_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostoli_fw-la 〈…〉_o sea_n but_o that_o he_o find_v he_o be_v decert_v in_o regard_n he_o have_v 〈…〉_o his_o prelate_n then_o from_o he_o be_v not_o please_v it_o shall_v have_v licence_n nor_o be_v in_o servitude_n to_o those_o prince_n who_o preach_v liberty_n and_o be_v desirous_a to_o command_v that_o every_o one_o make_v request_n to_o he_o for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n but_o he_o do_v not_o know_v whether_o they_o have_v all_o well_o consider_v of_o what_o importance_n it_o will_v be_v if_o the_o prelate_n have_v the_o reins_n lay_v on_o the_o neck_n that_o howsoever_o there_o be_v among_o they_o some_o man_n excellent_a for_o
make_v peace_n with_o the_o france_n news_n out_o of_o france_n hugonot_n the_o particular_a condition_n be_v not_o know_v as_o yet_o and_o the_o pope_n think_v it_o proceed_v from_o some_o prelate_n who_o though_o they_o do_v not_o open_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v protestant_n yet_o do_v follow_v that_o party_n he_o resolve_v to_o discover_v they_o and_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v wrong_v more_o by_o the_o mask_a heretic_n then_o by_o the_o bare-faced_n whereupon_o the_o last_o of_o march_n have_v cause_v first_o the_o emperor_n letter_n write_v to_o he_o to_o be_v read_v as_o also_o his_o own_o answer_n he_o pass_v from_o that_o business_n and_o relate_v the_o confusion_n of_o france_n add_v that_o the_o cardinal_n chastillion_n have_v change_v his_o name_n of_o bishop_n of_o beawois_n into_o count_n of_o beawois_n have_v also_o pronounce_v himself_o deprive_v of_o the_o cardinal_n hat_n all_o the_o disorder_n to_o he_o to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o aix_n the_o bishop_n of_o five_o 〈…〉_o and_o some_o other_o which_o thing_n how_o soever_o they_o be_v notorious_a and_o need_v no_o further_a proof_n to_o come_v to_o the_o declaration_n thereof_o yet_o he_o give_v order_n that_o the_o cardinal_n who_o govern_v the_o inquisition_n shall_v proceed_v against_o they_o the_o cardinal_n of_o pisa_n answer_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o proper_a and_o special_a authority_n the_o pope_n ordain_v that_o a_o new_a bull_n shall_v be_v make_v which_o be_v date_v the_o seven_o of_o april_n and_o contain_v in_o substance_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o he_o have_v recommend_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n to_o reduce_v those_o that_o wander_v to_o bridle_v with_o temporal_a penalty_n those_o who_o can_v not_o be_v gain_v by_o admonition_n he_o have_v not_o find_v the_o beginning_n of_o his_o assumption_n omit_v to_o execute_v this_o charge_n notwithstanding_o some_o bishop_n be_v not_o only_o fall_v into_o heretical_a error_n but_o do_v also_o favour_v 〈◊〉_d heretic_n oppose_v the_o faith_n for_o provision_n wherein_o he_o command_v the_o general_a inquisitor_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o he_o have_v former_o 〈◊〉_d end_v this_o business_n 〈◊〉_d proceed_v against_o such_o though_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n inhabit_v on_o place_n where_o the_o luther_n 〈…〉_o sect_n be_v potent_a with_o power_n to_o one_o they_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n 〈◊〉_d edict_n or_o to_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appear_v personal_o or_o if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d appear_v to_o proceed_v to_o sentence_n which_o he_o will_v pronounce_v 〈…〉_o onsistorio_n the_o cardinal_n in_o conformity_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o inaud_n cite_v by_o edict_n to_o appear_v personal_o in_o rome_n to_o purge_v themselves_o from_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n and_o of_o be_v 〈◊〉_d of_o heretic_n 〈◊〉_d cologui_n cardinal_n the_o chastilion_n saint_n maine_n archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d john_n 〈…〉_o luc_fw-fr bishop_n of_o valence_n johannes_n antonius_n 〈◊〉_d bisop_n of_o tr●jes_n john_n blankan_n son_n bishop_n of_o apo_n 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o absence_n of_o lorraine_n in_o trent_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o new_a legate_n with_o opinion_n that_o the_o form_n of_o pro_fw-la 〈…〉_o council_n shall_v be_v change_v and_o the_o day_n of_o the_o passion_n and_o easter_n approach_v give_v some_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d negotiation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cardinal_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o hon_fw-mi 〈…〉_o the_o lagate_v m_o 〈…〉_o who_o be_v the_o 〈…〉_o expect_a trent_n the_o entry_n of_o card._n 〈◊〉_d into_o trent_n and_o arrive_v the_o next_o day_n late_o at_o night_n he_o make_v his_o entry_n pontifical_o under_o a_o canopy_n be_v meet_v by_o the_o legate_n ambassador_n and_o father_n of_o the_o council_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o city_n and_o conduct_v to_o the_o cathedral_n church_n where_o the_o ceremony_n use_v in_o receive_v legate_n be_v perform_v the_o morrow_n which_o be_v easter_n day_n he_o sing_v the_o solemn_a mass_n in_o the_o chapel_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n come_v to_o trent_n also_o this_o day_n and_o be_v meet_v by_o the_o prelate_n and_o ambassador_n he_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o france_n with_o many_o demonstration_n of_o friendship_n he_o be_v also_o visit_v by_o the_o french_a who_o tell_v he_o they_o have_v commission_n from_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n to_o communicate_v all_o their_o affair_n unto_o he_o and_o offer_v to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o all_o the_o service_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n his_o master_n luna_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o order_n to_o communicate_v with_o they_o and_o that_o he_o will_v hold_v good_a correspondency_n he_o visit_v the_o legate_n use_v many_o love_a word_n and_o general_a offer_n the_o thirteen_o of_o april_n there_o be_v a_o congregation_n to_o receive_v cardinal_n congregation_n card._n morone_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n morone_n where_o after_o the_o brief_a of_o his_o legation_n be_v read_v he_o make_v a_o speech_n fit_a for_o the_o occasion_n and_o say_v that_o the_o war_n sedition_n and_o other_o calamity_n present_a and_o imminent_a for_o our_o sin_n will_v cease_v if_o a_o mean_n be_v find_v to_o appease_v god_n and_o to_o restore_v the_o ancient_a purity_n for_o which_o and_o the_o pope_n have_v with_o great_a judgement_n assemble_v the_o council_n in_o which_o be_v two_o cardinal_n prince_n famous_a for_o nobility_n and_o virtue_n ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o so_o many_o great_a king_n prince_n free_a city_n and_o nation_n and_o prelate_n of_o excellent_a learning_n and_o integretie_a and_o most_o skilful_a divine_n but_o mantus_fw-la and_o seripando_n be_v dead_a the_o pope_n have_v substitute_v he_o and_o join_v navaggero_n with_o he_o which_o he_o have_v refuse_v know_v the_o weight_n of_o the_o burden_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o strength_n but_o the_o necessity_n of_o obedience_n have_v over_o come_v fear_n that_o he_o be_v command_v to_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o will_v return_v short_o to_o treat_v with_o the_o father_n in_o company_n of_o the_o other_o legate_n that_o which_o do_v concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o bring_v with_o he_o two_o thing_n one_o a_o good_a meaning_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o secure_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n to_o correct_v bad_a manner_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o province_n and_o to_o establish_v peace_n and_o union_n even_o with_o the_o adversary_n as_o much_o as_o piety_n and_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n can_v permit_v the_o other_o his_o own_o readiness_n to_o do_v what_o his_o holiness_n have_v command_v he_o he_o pray_v the_o father_n that_o contentious_a and_o discord_n and_o unprofitable_a question_n be_v lay_v a_o side_n which_o do_v grieous_o offend_v christendom_n they_o will_v handle_v serious_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a the_o count_n of_o luna_n use_v persuasion_n to_o all_o the_o prelate_n vessal_n of_o his_o luna_n persuasion_n of_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n king_n spaniard_n or_o italian_n or_o benefice_v in_o his_o state_n exhort_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o majesty_n to_o stand_v unite_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o reverence_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o not_o to_o do_v themselves_o wrong_v say_v he_o have_v commission_n to_o advise_v particular_o of_o the_o proceed_n of_o every_o one_o and_o that_o his_o majesty_n will_v keep_v a_o particular_a 〈◊〉_d come_v of_o those_o who_o will_v carry_v themselves_o according_a to_o his_o desire_n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o say_v any_o thing_n against_o their_o conscience_n and_o he_o speak_v to_o that_o every_o one_o understand_v that_o these_o last_o word_n be_v speak_v serious_o and_o the_o other_o in_o ceremony_n morone_n be_v willing_a to_o see_v lorraine_n before_o he_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n who_o because_o he_o will_v not_o speak_v with_o he_o defer_v his_o return_n for_o have_v speak_v in_o venice_n with_o navaggero_n and_o understand_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o pope_n instruction_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o avoid_v occasion_n that_o morone_n communicate_v unto_o he_o all_o or_o part_n of_o that_o which_o he_o be_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n shall_v put_v he_o into_o some_o obligation_n whereupon_o morone_n part_v the_o sixteenth_o of_o april_n he_o say_v he_o be_v send_v only_o to_o justify_v the_o pope_n good_a intention_n emperor_n the_o negotiation_n of_o morone_n with_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o council_n may_v proceed_v and_o a_o absolute_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v without_o any_o exception_n notwithstanding_o his_o other_o commission_n be_v know_v which_o be_v to_o dissuade_v his_o majesty_n from_o come_v to_o trent_n because_o many_o impediment_n of_o
do_v happen_v she_o will_v subject_v both_o those_o kingdom_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o letter_n be_v read_v the_o cardinal_n make_v a_o cloqnent_a oration_n to_o 〈…〉_o use_v the_o queen_n for_o send_v neither_o prelate_n nor_o ambassadout_n to_o the_o council_n because_o they_o be_v all_o heretic_n and_o promise_v that_o she_o will_v never_o vary_v from_o the_o true_a religion_n for_o answer_v thanks_n be_v give_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n some_o laugh_v because_o the_o negotiation_n be_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v of_o a_o private_a person_n not_o of_o a_o prince_n and_o marvel_v that_o she_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o catholic_a subject_n to_o send_v but_o the_o wise_a sort_n do_v believe_v this_o be_v beg_v and_o extot●ed_v from_o she_o because_o she_o be_v able_a to_o do_v like_o a_o prince_n in_o regard_n she_o have_v ever_o many_o catholic_n about_o she_o the_o secretary_n of_o lorraine_n be_v return_v who_o he_o send_v to_o rome_n to_o clear_v he_o of_o the_o imputation_n that_o he_o be_v a_o head_n of_o a_o faction_n who_o the_o pope_n receive_v with_o demonstration_n of_o love_n and_o seem_v to_o believe_v his_o exposition_n and_o write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n that_o he_o be_v content_a that_o the_o contentious_a matter●_n shall_v be_v omit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o order_n and_o residence_n not_o speak_v of_o but_o the_o reformation_n only_o treat_v on_o lorraine_n impart_v this_o letter_n to_o 〈…〉_o that_o order_n may_v be_v take_v to_o begin_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o return_n of_o morone_n where_o with_o he_o be_v distaste_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v mock_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o join_v this_o with_o the_o advice_n which_o come_v unto_o he_o that_o morone_n speak_v with_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n say_v that_o himself_o and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n do_v hinder_v it_o more_o than_o other_o he_o complain_v upon_o every_o occasion_n to_o all_o with_o who_o he_o speak_v that_o the_o council_n have_v no_o liberty_n and_o that_o not_o only_o the_o resolution_n of_o every_o little_a particular_a be_v make_v a●_n rome_n but_o that_o the_o father_n and_o especial_o the_o gardinall_n m_o 〈…〉_o and_o himself_o be_v not_o think_v worthy_a to_o know_v what_o be_v command_v by_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o may_v conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o his_o ho_o 〈…〉_o and_o that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o so_o many_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v disparched_a from_o trent_n to_o rome_n by_o the_o lega●s_n for_o every_o shall_v 〈…〉_o and_o sometime_o 〈…〉_o concern_v the_o same_o matter_n and_o yet_o it_o can_v hever_o be_v know_v 〈…〉_o what_o resolution_n or_o answer_n come_v from_o the_o 〈…〉_o the_o 〈…〉_o hereat_o because_o the_o thing_n go_v so_o apparent_a and_o public_a that_o they_o can_v neither_o be_v deny_v no●_n 〈◊〉_d lorraine_n full_a of_o these_o ●ll_a satisfaction_n be_v call_v the_o 〈…〉_o consultation_n to_o treat_v of_o begin_n the_o congregation_n because_o morone_n have_v which_o 〈…〉_o will_v be_v in_o trent_n within_o eight_o day_n 〈…〉_o t_o party_n steel_n a_o good_a while_o without_o speak_v one_o word_n &_o afterward_o enter_v into_o compliment_n they_o 〈…〉_o from_o another_o without_o talk_v of_o the_o bus_fw-la 〈…〉_o sse_o the_o proctor_n 〈…〉_o the_o french_a prelate_n who_o remain_v in_o the_o kingdom_n be_v 〈…〉_o in_o trent_n they_o dessire_v the_o ambassador_n that_o they_o may_v be_v admit_v in_o congregation_n which_o 〈◊〉_d refuse_v lansae_fw-la reply_v that_o they_o 〈…〉_o la_fw-fr 〈…〉_o spor_fw-la 〈…〉_o have_v do_v and_v it_o in_o reverence_n not_o because_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o legate_n for_o judge_n and_o that_o he_o be_v resolive_a that_o the_o difficulty_n shall_v be_v propose_v in_o council_n this_o make_v the_o legate_n a●_n per_fw-la their_o perpose_v to_o expect_v morone_n and_o appoint_v a_o congregation_n for_o the_o fourteen_o the_o of_o may_n to_o handle_v the_o abuse_n 〈…〉_o where_o lorraine_n give_v his_o voice_n 〈…〉_o the_o first_o point_n which_o sus●rage_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorain_n in_o deliver_v his_o sus●rage_n afterward_o be_v take_v away_o for_o the_o cause_n which_o shall_v be_v relate_v hereafter_o speak_v at_o large_a of_o the_o abuse_n 〈…〉_o ring_z in_o that_o matter_n and_o that_o he_o right_o more_o 〈…〉_o gh_o against_o the_o disorder_n of_o rome_n he_o begain_v with_o france_n not_o sp●ring_v the_o king_n he_o can_v 〈◊〉_d the_o concordate_n say_v that_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o ought_v 〈◊〉_d belong_v to_o the_o chapter_n be_v divide_v between_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d and_o king_n f_o 〈…〉_o scaree_o forbear_v to_o say_v as_o the_o prey_n be_v divide_v among_o hunter_n he_o dislike_v that_o the_o king_n and_o princes●_n all_o the_o nomination_n of_o prelature_n and_o that_o cardinal_n do_v possess_v bishop_n 〈…〉_o also_o the_o vaccord_n late_o make_v by_o the_o king_n with_o the_o hugonot_n but_o leave_v france_n he_o say_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o fountain_n whence_o all_o di_o 〈…〉_o that_o no_o cardinal_n be_v without_o a_o bishopric_n yea_o without_o 〈…〉_o how_o 〈…〉_o charge_n be_v incompatible_a that_o the_o invention_n of_o commendaes_n union_n for_o life_n administration_n by_o which_o against_o all_o law_n many_o benefic_n 〈…〉_o with_o appearance_n that_o he_o have_v but_o 〈…〉_o be_v 〈…〉_o king_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god._n he_o often_o allead_v 〈…〉_o that_o place_n of_o saine_fw-la p_o 〈…〉_o take_v heed_n of_o error_n for_o god_n be_v not_o mock_v and_o one_o shall_v reap_v only_o that_o which_o he_o have_v so●ed_v he_o speak_v much_o against_o dispen_a 〈…〉_o by_o which_o the_o strength_n of_o all_o law_n be_v take_v away_o as_o also_o against_o many_o other_o abuse_n and_o with_o such_o cloquened_a that_o he_o spend_v the_o whole_a congregation_n his_o discourse_n be_v not_o 〈…〉_o take_v by_o the_o papalin_n simoneta_n do_v open_o treat_n with_o 〈◊〉_d preiats_n 〈…〉_o say_v he_o speak_v like_o the_o lu._n 〈…〉_o and_o god_n grant_v that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o their_o opinion_n wherewith_o lo_o 〈…〉_o be_v 〈…〉_o to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o congregation_n follow_v one_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d ordinary_a 〈◊〉_d of_o memory_n be_v speak_v except_o 〈…〉_o oblique_o use_v by_o those_o who_o have_v un_fw-mi 〈…〉_o by_o lorraine_n in_o this_o inter_fw-la i●_n cardinal_n morone_n have_v his_o dispatch_n in_o write_v from_o the_o emperor_n very_o general_a terme●_n that_o bee_n will_v defend_v the_o authority_n of_o lutheran_n be_v think_v to_o speak_v like_o a_o lutheran_n and_o hope_n against_o heretic_n 〈…〉_o will_v remain_v at_o 〈◊〉_d and_o pass_v further_o that_o the_o 〈…〉_o no●_n to_o be_v make_v without_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o king_n 〈…〉_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o because_o be_v do_v on_o the_o sudden_a 〈…〉_o much_o matter_n of_o discourse_n 〈…〉_o many_o that_o be_v will_v ●est_v satisfy_v with_o the_o proceed_n in_o 〈…〉_o upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d condition_n that_o the_o reformation_n 〈…〉_o trent_n and_o that_o every_o one_o may_v propose_v desire_v they_o will_v present_o begin_v to_o handle_v the_o article_n exhibit_v by_o he_o and_o france_n concern_v this_o negotiation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o of_o the_o answer_n make_v i_o have_v relate_v what_o i_o have_v find_v register_v in_o public_a monument_n but_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o omit_v the_o fame_n then_o diwlge_v in_o trent_n and_o believe_v by_o man_n of_o the_o great_a understanding_n that_o the_o cardinal_n have_v treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n and_o with_o his_o son_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n more_o secret_a matter_n and_o show_v they_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o diverse_a emperor_n the_o secret_a negotiation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n morone_n with_o the_o emperor_n end_n of_o prince_n and_o prelate_n and_o of_o their_o diverse_a and_o important_a interest_n which_o be_v contrary_a it_o be_v impossible_a the_o council_n shall_v have_v such_o a_o end_n as_o some_o of_o they_o do_v desire_v he_o tell_v they_o that_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o chalice_n marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n thing_n desire_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o french_a king_n neither_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n nor_o any_o prince_n of_o italy_n will_v ever_o consent_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n every_o sort_n of_o person_n will_v remain_v in_o their_o present_a state_n and_o reform_v other_o whence_o it_o come_v that_o every_o one_o demand_v reformation_n and_o yet_o when_o any_o article_n thereof_o be_v propose_v more_o do_v oppose_v then_o favour_v it_o that_o every_o one_o think_v of_o himself_o only_o and_o do_v not_o consider_v the_o respect_n of_o another_o that_o every_o one_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n a_o minister_n of_o his_o design_n not_o think_v whether_o other_o will_v remain_v offend_v for_o it_o for_o who_o it_o
act_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v publish_v without_o it_o and_o a_o copy_n thereof_o give_v unto_o he_o after_o this_o the_o french_a ambassador_n do_v protest_v also_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v set_v in_o any_o other_o place_n than_o next_o to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o before_o the_o ambassador_n of_o other_o king_n which_o their_o predecessor_n have_v always_o hold_v and_o namely_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o the_o lateran_n they_o shall_v be_v wrong_v and_o if_o the_o new_a place_n in_o which_o the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n do_v set_v shall_v bring_v any_o prejudice_n to_o they_o or_o to_o the_o orator_n the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n represent_v the_o church_n universal_a shall_v reduce_v they_o to_o the_o ancient_a order_n or_o give_v they_o the_o evangelicall_a admonition_n but_o the_o father_n hold_v their_o peace_n and_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n say_v nothing_o who_o interest_n be_v common_a with_o those_o of_o france_n because_o they_o sit_v next_o unto_o they_o and_o so_o preserve_v the_o ancient_a possession_n of_o their_o king_n the_o french_a ambassador_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o amity_n and_o alliance_n between_o the_o catholic_a and_o most_o christian_a king_n demand_v nothing_o but_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n will_v declare_v that_o the_o count_n his_o fact_n can_v not_o prejudice_n the_o ancient_a prerogative_n and_o perpetual_a possession_n of_o his_o most_o christian_n majesty_n and_o register_v this_o in_o the_o act_n the_o oration_n be_v make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o count_n by_o petrus_n fontidonius_fw-la a_o divine_a who_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n draw_v near_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n have_v send_v that_o ambassador_n to_o show_v himself_o ready_a to_o do_v for_o it_o that_o which_o martianus_n the_o emperor_n do_v in_o the_o council_n name_n the_o oration_n make_v in_o his_o name_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o be_v to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v the_o truth_n declare_v by_o the_o synod_n to_o pacify_v the_o tumult_n and_o to_o conduct_v to_o a_o happy_a end_n that_o council_n which_o his_o father_n charles_n the_o five_o emperor_n have_v protect_v in_o its_o birth_n and_o growth_n for_o the_o cause_n whereof_o he_o have_v make_v most_o difficult_a and_o dangerous_a war_n and_o which_o his_o uncle_n the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n do_v maintain_v that_o his_o king_n have_v omit_v no_o office_n of_o a_o catholic_a prince_n that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v and_o celebrate_v that_o he_o have_v send_v the_o prelate_n of_o spain_n and_o most_o learned_a doctor_n beside_o that_o he_o have_v preserve_v religion_n in_o spain_n that_o he_o have_v hinder_v the_o entrance_n of_o heresy_n at_o all_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o pireny_v nor_o suffer_v it_o to_o pass_v to_o the_o indies_n whither_o it_o have_v labour_v to_o penetrate_v to_o infect_v the_o root_n of_o christianity_n spring_v in_o that_o new_a world_n that_o by_o mean_n of_o that_o king_n faith_n and_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n do_v flourish_v in_o that_o kingdom_n so_o that_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n when_o she_o see_v other_o province_n infect_v with_o error_n take_v great_a consolation_n that_o spain_n be_v the_o holy_a anchor_n for_o refuge_n of_o all_o her_o calamity_n he_o add_v will_v to_o god_n that_o other_o catholic_a prince_n and_o christian_a commonwealth_n will_v imitate_v the_o severity_n of_o that_o king_n in_o bridle_v the_o heretic_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v deliver_v from_o so_o many_o misery_n and_o the_o father_n of_o trent_n from_o the_o care_n of_o celebrate_v the_o council_n that_o his_o king_n marry_v with_o mary_n queen_n of_o england_n for_o no_o other_o end_n then_o to_o reduce_v that_o island_n to_o the_o true_a religion_n he_o repeat_v the_o late_a assistance_n send_v to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n add_v that_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o soldier_n though_o but_o few_o send_v for_o defence_n of_o religion_n the_o victory_n incline_v to_o the_o catholic_a party_n he_o say_v the_o king_n desire_v the_o establishment_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o manner_n he_o commend_v the_o father_n because_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o these_o two_o they_o will_v not_o separate_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o howsoever_o great_a instance_n be_v make_v unto_o they_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o omit_v the_o doctrine_n and_o proceed_v in_o the_o reformation_n only_o he_o say_v the_o king_n desire_n be_v they_o shall_v examine_v well_o the_o petition_n more_o pious_a than_o circumspect_a of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o some_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o protestant_n that_o be_v overcome_v with_o kindness_n they_o may_v return_v to_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n say_v that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o person_n who_o can_v be_v bow_v neither_o with_o benefit_n nor_o with_o pity_n he_o exhort_v the_o father_n in_o the_o king_n name_n to_o proceed_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o to_o show_v they_o have_v a_o great_a care_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o church_n then_o of_o the_o desire_n of_o those_o that_o wander_v and_o that_o the_o church_n have_v always_o use_v this_o gravity_n and_o constancy_n in_o repress_v the_o boldness_n of_o her_o enemy_n not_o to_o grant_v they_o so_o much_o as_o that_o which_o it_o honest_o might_n he_o say_v the_o king_n desire_v that_o superfluous_a question_n may_v be_v omit_v and_o conclude_v that_o the_o father_n be_v assemble_v to_o do_v so_o good_a a_o work_n as_o to_o cure_v the_o disease_n which_o afflict_v christendom_n if_o this_o be_v not_o effect_v posterity_n will_v blame_v none_o but_o they_o and_o wonder_v that_o be_v able_a they_o will_v not_o also_o be_v willing_a to_o apply_v the_o remedy_n he_o praise_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o ambassador_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o house_n and_o so_o end_v answer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n that_o in_o their_o grief_n for_o the_o common_a misery_n they_o receive_v consolation_n hear_v the_o piety_n of_o the_o catholic_a k._n relate_v and_o above_o all_o that_o his_o promise_n to_o defend_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n be_v most_o acceptable_a which_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n be_v willing_a to_o do_v also_o the_o synod_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o take_v care_n that_o answer_n the_o answer_n her_o action_n may_v be_v answerable_a to_o their_o desire_n as_o it_o have_v do_v already_o both_o by_o their_o own_o inclination_n and_o by_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o pope_n always_o employ_v themselves_o in_o the_o emendation_n of_o manner_n and_o in_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n that_o it_o give_v the_o king_n many_o thanks_o as_o for_o his_o singular_a affection_n towards_o religion_n and_o good_a will_n towards_o the_o synod_n so_o for_o send_v such_o a_o orato_fw-la from_o who_o they_o do_v hope_n for_o honour_n and_o assistance_n the_o oration_n displease_v all_o the_o ambassador_n because_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a reprehension_n of_o all_o prince_n for_o not_o imitate_v the_o catholic_a king_n and_o they_o complain_v thereof_o to_o the_o count_n who_o answer_v that_o those_o word_n do_v as_o much_o displease_v he_o yea_o that_o he_o give_v order_n to_o the_o doctor_n to_o leave_v they_o out_o and_o not_o to_o speak_v they_o by_o any_o mean_n and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v sensible_a of_o his_o disobedience_n the_o frenchman_n in_o rome_n blame_v much_o those_o in_o trent_n for_o lorraine_n the_o frenchman_n in_o rome_n complain_v of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n consent_v to_o the_o place_n give_v to_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n they_o say_v that_o lorraine_n for_o his_o own_o interest_n and_o to_o gratify_v the_o catholic_a king_n have_v do_v this_o great_a prejudice_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n as_o also_o because_o he_o have_v counsel_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o grant_v the_o king_n the_o alienation_n of_o 100000._o crown_n of_o ecclesiastical_a good_n as_o he_o demand_v they_o add_v that_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o aim_v only_o at_o his_o own_o interest_n and_o therefore_o because_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o brother_n do_v manage_v the_o money_n he_o do_v not_o care_n though_o the_o king_n shall_v receive_v none_o at_o all_o but_o the_o difference_n for_o precedence_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o well_o end_v for_o howsoever_o there_o be_v a_o place_n find_v for_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n in_o the_o congregation_n the_o same_o can_v not_o be_v give_v he_o in_o the_o session_n where-upon_o the_o legate_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o have_v order_n how_o to_o govern_v themselves_o after_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n be_v receive_v lorraine_n part_v to_o meet_v with_o the_o card._n of_o ferrara_n who_o be_v arrive_v in_o piedmont_n find_v the_o affair_n
holiness_n have_v deprive_v himself_o of_o do_v the_o king_n any_o good_a office_n by_o give_v he_o so_o great_a a_o grievance_n the_o pope_n answer_v again_o not_o for_o out_o cause_n but_o your_o own_o and_o for_o the_o benefit_n 〈◊〉_d by_o we_o to_o the_o king_n these_o word_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o protestation_n make_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n birague_n arrive_v in_o trent_n at_o the_o same_o time_n who_o as_o we_o say_v before_o the_o french_a king_n have_v send_v to_o the_o council_n and_o the_o emperor_n who_o trent_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d trent_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n the_o second_o of_o 〈◊〉_d where_o no_o ambassador_n inferior_a to_o the_o french_a be_v present_a that_o he_o may_v 〈◊〉_d they_o place_n because_o congregation_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n he_o have_v not_o the_o title_n of_o ambassador_n in_o the_o king_n 〈◊〉_d he_o present_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n date_v the_o fifteen_o of_o april_n which_o saiel_n in_o substance_n that_o the_o trouble_n and_o 〈◊〉_d raise_v in_o the_o kingdom_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n be_v very_o well_o knowe●●_n also_o his_o 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o assistance_n of_o prince_n and_o 〈◊〉_d his_o friend_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o arm_n that_o it_o please_v god_n in_o his_o incomprehensible_a judgement_n not_o to_o suffer_v those_o remedy_n of_o arm_n to_o produce_v any_o thing_n but_o 〈◊〉_d slaughter_n sacking_n of_o city_n ruin_n of_o church_n loss_n of_o prince_n lord_n knight_n and_o other_o calamity_n and_o desolation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o heal_v the_o infirmity_n of_o spirit_n which_o be_v overcome_v only_o by_o reason_n and_o persuasion_n that_o this_o have_v cause_v he_o to_o make_v a_o pacification_n according_a to_o the_o content_n of_o his_o letter_n dispatch_v upon_o that_o occasion_n not_o to_o permit_v the_o establish_n of_o a_o new_a faith_n in_o the_o kingdom_n but_o that_o arm_n be_v lay_v aside_o he_o may_v with_o less_o contradiction_n make_v a_o union_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n in_o the_o same_o holy_a and_o catholic_a religion_n a_o benefit_n which_o he_o do_v expect_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o from_o a_o good_a and_o serious_a reformation_n which_o he_o do_v promise_v himself_o from_o the_o synod_n and_o because_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o represent_v to_o they_o and_o to_o desire_v of_o they_o he_o resolve_v to_o send_v mounseur_fw-fr renaut_n birague_n who_o will_v inform_v they_o of_o all_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n pray_v they_o to_o receive_v and_o hear_v he_o with_o courtesy_n the_o letter_n be_v read_v the_o precedent_n speak_v relate_v very_o particular_o the_o oration_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n discord_n war_n and_o calamity_n of_o france_n the_o state_n and_o necessity_n into_o which_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n be_v reduce_v the_o imprisonment_n of_o the_o constable_n and_o death_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n which_o make_v they_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v without_o arm_n he_o justify_v the_o accord_n at_o large_a as_o be_v make_v for_o pure_a and_o mere_a necessity_n and_o with_o more_o advantage_n to_o the_o catholic_a party_n then_o to_o the_o contrary_n that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o king_n and_o council_n be_v not_o to_o suffer_v a_o introduction_n or_o a_o establishment_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a arm_n and_o disobedience_n be_v remove_v to_o reduce_v with_o less_o contradiction_n and_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v by_o his_o ancestor_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o their_o way_n and_o to_o reunite_v all_o in_o a_o holy_a catholic_a profession_n know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o exercise_n of_o two_o religion_n can_v long_o subsist_v and_o continue_v in_o one_o kingdom_n then_o he_o say_v that_o the_o king_n do_v hope_n to_o reunite_v quick_o all_o his_o people_n in_o one_o opinion_n by_o the_o singular_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o council_n a_o remedy_n use_v always_o by_o the_o ancient_n against_o such_o evil_n as_o those_o be_v which_o do_v then_o afflict_v christendom_n hepray_v the_o father_n to_o further_o the_o king_n good_a intention_n by_o a_o serious_a reformation_n by_o reduce_v manner_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o purity_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o by_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n promise_v that_o the_o king_n will_v always_o be_v catholic_a and_o devote_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o his_o ancestor_n he_o say_v in_o conclusion_n that_o the_o king_n do_v trust_v in_o the_o goodness_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n that_o they_o will_v compassionate_v the_o misery_n of_o france_n and_o labour_n to_o cure_v they_o the_o precedent_n have_v commission_n to_o demand_v that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v translate_v to_o a_o place_n where_o the_o protestant_n may_v have_v free_a access_n for_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o security_n give_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n they_o hold_v trent_n suspect_v and_o desire_v a_o place_n where_o the_o emperor_n may_v secure_v their_o but_o he_o touch_v not_o this_o point_n by_o the_o advie●_n of_o lordiu●_n and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n who_o ●●ought_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o make_v 〈◊〉_d and_o hold_v it_o 〈…〉_o of_o which_o 〈…〉_o k_fw-mi shall_v answer_v birague_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n condole_v the_o misfortune_n and_o calamity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o exhort_v the_o king_n that_o have_v be_v force_v to_o make_v peace_n and_o to_o grant_v something_o to_o the_o hugonot_n to_o restore_v religion_n entire_o he_o will_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o peace_n labour_n without_o any_o delay_n that_o this_o good_a end_n may_v be_v obtain_v and_o they_o show_v this_o answer_n to_o lorraine_n after_o the_o mass_n before_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n who_o say_v he_o do_v not_o like_a they_o shall_v approve_v the_o king_n fact_n whereof_o they_o shall_v rather_o complain_v as_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o take_v time_n to_o answer_v as_o the_o use_n be_v in_o matter_n of_o importance_n whereupon_o they_o give_v order_n that_o birague_n shall_v be_v answer_v thus_o insubstance_n that_o in_o regard_n the_o thing_n relate_v and_o propose_v by_o he_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o have_v need_n of_o much_o consideration_n the_o synod_n will_v take_v a_o fit_a time_n to_o answer_v he_o the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v much_o displease_v with_o this_o fact_n of_o lorraine_n think_v that_o if_o the_o legate_n have_v not_o be_v dispose_v to_o commend_v the_o king_n action_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v incite_v they_o yea_o to_o force_v they_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o judge_v a_o commendation_n of_o the_o fact_n to_o be_v just_a and_o reasonable_a as_o indeed_o it_o be_v he_o have_v dissuade_v they_o but_o consult_v among_o themselves_o they_o resolve_v not_o to_o write_v thereof_o into_o france_n for_o many_o respect_n and_o lansac_n be_v to_o return_v short_o may_v make_v that_o relation_n which_o shall_v be_v think_v necessary_a the_o month_n before_o there_o happen_v a_o great_a tumult_n and_o popular_a commotion_n in_o bavaria_n because_o the_o cup_n be_v not_o allow_v nor_o marry_a man_n suffer_v priest_n a_o tumult_n in_o bavaria_n for_o the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n to_o preach_v which_o disorder_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o to_o appease_v they_o the_o duke_n promise_v in_o the_o diet_n that_o if_o in_o all_o june_n a_o resolution_n be_v not_o make_v in_o trent_n or_o by_o the_o pope_n to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n himself_o will_v grant_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o this_o news_n come_v to_o the_o council_n make_v the_o legate_n dispatch_v in_o diligence_n nicolaus_n ormonetus_n to_o persuade_v that_o prince_n not_o to_o make_v such_o a_o grant_n promise_v that_o the_o council_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o his_o necessity_n to_o who_o the_o duke_n answer_v that_o to_o show_v his_o obedience_n and_o devotion_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o will_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o entertain_v his_o people_n as_o long_o as_o he_o can_v expect_v and_o hope_v that_o the_o council_n will_v resolve_v that_o which_o they_o see_v to_o be_v necessary_a notwithstanding_o the_o determination_n make_v before_o but_o the_o congregation_n proceed_v in_o handle_v the_o conciliarie_n matter_n annates_fw-la the_o bishopof_n nimes_n speak_v against_o annates_fw-la in_o one_o of_o they_o the_o bishop_n of_o nimes_n speak_v of_o the_o abuse_n of_o order_n discourse_v of_o annates_fw-la he_o say_v that_o howsoever_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o all_o church_n ought_v to_o contribute_v to_o
instruct_v in_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o to_o omit_v antiquity_n the_o schoolman_n and_o great_a part_n of_o the_o canonist_n have_v constant_o say_v that_o the_o dispensation_n of_o prelate_n be_v good_a cleave_v non_fw-la errante_fw-la and_o not_o otherwise_o hugonius_n also_o do_v offer_v to_o prove_v that_o assertion_n that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o tribunal_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v impious_a and_o scandalous_a make_v mortality_n equal_a to_o immortality_n and_o corruptible_a judgement_n of_o man_n to_o the_o incorruptible_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o do_v proceed_v from_o ignorance_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o servant_n which_o be_v set_v over_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n but_o only_o to_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o not_o arbitrary_o but_o that_o which_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o master_n that_o he_o be_v amaze_v that_o christian_a care_n can_v endure_v to_o hear_v that_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v impart_v to_o any_o they_o all_o speak_v some_o censure_v one_o some_o another_o of_o the_o jesuite_n assertion_n but_o the_o cardinal_n tell_v they_o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o small_a matter_n if_o they_o can_v obtain_v that_o in_o the_o public_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n way_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o that_o doctrine_n at_o which_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o all_o shall_v aim_v to_o which_o end_n they_o shall_v more_o easy_o come_v if_o the_o matter_n be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n and_o suffer_v to_o die_v in_o oblivion_n which_o by_o contradiction_n may_v do_v some_o prejudice_n to_o the_o truth_n they_o be_v pacify_v yet_o not_o so_o but_o that_o in_o their_o private_a meeting_n they_o speak_v of_o it_o very_o much_o but_o the_o legate_n do_v so_o accommodate_v the_o two_o article_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o residence_n with_o general_a term_n that_o they_o residence_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o of_o residence_n give_v satisfaction_n to_o both_o party_n and_o to_o lorraine_n also_o but_o have_v consult_v on_o they_o with_o the_o popish_a divine_n and_o some_o canonist_n prelate_n these_o say_v that_o they_o do_v admit_v a_o interpretation_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o court_n the_o bishop_n of_o nicastro_n who_o have_v often_o contend_v in_o this_o matter_n in_o favour_n of_o rome_n say_v plain_o that_o by_o that_o form_n of_o speech_n it_o be_v infer_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o pope_n but_o a_o part_n of_o it_o immediate_o from_o christ_n which_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v endure_v other_o papalin_n maintain_v the_o same_o and_o make_v a_o bad_a interpretation_n of_o all_o if_o it_o be_v not_o plain_o say_v that_o bishop_n have_v all_o jurisdiction_n from_o the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o legate_n send_v the_o article_n thus_o reform_v to_o the_o pope_n not_o so_o much_o that_o they_o may_v be_v examine_v in_o rome_n as_o because_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n they_o will_v propose_v nothing_o without_o the_o pope_n knowledge_n the_o cardinal_n depute_v for_o these_o affair_n have_v see_v and_o examine_v they_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o form_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v all_o bishop_n in_o their_o diocese_n equal_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n reprehend_v the_o legate_n for_o send_v they_o because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o mayor_n part_n in_o the_o council_n be_v good_a catholic_n and_o devote_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o confidence_n hereof_o be_v content_a that_o the_o proposition_n and_o resolution_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o trent_n without_o his_o knowledge_n notwithstanding_o he_o think_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o consent_v to_o any_o prejudicial_a thing_n for_o fear_n of_o give_v bad_a example_n to_o they_o and_o be_v a_o cause_n that_o they_o also_o shall_v assent_v unto_o it_o against_o their_o conscience_n at_o this_o time_n they_o have_v another_o very_a hard_a negotiation_n also_o for_o the_o king_n pope_n a_o difficulty_n whether_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n ought_v to_o promise_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o election_n will_v not_o do_v as_o other_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v do_v who_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o make_v difficulty_n do_v promise_n and_o swear_v whatsoever_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v they_o but_o he_o have_v respect_v not_o to_o offend_v the_o prince_n and_o protestant_n of_o germany_n will_v first_o know_v what_o word_n must_v be_v use_v the_o consultation_n hereof_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o cardinal_n they_o resolve_v that_o he_o must_v demand_v confirmation_n of_o the_o election_n and_o swear_v obedience_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o all_o other_o emperor_n whereunto_o he_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v and_o that_o he_o will_v consent_v to_o nothing_o which_o may_v prejudice_n his_o successor_n as_o the_o action_n of_o his_o predecessor_n be_v allege_v against_o himself_o and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o confess_v he_o be_v vassal_n and_o he_o propose_v that_o his_o ambassador_n shall_v use_v these_o word_n that_o his_o majesty_n will_v perform_v all_o reverence_n devotion_n and_o duty_n to_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n with_o promise_n not_o only_o to_o preserve_v but_o to_o enlarge_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v the_o holy_a catholic_a faith_n this_o negotiation_n continue_v this_o whole_a year_n without_o agreement_n and_o final_o in_o rome_n they_o think_v they_o have_v find_v a_o temper_n for_o it_o propose_v that_o he_o shall_v swear_v obedience_n not_o as_o emperor_n but_o as_o king_n of_o hungary_n and_o bohemia_n because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o say_v that_o king_n steven_n do_v give_v the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1000_o acknowledge_v to_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o say_a sea_n and_o make_v himself_o vassal_n and_o that_o vlad●slaus_n duke_n of_o bohemia_n do_v receive_v from_o alexander_n the_o second_o power_n to_o wear_v a_o mitre_n bind_v himself_o to_o pay_v a_o hundred_o mark_n of_o silver_n every_o year_n these_o thing_n be_v consider_v of_o in_o germany_n because_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o they_o but_o the_o bare_a affirmation_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v deride_v and_o answer_n be_v make_v that_o they_o desire_v more_o fresh_a example_n and_o more_o certain_a and_o more_o lawful_a title_n messenger_n go_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o diverse_a proposition_n answer_n and_o reply_n of_o which_o we_o will_v now_o relate_v the_o issue_n that_o we_o may_v return_v no_o more_o to_o they_o which_o be_v that_o twenty_o month_n after_o count_n elfestain_v ambassador_n of_o that_o king_n arrive_v in_o rome_n with_o who_o the_o same_o treaty_n be_v renew_v to_o demand_v confirmation_n and_o swear_v obedience_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o oration_n which_o he_o be_v to_o recite_v punctual_o be_v in_o writing_n and_o that_o he_o have_v commission_n not_o to_o alter_v one_o jot_n the_o pope_n therefore_o propose_v the_o business_n to_o the_o cardinal_n in_o a_o general_a congregation_n who_o after_o long_a consultation_n conclude_v that_o howsoever_o the_o confirmation_n be_v not_o demand_v nor_o obedience_n promise_v yet_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o ambassador_n it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o his_o holiness_n do_v confirm_v the_o election_n supply_v all_o defect_n thereof_o the_o facto_fw-la &_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o do_v receive_v the_o king_n obedience_n without_o say_v it_o be_v demand_v or_o not_o demand_v promise_v or_o not_o promise_v this_o ceremony_n give_v but_o small_a content_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o less_o to_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o time_n whereof_o i_o write_v the_o pope_n be_v to_o answer_v the_o frequent_a instance_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o ambassador_n resident_a in_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n in_o trent_n for_o abrogation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o propoventibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la and_o be_v satiate_v with_o this_o trouble_n he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o suspension_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v propose_v in_o congregation_n but_o morone_n answer_v the_o ambassador_n who_o urge_v the_o pope_n order_n that_o rather_o than_o he_o will_v condescend_v unto_o it_o he_o desire_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v remove_v he_o this_o answer_n be_v give_v without_o participation_n of_o the_o other_o legate_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n resolve_v by_o he_o alone_o legate_n morone_n be_v think_v to_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o other_o legate_n put_v they_o in_o a_o jealousy_n that_o he_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o he_o say_v that_o
other_o kingdom_n where_o they_o be_v counsellor_n of_o king_n and_o have_v the_o principal_a office_n of_o which_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v deprive_v if_o prince_n shall_v take_v example_n by_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o secular_a nobility_n incite_v they_o to_o it_o for_o their_o own_o interest_n therefore_o if_o he_o will_v execute_v this_o his_o determination_n he_o shall_v do_v it_o in_o effect_n and_o not_o in_o writing_n lest_o he_o shall_v damnify_v the_o clergy_n in_o other_o kingdom_n very_o much_o the_o emperor_n find_v by_o experience_n either_o at_o this_o time_n or_o two_o month_n before_o when_o morone_n be_v with_o he_o that_o his_o vicinity_n to_o the_o council_n do_v not_o only_o no_o good_a as_o he_o think_v it_o will_v but_o the_o contrary_a rather_o for_o the_o popish_a prelate_n suspect_v his_o deseigne_n be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n be_v afraid_a of_o every_o thing_n so_o that_o the_o difficulty_n and_o suspicion_n do_v turn_v into_o bitterness_n and_o increase_v in_o number_n therefore_o have_v other_o business_n wherein_o to_o employ_v himself_o with_o more_o profit_n he_o depart_v and_o write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n that_o the_o impossiblity_n of_o do_v good_a in_o the_o council_n be_v palpable_a he_o think_v it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o wife_n prince_n rather_o to_o support_v the_o present_a evil_n with_o patience_n then_o by_o cure_v it_o to_o cause_v a_o great_a and_o to_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n who_o go_v unto_o he_o by_o post_n three_o day_n before_o he_o give_v order_n to_o write_v to_o the_o catholic_a king_n concern_v isorut_n the_o emperor_n part_v from_o isorut_n the_o decree_n proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la exhort_v his_o majesty_n in_o his_o name_n to_o be_v content_a not_o to_o desire_v the_o revocation_n or_o declaration_n and_o if_o he_o do_v think_v that_o the_o not_o declare_v of_o it_o may_v prejudice_n other_o counsel_n the_o declaration_n may_v if_o need_n be_v be_v make_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o and_o notice_n be_v give_v that_o they_o consult_v at_o rome_n and_o in_o trent_n to_o proceed_v against_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o dehort_v the_o council_n from_o proceed_v against_o the_o q._n of_o england_n england_n he_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o legate_n that_o if_o the_o council_n will_v not_o yield_v that_o fruit_n as_o be_v desire_v that_o they_o may_v see_v a_o union_n of_o all_o catholic_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n at_o the_o least_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o heretic_n to_o unite_v themselves_o more_o which_o they_o will_v do_v in_o case_n they_o proceed_v against_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n for_o undoubted_o they_o will_v by_o that_o mean_n make_v a_o general_a league_n against_o the_o catholic_n which_o will_v bring_v forth_o great_a inconvenience_n and_o his_o admonition_n be_v so_o effectual_a that_o the_o pope_n desist_v in_o rome_n and_o revoke_v the_o commission_n give_v to_o the_o legate_n in_o trent_n after_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v distaste_n to_o the_o spaniard_n in_o not_o give_v place_n to_o the_o ambassador_n to_o appease_v they_o again_o he_o give_v care_n to_o the_o instance_n of_o vargas_n who_o have_v trouble_v he_o many_o day_n together_o desire_v that_o as_o mean_n be_v find_v that_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o king_n may_v come_v into_o congregation_n so_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v the_o session_n draw_v near_o his_o holiness_n will_v find_v a_o way_n that_o he_o may_v be_v there_o also_o whereof_o have_v consider_v well_o and_o consult_v with_o the_o cardinal_n he_o resolve_v final_o that_o a_o place_n separate_v from_o the_o other_o ambassador_n shall_v be_v give_v the_o count_n in_o the_o session_n also_o and_o to_o remedy_v the_o comperency_n which_o will_v be_v in_o give_v the_o incense_n &_o the_o pax_n he_o give_v order_v that_o 2._o censer_n shall_v be_v use_v and_o incense_v give_v to_o the_o frenchman_n and_o the_o spaniard_n both_o at_o once_o as_o also_o two_o pax_n to_o be_v kiss_v at_o the_o same_o instant_n and_o he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n to_o do_v so_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v conceal_v all_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o execution_n for_o fear_v some_o inconvenience_n may_v be_v prepare_v if_o it_o be_v know_v morone_n according_a to_o the_o pope_n command_n conceal_v the_o order_n neither_o precedence_n a_o difference_n about_o precedence_n do_v the_o frenchman_n know_v of_o it_o at_o all_o on_o saint_n peter_n day_n the_o 29._o of_o june_n the_o cardinal_n ambassador_n and_o father_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o cathedral_n church_n and_o the_o mass_n be_v begin_v which_o the_o bishop_n of_o asti_n the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n his_o ambassador_n do_v celebrate_v on_o the_o sudden_a a_o murrey_a velvet_n chair_n come_v out_o of_o the_o vestry_n and_o be_v place_v between_o the_o last_o cardinal_n and_o the_o first_o patriarch_n and_o by_o and_o by_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n come_v in_o and_o sit_v upon_o it_o whereat_o the_o prelate_n keep_v a_o great_a murmur_a lorraine_n complain_v to_o the_o legate_n of_o this_o sudden_a act_n conceal_v from_o he_o the_o french_a ambassador_n send_v the_o master_n of_o the_o ceremony_n to_o make_v the_o same_o complaint_n tell_v the_o of_o they_o ceremony_n of_o the_o incense_n and_o the_o pax._n the_o legate_n answer_v there_o will_v be_v two_o censer_n and_o two_o pax_n wherewith_o the_o french_a be_v not_o satisfy_v and_o say_v plain_o that_o they_o will_v be_v maintain_v not_o in_o parity_n but_o in_o precedence_n and_o will_v protest_v against_o every_o innovation_n and_o depart_v from_o the_o council_n these_o go_n and_o come_n continue_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n be_v not_o hear_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a whisper_n the_o theologue_n be_v go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n to_o preach_v the_o legate_n with_o the_o cardinal_n ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n one_o of_o the_o french_a retire_v into_o the_o vestry_n where_o this_o matter_n be_v handle_v and_o the_o sermon_n be_v end_v before_o any_o thing_n be_v conclude_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o credo_fw-la a_o silence_n be_v make_v and_o madruccio_n with_o five_o church_n and_o the_o ambassador_n of_o polonia_n come_v out_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n and_o to_o pray_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o legate_n that_o for_o that_o time_n he_o will_v be_v content_a that_o neither_o incense_n nor_o the_o pax_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o any_o to_o hinder_v this_o sudden_a tumult_n which_o may_v cause_v some_o great_a evil_n promise_v that_o at_o any_o other_o time_n when_o he_o request_v they_o will_v execute_v the_o order_n of_o his_o holiness_n of_o two_o censor_n and_o two_o pax_n at_o once_o which_o be_v consider_v on_o before_o hand_n both_o he_o and_o they_o and_o all_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resolve_v how_o to_o govern_v themselves_o with_o wisdom_n after_o long_a discourse_n they_o return_v with_o this_o resolution_n that_o the_o count_n be_v content_a so_o they_o all_o come_v out_o of_o the_o vestry_n and_o go_v to_o their_o place_n and_o the_o mass_n proceed_v without_o incense_n or_o pax_n and_o as_o scone_fw-mi as_o these_o word_n be_v say_v item_fw-la missaest_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n who_o in_o the_o congregation_n be_v wont_a to_o go_v out_o last_o do_v go_v then_o before_o the_o cross_n follow_v with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o italian_n subject_n to_o his_o king_n afterward_o the_o legate_n ambassador_n and_o residue_n of_o the_o prelate_n depart_v also_o after_o the_o usual_a manner_n the_o legate_n to_o be_v free_v from_o the_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o they_o for_o this_o secret_a and_o almost_o fraudulent_a proceed_n n_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n be_v fain_o to_o publish_v the_o express_a order_n receive_v from_o rome_n to_o do_v so_o in_o that_o time_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o without_o participation_n of_o any_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n say_v public_o that_o but_o for_o the_o respect_n he_o bear_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n he_o will_v have_v protest_v as_o he_o have_v in_o commission_n from_o his_o king_n which_o he_o will_v do_v hereafter_o in_o case_n the_o usual_a ceremony_n of_o incense_n and_o pax_n be_v not_o restore_v and_o give_v they_o in_o their_o due_a place_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n also_o write_v a_o sharp_a letter_n to_o the_o pope_n declare_v the_o wrong_n that_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v they_o and_o say_v modest_o that_o his_o holiness_n have_v make_v he_o be_v tell_v that_o he_o trust_v so_o much_o in_o he_o that_o he_o will_v that_o all_o the_o affair_n of_o
the_o council_n shall_v be_v communicate_v unto_o he_o whereof_o though_o he_o see_v no_o effect_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o complain_v but_o he_o be_v trouble_v that_o he_o have_v command_v the_o legate_n not_o to_o impart_v unto_o he_o their_o own_o proper_a affair_n and_o especial_o that_o in_o which_o he_o may_v have_v do_v more_o good_a than_o another_o add_v that_o more_o mischief_n have_v ensue_v but_o for_o his_o mediation_n he_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o blame_n of_o all_o be_v impute_v to_o his_o holiness_n and_o pray_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v the_o author_n and_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o evil_a he_o send_v musottus_n unto_o he_o also_o by_o post_n to_o inform_v he_o more_o particular_o of_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n and_o of_o the_o imminent_a danger_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n complain_v of_o the_o stiffness_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n and_o magnify_v his_o own_o great_a patience_n and_o modesty_n and_o desire_v the_o legate_n that_o the_o next_o sunday_n he_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o equal_a place_n &_o ceremony_n according_a to_o the_o pope_n order_n some_o think_v it_o be_v a_o stratagem_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o dissolve_v the_o council_n and_o the_o papalin_n call_v amorevoli_n say_v that_o if_o they_o must_v come_v to_o a_o dissolution_n they_o desire_v it_o shall_v rather_o happen_v for_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v rector_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a think_v it_o will_v be_v more_o easy_a to_o justify_v his_o holiness_n in_o that_o and_o to_o lay_v all_o the_o blame_n upon_o the_o frenchman_n the_o next_o morning_n the_o last_o of_o june_n the_o count_n have_v assemble_v the_o spanish_a prelate_n and_o many_o italian_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o day_n before_o he_o go_v into_o the_o chapel_n not_o to_o give_v occasion_n of_o any_o disturbance_n but_o to_o keep_v the_o right_n of_o his_o king_n and_o make_v use_n of_o the_o pope_n order_n that_o since_o he_o have_v understand_v that_o in_o case_n he_o shall_v return_v to_o the_o chapel_n again_o the_o frenchman_n will_v protest_v which_o if_o they_o shall_v do_v he_o must_v not_o fail_v to_o answer_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o term_n that_o they_o shall_v use_v as_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o holiness_n so_o also_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o his_o king_n the_o prelate_n answer_v that_o if_o it_o come_v to_o this_o they_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o do_v his_o holiness_n service_n and_o not_o fail_v to_o hold_v esteem_n of_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n as_o far_o as_o do_v concern_v they_o the_o count_n pray_v they_o again_o to_o consider_v well_o of_o all_o which_o may_v happen_v in_o such_o a_o case_n say_v that_o himself_o will_v come_v prepare_v also_o and_o know_v that_o the_o frenchman_n can_v take_v but_o three_o course_n either_o against_o the_o legate_n or_o against_o the_o king_n or_o against_o he_o the_o ambassador_n he_o mean_v to_o be_v provide_v for_o a_o answer_n for_o all_o all_o the_o ambassador_n of_o other_o prince_n persuade_v the_o legate_n to_o find_v a_o temper_n that_o so_o great_a disorder_n may_v not_o happen_v who_o answer_v that_o they_o must_v needs_o execute_v the_o pope_n command_n which_o be_v precise_a and_o without_o any_o reservation_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v promise_v the_o count_n to_o do_v it_o whensoever_o he_o will_v request_v it_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n protest_v to_o they_o that_o in_o case_n they_o do_v so_o he_o will_v go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o show_v of_o what_o importance_n the_o matter_n be_v and_o what_o a_o ruin_n it_o will_v bring_v to_o all_o christendom_n and_o with_o the_o crucifix_n in_o hand_n will_v cry_v misericordia_fw-la persuade_v the_o father_n and_o people_n to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v so_o fearful_a a_o schism_n and_o cry_v he_o that_o desire_v the_o welfare_n of_o christendom_n let_v he_o follow_v i_o will_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n hope_v he_o shall_v be_v follow_v by_o every_o one_o the_o legate_n move_v herewith_o persuade_v the_o count_n to_o be_v content_a that_o no_o chapel_n shall_v be_v hold_v the_o next_o sunday_n nor_o any_o procession_n make_v according_a to_o the_o use_n and_o send_v the_o pope_n advise_v of_o all_o continual_a congregation_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o french_a and_o spanish_a ambassador_n the_o spaniard_n sometime_o give_v hope_n he_o will_v be_v content_a and_o sometime_o make_v instance_n to_o go_v to_o church_n to_o execute_v the_o pope_n order_n for_o the_o incense_n and_o pax._n and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v resolve_v to_o protest_v and_o depart_v and_o say_v open_o that_o they_o will_v not_o protest_v against_o the_o legate_n be_v but_o mere_a nor_o against_o the_o king_n of_o spanic_n or_o the_o count_n his_o ambassador_n in_o regard_n they_o do_v prosecute_v their_o cause_n nor_o against_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n which_o they_o will_v always_o honour_v follow_v the_o step_n of_o their_o predecessor_n but_o against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n from_o who_o the_o prejudice_n and_o innovation_n come_v as_o make_v himself_o a_o party_n and_o give_v cause_n of_o schism_n and_o for_o another_o cause_n also_o appeal_n unto_o the_o future_a pope_n lawful_o elect_v and_o to_o a_o true_a and_o lawful_a council_n threaten_v to_o depart_v and_o to_o celebrate_v a_o nationall_n the_o prelate_n and_o other_o frenchman_n apart_o do_v common_o say_v to_o every_o one_o that_o the_o ambassador_n have_v protestation_n against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n who_o carry_v himself_o for_o pope_n be_v not_o lawful_a because_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o the_o election_n for_o simony_n intimate_v particular_o the_o obligation_n which_o cardinal_n caraffa_n have_v from_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n elect_v the_o prenchman_n make_v a_o question_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v lawful_o elect_v with_o promise_n of_o a_o certain_a sum_n of_o money_n which_o that_o cardinal_n send_v afterward_o to_o the_o catholic_a king_n pretend_v it_o can_v not_o be_v make_v but_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n before_o his_o assumption_n as_o also_o another_o obligation_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n own_o hand_n than_o cardinal_n in_o the_o conclave_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o naples_n whereof_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v before_o and_o the_o precedent_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n prepare_v a_o very_a sharp_a oration_n in_o latin_a and_o a_o protestation_n which_o howsoever_o it_o be_v not_o make_v yet_o it_o be_v print_v and_o be_v show_v by_o the_o frenchman_n and_o be_v still_o to_o be_v see_v in_o print_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v recite_v to_o relate_v the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v not_o beside_o our_o present_a purpose_n that_o it_o may_v be_v see_v not_o what_o the_o french_a say_v only_o but_o what_o opinion_n they_o bring_v to_o the_o council_n he_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o that_o council_n have_v be_v call_v by_o mean_n of_o francis_n protestation_n the_o protestation_n and_o charles_n brothers_z french_a king_n they_o the_o french_a king_n ambassador_n be_v sorry_a they_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o depart_v or_o consent_v to_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o king_n dignity_n that_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o french_a king_n be_v know_v to_o whosoever_o have_v read_v the_o pope_n law_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o also_o those_o who_o have_v read_v the_o volume_n of_o the_o counsel_n must_v needs_o know_v what_o place_n themselves_o ought_v to_o hold_v that_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n in_o former_a general_a counsel_n have_v follow_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n that_o now_o the_o mutation_n be_v make_v not_o by_o the_o father_n who_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o liberty_n will_v not_o have_v deprive_v any_o prince_n of_o his_o possession_n nor_o by_o the_o catholic_a king_n so_o near_o ally_v in_o amity_n and_o kindred_n with_o their_o king_n but_o by_o the_o father_n of_o all_o christian_n who_o in_o stead_n of_o bread_n have_v give_v his_o elder_a son_n a_o stone_n and_o for_o fish_n a_o serpent_n to_o wound_v with_o one_o sting_n the_o king_n and_o the_o french_a church_n together_o that_o pius_n 4._o do_v sow_v seed_n of_o discord_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o king_n who_o be_v in_o amity_n change_v by_o force_n and_o injustice_n the_o order_n of_o sit_v always_o use_v by_o the_o ambassador_n and_o last_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o lateran_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v above_o counsel_n that_o he_o can_v neither_o disturb_v the_o amity_n of_o the_o king_n nor_o alter_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n that_o the_o council_n be_v
fornication_n and_o to_o confine_v the_o dispensution_n also_o with_o in_o the_o limit_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o in_o recite_v the_o decree_n there_o be_v some_o contention_n also_o about_o the_o nine_o point_n in_o which_o superior_n marry_v whether_o one_o may_v be_v forbid_v or_o force_v to_o marry_v be_v forbid_v to_o force_v their_o subject_n to_o marry_v with_o threat_n and_o punishment_n name_v the_o emperor_n and_o king_n gulielmus_fw-la cassodorus_n bishop_n of_o bacellona_n oppose_v and_o say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v presuppose_v that_o great_a prince_n will_v meddle_v in_o marriage_n but_o for_o great_a cause_n and_o for_o the_o public_a good_a that_o threat_n and_o punishment_n be_v then_o bad_a when_o they_o be_v use_v contrary_a to_o order_v of_o law_n but_o penal_a precept_n conformable_a to_o the_o law_n be_v just_a and_o can_v not_o be_v reprehend_v if_o there_o be_v any_o case_n he_o say_v in_o which_o the_o superior_a may_v just_o command_v a_o marriage_n he_o may_v force_v the_o celebration_n of_o it_o by_o penal_a command_n allead_v also_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n decide_v by_o the_o divine_n that_o just_a fear_n do_v not_o cause_v a_o involuntary_a action_n he_o desire_v that_o lawful_a cause_n may_v be_v except_v and_o those_o superior_n only_o comprehend_v in_o the_o decree_n who_o do_v compel_v against_o justice_n and_o order_n of_o the_o law_n say_v that_o many_o case_n may_v occur_v in_o which_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o public_a good_a do_v require_v the_o celebration_n of_o a_o marriage_n which_o he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o a_o prince_n can_v not_o command_v and_o cause_n by_o compulsion_n to_o be_v celebrate_v shall_v offend_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n to_o this_o reason_n he_o add_v a_o example_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1556._o the_o second_o of_o january_n paul_n the_o 4._o send_v a_o monitorie_a to_o dame_n joan_n of_o arragon_n wife_n of_o ascanius_n columna_fw-la that_o she_o shall_v not_o marry_v any_o of_o her_o daughter_n without_o his_o leave_n or_o if_o she_o do_v the_o matrimony_n though_o consummate_v shall_v be_v void_a which_o that_o most_o wise_a and_o sincere_a pope_n will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o prince_n have_v not_o power_n to_o marry_v their_o subject_n in_o case_n of_o the_o public_a good_a in_o the_o point_n of_o not_o mention_v prince_n he_o be_v follow_v by_o many_o and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n be_v take_v away_o but_o for_o the_o residue_n he_o be_v much_o oppose_v with_o this_o reason_n only_o that_o matrimony_n be_v a_o holy_a thing_n in_o which_o the_o secular_a power_n have_v no_o authority_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o lawful_a cause_n to_o compel_v any_o to_o marry_v it_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n only_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o monitory_a of_o paul_n raise_v a_o great_a whisper_v in_o the_o congregation_n and_o afterward_o give_v matter_n of_o diverse_a discourse_n some_o say_v he_o do_v it_o not_o as_o prince_n but_o as_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o do_v it_o in_o regard_n ascanius_n columna_fw-la be_v a_o traitor_n unto_o he_o he_o will_v not_o have_v he_o get_v new_a adherence_n by_o marriage_n of_o his_o daughter_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o his_o contumacy_n other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o vicar_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o traitor_n intemporall_a matter_n and_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o think_v that_o marriage_n may_v be_v make_v void_a by_o apostolic_a authority_n be_v not_o well_o ground_v except_o it_o be_v by_o course_n of_o law_n or_o general_a canon_n but_o not_o for_o particular_a person_n and_o that_o for_o this_o neither_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v nor_o example_n find_v some_o deny_v that_o one_o may_v ground_v himself_o upon_o such_o action_n of_o pope_n which_o show_n rather_o how_o far_o the_o abuse_n of_o their_o power_n can_v stretch_v then_o how_o far_o the_o lawful_a use_n thereof_o be_v extend_v and_o there_o be_v no_o less_o difficulty_n because_o the_o decree_n do_v comprehend_v father_n mother_n and_o other_o domestical_a superior_n who_o may_v compel_v their_o child_n especial_o daughter_n to_o marry_v and_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o to_o come_v to_o excommunication_n in_o case_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v very_o hard_o yet_o those_o who_o before_o have_v defend_v that_o child_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v their_o father_n in_o this_o particular_a do_v maintain_v it_o a_o temper_n be_v propose_v that_o have_v first_o command_v politic_a superior_n upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n domestical_a superior_n shall_v be_v admonish_v not_o to_o compel_v their_o child_n against_o their_o will_n but_o the_o same_o man_n still_o oppose_v and_o say_v it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o take_v from_o father_n that_o power_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o and_o in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v resolve_v to_o take_v this_o part_n quite_o away_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o barcelona_n and_o some_o few_o beside_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n as_o to_o say_v that_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n and_o other_o domestical_a superior_n over_o marriage_n be_v manifest_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o so_o the_o same_o consideration_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o politic_n superior_n the_o congregation_n assemble_v to_o discuss_v this_o point_n be_v end_v the_o last_o whereof_o be_v the_o last_o of_o julie_n they_o begin_v to_o speak_v private_o of_o secret_a marriage_n and_o both_o party_n continue_v in_o their_o own_o opinion_n some_o say_v that_o the_o difficulty_n do_v presuppose_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v determine_v be_v contradict_v by_o a_o notable_a number_n this_o trouble_a they_o much_o who_o desire_v they_o shall_v be_v make_v void_a and_o think_v that_o they_o be_v whole_o bar_v from_o all_o possibility_n to_o obtain_v it_o at_o this_o time_n a_o difficulty_n arise_v though_o private_a yet_o very_o contentious_a toledo_n a_o difficulty_n about_o censure_v the_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n for_o the_o deputy_n concern_v the_o index_n have_v give_v the_o work_n of_o bartholomeus_n caranza_n archbishop_n of_o toledo_n to_o some_o divine_n to_o be_v peruse_v and_o they_o have_v relate_v that_o nothing_o worthy_a of_o censure_n be_v find_v in_o it_o the_o congregation_n do_v approve_v it_o and_o make_v public_a faith_n thereof_o at_o the_o petition_n of_o his_o agent_n but_o because_o the_o book_n and_o the_o author_n be_v under_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n the_o secretary_n castellunne_v complain_v to_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n and_o the_o count_n to_o the_o father_n of_o that_o congregation_n desire_v a_o retractation_n the_o father_n be_v not_o incline_v to_o revoke_v the_o decree_n because_o they_o think_v it_o just_a the_o bishop_n of_o lerida_n either_o move_v by_o the_o count_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n begin_v to_o speak_v against_o it_o and_o to_o tax_v it_o allege_v place_n of_o the_o book_n which_o by_o a_o bad_a interpretation_n do_v seem_v to_o deserve_v censure_n and_o which_o be_v more_o touch_v the_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n of_o those_o bishop_n the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o prague_n the_o chief_a of_o that_o congregation_n in_o defence_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o colleague_n complain_v to_o the_o legate_n desire_v they_o will_v show_v themselves_o in_o the_o business_n and_o protest_v not_o to_o assist_v in_o any_o public_a act_n until_o the_o congregation_n have_v due_a satisfaction_n the_o cardinal_n morone_n interpose_v and_o make_v peace_n with_o these_o condition_n that_o no_o other_o copy_n of_o the_o faith_n make_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o that_o lerida_n shall_v give_v satisfaction_n of_o word_n to_o the_o congregation_n and_o to_o prague_n in_o particular_a and_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v forget_v on_o both_o side_n and_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n with_o unresistable_a entreaty_n get_v the_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o agent_n of_o toledo_n and_o so_o this_o stir_n be_v appease_v the_o legate_n give_v the_o article_n of_o reformation_n to_o the_o ambassador_n in_o number_n thirty_o eight_o that_o they_o may_v commend_v to_o their_o consideration_n what_o please_v they_o before_o they_o be_v give_v to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v discuss_v which_o reformation_n 38._o article_n of_o reformation_n article_n be_v divide_v and_o one_o half_o allot_v for_o the_o next_o session_n and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o session_n follow_v for_o the_o reason_n which_o shall_v be_v relate_v hereafter_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n persuade_v the_o other_o ambassador_n to_o demand_v that_o deputy_n may_v be_v elect_v for_o every_o nation_n to_o consider_v what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v reform_v because_o the_o model_n
give_v by_o the_o legate_n make_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o be_v fit_v to_o other_o country_n but_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o the_o french_a and_o portugal_n ambassador_n contradict_v allege_v that_o every_o one_o may_v speak_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o article_n propose_v and_o propose_v other_o if_o there_o be_v cause_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o give_v this_o distaste_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o legate_n who_o can_v not_o endure_v to_o hear_v speech_n of_o nation_n in_o council_n and_o the_o imperialist_n come_v to_o this_o opinion_n also_o the_o count_n retire_v but_o say_v that_o diverse_a consideration_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v concern_v those_o which_o be_v propose_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n counsel_v the_o legate_n to_o facilitate_v the_o business_n and_o to_o take_v away_o those_o point_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o cause_v contradiction_n add_v that_o the_o few_o matter_n be_v handle_v the_o better_a it_o will_v be_v whereat_o varmiense_n seem_v to_o wonder_n lorraine_n ask_v he_o whether_o he_o marvel_v mind_n the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n excuse_v the_o change_n of_o his_o mind_n because_o he_o see_v not_o in_o he_o that_o heat_n and_o desire_v of_o reformation_n as_o he_o have_v make_v demonstration_n of_o at_o other_o time_n and_o he_o add_v that_o his_o desire_n be_v the_o same_o and_o have_v the_o same_o disposition_n of_o mind_n to_o employ_v all_o his_o force_n therein_o but_o that_o experience_n have_v teach_v he_o that_o not_o only_o nothing_o perfect_a or_o ordinary_a can_v be_v do_v in_o council_n but_o that_o every_o enterprise_n in_o that_o business_n turn_v to_o the_o worst_a he_o persuade_v also_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n not_o to_o seek_v to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n total_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o full_o satisfy_v he_o he_o shall_v make_v the_o particular_a know_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v that_o contentment_n shall_v be_v give_v he_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n first_o of_o all_o give_v their_o answer_n in_o writing_n the_o one_o and_o thirty_o of_o july_n in_o which_o they_o say_v that_o desire_v a_o general_a reformation_n in_o the_o head_n and_o member_n and_o have_v read_v the_o article_n exhibit_v they_o have_v add_v some_o thing_n and_o note_v other_o desire_v they_o may_v be_v correct_v according_o and_o discuss_v by_o the_o father_n and_o because_o the_o emperor_n with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o many_o prince_n do_v hold_v a_o diet_n in_o vienna_n to_o handle_v many_o thing_n concern_v the_o council_n they_o hope_v they_o will_v take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n if_o have_v receive_v a_o new_a commandment_n from_o his_o majesty_n they_o shall_v present_v other_o consideration_n also_o and_o that_o for_o the_o present_a they_o add_v eight_o article_n to_o those_o propose_v by_o they_o 1_o that_o a_o serious_a and_o more_o the_o imperialist_n add_v 8._o article_n more_o durable_a reformation_n of_o the_o conclave_n may_v be_v make_v in_o council_n 2._o that_o alienation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a good_n without_o the_o free_a and_o firm_a consent_n of_o the_o chapter_n may_v be_v prohibit_v and_o especial_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 3._o that_o commendaes_n and_o coadiutories_n with_o future_a succession_n may_v be_v take_v away_o 4._o that_o school_n and_o university_n may_v be_v reform_v 5._o that_o the_o provincial_a counsel_n may_v be_v enjoin_v to_o correct_v the_o statute_n of_o all_o the_o chapter_n as_o also_o that_o authority_n may_v be_v give_v to_o reform_v missal_n brevidry_n agend_n and_o gradual_n not_o in_o rome_n only_o but_o in_o all_o church_n 6._o that_o layman_n may_v not_o be_v cite_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n 7._o that_o cause_n may_v not_o be_v remoove_v from_o the_o secular_a court_n to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a upon_o pretence_n of_o justice_n deny_v before_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o supplication_n be_v know_v 8._o that_o conseruator_n may_v not_o be_v give_v in_o profane_a matter_n and_o concern_v the_o article_n exhibit_v by_o the_o legate_n they_o note_v many_o thing_n part_v whereof_o as_o be_v but_o of_o small_a weight_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o omit_v those_o of_o importance_n be_v that_o cardinal_n may_v be_v choose_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n that_o the_o universal_a bishop_n may_v be_v create_v by_o elector_n of_o all_o country_n that_o the_o provision_n against_o pension_n reservation_n and_o regress_n shall_v be_v extend_v not_o only_o to_o the_o future_a but_o to_o those_o also_o that_o be_v past_a that_o the_o kiss_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n who_o ought_v to_o defend_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v what_o secular_a affair_n be_v prohibit_v to_o ecclesiastique_n that_o that_o which_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o residence_n may_v not_o be_v cross_v that_o in_o the_o article_n of_o not_o lay_v tax_n upon_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n the_o cause_n of_o subsidy_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o infidel_n may_v be_v except_v the_o proposition_n though_o it_o be_v of_o hard_a digestion_n do_v not_o so_o much_o trouble_v the_o legate_n as_o the_o doubt_v move_v that_o some_o extraordinary_a demand_n for_o change_n of_o rite_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o relaxation_n of_o precept_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la may_v come_v from_o the_o diet_n in_o vienna_n the_o three_o of_o august_n the_o frenchman_n give_v their_o observation_n the_o essential_a whereof_o be_v that_o the_o number_n of_o cardinal_n may_v not_o exceed_v four_o and_o frenchman_n the_o article_n exhibit_v by_o the_o frenchman_n twenty_o and_o that_o no_o more_o may_v be_v create_v until_o they_o be_v reduce_v to_o that_o paucity_n that_o they_o may_v be_v elect_v out_o of_o all_o kingdom_n and_o province_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v two_o of_o one_o diocese_n nor_o more_o than_o eight_o of_o one_o nation_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v less_o than_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n that_o the_o nephew_n or_o brother_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o any_o cardinal_n live_v may_v not_o be_v choose_v that_o bishopricke_n may_v not_o be_v give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o assist_v the_o pope_n and_o that_o their_o dignity_n be_v equal_a their_o revenue_n may_v be_v equal_a also_o that_o none_o may_v have_v more_o than_o one_o benefice_n and_o that_o the_o difference_n unknowen_a to_o the_o good_a age_n of_o the_o world_n of_o benefice_n simple_a and_o with_o cure_n compatible_a and_o incompatible_a may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o he_o that_o have_v two_o at_o this_o present_a may_v choose_v and_o keep_v one_o only_o and_o that_o within_o a_o short_a time_n that_o resignation_n in_o favour_n may_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v prohibit_v to_o confer_v benefice_n only_o upon_o those_o who_o have_v not_o the_o language_n of_o the_o country_n because_o the_o law_n of_o france_n forbid_v all_o stranger_n without_o exception_n to_o have_v office_n or_o benefice_n in_o the_o kingdom_n that_o the_o criminal_a cause_n of_o bishop_n may_v not_o be_v judge_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o ancient_a privilege_n of_o france_n that_o none_o may_v be_v judge_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n neither_o voluntary_o nor_o by_o compulsion_n that_o power_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o bishop_n to_o absolve_v from_o all_o case_n without_o exception_n that_o to_o take_v away_o suit_n for_o benefice_n prevention_n resignation_n in_o favour_n mandate_n expectative_n and_o other_o unlawful_a way_n to_o obtain_v they_o may_v be_v remoove_v that_o the_o prohibition_n that_o the_o clergy_n may_v not_o meddle_v in_o secular_a matter_n may_v be_v expound_v so_o that_o they_o may_v abstain_v from_o all_o function_n which_o be_v not_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a and_o proper_a to_o their_o order_n that_o the_o pension_n already_o impose_v may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o abrogate_a that_o in_o cause_n of_o patronage_n the_o ancient_a institution_n in_o france_n may_v not_o be_v change_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o the_o possessory_a for_o he_o who_o be_v in_o the_o last_o possession_n and_o in_o the_o petitorie_a for_o he_o who_o have_v a_o lawful_a title_n or_o a_o long_a possession_n that_o the_o law_n of_o france_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n may_v not_o be_v prejudice_v that_o the_o possessory_a may_v beiudge_v by_o the_o king_n judge_n and_o the_o petitorie_a by_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n but_o not_o out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o none_o may_v be_v assume_v to_o be_v canon_n in_o a_o cathedral_n church_n before_o he_o be_v five_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a that_o for_o the_o article_n contain_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n the_o clergy_n may_v be_v first_o entire_o reform_v in_o this_o session_n and_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o dignity_n
and_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o next_o and_o that_o nothing_o may_v be_v decree_v therein_o before_o they_o the_o ambassador_n be_v hear_v who_o have_v give_v account_n to_o the_o king_n of_o those_o and_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v to_o propose_v but_o howsoever_o they_o propose_v these_o difficult_a matter_n yet_o they_o say_v indifferent_o to_o all_o and_o with_o affectation_n that_o it_o may_v be_v publish_v that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v earnest_a in_o any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o right_n and_o secular_a affair_n of_o their_o kingdom_n the_o venetian_a ambassador_n propose_v that_o the_o article_n of_o patronage_n may_v be_v so_o accommodate_v that_o it_o may_v not_o give_v occasion_n of_o novitie_n concern_v those_o who_o belong_v to_o their_o republic_n and_o prince_n the_o ambassador_n also_o of_o savoy_n and_o tuscan_a make_v the_o same_o instance_n at_o this_o time_n the_o imperialist_n receive_v commission_n from_o their_o prince_n to_o mediate_v as_o they_o do_v with_o the_o legate_n that_o in_o the_o review_v of_o the_o index_n of_o the_o book_n mention_n may_v not_o be_v make_v of_o the_o recess_n of_o the_o diet_n in_o germany_n former_o prohibit_v by_o paul_n 4_o and_o the_o emperor_n order_n be_v somewhat_o sharp_a that_o in_o stead_n of_o handle_v of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n they_o will_v not_o give_v a_o form_n to_o the_o policy_n of_o germany_n and_o occasion_n to_o the_o people_n who_o be_v govern_v by_o such_o law_n to_o alien_n themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o their_o will_n answer_n be_v make_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o prague_n one_o of_o they_o who_o be_v chief_a of_o the_o congregation_n may_v know_v whether_o any_o speech_n be_v make_v of_o it_o and_o if_o there_o be_v not_o his_o majesty_n may_v trust_v to_o his_o ambassador_n who_o in_o all_o cause_n concern_v he_o shall_v be_v favour_v both_o by_o they_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n the_o seven_o day_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n present_v his_o writing_n in_o which_o he_o say_v he_o be_v well_o satisfy_v with_o all_o the_o article_n and_o will_v not_o demand_v any_o thing_n but_o only_o the_o change_n of_o some_o word_n which_o seem_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v superfluous_a or_o that_o they_o may_v be_v expound_v better_a and_o he_o touch_v almost_o all_o thing_n which_o do_v enlarge_v the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n so_o moderate_v the_o word_n that_o the_o alteration_n do_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v substantial_a but_o that_o indeed_o he_o do_v rather_o restrain_v then_o augment_v it_o he_o make_v request_n also_o that_o they_o will_v treat_v of_o the_o conclave_n say_v that_o the_o king_n do_v much_o desire_n it_o as_o also_o that_o the_o part_n concern_v fecular_a prince_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o another_o session_n after_o he_o have_v exhibit_v his_o writing_n he_o desire_v the_o legate_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o voice_n be_v give_v concern_v the_o thing_n propose_v they_o will_v depute_v father_n of_o every_o nation_n to_o collect_v what_o they_o shall_v think_v necessary_a for_o reformation_n of_o their_o country_n that_o all_o may_v be_v determine_v with_o a_o general_a satisfaction_n morone_n answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o that_o they_o can_v not_o consent_v to_o proceed_v otherwise_o then_o they_o have_v do_v hitherto_o in_o other_o matter_n wherein_o many_o thing_n be_v say_v by_o both_o party_n by_o the_o count_n to_o intimate_v the_o council_n be_v in_o servitude_n and_o by_o the_o cardinal_n to_o show_v the_o liberty_n morone_n add_v that_o no_o man_n can_v complain_v that_o he_o be_v hinder_v in_o his_o liberty_n of_o speak_v the_o other_o reply_v that_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o any_o thing_n of_o worth_n have_v be_v do_v by_o they_o and_o do_v not_o forbear_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a murmur_a in_o the_o council_n for_o the_o particular_a congregation_n assemble_v a_o few_o day_n since_o and_o that_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o they_o be_v make_v to_o get_v voice_n the_o legate_n say_v it_o be_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n to_o understand_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n that_o matter_n may_v be_v determine_v with_o union_n the_o count_n reply_v that_o it_o be_v well_o if_o it_o be_v so_o but_o that_o italian_n only_o be_v call_v except_o two_o or_o three_o spaniard_n and_o as_o many_o frenchman_n who_o differ_v from_o other_o of_o their_o nation_n the_o legate_n defend_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v not_o call_v in_o proportion_n because_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o italian_n in_o council_n and_o not_o above_o threescore_o of_o all_o other_o nation_n the_o count_n seem_v to_o be_v satisfy_v and_o be_v part_v say_v to_o his_o prelate_n that_o the_o legate_n have_v begin_v a_o discourse_n to_o show_v that_o esteem_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v of_o nation_n have_v conclude_v it_o show_v that_o they_o have_v ever_o hold_v esteem_n of_o they_o the_o next_o day_n the_o legate_n and_o two_o cardinal_n consult_v about_o the_o advertisment_n of_o the_o ambassador_n and_o how_o to_o amend_v the_o article_n of_o reformation_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o manner_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o speak_v on_o they_o in_o which_o lorraine_n have_v receive_v new_a letter_n from_o france_n and_o order_n that_o both_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o other_o french_a prelate_n shall_v favour_v the_o pope_n affair_n whole_o bend_v to_o satisfy_v the_o legate_n persuade_v they_o not_o to_o suffer_v so_o many_o point_n to_o be_v handle_v at_o once_o but_o to_o divide_v they_o into_o part_n according_a to_o the_o subject_n and_o when_o one_o part_n be_v end_v to_o propose_v another_o and_o to_o hasten_v the_o session_n omit_v all_o the_o thing_n which_o have_v any_o difficulty_n and_o conclude_v those_o only_a in_o which_o all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n will_v agree_v and_o particular_o not_o to_o propose_v in_o the_o beginning_n those_o in_o which_o the_o ambassador_n do_v not_o consent_v the_o eleven_o day_n the_o congregation_n begin_v to_o be_v celebrate_v to_o establish_v the_o anathematism_n and_o decree_n of_o matrimony_n the_o proposition_n of_o the_o frenchman_n be_v handle_v to_o make_v marriage_n void_a contract_v by_o child_n without_o consent_n of_o parent_n in_o who_o power_n they_o be_v and_o the_o first_o that_o give_v voice_n do_v differ_v in_o opinion_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n do_v approve_v it_o allege_v place_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o give_v to_o the_o father_n power_n to_o marry_v their_o child_n example_n of_o marriage_n of_o the_o patriarch_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n add_v the_o imperial_a law_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o the_o code_n make_v by_o christian_a prince_n of_o famous_a memory_n as_o also_o the_o canon_n under_o the_o name_n of_o euaristus_n and_o another_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n produce_v by_o gratian._n and_o he_o relate_v the_o inconvenience_n arise_v herein_o the_o arcbishop_n of_o otranto_n be_v of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o give_v authority_n to_o layman_n over_o the_o sacrament_n and_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o the_o authority_n in_o make_v they_o void_a do_v depend_v on_o the_o paternal_a not_o on_o the_o ecclesiastical_a beside_o it_o will_v be_v a_o decree_n direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o express_o faith_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v leave_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n and_o for_o inconvenience_n it_o will_v cause_v more_o refer_v the_o son_n to_o their_o father_n in_o matter_n of_o conscience_n and_o if_o a_o father_n will_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o marriage_n of_o a_o son_n who_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n he_o will_v be_v infinite_o perplex_v nine_o and_o twenty_o speak_v in_o that_o congregation_n and_o twenty_o be_v of_o opinion_n to_o omit_v that_o matter_n of_o the_o other_o some_o approve_a the_o decree_n so_o general_o and_o some_o restrain_v it_o in_o son_n to_o the_o age_n of_o twenty_o year_n and_o of_o eighteen_o in_o daughter_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o congregation_n the_o venetian_a ambassador_n cause_v a_o church_n the_o venetian_a ambassador_n do_v exhibit_v a_o petition_n concern_v divorce_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n demand_n of_o they_o to_o be_v read_v concern_v the_o anathematism_n of_o divorce_n which_o do_v continue_v in_o substance_n that_o their_o republic_n have_v the_o kingdom_n of_o cyprus_n candie_n corfue_n zante_n and_o cephalonia_n inhabit_v by_o grecian_n who_o have_v from_o all_o antiquity_n use_v to_o put_v away_o their_o wife_n for_o fornication_n &_o take_v another_o for_o which_o rite_n well_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o be_v never_o condemn_v nor_o reprehend_v by_o any_o
as_o few_o prejudicial_a thing_n as_o be_v possible_a all_o which_o he_o do_v refer_v to_o their_o wisdom_n who_o be_v in_o the_o business_n so_o that_o the_o council_n may_v end_v with_o speed_n but_o the_o legate_n have_v together_o with_o some_o of_o the_o prelate_n consider_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o ambassador_n concern_v the_o reformation_n and_o legate_n and_o so_o do_v the_o legate_n at_o their_o instance_n omit_v six_o of_o the_o article_n propose_v and_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o number_n of_o two_o and_o thirty_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o of_o august_n give_v they_o to_o the_o prelate_n to_o be_v discuss_v lorraine_n make_v particular_a congregation_n of_o the_o frenchman_n to_o examine_v they_o which_o do_v please_v the_o legate_n not_o only_o because_o they_o be_v assure_v he_o have_v the_o same_o intention_n as_o they_o have_v but_o because_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o accommodate_v they_o to_o the_o common_a satisfaction_n before_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o general_a congregation_n and_o they_o give_v order_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o otranto_n and_o taranto_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o parma_n to_o assemble_v their_o adherent_n in_o their_o private_a house_n to_o examine_v they_o and_o search_v what_o will_v give_v a_o general_a contentment_n this_o continue_v some_o day_n the_o spaniard_n and_o some_o italian_n who_o be_v not_o call_v murmur_v very_o much_o resolve_v to_o make_v a_o mutiny_n and_o to_o oppose_v the_o archbishop_n of_o otranto_n go_v to_o the_o catholic_a ambassador_n who_o congregation_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n be_v displease_v with_o the_o private_a congregation_n admonish_v he_o and_o say_v he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o write_v to_o the_o king_n those_o thing_n that_o will_v not_o please_v he_o and_o tell_v he_o that_o those_o particular_a congregation_n be_v so_o well_o understand_v by_o all_o prelate_n that_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o give_v his_o majesty_n a_o account_n of_o it_o he_o excuse_v himself_o and_o say_v all_o be_v for_o a_o good_a end_n to_o facilitate_v the_o matter_n and_o to_o provide_v against_o the_o difficulty_n before_o the_o general_a congregation_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o ischia_n come_v just_a then_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o count_n from_o the_o cardinal_n morone_n he_o tell_v he_o the_o same_o that_o those_o private_a congregation_n do_v displease_v he_o and_o that_o his_o opinion_n be_v they_o can_v not_o be_v for_o any_o other_o end_n then_o to_o cause_n difficulty_n and_o to_o omit_v part_n of_o the_o article_n that_o the_o session_n may_v soon_o be_v celebrate_v notwithstanding_o the_o legate_n aim_v more_o to_o satisfy_v the_o prelate_n than_o the_o ambassador_n have_v consider_v on_o the_o thing_n observe_v in_o those_o particular_a congregation_n hold_v they_o for_o good_a advertisement_n and_o do_v alter_v and_o compose_v the_o decree_n according_a to_o they_o but_o as_o they_o be_v about_o to_o give_v they_o forth_o so_o correct_v the_o archbishop_n of_o prague_n upon_o a_o instruction_n new_o bring_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o currier_n from_o the_o emperor_n do_v instant_o desire_v the_o legate_n not_o to_o propose_v the_o reformation_n of_o secular_a prince_n until_o they_o have_v answer_v from_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n and_o afterward_o be_v second_v by_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n the_o legate_n be_v much_o perplex_v herewith_o consider_v that_o france_n first_o and_o now_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v not_o satisfy_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o common_a desire_n of_o all_o the_o father_n be_v that_o the_o reformation_n shall_v be_v make_v all_o together_o whereupon_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o house_n of_o navaggero_n who_o be_v sick_a they_o propose_v whether_o all_o the_o reformation_n shall_v be_v put_v off_o differ_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n and_o some_o article_n of_o the_o other_o reformation_n be_v differ_v or_o only_o that_o part_n which_o concern_v prince_n lorraine_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o only_o this_o shall_v be_v defer_v and_o the_o residue_n propose_v which_o will_v have_v please_v but_o that_o they_o doubt_v they_o shall_v make_v the_o prelate_n afraid_a that_o the_o secular_a reformation_n shall_v be_v whole_o omit_v whereby_o they_o may_v take_v occasion_n to_o exclaim_v both_o private_o and_o in_o the_o public_a congregation_n whereupon_o they_o resolve_v to_o satisfy_v the_o ambassador_n defer_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n and_o that_o the_o prelate_n may_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o to_o defer_v half_a at_o the_o least_o of_o the_o other_o article_n and_o those_o the_o most_o important_a give_v forth_o the_o rest_n as_o they_o have_v correct_v they_o that_o the_o voice_n may_v be_v give_v and_o the_o session_n celebrate_v though_o the_o difficulty_n about_o the_o decree_n of_o clandestine_v marriage_n do_v make_v they_o doubt_v the_o sixth_o of_o september_n one_o and_o twenty_o article_n of_o reformation_n be_v give_v forth_o with_o order_n to_o begin_v the_o congregation_n on_o the_o morrow_n in_o the_o composition_n of_o these_o cardinal_n simoneta_n and_o his_o adherent_n use_v all_o their_o art_n and_o ingeny_n to_o proceed_v with_o such_o a_o temper_n that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n may_v not_o be_v prejudice_v and_o the_o world_n which_o desire_v reformation_n and_o the_o ambassador_n who_o do_v solicit_v it_o satisfy_v and_o which_o be_v of_o most_o importance_n the_o bishop_n content_v for_o be_v desirous_a to_o finish_v the_o council_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v willing_o concur_v the_o bb._n have_v all_o one_o aim_n to_o have_v the_o government_n more_o free_a which_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v obtain_v if_o three_o provision_n be_v make_v one_o that_o parish_n priest_n shall_v depend_v on_o they_o which_o will_v happen_v if_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n with_o cure_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o which_o point_n beside_o other_o difficulty_n do_v touch_v reservation_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o chancery_n which_o be_v to_o discover_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o do_v plain_o appear_v that_o a_o gate_n will_v be_v open_v to_o take_v all_o collation_n from_o they_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o take_v from_o they_o all_o power_n and_o life_n itself_o therefore_o they_o come_v to_o a_o temper_n to_o hold_v the_o reservation_n firm_a but_o to_o make_v the_o bishop_n patron_n to_o give_v the_o cure_n to_o who_o they_o please_v upon_o pretence_n of_o examination_n and_o to_o this_o end_n the_o 18._o article_n be_v frame_v with_o exquisite_a artifice_n as_o every_o one_o may_v see_v which_o with_o a_o fair_a show_n give_v power_n to_o the_o bishop_n to_o bestow_v the_o benefice_n on_o who_o he_o please_v and_o yet_o take_v no_o profit_n from_o the_o court_n another_o point_n be_v of_o exemption_n wherein_o they_o have_v former_o receive_v many_o satisfaction_n and_o now_o the_o 11._o article_n be_v add_v for_o a_o total_a compliment_n the_o exemption_n of_o the_o regular_a order_n remain_v and_o the_o bishop_n be_v in_o hope_n either_o to_o take_v they_o quite_o away_o or_o at_o the_o least_o so_o to_o moderate_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o they_o in_o a_o great_a part_n ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n there_o be_v a_o congregation_n erect_v about_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o regular_o which_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o general_n and_o advice_n of_o other_o religious_a person_n in_o council_n have_v make_v a_o great_a progress_n and_o establish_v good_a decree_n without_o contradiction_n for_o outward_o and_o in_o show_v the_o regulars_n do_v not_o only_o not_o abhor_v but_o desire_v they_o but_o secret_o they_o make_v account_v to_o interpret_v and_o practice_v they_o as_o they_o list_v yea_o they_o think_v it_o good_a to_o have_v a_o strict_a reformation_n in_o writing_n as_o indeed_o all_o regulars_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o regulars_n their_o rule_n be_v one_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v write_v and_o another_o as_o they_o be_v observe_v but_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o moderate_v their_o exemption_n and_o subiect_v they_o at_o least_o in_o part_n to_o the_o bishop_n the_o general_n and_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o order_n do_v mutiny_v all_o together_o and_o treat_v with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n they_o show_v they_o what_o service_n they_o do_v to_o people_n city_n and_o public_a governement_n offer_v that_o if_o any_o abuse_n whatsoever_o be_v among_o they_o it_o shall_v be_v amend_v that_o they_o will_v be_v content_v with_o any_o reformation_n and_o return_v to_o their_o governement_n will_v execute_v it_o with_o more_o severity_n than_o it_o be_v ordain_v but_o to_o subject_v the_o monastery_n to_o the_o ordinary_n be_v absolute_o to_o put_v they_o out_o of_o order_n for_o they_o not_o understand_v a_o regular_a life_n nor_o the_o severity_n
of_o discipline_n wherewith_o it_o be_v maintain_v will_v disorder_v every_o thing_n the_o bishop_n say_v that_o a_o privilege_n be_v ever_o with_o detriment_n and_o derogation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o revocation_n favourable_a reduce_v thing_n to_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o therefore_o to_o take_v they_o away_o be_v not_o to_o innovate_v but_o to_o restore_v thing_n to_o their_o ancient_a state_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o exemption_n of_o the_o regulars_n be_v so_o well_o prescribe_v by_o antiquity_n that_o it_o can_v no_o more_o be_v call_v a_o privilege_n but_o common-law_n that_o when_o the_o monastery_n be_v subject_a to_o bishop_n the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n both_o in_o they_o and_o their_o canon_n be_v so_o well_o govern_v and_o so_o severe_a that_o it_o merit_v to_o superintend_v over_o all_o that_o if_o they_o will_v restore_v antiquity_n they_o must_v do_v it_o in_o all_o part_n that_o if_o bishop_n will_v return_v to_o be_v as_o they_o be_v in_o those_o time_n monastery_n may_v be_v subject_v to_o they_o now_o as_o than_o they_o be_v but_o it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o they_o shall_v demand_v the_o superintendency_n over_o monastery_n before_o they_o make_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o as_o be_v necessary_a the_o rector_n of_o a_o regular_a life_n shall_v be_v the_o regulars_n be_v favour_v by_o the_o ambassador_n and_o by_o the_o legate_n for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o court_n which_o will_v have_v lose_v a_o great_a instrument_n if_o they_o have_v not_o depend_v whole_o on_o it_o and_o they_o want_v not_o the_o favour_n of_o some_o prelate_n who_o confess_v their_o reason_n be_v good_a this_o contention_n continue_v certain_a day_n but_o do_v abate_v by_o little_a and_o little_a because_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v move_v it_o do_v discover_v every_o day_n more_o difficulty_n in_o it_o the_o three_o article_n be_v concern_v the_o impediment_n which_o bishop_n receive_v from_o secular_a magistrate_n who_o to_o preserve_v the_o temporal_a power_n do_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o exercise_v that_o absolute_a dominion_n which_o they_o will_v not_o only_o over_o the_o clergy_n but_o over_o the_o people_n to_o this_o effect_n the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n be_v make_v whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v already_o and_o will_v hereafter_o more_o at_o large_a this_o part_n and_o other_o which_o cohere_v with_o it_o be_v defer_v until_o another_o session_n because_o it_o be_v think_v a_o difficult_a matter_n and_o that_o it_o will_v have_v much_o prolong_v the_o business_n but_o the_o bishop_n do_v expound_v this_o delay_n as_o if_o they_o have_v mean_v to_o have_v do_v nothing_o in_o it_o and_o they_o complain_v that_o purpose_v to_o reform_v the_o whole_a church_n the_o clergy_n only_o shall_v be_v reform_v the_o legate_n use_v all_o mean_n to_o appease_v they_o show_v that_o not_o this_o only_o be_v defer_v but_o other_o matter_n also_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v handle_v promise_v that_o the_o delay_n be_v only_o to_o proceed_v with_o more_o maturity_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v certain_o be_v discuss_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o facilitate_v the_o dispatch_n of_o that_o session_n which_o shall_v be_v a_o preparatorie_n for_o the_o other_o in_o which_o all_o that_o remain_v shall_v be_v handle_v the_o legate_n be_v all_o bent_n to_o hold_v the_o session_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v think_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o quick_a dispatch_n of_o the_o council_n for_o which_o the_o pope_n by_o every_o ordinary_a currier_n and_o sometime_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a do_v solicit_v they_o that_o he_o may_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n from_o it_o in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o seven_o of_o september_n friar_n martinus_n roias_n ambassador_n for_o the_o hospitalary_n of_o s._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n now_o call_v knight_n of_o malta_n be_v receive_v which_o be_v defer_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a opposition_n of_o some_o principal_a bishop_n that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v receive_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o knight_n of_o malta_n be_v receive_v place_n above_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o a_o religion_n of_o friar_n shall_v precede_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o so_o many_o prelate_n but_o final_o the_o matter_n be_v accord_v and_o publish_v in_o congregation_n that_o place_n be_v give_v he_o among_o the_o ambassador_n without_o prejudice_n of_o the_o prelate_n who_o pretend_v precedence_n the_o ambassador_n make_v a_o oration_n and_o excuse_v their_o grand_a master_n who_o do_v not_o send_v to_o trent_n soon_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o rumour_n of_o the_o turkish_a armada_n and_o oration_n his_o oration_n of_o the_o incommodity_n they_o receive_v by_o dragut_n the_o pirate_n he_o exhort_v the_o father_n to_o remedy_v the_o present_a evil_n which_o also_o do_v not_o a_o little_a touch_n the_o friar_n of_o their_o religion_n who_o be_v not_o idle_a member_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n he_o persuade_v the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n offer_v that_o their_o grand_a master_n and_o society_n will_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o patronage_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o cause_n spend_v not_o their_o good_n only_o but_o their_o life_n and_o blood_n he_o relate_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o be_v forty_o year_n before_o godfrey_n do_v go_v to_o the_o conquest_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n the_o heroical_a work_n do_v by_o their_o ancestor_n the_o like_a whereof_o they_o can_v not_o perform_v now_o because_o they_o be_v spoil_v of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o land_n and_o possession_n that_o they_o be_v a_o barracado_fw-it of_o sicily_n and_o italy_n against_o the_o barbarian_n therefore_o he_o pray_v the_o father_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o antiquity_n nobility_n merit_n and_o danger_n of_o that_o society_n and_o to_o cause_v their_o possession_n and_o commendaes_n usurp_v from_o they_o to_o be_v restore_v and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v decree_v by_o the_o council_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v confer_v upon_o none_o but_o of_o their_o order_n ratify_v the_o immunity_n and_o privilege_n thereof_o the_o speaker_n receive_v the_o excuse_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v have_v that_o consideration_n as_o his_o demand_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o commendaes_n and_o privilege_n of_o that_o religion_n do_v deserve_v but_o howsoever_o he_o make_v the_o same_o instance_n afterward_o to_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n his_o holiness_n will_v never_o answer_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o only_o to_o make_v provision_n herein_o and_o that_o he_o will_v do_v it_o in_o time_n convenient_a in_o that_o congregation_n and_o those_o that_o follow_v voice_n be_v give_v concern_v the_o 21_o article_n of_o reformation_n propose_v in_o which_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o great_a moment_n yet_o for_o the_o order_n of_o the_o story_n and_o declaration_n of_o many_o thing_n which_o happen_v afterward_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o principal_a in_o the_o first_o which_o be_v of_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n to_o provide_v the_o most_o worthy_a the_o difficulty_n former_o move_v do_v return_v that_o it_o will_v bind_v very_o strait_o the_o hand_n as_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o collation_n so_o of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o nomination_n if_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o nominate_v one_o person_n only_o and_o the_o great_a part_n be_v of_o opinion_n to_o remove_v the_o comparative_a and_o to_o say_v only_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o provide_v a_o worthy_a person_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n some_o consider_v that_o the_o father_n have_v always_o use_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n that_o prefer_v in_o the_o p_o 〈…〉_o mo_z 〈…〉_o pr._n 〈…〉_o the_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d worthy_a 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v prefer_v the_o most_o worthy_a shall_v be_v prefer_v and_o allege_v the_o reason_n that_o he_o can_v be_v without_o blame_n who_o prefer_v the_o least_o worthy_a though_o fit_a before_o a_o other_o of_o more_o desert_n there_o be_v much_o disputation_n herein_o but_o a_o mean_n be_v find_v to_o compose_v all_o leave_v in_o show_n the_o word_n more_o worthy_a and_o speak_v first_o in_o positive_a term_n and_o pass_v afterward_o to_o comparative_n that_o the_o provision_n may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v free_a and_o so_o that_o form_n be_v use_v which_o be_v now_o in_o print_n that_o be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n to_o provide_v good_a and_o fit_a pastor_n and_o that_o he_o do_v mortal_o sin_n who_o do_v not_o prefer_v the_o more_o worthy_a and_o more_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n leave_v a_o natural_a exposition_n to_o these_o word_n that_o many_o be_v more_o worthy_a and_o more_o profitable_a in_o respect_n of_o other_o who_o be_v less_o in_o
which_o compass_n the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o provide_v have_v a_o large_a field_n in_o the_o three_o article_n there_o be_v some_o difficulty_n about_o the_o visitation_n of_o archbishop_n these_o allege_v the_o canon_n and_o ancient_a custom_n that_o the_o suffragans_fw-la do_v swear_v obedience_n to_o the_o metropolitan_o and_o be_v whole_o subject_a to_o their_o visitation_n correction_n and_o government_n and_o will_v not_o consent_v that_o their_o authority_n shall_v be_v prejudice_v and_o among_o these_o the_o patriarch_n of_o venice_n be_v exceed_v warm_a on_o the_o contrary_a the_o bishop_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n labour_v to_o maintain_v the_o custom_n by_o which_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o authority_n but_o in_o name_n only_o but_o the_o number_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v great_a and_o of_o the_o archbishop_n small_a and_o the_o legate_n and_o papalin_n favour_v those_o that_o these_o may_v not_o by_o grant_v authority_n and_o reputation_n by_o their_o subjection_n exempt_v themselves_o more_o from_o subjection_n to_o the_o court_n they_o will_v obtain_v nothing_o but_o one_o word_n only_o of_o satisfaction_n that_o be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o visit_v when_o there_o be_v cause_n approve_v by_o the_o provincial_a council_n whereof_o the_o archbishop_n do_v complain_v and_o say_v it_o be_v just_a nothing_o for_o there_o be_v one_o archbishop_n in_o the_o provincial_a council_n and_o many_o bishop_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o cause_n will_v never_o be_v approve_v the_o sixth_o article_n be_v concern_v the_o exemption_n of_o chapter_n of_o cathedral_n from_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o which_o the_o spanish_a bishop_n and_z in_o contemplation_n of_o they_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n have_v great_a interest_n many_o restriction_n &_o ampliation_n be_v make_v but_o not_o such_o as_o do_v content_v the_o prelate_n howsoever_o they_o be_v often_o change_v and_o in_o the_o end_n defer_v until_o another_o session_n as_o shall_v be_v say_v the_o thirteen_o article_n concern_v pension_n speak_v general_o that_o no_o benefice_n shall_v be_v burden_a with_o great_a pension_n then_o of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o fruit_n or_o of_o their_o value_n conformeable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v use_v when_o the_o pension_n begin_v this_o seem_v 〈◊〉_d convenient_a to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n because_o there_o be_v some_o very_a rich_a benefice_n which_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v burden_a if_o they_o shall_v pay_v two_o three_o and_o other_o so_o poor_a that_o they_o can_v bear_v any_o pension_n at_o all_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o just_a distribution_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o prohibit_v that_o bishopriques_n of_o a_o thousand_o crown_n and_o benefice_n of_o a_o hundred_o shall_v be_v burden_a and_o concern_v the_o other_o to_o say_v nothing_o this_o opinion_n prevail_v to_o the_o great_a content_n of_o the_o legate_n and_o papalin_n for_o the_o absolute_a power_n which_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o good_a benefice_n those_o who_o demand_v a_o moderation_n of_o the_o pension_n of_o reservation_n of_o fruit_n former_o impose_v of_o access_n and_o regress_n make_v many_o and_o long_a discourse_n but_o the_o difficulty_n compel_v every_o one_o to_o bury_v all_o in_o silence_n for_o the_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n which_o be_v foresee_v will_v ensue_v for_o all_o will_v have_v excuse_v themselnes_n that_o they_o will_v not_o resign_v their_o benefice_n without_o those_o condition_n and_o those_o especial_o who_o have_v pay_v composition_n to_o the_o chamber_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o such_o grace_n will_v have_v complain_v that_o the_o grace_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o the_o money_n not_o restore_v the_o restitution_n whereof_o be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a final_o every_o one_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o future_a without_o think_v of_o that_o which_o be_v past_a the_o fourteen_o article_n which_o do_v detest_v and_o forbid_v all_o payment_n of_o part_n of_o the_o fruit_n for_o the_o collation_n provision_n or_o possession_n do_v much_o please_v the_o french_a man_n they_o say_v the_o payment_n of_o annat_n be_v take_v away_o by_o those_o word_n and_o indeed_o he_o that_o do_v consider_v and_o examine_v they_o can_v give_v they_o any_o other_o sense_n howsoever_o the_o event_n have_v show_v that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o understand_v in_o rome_n in_o the_o seventeenth_o in_o which_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n be_v forbid_v and_o dualtie_n grant_v when_o one_o be_v not_o sufficient_a some_o desire_v a_o addition_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v distant_a above_o a_o day_n journey_n that_o the_o incumbent_n may_v make_v part_n of_o his_o residence_n in_o each_o of_o they_o but_o they_o can_v not_o obtain_v it_o neither_o do_v they_o much_o labour_n foresee_v that_o that_o addition_n as_o also_o the_o whole_a article_n will_v not_o be_v execute_v but_o against_o those_o of_o the_o poor_a sort_n only_o the_o eighteen_o howsoever_o it_o do_v please_v in_o that_o it_o do_v restore_v in_o effect_n the_o provision_n of_o benefice_n with_o cure_n to_o bishop_n yet_o the_o frenchman_n do_v oppose_v against_o the_o form_n of_o the_o examination_n because_o it_o do_v seem_v to_o bind_v the_o bishop_n hand_n to_o straight_o their_o reason_n be_v that_o by_o that_o concourse_n too_o open_a and_o to_o public_a a_o way_n be_v give_v to_o ambition_n that_o antiquity_n make_v profession_n to_o give_v benefice_n to_o he_o that_o refuse_v they_o whereas_o by_o this_o new_a manner_n they_o will_v not_o only_o procure_v they_o but_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o they_o in_o the_o nineteenth_o the_o bishop_n of_o conimbria_n speak_v at_o large_a against_o the_o expectative_n or_o aduowsons_n because_o they_o do_v make_v the_o incumbent_n death_n to_o be_v desire_v and_o sometime_o procure_v and_o for_o mental_a reservation_n he_o say_v they_o be_v fraud_n and_o near_a theft_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o leave_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o whole_a collation_n of_o all_o benefice_n then_o to_o use_v such_o unworthy_a artifices_fw-la as_o be_v to_o give_v virtue_n to_o a_o secret_a thought_n not_o publish_v and_o to_o leave_v a_o suspicion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o reservation_n in_o the_o mind_n but_o a_o invention_n after_o the_o fact_n but_o simoneta_n cross_v his_o discourse_n say_v that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o reprehend_v abuse_n for_o which_o no_o provision_n be_v determine_v that_o it_o may_v be_v procure_v but_o see_v a_o common_a disposition_n to_o the_o remedy_n and_o the_o decree_n compose_v already_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o establish_v it_o by_o consent_v without_o multiply_a word_n of_o reprehension_n ambitious_o when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n the_o eleven_o of_o september_n the_o french_a ambassador_n receive_v letter_n from_o the_o king_n of_o the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o of_o august_n in_o which_o he_o signify_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o article_n impart_v to_o they_o by_o the_o legate_n and_o do_v see_v that_o matter_n be_v far_o from_o the_o hope_n he_o conceive_v because_o to_o establish_v these_o be_v to_o pare_v the_o king_n nail_n and_o to_o make_v those_o of_o the_o ecclesiastique_n prince_n the_o french_a king_n write_v to_o trent_n concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n long_o which_o because_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v he_o command_v to_o represent_v to_o the_o father_n with_o wisdom_n dexterity_n and_o courage_n that_o as_o every_o prince_n so_o long_o as_o the_o council_n do_v proceed_v aright_o be_v bind_v to_o favour_v it_o with_o all_o heat_n of_o zeal_n so_o to_o cover_v the_o sore_n which_o cause_v the_o present_a evil_n and_o to_o make_v a_o great_a with_o the_o prejudice_n of_o king_n be_v far_o from_o that_o which_o be_v expect_v that_o he_o see_v how_o light_o they_o pass_v over_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o only_o have_v give_v the_o scandal_n to_o those_o that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o how_o they_o assume_v authority_n to_o take_v away_o the_o right_n and_o prerogative_n of_o king_n to_o break_v their_o constitution_n and_o custom_n prescribe_v by_o time_n out_o of_o mind_n to_o anathematise_v and_o excommunicate_v king_n and_o prince_n all_o tend_v to_o sow_v disobedience_n sedition_n and_o rebellion_n of_o subject_n against_o their_o sovereign_n whereas_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o council_n extend_v only_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n without_o touch_v matter_n of_o state_n or_o of_o secular_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v whole_o distinct_a from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o that_o always_o when_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n have_v presume_v to_o handle_v such_o thing_n king_n and_o prince_n have_v
to_o propose_v to_o the_o pope_n a_o conference_n between_o his_o holiness_n the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o king_n her_o son_n in_o who_o train_n herself_o will_v be_v the_o proposition_n do_v not_o displease_v the_o pope_n because_o it_o may_v serve_v he_o to_o finish_v the_o council_n but_o he_o think_v the_o execution_n be_v impossible_a and_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v nuncij_fw-la to_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o this_o end_n and_o appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o vintimiglia_n for_o spain_n who_o he_o therefore_o recall_v from_o trent_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o ischia_n for_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n he_o make_v excessive_a demonstration_n of_o honour_n lodge_v he_o in_o the_o palace_n a_o thing_n unusual_a go_v public_o to_o visit_v rome_n how_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v treat_v in_o rome_n he_o in_o his_o lodging_n their_o discourse_n be_v partly_o about_o the_o conference_n though_o the_o cardinal_n do_v not_o think_v it_o feasable_a they_o treat_v about_o the_o sale_n of_o a_o 100000._o crown_n which_o whether_o the_o cardinal_n do_v promote_v or_o draw_v back_o be_v not_o discover_v but_o the_o pope_n have_v upon_o a_o new_a instance_n make_v by_o the_o french_a ambassador_n answer_v that_o he_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n many_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o excuse_n invent_v by_o lorraine_n but_o the_o principal_a business_n be_v about_o finish_v the_o synod_n which_o the_o pope_n think_v to_o be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o know_v to_o be_v most_o difficult_a wherein_o there_o be_v great_a confidence_n between_o they_o for_o the_o cardinal_n discover_v to_o he_o that_o his_o interest_n be_v turn_v the_o same_o way_n and_o that_o since_o the_o death_n of_o his_o brother_n he_o see_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o maintain_v religion_n in_o france_n and_o his_o house_n but_o his_o conjunction_n with_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o pope_n promise_v to_o make_v cardinal_n at_o his_o instance_n and_o give_v he_o such_o word_n as_o show_v a_o intention_n to_o make_v he_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o popedom_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v more_o credit_n he_o make_v show_v that_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o cardinal_n be_v profitable_a for_o the_o end_n he_o have_v in_o aim_v at_o some_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o discourse_n to_o every_o one_o be_v we_o must_v shut_v up_o the_o council_n provide_v money_n and_o afterward_o that_o will_v happen_v which_o shall_v please_v god._n the_o pope_n tell_v the_o cardinal_n that_o as_o often_o as_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o discord_n and_o delay_n which_o some_o do_v plot_n he_o think_v to_o suspend_v the_o council_n but_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o scandal_n which_o the_o world_n will_v take_v which_o know_v not_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o sometime_o he_o think_v this_o the_o great_a evil_n that_o can_v occur_v and_o sometime_o judge_v it_o less_o than_o the_o danger_n in_o which_o his_o authority_n be_v which_o be_v the_o mark_n at_o which_o the_o prince_n bishop_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n do_v shoot_v but_o final_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o lay_v aside_o all_o respect_n and_o come_v to_o this_o resolution_n the_o cardinal_n dissuade_v he_o show_v that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o medicine_n to_o cure_v the_o evil_a but_o to_o defer_v it_o only_o with_o great_a danger_n because_o he_o will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n have_v new_a demand_n to_o restore_v it_o and_o plot_n will_v be_v lay_v by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o he_o and_o that_o to_o suspend_v be_v as_o difficult_a as_o to_o finish_v it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o allege_v cause_n for_o this_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v thing_n to_o the_o conclusion_n and_o so_o to_o end_v whereas_o the_o suspension_n do_v require_v a_o allegation_n of_o the_o cause_n whereof_o every_o one_o will_v speak_v his_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v more_o honourable_a to_o finish_v then_o to_o suspend_v it_o and_o he_o use_v other_o reason_n which_o make_v the_o pope_n know_v that_o his_o counsel_n be_v good_a and_o faithful_a and_o afterward_o he_o advise_v he_o to_o deal_v plain_o with_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n therefore_o call_v the_o ambassador_n of_o that_o king_n he_o complain_v in_o grievous_a term_n say_v that_o he_o have_v call_v the_o council_n upon_o hope_n and_o promise_n that_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o papacy_n will_v have_v be_v favour_v by_o his_o majesty_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v all_o imaginable_a satisfaction_n and_o will_v give_v he_o more_o according_a to_o his_o demand_n if_o the_o impediment_n cause_v by_o the_o council_n be_v take_v away_o that_o he_o have_v not_o demand_v any_o favour_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o minister_n but_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o public_a good_a and_o therein_o be_v ill_o use_v though_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o loss_n to_o the_o king_n than_o a_o benefit_n therefore_o he_o be_v force_v to_o hold_v esteem_n of_o he_o by_o who_o he_o be_v esteem_v and_o to_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o those_o that_o will_v assist_v he_o and_o he_o dispatch_v also_o a_o currier_n to_o the_o king_n with_o a_o letter_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n complain_v of_o the_o office_n do_v by_o his_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n in_o trent_n contrary_a to_o his_o minister_n in_o rome_n each_o party_n say_v he_o do_v the_o commission_n of_o his_o majesty_n he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v convenient_a for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o of_o his_o majesty_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v end_v and_o in_o conclusion_n he_o desire_v he_o to_o declare_v himself_o plain_o whether_o he_o will_v assist_v he_o herein_o or_o not_o the_o cardinal_n do_v counsel_v he_o also_o not_o to_o be_v averse_a from_o grant_v to_o the_o emperor_n the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n by_o which_o mean_v he_o shall_v gain_v both_o he_o and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n not_o to_o consent_v only_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n but_o to_o be_v favourable_a and_o to_o promote_v it_o he_o tell_v he_o likewise_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o omit_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n because_o it_o will_v prolong_v the_o business_n more_o than_o any_o thing_n beside_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o lorraine_n nine_o french_a bishop_n part_v from_o trent_n and_o return_v home_o so_o that_o there_o remain_v but_o eight_o beside_o six_o who_o go_v with_o the_o cardinal_n to_o rome_n this_o departure_n cause_v a_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v recall_v and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o purpose_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o hugonot_n to_o recall_v the_o other_o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n approach_v no_o french_a man_n may_v be_v present_a when_o they_o shall_v be_v anathematise_v the_o legate_n to_o facilitate_v the_o difficulty_n of_o secret_a marriage_n cause_v the_o divine_n who_o be_v maintainer_n and_o opposer_n of_o it_o to_o make_v a_o public_a disputation_n this_o be_v never_o do_v before_o in_o any_o occurrence_n and_o then_o do_v so_o little_a good_a that_o every_o one_o be_v more_o confirm_v in_o his_o own_o opinion_n after_o this_o to_o reassume_v the_o congregation_n and_o to_o handle_v the_o reformation_n they_o give_v forth_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o article_n the_o last_o of_o which_o be_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n be_v force_v thereunto_o by_o the_o mutiny_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o which_o matter_n concern_v prince_n have_v often_o make_v mention_n and_o now_o be_v come_v to_o a_o place_n in_o which_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o recite_v it_o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o follow_v it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o it_o do_v contain_v a_o propheme_n with_o thirteen_o article_n and_o a_o very_a pregnant_a epilogue_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n beside_o the_o thing_n constitute_v concern_v ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o correct_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o secular_o bring_v in_o against_o the_o immunity_n of_o the_o church_n hope_v that_o the_o prince_n will_v be_v content_a and_o cause_v due_a obedience_n to_o be_v render_v to_o the_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v admonish_v they_o to_o cause_v their_o magistrate_n officer_n and_o temporal_a lord_n to_o yield_v that_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o council_n which_o themselves_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v and_o for_o facilitation_n hereof_o it_o do_v renew_v some_o thing_n decree_v by_o the_o holy_a canon_n and_o imperial_a prince_n the_o article_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n law_n in_o favour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a immunity_n which_o
ought_v to_o be_v observe_v upon_o pain_n of_o anathema_n 1._o that_o ecclesiastical_a person_n may_v not_o be_v judge_v in_o a_o secular_a court_n howsoever_o there_o may_v be_v doubt_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o clerkeship_n or_o themselves_o consent_v or_o have_v renounce_v the_o thing_n obtain_v or_o for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o though_o under_o pretence_n of_o public_a utility_n or_o service_n of_o the_o king_n nor_o shall_v be_v proceed_v against_o there_o in_o cause_n of_o murder_n if_o it_o be_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o a_o murder_n and_o notorious_o know_v nor_o in_o other_o case_n permit_v by_o the_o law_n without_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o law_n go_v before_o 2._o that_o in_o cause_n spiritual_a of_o matrimony_n heresy_n patronage_n beneficial_a civil_a criminal_a and_o mix_v belong_v in_o what_o manner_n soever_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n as_o well_o over_o person_n as_o over_o good_n tithe_n fourth_n and_o other_o portion_n appertain_v to_o the_o church_n or_o over_o beneficial_a patrimony_n ecclesiastical_a fee_n temporal_a jurisdiction_n of_o church_n the_o temporal_a judge_n shall_v not_o meddle_v neither_o in_o the_o petitorie_a nor_o in_o the_o possessory_a take_v away_o all_o appeal_n upon_o pretence_n of_o justice_n deny_v or_o as_o from_o a_o abuse_n or_o because_o the_o thing_n obtain_v be_v renounce_v and_o those_o who_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n in_o the_o cause_n aforesaid_a shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v of_o their_o right_n belong_v unto_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o shall_v be_v observe_v also_o in_o cause_n depend_v in_o what_o instance_n soever_o 3._o that_o the_o secular_o shall_v not_o appoint_v judge_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a though_o they_o have_v apostolic_a authority_n or_o a_o custom_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n and_o the_o clerk_n who_o shall_v receive_v such_o office_n from_o the_o lake_n though_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o privilege_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v suspend_v from_o their_o order_n deprive_v of_o their_o benefice_n and_o office_n and_o make_v uncapable_a of_o they_o 4._o that_o the_o secular_a shall_v not_o command_v the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n not_o to_o excommunicate_v without_o licence_n or_o to_o revoke_v or_o suspend_v the_o excommunication_n denounce_v nor_o forbid_v he_o to_o examine_v cite_v and_o condemn_v or_o to_o have_v sergeant_n or_o minister_n for_o execution_n 5._o that_o neither_o the_o emperor_n king_n nor_o any_o prince_n whatsoever_o shall_v make_v edict_n or_o constitution_n in_o what_o manner_n soever_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n or_o person_n nor_o meddle_v with_o their_o person_n cause_n jurisdiction_n or_o tribunal_n no_o not_o in_o the_o inquisition_n but_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o afford_v the_o seculat_v arm_n to_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n 6._o that_o the_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o eccleisastic_n though_o with_o mere_a and_o mix_a power_n shall_v not_o be_v disturb_v nor_o their_o subject_n draw_v to_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n in_o cause_n temporal_a 7._o that_o no_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n shall_v promise_v by_o brief_a or_o other_o writing_n or_o give_v hope_n to_o any_o to_o have_v a_o benefice_n within_o their_o dominion_n nor_o procure_v it_o from_o the_o prelate_n or_o chapter_n of_o regulars_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v obtain_v it_o by_o that_o mean_n shall_v be_v deprive_v and_o yncapeable_a 8._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o benefice_n vacant_a under_o pretence_n of_o custody_n or_o patronage_n or_o protection_n or_o of_o withstand_v discord_n nor_o shall_v place_v there_o either_o bailiff_n or_o vicar_n and_o the_o secular_o who_o shall_v accept_v such_o office_n and_o custody_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o the_o clerk_n suspend_v from_o their_o order_n and_o deprive_v of_o their_o benefice_n 9_o that_o the_o eccleisastic_n shall_v not_o be_v force_v to_o pay_v tax_n gabel_n eithe_n passage_n subsidy_n though_o in_o the_o name_n of_o gift_n or_o loan_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n good_n and_o of_o their_o patrimonial_a except_o in_o province_n where_o by_o ancient_a custom_n the_o eccleisastic_n themselves_o do_v assist_v in_o public_a parliament_n to_o impose_v subsidy_n both_o upon_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o clergy_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o infidel_n or_o for_o other_o urgent_a necessity_n 10._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a good_n mooveable_a or_o immooveable_a vassallage_n ten_o or_o other_o right_n nor_o in_o the_o good_n of_o community_n or_o private_a man_n over_o which_o the_o church_n have_v any_o right_n nor_o shall_v rend_v out_o the_o depasture_v or_o herbage_n which_o grow_v in_o the_o land_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n 11_o that_o the_o letter_n sentence_n and_o citation_n of_o judge_n ecclesiastical_a especial_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v exhibit_v shall_v be_v intimate_v without_o exception_n publish_v and_o execute_v neither_o shall_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o require_v consent_n or_o licence_n which_o be_v call_v exequatur_fw-la or_o placet_fw-la or_o by_o any_o other_o name_n either_o for_o this_o or_o for_o take_v possession_n of_o benefice_n though_o upon_o pretence_n of_o withstand_v falsehood_n and_o violence_n except_o in_o fortress_n and_o those_o benefice_n in_o which_o prince_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o temporality_n and_o in_o case_n there_o shall_v be_v doubt_n of_o falsity_n or_o of_o some_o great_a scandal_n or_o tumult_n the_o bishop_n as_o the_o pope_n delegate_v shall_v constitute_v what_o he_o think_v needful_a 12._o that_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n shall_v not_o lodge_v their_o officer_n servant_n soldier_n horse_n or_o dog_n in_o the_o house_n or_o monastery_n of_o the_o eccleisastic_n nor_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o for_o their_o food_n or_o passage_n 13._o and_o if_o any_o kingdom_n province_n or_o place_n shall_v pretend_v not_o to_o be_v bind_v to_o any_o of_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a by_o virtue_n of_o privilege_n from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n which_o be_v in_o actual_a use_n the_o privilege_n shall_v be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o pope_n within_o a_o year_n after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n which_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o he_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o province_n and_o in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o exhibit_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n they_o shall_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o for_o the_o epilogue_n there_o be_v a_o ad_fw-la 〈…〉_o tion_n to_o all_o prinde_v to_o have_v in_o veneration_n the_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o clergy_n as_o peculiar_a to_o god_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v offend_v by_o other_o renew_v all_o the_o constitution_n of_o pope_n and_o holy_a canon_n in_o favour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a immunity_n command_v under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n that_o neither_o direct_o nor_o indirect_o under_o any_o pre●ence_n whatsoever_o any_o thing_n be_v constitute_v or_o execute_v against_o the_o person_n or_o good_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o against_o their_o liberty_n any_o privilege_n or_o exemption_n though_o immemoriall_n notwithstanding_o and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v first_o impart_v to_o the_o ambassador_n and_o by_o each_o of_o they_o send_v to_o their_o prince_n whereupon_o the_o french_a king_n give_v the_o order_n to_o his_o ambassador_n before_o mention_v and_o the_o emperor_n have_v see_v they_o write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n morone_n that_o he_o can_v not_o possible_o assent_v either_o as_o emperor_n emperor_n be_v distasteful_a to_o the_o emperor_n or_o as_o archduke_n that_o they_o shall_v speak_v in_o council_n of_o reform_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o prince_n nor_o to_o take_v from_o they_o authority_n to_o receive_v assistance_n and_o contribution_n from_o the_o clergy_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o all_o the_o former_a evil_n do_v arise_v from_o the_o oppression_n attempt_v by_o the_o eccleisastic_n against_o people_n and_o prince_n that_o they_o shall_v beware_v not_o to_o provoke_v they_o more_o and_o cause_n great_a inconvenience_n to_o arise_v after_o lorraine_n be_v depart_v the_o french_a ambassador_n put_v their_o protestation_n in_o order_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o if_o need_n be_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o of_o september_n one_o of_o the_o father_n make_v a_o long_a speech_n to_o show_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o deformation_n proceed_v from_o prince_n that_o they_o have_v more_o need_n of_o reformation_n that_o the_o article_n be_v already_o in_o order_n and_o be_v now_o time_n to_o propose_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o vanish_v to_o nothing_o by_o delay_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n make_v a_o long_a querulous_a ferrieres_n the_o speech_n of_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n oration_n or_o as_o the_o frenchman_n say_v a_o complaint_n the_o content_n whereof_o in_o the_o
principal_a point_n be_v that_o they_o may_v say_v to_o the_o father_n as_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v to_o the_o priest_n ought_v we_o also_o to_o continue_v fast_v &_o lament_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o 150._o year_n part_n since_o the_o most_o christian_a king_n have_v demand_v of_o the_o pope_n a_o reformation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n that_o for_o this_o end_n only_o they_o have_v send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o constance_n basil_n and_o the_o lateran_n to_o the_o first_o of_o trent_n &_o final_o to_o this_o second_o what_o their_o demand_n be_v john_n gerson_n ambassador_n in_o that_o of_o constance_n the_o oration_n of_o petrus_n danesius_n ambassador_n in_o the_o first_o of_o trent_n of_o guido_n faber_n and_o of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n in_o this_o second_o do_v testify_v in_o which_o nothing_o be_v demand_v but_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o notwithstanding_o this_o they_o must_v still_o fast_o and_o lament_v not_o seventie_o year_n but_o two_o hundred_o and_o god_n grant_v they_o be_v not_o three_o hundred_o and_o many_o more_o and_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o satisfaction_n have_v be_v give_v they_o by_o decree_n and_o anathematism_n they_o do_v not_o think_v that_o this_o be_v to_o satisfy_v to_o give_v one_o thing_n in_o payment_n for_o another_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o a_o great_a bundle_n of_o reformation_n propose_v the_o month_n before_o they_o have_v speak_v their_o opinion_n concern_v that_o and_o send_v it_o to_o the_o king_n who_o have_v answer_v that_o he_o see_v few_o thing_n in_o it_o befit_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n but_o many_o thing_n contrary_a that_o that_o be_v not_o the_o plaster_n of_o isaias_n to_o heal_v the_o wound_n but_o of_o ezekiel_n to_o make_v it_o raw_a though_o heal_v before_o that_o these_o addition_n of_o excommunicate_v and_o anathematise_v prince_n be_v without_o example_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o do_v make_v a_o way_n to_o rebellion_n and_o all_o the_o article_n concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v no_o aim_n but_o to_o take_v away_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n and_o offend_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o most_o christian_a king_n who_o by_o the_o example_n of_o constantine_n justinian_n and_o other_o emperor_n have_v make_v many_o ecclesiastical_a law_n which_o have_v not_o only_o not_o displease_v the_o pope_n but_o they_o have_v insert_v some_o of_o they_o in_o their_o decree_n and_o judge_v charles_n the_o great_a and_z lewis_z the_o nine_o principal_a author_n of_o they_o worthy_a of_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n he_o add_v taht_v the_o bishop_n have_v with_o they_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o france_n not_o only_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a or_o concordate_v but_o four_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o before_o the_o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n and_o that_o these_o law_n have_v be_v defend_v and_o renew_v by_o the_o late_a king_n since_o that_o the_o decretal_n substitute_v in_o place_n of_o they_o have_v derogate_a from_o they_o in_o the_o time_n follow_v that_o the_o king_n be_v now_o of_o age_n will_v reduce_v those_o law_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n into_o observation_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o the_o ancient_a decree_n of_o pope_n nor_o to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a he_o say_v moreover_o that_o those_o law_n do_v not_o prohibit_v bishop_n to_o reside_v all_o the_o year_n and_o to_o preach_v every_o day_n not_o only_o nine_o month_n and_o in_o the_o feast_n as_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o last_o session_n nor_o forbid_v they_o to_o live_v in_o sobriety_n and_o piety_n and_o have_v the_o use_n only_o and_o not_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o revenue_n to_o distribute_v they_o or_o rather_o to_o render_v they_o to_o the_o poor_a who_o be_v owner_n of_o they_o and_o he_o proceed_v in_o name_v other_o thing_n of_o the_o council_n with_o the_o like_a ironical_a manner_n that_o he_o seem_v to_o jest_v at_o they_o he_o add_v that_o the_o power_n give_v by_o god_n to_o the_o king_n the_o law_n of_o france_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n have_v always_o forbid_v pension_n resignation_n in_o favour_n or_o with_o regress_n plurality_n of_o benefice_n annat_n prevention_n and_o to_o litigate_v for_o the_o possessory_a before_o any_o but_o the_o king_n judge_n or_o for_o the_o propriety_n or_o other_o cause_n civil_a or_o criminal_a out_o of_o france_n and_o forbid_v also_o the_o hinder_v of_o appeal_n as_o from_o abuse_n or_o to_o hinder_v that_o the_o king_n founder_n and_o patron_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o france_n may_v not_o make_v use_n of_o the_o good_n and_o revenue_n though_o ecclesiastical_a of_o his_o subject_n for_o instant_n and_o urgent_a necessity_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n he_o say_v afterward_o that_o the_o king_n marvel_v at_o two_o thing_n one_o that_o they_o the_o father_n adorn_v with_o so_o great_a ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n assemble_v only_o to_o restore_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n not_o regard_v this_o shall_v bind_v themselves_o to_o reform_v those_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o obey_v though_o they_o be_v stiffnecked_a another_o that_o they_o shall_v think_v they_o can_v and_o aught_o without_o any_o admonition_n excommunicate_a and_o anathematise_v king_n and_o prince_n which_o be_v give_v by_o god_n to_o man_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v do_v to_o any_o ordinary_a man_n though_o persevere_v in_o a_o most_o grievous_a offence_n he_o say_v that_o michael_n the_o archangel_n dare_v not_o curse_v the_o devil_n or_o micheas_n or_o daniel_n the_o most_o wicked_a king_n and_o yet_o they_o the_o father_n be_v whole_o conversant_a in_o malediction_n against_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o against_o the_o most_o christian_n if_o he_o will_v defend_v the_o law_n of_o his_o ancestor_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n his_o conclusion_n be_v that_o the_o king_n do_v desire_v they_o not_o to_o decree_v any_o thing_n against_o those_o 〈◊〉_d or_o if_o they_o shall_v that_o he_o command_v his_o ambassador_n to_o oppose_v the_o decree_n as_o 〈…〉_o they_o do_v oppose_v they_o but_o if_o 〈…〉_o thing_fw-mi the_o prince_n they_o will_v attend_v serious_o to_o that_o which_o all_o the_o world_n expectch_n it_o will_v be_v most_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o ble_a to_o the_o king_n who_o do_v command_v they_o the_o ambassador_z 〈…〉_o to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o 〈…〉_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o king_n name_n afterward_o he_o do_v 〈…〉_o the_o heaven_n earth_n and_o the_o father_n to_o consider_v whether_o the_o king_n demand_n be_v just_a whether_o it_o be_v honest_a for_o they_o to_o make_v order_n for_o themselves_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n whether_o this_o be_v a_o ●●me_n to_o take_v compassion_n not_o upon_o the_o church_n nor_o upon_o france_n but_o upon_o themselves_o the_o father_n their_o dignity_n reputation_n and_o 〈…〉_o s_o which_o can_v do_v preserve_v but_o by_o the_o art_n by_o which_o they_o be_v gain_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o in_o so_o great_a confusion_n they_o must_v be_v wary_a and_o not_o cry_v when_o christ_n come_v s●nd_v we_o into_o the_o hear_v of_o 〈◊〉_d that_o if_o they_o will_v restore_v the_o church_n to_o the_o ancient_a reputation_n comp_n 〈…〉_o the_o adversary_n to_o repentance_n and_o reform_v prince_n they_o shall_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o ezekias_n who_o do_v not_o imitate_v his_o father_n nor_o his_o first_o second_o three_o and_o four_o grandfather_n who_o be_v unperfect_a but_o go_v high_a to_o the_o imitation_n of_o his_o perfect_a ancestor_n so_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a at_o that_o time_n to_o respect_v the_o next_o predecessor_n though_o very_o learned_a but_o to_o ascend_v as_o far_o as_o ambrose_n augustine_n and_o chrysostome_n who_o overcome_v the_o heretic_n not_o by_o arm_a prince_n to_o the_o war_n themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n pick_v their_o nail_n at_o home_n but_o with_o prayer_n good_a life_n and_o sincere_a preach_n for_o they_o have_v frame_v themselves_o first_o like_o ambrose_n austin_n and_o chrysostome_n will_v make_v the_o prince_n also_o to_o become_v theodosii_n honorij_fw-la arcadij_fw-la valentiniani_n and_o gratiani_n which_o he_o say_v they_o hope_v for_o and_o pray_v god_n it_o may_v be_v so_o and_o here_o he_o end_v the_o oration_n when_o it_o be_v pronounce_v do_v anger_n very_o much_o not_o only_o the_o papalin_n but_o the_o other_o prelate_n more_o and_o frenchman_n also_o censure_v be_v censure_v and_o when_o it_o be_v end_v there_o be_v such_o a_o whisper_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o finish_v the_o congregation_n some_o do_v tax_v it_o
a_o little_a savour_n of_o heresy_n to_o tax_v bishop_n of_o these_o late_a time_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o true_a bishop_n in_o the_o end_n he_o speak_v at_o large_a against_o the_o say_n of_o the_o ambassador_n that_o king_n be_v give_v by_o god_n confute_v it_o as_o heretical_a condemn_v by_o the_o extravagant_a of_o boniface_n the_o eight_o unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la if_o he_o do_v not_o distinguish_v that_o they_o be_v from_o god_n but_o by_o mediation_n of_o his_o vicar_n the_o ambassador_n publish_v a_o apology_n in_o answer_n of_o this_o writing_n as_o if_o apology_n which_o cause_v he_o to_o make_v a_o apology_n it_o have_v be_v make_v to_o the_o synod_n say_v that_o the_o father_n can_v not_o answer_v they_o as_o the_o prophet_n do_v the_o jew_n for_o they_o demand_v a_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n principal_o in_o france_n know_v the_o defect_n of_o it_o and_o not_o as_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o fast_n and_o lamentation_n be_v impute_v because_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o own_o defect_n that_o the_o father_n ascribe_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a deformation_n to_o their_o king_n shall_v take_v heed_n they_o do_v not_o like_o adam_n who_o lay_v the_o blame_n upon_o the_o woman_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o for_o company_n say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a fault_n in_o the_o king_n to_o present_v unworthy_a bishop_n but_o a_o great_a in_o the_o pope_n to_o admit_v they_o that_o they_o have_v desire_v the_o reformation_n before_o the_o doctrine_n not_o to_o leave_v it_o uncertain_a but_o because_o all_o catholic_n consent_v therein_o they_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o begin_v with_o corrupt_a manner_n the_o fountain_n and_o source_n of_o all_o heresy_n that_o he_o be_v not_o sorry_a he_o have_v say_v that_o in_o the_o article_n propose_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o ancient_a decree_n yea_o he_o will_v add_v that_o they_o do_v derogate_v also_o from_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o late_a time_n that_o he_o have_v say_v that_o charles_n the_o great_a and_z lewis_z the_o nine_o have_v constitute_v ecclesiastical_a law_n by_o which_o france_n have_v be_v govern_v not_o that_o the_o present_a king_n do_v mean_a to_o make_v new_a and_o if_o he_o have_v he_o have_v speak_v conformable_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o civil_a law_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o to_o that_o which_o the_o ecclesiastical_a author_n greek_a and_o latin_a do_v write_v before_o the_o book_n of_o the_o decree_n for_o say_v that_o benefice_a man_n have_v only_o the_o use_n of_o the_o revenue_n he_o ask_v pardon_v because_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o they_o be_v only_a administrator_n and_o that_o those_o who_o take_v his_o say_n in_o ill_a part_n must_v complain_v of_o jerom_n austin_n and_o the_o other_o father_n who_o do_v not_o say_v only_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a good_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o poor_a but_o that_o clergy_n man_n like_o servant_n do_v gain_v all_o for_o the_o church_n that_o he_o never_o say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v free_a power_n over_o ecclesiastical_a good_n but_o that_o all_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o prince_n in_o time_n of_o instant_n and_o urgent_a public_a necessity_n and_o he_o that_o know_v the_o force_n of_o those_o word_n do_v understand_v well_o that_o in_o such_o a_o time_n neither_o request_n nor_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n can_v take_v place_n that_o he_o have_v reprehend_v the_o anathema_n against_o king_n in_o that_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o article_n and_o do_v grant_v that_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n may_v be_v reprehend_v in_o that_o sort_n as_o nathan_n do_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v provoke_v with_o injury_n and_o malediction_n that_o have_v incite_v they_o by_o the_o example_n of_o ezekias_n to_o make_v a_o reformation_n according_a to_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n it_o can_v not_o be_v infer_v that_o he_o do_v not_o think_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o last_o time_n to_o be_v lawful_a know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o pharise_n and_o pope_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n that_o in_o say_v the_o power_n of_o king_n come_v from_o god_n he_o have_v say_v absolute_o and_o simple_o as_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n and_o paul_n the_o apostle_n have_v write_v not_o remember_v the_o distinction_n of_o mediate_a &_o immediate_a nor_o the_o constitution_n of_o boniface_n of_o which_o if_o he_o be_v a_o frenchman_n have_v think_v he_o will_v have_v repeat_v what_o the_o story_n say_v of_o the_o cause_n and_o beginning_n of_o that_o extravagant_a this_o apology_n do_v not_o diminish_v the_o bad_a opinion_n conceive_v against_o the_o ambassador_n but_o increase_v it_o rather_o it_o be_v as_o they_o say_v not_o a_o excuse_n father_n the_o government_n of_o france_n be_v tax_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o error_n commit_v but_o a_o pertinacie_n in_o maintain_v it_o and_o many_o discourse_v not_o so_o much_o against_o the_o ambassador_n as_o against_o the_o kingdom_n they_o say_v it_o do_v plain_o appear_v of_o what_o mind_n they_o be_v who_o manage_v the_o affair_n of_o france_n they_o note_v the_o queen_n mother_n that_o she_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o chastilons_a especial_o to_o he_o that_o have_v quit_v the_o cardinal_n cap_n that_o the_o chancellor_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n have_v too_o much_o power_n with_o she_o at_o who_o instance_n that_o unlucky_a check_n have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n with_o the_o detriment_n of_o religion_n that_o she_o have_v inward_a familiarity_n with_o cursor_n and_o with_o his_o wife_n who_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o religion_n she_o shall_v not_o have_v endure_v to_o look_v upon_o that_o the_o king_n court_n be_v full_a of_o hugonot_n exceed_o favour_v that_o solicitation_n be_v still_o use_v to_o sell_v ecclesiastical_a good_n to_o the_o great_a prejudice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o other_o thing_n they_o say_v of_o this_o nature_n but_o while_o the_o council_n be_v in_o this_o motion_n by_o mean_n of_o these_o difference_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n according_a to_o his_o use_n to_o add_v difficulty_n to_o those_o which_o be_v propose_v by_o other_o make_v instance_n for_o the_o abrogation_n of_o proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la a_o thing_n which_o do_v much_o trouble_v they_o because_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o content_v he_o without_o prejudice_n of_o the_o form_v session_n for_o not_o only_o the_o revocation_n but_o every_o modification_n or_o suspension_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o declaration_n that_o they_o have_v not_o lawful_o proceed_v in_o the_o thing_n past_a but_o the_o ambassador_n see_v nothing_o do_v concern_v his_o demand_n so_o often_o again_o the_o abrogation_n of_o proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la be_v promote_v again_o make_v say_v that_o hitherto_o he_o have_v negotiate_v modest_o but_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o alter_v his_o course_n and_o speak_v more_o bold_o because_o the_o pope_n upon_o his_o former_a instance_n have_v write_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v that_o which_o be_v convenient_a and_o do_v whole_o refer_v himself_o unto_o they_o the_o legate_n to_o be_v quit_v of_o his_o importunity_n answer_v that_o they_o will_v leave_v it_o in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n to_o make_v the_o declaration_n if_o he_o think_v good_a and_o so_o the_o name_n of_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n do_v serve_v to_o cover_v that_o which_o do_v proceed_v from_o other_o for_o the_o legate_n do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n use_v strong_a persuasion_n with_o the_o prelate_n their_o friend_n that_o a_o delay_n may_v be_v interpose_v to_o refer_v this_o particular_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o time_n that_o some_o overture_n may_v be_v make_v to_o some_o course_n less_o prejudicial_a but_o the_o count_n have_v discover_v the_o practice_n prepare_v a_o protestation_n desire_v the_o emperor_n french_a and_o portugal_n ambassador_n to_o subscribe_v it_o who_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o be_v so_o earnest_a at_o that_o time_n for_o morone_n have_v promise_v the_o emperor_n that_o provision_n shall_v be_v make_v herein_o before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n until_o it_o be_v understand_v whether_o that_o will_v be_v perform_v or_o not_o they_o know_v not_o how_o he_o can_v protest_v concern_v the_o other_o and_o cardinal_n morone_n to_o pacify_v the_o count_n send_v paleotto_n often_o to_o negotiate_v with_o he_o in_o what_o manner_n his_o request_n may_v be_v grant_v which_o himself_n do_v not_o well_o understand_v because_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o prejudice_n the_o decree_n past_a and_o with_o this_o condition_n it_o be_v hard_a to_o find_v a_o temper_n in_o conclusion_n the_o legate_n give_v the_o count_n theirword_n that_o the_o declaration_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o next_o session_n
so_o that_o a_o mean_n be_v find_v to_o satisfy_v the_o father_n news_n be_v come_v to_o rome_n of_o the_o french_a protestation_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o whole_a court_n be_v wonderful_o move_v think_v it_o be_v purposely_o do_v to_o dissolve_v the_o council_n and_o impute_v it_o unto_o they_o but_o the_o pope_n complain_v above_o all_o that_o while_o the_o king_n do_v demand_v a_o favour_n and_o a_o grant_n of_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n his_o ambassador_n shall_v say_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n that_o he_o may_v take_v they_o without_o he_o and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v trouble_v more_o because_o he_o think_v it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a cross_n to_o his_o negotiation_n with_o his_o holiness_n he_o labour_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o this_o do_v happen_v against_o his_o will_n and_o that_o he_o will_v have_v divert_v it_o if_o he_o have_v be_v in_o trent_n that_o that_o instruction_n be_v a_o remnant_n of_o the_o counsel_n take_v in_o the_o life_n time_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o the_o execution_n procure_v by_o the_o dependent_n of_o that_o faction_n of_o which_o the_o ferrieres_n be_v one_o that_o that_o faction_n though_o it_o profess_v the_o catholic_a religion_n outward_o do_v hold_v strict_a intelligence_n with_o the_o hugonot_n who_o desire_v a_o dissolution_n of_o the_o council_n without_o a_o quiet_a end_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v anathematise_v but_o he_o say_v that_o those_o who_o govern_v the_o affair_n in_o trent_n be_v not_o without_o blame_n in_o regard_n that_o before_o his_o departure_n from_o that_o city_n the_o thing_n concern_v that_o matter_n stand_v in_o good_a term_n the_o legate_n have_v promise_v morething_n with_o which_o the_o ambassador_n be_v content_v one_o that_o they_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o only_o of_o certain_a little_a lord_n who_o grant_v to_o bishop_n no_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n the_o other_o that_o all_o thing_n depend_v on_o grace_n do_v by_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v except_v as_o indulgence_n privilege_n and_o grant_n of_o the_o holy_a sea_n &_o notwithstanding_o since_o his_o departure_n they_o have_v give_v to_o the_o father_n the_o first_o form_n with_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o it_o which_o they_o have_v promise_v to_o take_v away_o but_o he_o assure_v his_o holiness_n that_o notwithstanding_o this_o the_o council_n shall_v have_v a_o quiet_a end_n and_o promise_v to_o write_v to_o the_o king_n and_o complain_v of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v and_o to_o use_v mean_n that_o the_o ambassador_n shall_v return_v to_o trent_n which_o he_o hope_v to_o obtain_v according_a to_o this_o promise_n he_o write_v into_o france_n and_o to_o the_o ambassador_n these_o he_o tell_v that_o their_o action_n have_v this_o excuse_n that_o it_o be_v do_v but_o that_o hereafter_o they_o shall_v continue_v in_o do_v their_o duty_n without_o make_v any_o more_o innovation_n he_o write_v to_o the_o king_n that_o the_o opposition_n make_v by_o the_o ambassador_n seem_v unto_o he_o very_o strange_a and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v do_v it_o without_o his_o privity_n and_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o reason_n nor_o occasion_n for_o it_o that_o his_o absence_n from_o trent_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o ambassador_n have_v apply_v out_o of_o season_n a_o sharp_a plaster_n to_o a_o small_a sore_n that_o at_o his_o return_n he_o will_v make_v provision_n therein_o with_o great_a case_n but_o because_o thing_n do_v already_o can_v not_o beundone_a he_o pray_v his_o majesty_n to_o write_v to_o the_o ambassador_n to_o continue_v in_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o to_o abstain_v from_o violent_a course_n he_o add_v that_o he_o find_v the_o pope_n well_o incline_v and_o dispose_v to_o a_o holy_a and_o serious_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o christendom_n be_v happy_a in_o have_v so_o worthy_a a_o pastor_n that_o he_o send_v he_o back_o to_o trent_n so_o well_o instruct_v of_o all_o his_o holy_a intention_n for_o the_o end_n and_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n that_o he_o may_v hope_v for_o a_o happy_a success_n and_o because_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n the_o decree_n must_v be_v subscribe_v by_o the_o father_n and_o ambassador_n who_o have_v assist_v in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o prince_n he_o desire_v the_o king_n to_o cause_v his_o ambassador_n to_o return_v that_o they_o may_v be_v present_a and_o accomplish_v that_o which_o be_v the_o compliment_n of_o the_o protection_n and_o of_o all_o the_o favour_n do_v to_o the_o council_n by_o his_o majesty_n by_o his_o brother_n father_n and_o grandfather_n the_o cardinal_n have_v much_o ado_n to_o defend_v himself_o not_o only_o with_o the_o pope_n but_o with_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n also_o in_o consistory_n who_o say_v that_o prince_n desire_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n yet_o not_o in_o the_o least_o and_o just_a thing_n that_o concern_v they_o but_o only_o for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n the_o pope_n give_v order_v that_o better_a consideration_n shall_v be_v have_v of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v write_v to_o trent_n about_o that_o reformation_n say_v he_o do_v it_o not_o to_o meddle_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n because_o he_o mean_v to_o let_v the_o father_n alone_a but_o only_o to_o instruct_v the_o legate_n by_o way_n of_o counsel_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o if_o the_o frenchman_n will_v depart_v they_o shall_v do_v it_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v they_o occasion_n but_o shall_v be_v very_o careful_a to_o hold_v the_o session_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v when_o lorraine_n shall_v be_v return_v and_o to_o finish_v the_o counsel_n with_o one_o session_n more_o hold_v it_o within_o two_o or_o three_o week_n at_o the_o most_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v conceal_v this_o order_n impart_v it_o to_o none_o but_o to_o lorraine_n and_o if_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n shall_v move_v they_o they_o shall_v answer_v that_o at_o the_o arrival_n of_o that_o cardinal_n they_o will_v resolve_v what_o to_o do_v and_o he_o enconurage_v they_o say_v that_o he_o have_v bring_v germany_n and_o france_n to_o his_o purpose_n and_o that_o nothing_o remain_v but_o spain_n which_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o finish_v the_o council_n because_o many_o thing_n and_o the_o most_o principal_a do_v remain_v to_o be_v handle_v notwithstanding_o he_o have_v hope_n he_o say_v to_o reduce_v it_o and_o to_o conclude_v the_o synod_n with_o a_o general_a satisfaction_n and_o indeed_o he_o be_v secure_a of_o france_n and_o germany_n for_o beside_o his_o treaty_n with_o lorraine_n who_o do_v abundant_o secure_v he_o of_o france_n he_o receive_v at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o resolution_n from_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o be_v content_a with_o the_o end_n and_o will_v promote_v it_o and_o howsoever_o his_o nuncio_n advise_v that_o his_o majesty_n be_v doubtful_a in_o resolve_v and_o that_o there_o be_v danger_n he_o will_v change_v yet_o understand_v that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v author_n of_o the_o resolution_n say_v that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o finish_v it_o because_o it_o do_v no_o good_a nor_o give_v any_o hope_n that_o it_o will_v do_v he_o be_v assure_v that_o that_o king_n move_v by_o himself_o and_o by_o good_a reason_n will_v persevere_v in_o his_o purpose_n and_o by_o consequence_n keep_v his_o father_n in_o that_o opinion_n but_o the_o french_a ambassador_n after_o the_o oration_n do_v no_o more_o appear_v public_o in_o trent_n they_o let_v those_o few_o prelate_n remain_v know_v that_o the_o king_n pleasure_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v oppose_v the_o five_o article_n and_o the_o second_o because_o the_o person_n and_o cause_n of_o france_n may_v by_o virtue_n of_o those_o two_o be_v draw_v to_o letigate_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o ninteenth_n because_o by_o it_o the_o prevention_n be_v canonize_v and_o the_o parliament_n deprive_v of_o their_o prerogative_n in_o matter_n of_o benefice_n the_o legate_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o father_n have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o speak_v of_o the_o 21._o article_n propose_v unto_o they_o the_o other_o also_o wherein_o all_o the_o ambassador_n oppose_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n concern_v prince_n the_o father_n complain_v that_o be_v to_o reform_v as_o always_o have_v be_v say_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o the_o member_n in_o the_o end_n the_o prince_n will_v have_v no_o reformation_n but_o for_o the_o clergy_n only_o which_o can_v not_o be_v reform_v neither_o if_o the_o prelate_n be_v hinder_v in_o perform_v their_o charge_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n not_o preserve_v notwithstanding_o
canon_n and_o they_o employ_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n to_o persuade_v the_o count_n to_o be_v content_a with_o it_o by_o which_o mean_v that_o difficulty_n also_o be_v overcome_v the_o declaration_n of_o propenentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la do_v remain_v for_o which_o not_o be_v able_a to_o find_v a_o temper_n they_o tell_v the_o count_n that_o he_o shall_v propose_v a_o form_n how_o he_o will_v have_v it_o do_v wherein_o he_o excuse_v himself_o they_o depute_v three_o canonist_n to_o treat_v with_o he_o and_o to_o find_v a_o mean_n that_o may_v please_v he_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o alter_v the_o way_n prescribe_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o council_n the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n return_v to_o trent_n and_o hasten_v the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n come_v fit_o for_o that_o occasion_n who_o be_v part_v from_o rome_n with_o instruction_n and_o conclusion_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o have_v take_v venice_n in_o his_o way_n to_o persuade_v the_o ambassador_n to_o return_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o now_o arrive_v in_o trent_n cause_v with_o his_o desteritie_n the_o count_n to_o approve_v that_o manner_n by_o which_o that_o difficulty_n so_o much_o agitate_a receive_v a_o end_n with_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o and_o it_o be_v make_v the_o one_o and_o twenty_o article_n of_o reformation_n propose_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o nine_o of_o november_n hold_v for_o this_o purpose_n and_o approve_v with_o small_a resistance_n after_o this_o the_o second_o article_n be_v take_v away_o which_o be_v do_v all_o the_o article_n be_v read_v over_o again_o and_o the_o suffrage_n brief_o deliver_v in_o which_o lorraine_n to_o salve_v his_o honour_n say_v that_o howsoever_o he_o desire_v a_o great_a reformation_n yet_o know_v that_o in_o the_o beginning_n one_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o last_o remedy_n he_o assent_v to_o the_o decree_n not_o judge_v they_o sufficient_a but_o hope_v that_o the_o pope_n either_o by_o bring_v the_o old_a canon_n into_o use_n or_o by_o celebrate_v other_o general_a counsel_n will_v add_v a_o perfection_n it_o be_v worthy_a of_o memory_n that_o in_o this_o congregation_n he_o make_v a_o long_a digression_n pope_n he_o make_v a_o oration_n in_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pope_n in_o form_n of_o a_o encomiasticall_a oration_n of_o the_o pope_n good_a will_n of_o his_o desire_n to_o see_v the_o church_n reform_v the_o episcopal_a degree_n restore_v to_o its_o ancient_a dignity_n and_o the_o council_n end_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o all_o christendom_n the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n when_o it_o be_v his_o turn_n to_o speak_v break_v out_o into_o the_o pope_n commendation_n also_o attribute_v as_o much_o unto_o he_o as_o the_o other_o but_o add_v that_o either_o the_o pope_n do_v judge_v that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v as_o he_o will_v or_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o make_v his_o minister_n and_o dependent_n to_o execute_v his_o will_n here_o i_o must_v make_v a_o great_a mutation_n of_o stile_n for_o whereas_o in_o the_o former_a narration_n i_o have_v use_v that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o describe_v variety_n of_o mind_n and_o opinion_n alter_v the_o state_n of_o the_o council_n be_v quite_o alter_v one_o cross_v the_o design_n of_o another_o and_o delay_n of_o resolution_n interpose_v frame_v myself_o to_o declare_v the_o counsel_n of_o diverse_a sometime_o contrary_a among_o themselves_o hereafter_o i_o must_v make_v relation_n of_o one_o aim_v only_o and_o uniform_a operation_n which_o seem_v rather_o to_o fly_v then_o run_v to_o one_o only_a end_n whereof_o i_o can_v give_v but_o one_o cause_n not_o to_o repeat_v it_o in_o all_o place_n that_o be_v the_o joint_a resolution_n to_o precipitate_v the_o council_n therefore_o to_o speak_v simple_o i_o must_v say_v that_o letter_n come_v from_o the_o pope_n with_o resolution_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v end_v though_o with_o distaste_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n because_o he_o have_v mean_n to_o make_v a_o agreement_n with_o he_o that_o they_o shall_v establish_v the_o decree_n of_o secret_a marriage_n with_o as_o much_o union_n as_o be_v possible_a but_o yet_o to_o do_v it_o though_o the_o same_o opposition_n shall_v continue_v that_o for_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n and_o restitution_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n and_o liberty_n they_o shall_v not_o descend_v to_o any_o particular_a but_o renew_v the_o ancient_a canon_n and_o without_o anathemaes_n that_o if_o any_o difficulty_n do_v arise_v concern_v the_o other_o article_n they_o shall_v reserve_v it_o for_o he_o who_o will_v make_v provision_n therein_o refer_v they_o for_o the_o residue_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n who_o be_v full_o inform_v of_o his_o whole_a will_n who_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v afterward_o he_o send_v a_o form_n in_o what_o sort_n they_o shall_v finish_v the_o council_n which_o do_v contain_v that_o all_o thing_n do_v under_o paul_n and_o julius_n shall_v be_v confirm_v and_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v all_o do_v in_o this_o one_o council_n and_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n shall_v be_v preserve_v that_o of_o the_o thing_n decree_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n shall_v be_v demand_v that_o all_o the_o father_n shall_v subscribe_v and_o after_o they_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o ancient_a emperor_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o subscription_n of_o the_o ambassador_n that_o the_o prince_n may_v be_v bind_v to_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o to_o persecute_v with_o arm_n those_o of_o the_o contrary_a religion_n leave_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o they_o the_o legate_n together_o with_o lorraine_n to_o add_v diminish_v or_o alter_v according_a to_o opportunite_v all_o which_o thing_n be_v keep_v most_o secret_a until_o after_o the_o council_n that_o they_o may_v 〈…〉_o the_o better_a as_o shall_v be_v say_v the_o eleven_o of_o november_n come_v in_o which_o the_o session_n be_v hold_v with_o the_o usual_a ceremony_n voice_n be_v to_o be_v give_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o clandestine_v marriage_n cardinal_n varmiense_n who_o hold_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o think_v the_o church_n have_v no_o authority_n over_o it_o will_v not_o be_v 〈…〉_o sing_v himself_o that_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o positi●●_n law_n be_v think_v 〈…〉_o session_n the_o session_n 〈…〉_o deliver_v his_o mind_n free_o though_o the_o contrary_n be_v 〈…〉_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o say_v for_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o 〈…〉_o synod_n can_v not_o make_v that_o decree_n which_o may_v have_v ●used_v same_o distate_n such_o as_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o give_v francis_n richar●●_n make_v the_o sermon●_n in_o which_o he_o admonish_v the_o father_n that_o this_o most_o holy_a synod_n have_v be_v in_o travail_n these_o two_o year_n and_o every_o one_o be_v in_o expectation_n of_o what_o it_o will_v be_v deliver_v it_o be_v not_o fit_v it_o shall_v produce_v 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o child_n because_o the_o world_n do_v expect_v a_o sound_n and_o perfect_a issue_n for_o effect_v hereof_o it_o be_v convenient_a to_o imitate_v the_o apostle_n ●●yrs_n and_o primitive_a church_n make_v they_o a_o pattern_n whence_o to_o take_v the_o 〈…〉_o of_o the_o infant_n which_o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n these_o be_v he_o say_v doctrine_n religion_n and_o discipline_n all_o which_o be_v degenerate_v in_o these_o time_n must_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o ancient_a integrity_n and_o that_o this_o be_v it_o which_o have_v be_v expect_v so_o long_o and_o be_v expect_v still_o the_o ceremony_n be_v end_v the_o letter_n of_o madam_n regent_n of_o flanders_n concern_v the_o send_n of_o 〈◊〉_d prelate_n to_o the_o council_n be_v read_v as_o also_o the_o mandate_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n and_o of_o the_o grand_a master_n of_o malta_n afterward_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o anathematism_n of_o matrimony_n be_v read_v by_o the_o mass_n bishop_n to_o which_o all_o consent_v the_o article_n of_o reformation_n of_o matrimony_n be_v read_v to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o annullation_n of_o the_o clandestine_v cardinal_n morone_n say_v that_o it_o marriage_n variety_n of_o opinion_n about_o clandestine_v marriage_n please_v he_o if_o it_o please_v the_o pope_n simoneta_n say_v it_o do_v not_o please_v he_o but_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o other_o six_o and_o fifty_o do_v absolute_o deny_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v approve_v it_o afterward_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n be_v read_v and_o be_v come_v to_o reformation_n the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n the_o five_o of_o the_o criminal_a cause_n of_o bishop_n perceive_v the_o kingdom_n where_o the_o inquisition_n be_v be_v except_v a_o great_a commotion_n be_v raise_v among_o the_o father_n the_o lombard_n and_o neapolitan_n say_v confuse_o that_o that_o exception_n be_v never_o propose_v in_o
congregation_n and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v remove_v which_o they_o be_v force_v present_o to_o do_v afterward_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n say_v concern_v the_o same_o point_n that_o he_o do_v approve_v the_o decree_n upon_o condition_n that_o it_o do_v not_o prejudice_n any_o of_o the_o privilege_n right_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o king_n of_o frange_a as_o have_v be_v conclude_v in_o the_o congregation_n the_o day_n before_o declare_v that_o they_o do_v not_o prejudice_n the_o authority_n of_o any_o prince_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o decree_n he_o make_v a_o protestation_n in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o of_o the_o other_o french_a prelate_n whole_o conformable_a to_o that_o other_o make_v two_o day_n before_o in_o the_o congregation_n that_o be_v that_o their_o nation_n do_v receive_v those_o decree_n not_o as_o a_o perfect_a perfect_a reformation_n but_o as_o a_o preparation_n to_o one_o entire_a hope_v the_o pope_n will_v supply_v the_o defect_n in_o time_n and_o occasion_n by_o bring_v into_o use_n the_o old_a canon_n or_o by_o celebrate_v other_o general_a counsel_n to_o give_v a_o perfection_n to_o the_o thing_n begin_v and_o he_o desire_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o french_a bishop_n that_o this_o may_v be_v insert_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n and_o a_o public_a instrument_n make_v of_o it_o diverse_a other_o thing_n be_v add_v by_o other_o and_o some_o opposition_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n make_v against_o some_o of_o the_o article_n where_o in_o some_o difference_n arise_v it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v be_v accommodate_v in_o a_o general_a congregation_n because_o it_o be_v then_o late_o 2_o hour_n within_o night_n and_o for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o session_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o intimation_n of_o the_o next_o for_o the_o nine_o of_o december_n be_v read_v with_o power_n to_o anticipate_v declare_v that_o the_o six_o article_n now_o defer_v and_o other_o article_n of_o reformation_n exhibit_v and_o other_o thing_n belong_v thereunto_o shall_v then_o be_v handle_v add_v that_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d fit_v and_o the_o time_n comport_v some_o doctrine_n may_v be_v handle_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o their_o time_n propose_v in_o the_o congregation_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n do_v contain_v that_o adam_n do_v pronounce_v the_o bond_n of_o matrimony_n to_o be_v perpetual_a and_o that_o only_o two_o person_n may_v be_v join_v therein_o a_o thing_n more_o plain_o declare_v by_o christ_n who_o also_o by_o his_o passion_n have_v merit_v grace_n to_o confirm_v it_o and_o to_o sanctify_v those_o who_o be_v join_v which_o be_v intimate_v by_o saint_n paul_n when_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o great_a sacrament_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n whereupon_o matrimony_n in_o the_o evangelicall_a law_n exceed_v the_o ancient_a marriage_n by_o addition_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v just_o number_v among_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n therefore_o the_o synod_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n in_o this_o matter_n do_v constitute_v the_o anathematism_n 1._o against_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o matrimony_n be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n and_o do_v not_o confer_v grace_n 2._o or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o have_v many_o wife_n at_o once_o and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o forbid_v by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n 3._o or_o that_o only_o the_o degree_n of_o affinity_n and_o consanguinity_n express_v in_o leviticus_fw-la may_v nullify_v the_o marriage_n and_o that_o the_o church_n may_v not_o add_v other_o or_o dispense_v with_o some_o of_o they_o 4._o that_o the_o church_n can_v constitute_v impediment_n or_o have_v err_v in_o constitute_v they_o 5._o that_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v marry_v may_v dissolve_v the_o matrimony_n for_o heresy_n troublesome_a conversation_n or_o voluntary_a absence_n of_o the_o other_o 6._o or_o that_o lawful_a matrimony_n not_o consummate_v be_v not_o dissolve_v by_o a_o solemn_a religious_a vow_n 7._o or_o that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v in_o teach_v that_o the_o matrimonial_a bond_n be_v not_o dissolve_v by_o adultery_n 8._o or_o that_o the_o church_n do_v err_v in_o separate_v those_o who_o be_v marry_v for_o a_o determinate_a or_o indeterminate_a time_n in_o respect_n of_o carnal_a conjunction_n or_o cohabitation_n 9_o or_o that_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n of_o holy_a order_n or_o profess_a regulars_n may_v marry_v as_o also_o all_o those_o who_o find_v they_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o chastity_n in_o regard_n that_o god_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o gift_n to_o he_o that_o do_v demand_v it_o 10._o or_o that_o shall_v prefer_v the_o state_n of_o marriage_n to_o virginity_n and_o chastity_n 11._o or_o that_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n in_o certain_a time_n of_o the_o year_n be_v superstition_n or_o shall_v condemn_v the_o benediction_n and_o other_o ceremony_n 12_o or_o that_o matrimonial_a cause_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o matrimony_n do_v contain_v 1._o that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v true_a that_o clandestine_v marriage_n have_v be_v true_a and_o lawful_a so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n have_v not_o disallow_v they_o and_o that_o the_o synod_n do_v anathematise_v he_o who_o do_v not_o hold_v they_o for_o such_o as_o also_o those_o who_o affirm_v that_o marriage_n contract_v without_o consent_n of_o parent_n in_o who_o power_n the_o marry_a party_n be_v be_v void_a and_o that_o the_o father_n may_v either_o approve_v or_o disproove_v it_o yet_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o forbid_v and_o detest_v they_o and_o because_o prohibition_n do_v no_o good_a the_o synod_n do_v command_v that_o the_o matrimony_n shall_v be_v denounce_v in_o the_o church_n three_o festival_n day_n before_o it_o be_v contract_v and_o no_o impediment_n be_v find_v shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o parish_n priest_n have_v interrogated_a the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n and_o hear_v their_o consent_n shall_v say_v i_o join_v you_o in_o matrimony_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o shall_v use_v other_o word_n accustom_v in_o the_o province_n notwithstanding_o the_o synod_n do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o omit_v the_o bane_n but_o do_v declare_v those_o to_o be_v uncapable_a of_o marriage_n who_o attempt_n to_o contract_v it_o without_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o parish_n priest_n or_o another_o priest_n of_o equal_a authority_n and_o of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n make_v void_a and_o nullify_a such_o contract_n and_o punish_v the_o transgressor_n afterward_o it_o do_v exhort_v the_o party_n marry_v not_o to_o dwell_v together_o before_o the_o benediction_n and_o command_v the_o parish_n priest_n to_o have_v a_o book_n in_o which_o marriage_n so_o contract_v shall_v be_v write_v it_o do_v exhort_v the_o party_n that_o be_v to_o be_v marry_v to_o confess_v and_o communicate_v before_o the_o contract_n or_o consummation_n of_o the_o marriage_n reserve_v the_o custom_n and_o ceremony_n of_o every_o province_n and_o will_v have_v this_o decree_n to_o be_v of_o force_n within_o thirty_o day_n after_o it_o shall_v be_v publish_v in_o every_o parish_n second_o concern_v the_o impediment_n of_o marriage_n the_o synod_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o multitude_n of_o prohibition_n do_v cause_n great_a sin_n and_o scandal_n therefore_o it_o do_v restrain_v that_o of_o spiritual_a cognation_n to_o that_o which_o the_o baptize_v and_o their_o parent_n have_v with_o the_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n and_o the_o number_n of_o these_o to_o one_o man_n &_o one_o woman_n only_o ordain_v the_o same_o about_o the_o kindred_n which_o do_v arise_v by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n 3._o it_o do_v restrain_v the_o impediment_n of_o honesty_n which_o have_v its_o beginning_n from_o contract_n to_o the_o first_o degree_n only_o 4._o that_o of_o affinity_n by_o fornication_n to_o the_o first_o and_o second_o 5._o it_o do_v take_v away_o all_o hope_n of_o dispensation_n for_o matrimony_n witting_o contract_v in_o degree_n prohibit_v and_o to_o those_o who_o have_v ignorant_o contract_v without_o the_o solemnity_n in_o case_n of_o probable_a ignorance_n a_o dispensation_n may_v be_v give_v gratis_o but_o to_o contract_v in_o degree_n prohibit_v a_o dispensation_n shall_v never_o be_v grant_v or_o seldom_o only_o for_o a_o just_a cause_n without_o cost_n nor_o in_o the_o second_o degree_n among_o prince_n except_o for_o a_o public_a cause_n 6._o matrimony_n shall_v not_o be_v contract_v with_o a_o woman_n steal_v away_o so_o long_o as_o she_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o he_o that_o do_v steal_v she_o and_o do_v declare_v those_o raptor_n and_o those_o that_o do_v assist_v they_o with_o counsel_n aid_n or_o favour_n excommunicate_v infamous_a
occasion_n for_o as_o he_o will_v continue_v in_o the_o union_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n so_o he_o will_v preserve_v inviolable_a the_o right_n of_o his_o crown_n without_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v question_v or_o dispute_v or_o himself_o force_v to_o show_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o think_v to_o satisfy_v he_o with_o say_v in_o the_o end_n save_v and_o reserve_v the_o right_n etc._n etc._n because_o under_o this_o colour_n they_o will_v bind_v he_o to_o show_v a_o reason_n in_o every_o opposition_n that_o if_o he_o have_v see_v the_o article_n as_o they_o be_v propose_v he_o will_v have_v judge_v that_o the_o ambassador_n can_v not_o have_v do_v otherwise_o then_o make_v the_o opposition_n which_o his_o desire_n be_v they_o shall_v first_o have_v show_v to_o he_o but_o say_v they_o be_v to_o be_v excuse_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o occasion_n sudden_o arise_v and_o of_o the_o circumstance_n which_o do_v produce_v it_o and_o of_o the_o suspicion_n which_o make_v they_o doubt_v of_o some_o artifice_n to_o precipitate_v the_o decision_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o intention_n as_o he_o the_o cardinal_n give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o right_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n shall_v be_v touch_v and_o dispute_v his_o holiness_n must_v turn_v his_o anger_n upon_o the_o legate_n who_o propose_v the_o article_n and_o name_v king_n emperor_n &_o republikes_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o ambassador_n that_o he_o think_v the_o protestation_n may_v be_v justify_v before_o all_o christendom_n when_o the_o article_n shall_v be_v see_v that_o the_o legate_n have_v propose_v those_o article_n against_o the_o intention_n of_o his_o holiness_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o refer_v himself_o to_o their_o discretion_n hereafter_o nor_o to_o cause_v his_o ambassador_n to_o return_v until_o he_o have_v full_a assurance_n that_o those_o article_n shall_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o any_o more_o which_o be_v do_v he_o will_v command_v they_o to_o go_v again_o to_o the_o council_n concern_v the_o citation_n and_o sentence_n the_o king_n give_v order_n to_o henry_n clutia_n navarre_n the_o french_a king_n take_v part_n with_o the_o queen_n of_o navarre_n lord_n d'oysel_n to_o tell_v the_o pope_n that_o his_o majesty_n have_v understand_v to_o his_o great_a displeasure_n that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v by_o the_o fame_n which_o be_v spread_v until_o he_o have_v see_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o monitory_n affix_v in_o rome_n that_o the_o queen_n be_v so_o proceed_v against_o as_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o defend_v she_o first_o in_o regard_n the_o cause_n and_o danger_n be_v common_a to_o all_o king_n who_o therefore_o be_v oblige_v to_o protect_v she_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o she_o be_v a_o widow_n and_o his_o obligation_n be_v the_o great_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o near_a kindred_n he_o have_v with_o she_o by_o both_o line_n and_o by_o agnation_n with_o her_o husband_n who_o die_v but_o a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o war_n against_o the_o protestant_n leave_v his_o son_n pupil_n therefore_o he_o can_v not_o abandon_v her_o cause_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o his_o ancestor_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o endure_v that_o any_o shall_v make_v war_n against_o his_o neighbour_n under_o colour_n of_o religion_n add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o pious_a to_o put_v the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n and_o france_n late_o join_v in_o friendship_n in_o danger_n of_o a_o bloody_a war_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o queen_n have_v many_o fee_n in_o france_n she_o can_v not_o by_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o that_o kingdom_n be_v compel_v to_o appear_v either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o proctor_n add_v many_o example_n of_o prince_n and_o pope_n who_o have_v proceed_v with_o due_a and_o lawful_a moderation_n he_o touch_v the_o form_n of_o the_o citation_n by_o edict_n a_o thing_n not_o hear_v of_o in_o former_a time_n invent_v by_o boniface_n the_o eight_o and_z as_o too_o hard_a and_o unjust_a moderate_v by_o clement_n the_o five_o in_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n he_o say_v that_o such_o citation_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n take_v place_n but_o against_o the_o inhabitant_n to_o who_o the_o access_n be_v not_o secure_a and_o that_o the_o queen_n remain_v in_o france_n a_o great_a injury_n be_v do_v to_o he_o and_o the_o kingdom_n by_o use_v that_o form_n as_o also_o be_v do_v by_o expose_v to_o prey_n and_o grant_v to_o the_o usurper_n the_o fee_n she_o hold_v in_o france_n the_o right_a whereof_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o every_o one_o marvel_v he_o say_v that_o his_o holiness_n who_o do_v favour_n so_o affectionate_o the_o cause_n of_o king_n antony_n while_o he_o live_v in_o be_v his_o mediator_n with_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n will_v now_o oppress_v his_o child_n and_o widow_n but_o he_o complain_v most_o of_o all_o that_o so_o many_o king_n prince_n and_o city_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o in_o forty_o year_n he_o have_v not_o so_o proceed_v with_o any_o other_o which_o show_v well_o that_o he_o do_v it_o not_o for_o the_o good_a of_o her_o soul_n but_o for_o other_o end_n he_o wish_v his_o hol._n to_o consider_v that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o pope_n for_o salvation_n of_o soul_n not_o to_o deprive_v prince_n of_o their_o state_n nor_o to_o order_v any_o thing_n in_o earthly_a possession_n which_o have_v be_v former_o attempt_v by_o they_o in_o germany_n do_v much_o trouble_n the_o public_a quiet_n he_o entreat_v the_o pope_n to_o revoke_v all_o his_o act_n against_o the_o queen_n protest_v that_o in_o case_n he_o will_v not_o he_o will_v proceed_v to_o those_o remedy_n which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v use_v he_o complain_v also_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o command_v his_o ambassador_n bishop_n and_o with_o the_o bishop_n that_o declare_v unto_o he_o the_o ancient_a example_n the_o liberty_n and_o immunity_n of_o the_o french_a church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a he_o shall_v pray_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o make_v any_o innovation_n mounseur_fw-fr d'_fw-fr oisel_n perform_v this_o office_n with_o great_a vehemency_n and_o after_o many_o treaty_n with_o the_o pope_n obtain_v of_o he_o to_o speak_v no_o more_o either_o of_o the_o queen_n or_o of_o the_o bishop_n but_o in_o trent_n the_o session_n be_v end_v and_o matter_n well_o agree_v on_o between_o the_o legate_n and_o lorraine_n and_o the_o business_n impart_v to_o the_o principal_a papalin_n otranto_n taranto_n and_o parma●_n as_o also_o to_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n council_n the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n publish_v y_o e_o design_n to_o finish_v y_z e_o council_n lorraine_n begin_v to_o publish_v their_o design_n that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v finish_v with_o one_o session_n more_o he_o say_v he_o can_v not_o be_v in_o trent_n at_o christmas_n that_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o french_a bishop_n must_v depart_v before_o that_o time_n that_o he_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o council_n end_v and_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v so_o honourable_a a_o assembly_n but_o that_o he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o do_v be_v command_v by_o the_o king_n the_o imperialist_n also_o do_v publish_v in_o the_o council_n that_o the_o emperor_n do_v desire_v the_o dispatch_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n do_v write_v that_o his_o desire_n be_v it_o shall_v be_v finish_v by_o saint_n andrew_n day_n or_o at_o the_o long_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o month_n by_o all_o mean_n and_o indeed_o that_o king_n not_o to_o please_v the_o pope_n but_o because_o it_o be_v his_o opinion_n do_v solicit_v the_o conclusion_n for_o be_v to_o hold_v a_o diet_n he_o be_v not_o willing_a his_o father_n shall_v have_v ambassador_n in_o the_o council_n and_o say_v that_o if_o that_o be_v shut_v up_o the_o affair_n of_o religion_n in_o germany_n will_v be_v in_o far_o better_a case_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o father_n be_v glad_a to_o hear_v this_o and_o morone_n make_v a_o congregation_n in_o his_o house_n the_o fifteen_o of_o november_n of_o the_o legate_n two_o cardinal_n and_o five_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n the_o principal_a of_o every_o nation_n he_o propose_v that_o the_o council_n have_v be_v assemble_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o germany_n and_o france_n and_o now_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o all_o prince_n desire_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v finish_v they_o will_v speak_v their_o opinion_n concern_v the_o conclude_v of_o it_o and_o the_o manner_n lorraine_n say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o finish_v it_o not_o to_o hold_v christendom_n in_o suspense_n any_o long_o to_o show_v the_o catholic_n what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o
interim_n of_o germany_n which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n because_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o continue_v it_o long_o can_v not_o be_v without_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o finish_v the_o general_a council_n in_o trent_n to_o hinder_v a_o nationall_n in_o france_n for_o the_o manner_n he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v end_v with_o one_o session_n handle_v in_o it_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o dispatch_v the_o catechism_n and_o the_o index_n of_o the_o book_n prohibit_v which_o be_v in_o order_n already_o refer_v other_o matter_n to_o the_o pope_n not_o dispute_v the_o article_n of_o indulgence_n and_o image_n nor_o anathematise_v particular_a heretic_n but_o proceed_v with_o general_a term_n only_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o finish_v the_o council_n except_o the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n who_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o king_n some_o say_v it_o can_v not_o absolute_o be_v end_v because_o so_o many_o matter_n do_v remain_v to_o be_v handle_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v by_o intimate_v another_o ten_o year_n after_o which_o also_o will_v serve_v to_o hinder_v the_o call_n of_o nationall_n counsel_n and_o to_o defer_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o thing_n remain_v and_o the_o anathematism_n the_o bishop_n of_o brescia_n propose_v a_o middle_a course_n between_o a_o absolute_a end_n and_o a_o suspension_n because_o the_o former_a will_v make_v the_o heretic_n desperate_a and_o the_o latter_a not_o satisfy_v the_o catholic_n but_o these_o opinion_n have_v no_o follower_n all_o the_o other_o adhere_v to_o that_o which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v say_v for_o the_o manner_n otranto_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o anathematise_v the_o heretic_n because_o it_o have_v be_v use_v in_o all_o counsel_n and_o be_v the_o principal_a thing_n which_o be_v require_v of_o synod_n for_o many_o be_v not_o capable_a to_o understand_v the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o opinion_n by_o their_o own_o judgement_n but_o do_v follow_v or_o abhor_v they_o according_a to_o the_o credit_n or_o discredit_v of_o the_o author_n he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n full_a of_o learned_a man_n to_o clear_v themselves_o whether_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o ciros_n be_v a_o catholic_a or_o not_o will_v not_o hear_v a_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n which_o he_o desire_v to_o render_v but_o only_o wish_v he_o to_o denounce_v a_o plain_a anathema_n against_o nestorius_n that_o if_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la dead_a and_o their_o follower_n alive_a be_v not_o anathematise_v it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o council_n have_v labour_v in_o vain_a the_o cardinal_n reply_v that_o diverse_a time_n do_v require_v diverse_a counsel_n that_o the_o difference_n in_o religion_n be_v then_o between_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o priest_n that_o the_o people_n be_v but_o as_o a_o accessary_n that_o the_o grandee_n either_o do_v not_o meddle_v or_o if_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o any_o heresy_n they_o do_v not_o make_v themselves_o head_n and_o leader_n but_o now_o all_o be_v quite_o contrary_a because_o the_o heretic_n minister_n and_o preacher_n can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o sect_n but_o the_o prince_n rather_o to_o who_o interest_n their_o minister_n and_o preacher_n do_v accommodate_v themselves_o he_o that_o will_v name_v the_o true_a head_n of_o heretic_n must_v name_v the_o queen_n of_o england_n the_o queen_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o conde_n the_o elector_n palatine_n of_o the_o rhine_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o many_o other_o duke_n and_o prince_n of_o germany_n he_o say_v that_o this_o will_v make_v they_o unite_v and_o show_v they_o be_v sensible_a of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o condemnation_n of_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la only_o will_v so_o provoke_v they_o that_o some_o great_a confusion_n will_v certain_o arise_v therefore_o to_o do_v not_o what_o they_o will_v but_o what_o they_o can_v he_o think_v that_o the_o more_o universal_a resolution_n be_v the_o better_a morone_n send_v to_o call_v the_o ecclesiastical_a ambassador_n to_o who_o have_v impart_v the_o proposition_n and_o opinion_n of_o that_o assembly_n they_o consent_v to_o the_o end_n and_o the_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o lorraine_n which_o resolution_n be_v also_o communicate_v to_o the_o secular_a ambassador_n they_o do_v all_o assent_n except_o the_o spaniard_n who_o say_v he_o know_v not_o the_o express_a will_n of_o his_o king_n and_o desire_a time_n that_o he_o may_v understand_v it_o notwithstanding_o this_o the_o legate_n resolute_a to_o execute_v this_o determination_n give_v the_o matter_n concern_v prince_n omit_v the_o anathematism_n and_o all_o the_o particular_a article_n only_o renew_v the_o old_a canon_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n and_o jurisdiction_n speak_v of_o prince_n with_o much_o reverence_n only_o exhort_v they_o to_o cause_v their_o minister_n not_o to_o violate_v they_o the_o same_o day_n at_o night_n a_o congregation_n be_v make_v to_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o reformation_n and_o a_o order_n be_v set_v down_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o congregation_n a_o day_n until_o all_o the_o voice_n be_v give_v which_o be_v deliver_v with_o great_a shortness_n &_o resolution_n except_o by_o some_o bishop_n a_o difficulty_n about_o subiect_v the_o chapter_n in_o spain_n to_o the_o bishop_n few_o spaniard_n who_o desire_v to_o hinder_v whereas_o all_o the_o other_o do_v endeavour_v to_o promote_v the_o expedition_n with_o brevity_n the_o great_a difficulty_n be_v concern_v the_o six_o article_n of_o the_o subjection_n of_o chapter_n to_o bishop_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a interest_n which_o not_o only_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o king_n also_o have_v in_o diminish_v the_o capitular_a authority_n that_o they_o may_v not_o oppose_v the_o subsidy_n which_o be_v often_o impose_v in_o spain_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o the_o favour_n the_o legate_n do_v the_o chapter_n by_o who_o mean_n and_o for_o the_o reason_n allege_v many_o italian_n who_o first_o seem_v to_o favour_v the_o bishop_n turn_v on_o the_o chapter_n side_n the_o count_n of_o luna_n send_v a_o currier_n to_o rome_n in_o diligence_n by_o who_o advice_n vargas_n the_o ambassador_n entreat_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o favour_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o according_a to_o his_o custom_n refer_v himself_o to_o the_o council_n the_o ambassador_n complain_v that_o the_o italian_a prelate_n have_v be_v persuade_v to_o change_v their_o opinion_n in_o that_o matter_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n ready_o answer_v that_o they_o change_v because_o they_o be_v free_a but_o that_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o agent_n for_o the_o chapter_n from_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a have_v be_v drive_v from_o thence_o and_o upon_o that_o occasion_n complain_v that_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n in_o trent_n do_v dissuade_v the_o finish_n of_o the_o council_n notwithstanding_o he_o write_v according_a to_o the_o ambassador_n request_n but_o in_o such_o term_n as_o do_v not_o disfavour_v the_o pretension_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o final_o the_o decree_n be_v make_v with_o some_o enlargement_n of_o the_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o spain_n but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o they_o desire_v the_o venetian_a ambassador_n make_v instance_n that_o in_o the_o article_n of_o patronage_n those_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v except_v those_o of_o their_o republic_n may_v be_v except_v also_o the_o legate_n be_v willing_a to_o please_v they_o but_o can_v hardly_o tell_v how_o for_o to_o except_v all_o republic_n be_v too_o much_o and_o to_o name_v they_o particular_o will_v breed_v matter_n of_o jealousy_n they_o find_v a_o temper_n to_o comprehend_v that_o in_o the_o number_n of_o king_n declare_v that_o among_o those_o be_v contain_v the_o possessor_n of_o kingdom_n though_o they_o have_v not_o the_o name_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o twenty_o day_n a_o proposition_n be_v make_v to_o demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v demand_v demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n of_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n as_o well_o under_o paul_n and_o julius_n as_o under_o his_o holiness_n the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n oppose_v say_v that_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o and_o last_o session_n under_o julius_n when_o the_o council_n be_v suspend_v it_o be_v ordain_v that_o all_o the_o decree_v make_v by_o the_o synod_n until_o then_o shall_v be_v observe_v without_o say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o confirmation_n so_o that_o to_o demand_v it_o now_o will_v be_v to_o condemn_v those_o father_n who_o then_o think_v that_o the_o decree_n may_v be_v execute_v without_o any_o confirmation_n at_o all_o he_o profess_v he_o do_v not_o say_v this_o because_o he_o dislike_v the_o demand_n of_o a_o
some_o defend_v the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n that_o they_o be_v dispenser_n allege_v the_o place_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o faithful_a servant_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o the_o precipitation_n to_o finish_v the_o council_n cause_v those_o word_n that_o be_v of_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v faithful_a dispenser_n for_o the_o poor_a to_o be_v omit_v as_o also_o other_o difficulty_n to_o be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n in_o the_o article_n of_o patronage_n the_o ambassador_n of_o savoy_n and_o florence_n make_v request_n that_o those_o of_o the_o prince_n may_v be_v accept_v also_o or_o that_o all_o may_v be_v comprehend_v but_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n satisfaction_n be_v give_v they_o by_o accept_v beside_o the_o emperor_n king_n or_o possessor_n of_o kingdom_n other_o great_a and_o supreme_a prince_n who_o have_v sovereignty_n in_o read_v a_o dispute_n whether_o the_o decree_v make_v under_o paul_n &_o julius_n shall_v be_v read_v their_o dominion_n afterward_o a_o proposition_n be_v make_v for_o the_o read_n in_o session_n of_o all_o the_o decree_v make_v under_o paul_n and_o julius_n to_o be_v approve_v which_o modena_n oppose_v say_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o derogation_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o those_o time_n if_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o the_o thing_n then_o do_v have_v need_n of_o a_o new_a confirmation_n of_o the_o father_n and_o will_v show_v that_o this_o and_o that_o be_v not_o all_o one_o because_o none_o can_v confirm_v his_o own_o thing_n other_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o do_v it_o for_o that_o cause_n that_o authority_n may_v not_o be_v take_v from_o they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o council_n and_o the_o same_o frenchman_n who_o before_o do_v so_o earnest_o desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v that_o the_o council_n be_v new_a and_o not_o continuate_v with_o that_o under_o paul_n and_o julius_n do_v now_o labour_n more_o than_o other_o that_o all_o cause_n of_o doubt_v may_v be_v take_v away_o that_o all_o the_o act_n from_o the_o year_n 1545._o until_o the_o end_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o synod_n thus_o it_o happen_v as_o in_o humane_a affair_n so_o in_o religion_n also_o that_o one_o credulity_n be_v change_v with_o his_o interest_n therefore_o now_o all_o aim_v at_o one_o mark_n it_o be_v determine_v simple_o to_o read_v they_o and_o say_v no_o more_o for_o so_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o council_n be_v most_o plain_o declare_v and_o all_o difficulty_n remoove_v which_o the_o word_n confirmation_n may_v bring_v leave_v every_o one_o to_o think_v what_o he_o list_v whether_o the_o read_n of_o they_o do_v cousequent_o import_v a_o confirmation_n or_o a_o declaration_n of_o their_o validity_n or_o a_o inference_n that_o it_o be_v one_o synod_n which_o make_v they_o with_o that_o which_o read_v they_o final_o a_o proposition_n be_v make_v to_o anticipate_v the_o session_n and_o to_o celebrate_v anticipate_v the_o session_n be_v anticipate_v it_o the_o next_o day_n and_o if_o all_o the_o action_n can_v not_o then_o be_v dispatch_v to_o continue_v it_o the_o day_n follow_v and_o to_o dismiss_v the_o father_n and_o subscribe_v all_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n on_o sunday_n the_o spanish_a bishop_n oppose_v this_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n to_o abbreviate_v the_o time_n notwithstanding_o card._n morone_n say_v that_o the_o session_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o lorraine_n and_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n renew_v their_o persuasion_n to_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n that_o he_o will_v yield_v to_o that_o which_o be_v so_o uniform_o resolve_v who_o in_o the_o end_n after_o many_o thing_n speak_v and_o reply_v be_v content_a upon_o two_o condition_n one_o that_o a_o decree_n may_v be_v make_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v make_v provision_n for_o all_o thing_n that_o remain_v another_o that_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o indulgence_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v say_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v grant_n nor_o any_o other_o thing_n that_o may_v prejudice_n the_o crusado_n of_o pain_n that_o day_n therefore_o be_v come_v which_o be_v friday_n the_o three_o of_o december_n they_o wentto_n the_o church_n with_o the_o usual_a ceremony_n and_o the_o mass_n be_v say_v in_o which_o jerolamus_n ragazzone_n bishop_n of_o nazianzo_n make_v the_o sermon_n december_n and_o hold_v the_o 3._o december_n he_o summon_v all_o the_o world_n to_o admire_v that_o most_o happy_a day_n in_o which_o the_o sermon_n the_o sermon_n temple_n of_o god_n be_v restore_v and_o the_o ship_n bring_v into_o the_o haven_n after_o so_o many_o tempest_n and_o storm_n and_o that_o the_o joy_n have_v be_v great_a if_o the_o protestant_n will_v have_v have_v their_o part_n in_o it_o which_o be_v not_o the_o father_n fault_n he_o say_v they_o have_v choose_v that_o city_n for_o the_o council_n situate_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o germany_n even_o at_o the_o threshold_n of_o their_o house_n without_o any_o guard_n not_o to_o give_v suspicion_n of_o want_n of_o liberty_n that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v invite_v by_o a_o safeconduct_a expect_v and_o pray_v that_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o soul_n the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v expound_v and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n restore_v he_o show_v the_o abuse_n take_v away_o in_o holy_a rite_n he_o say_v that_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o other_o cause_n to_o call_v a_o council_n it_o have_v be_v necessary_a to_o do_v it_o for_o the_o prohibition_n of_o clandestine_v marriage_n and_o pass_v to_o the_o thing_n constitute_v for_o reformation_n he_o show_v from_o step_n to_o step_v the_o public_a service_n the_o church_n will_v receive_v by_o those_o decree_n he_o add_v that_o the_o explication_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o reformation_n of_o manner_n have_v be_v handle_v in_o former_a counsel_n but_o not_o more_o diligent_o in_o any_o that_o the_o argument_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o heretic_n have_v be_v often_o handle_v and_o discuss_v and_o many_o time_n with_o great_a contention_n not_o because_o there_o be_v any_o discord_n among_o the_o father_n which_o can_v be_v among_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n but_o to_o proceed_v with_o sincerity_n and_o so_o to_o clear_v the_o truth_n as_o that_o more_o can_v not_o have_v be_v do_v if_o the_o heretic_n have_v be_v present_a he_o exhort_v all_o that_o be_v return_v to_o their_o diocese_n they_o will_v put_v the_o decree_n in_o execution_n as_o also_o to_o thank_v god_n first_o and_o then_o the_o pope_n show_v what_o he_o have_v do_v to_o favour_v the_o council_n send_v nuncij_fw-la into_o the_o protestant_a country_n legate_n to_o trent_n exciting_a prince_n to_o send_v ambassador_n spare_v no_o cost_n to_o maintain_v the_o council_n in_o liberty_n he_o commend_v the_o legate_n as_o be_v good_a guide_n and_o moderator_n and_o in_o particular_a cardinal_n morone_n and_o conclude_v with_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o father_n after_o the_o ceremony_n be_v end_v the_o decree_n be_v read_v in_o the_o doctrine_n decree_n the_o decree_n of_o purgatory_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v teach_v out_o purgatory_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o scripture_n tradition_n and_o in_o this_o same_o synod_n that_o there_o be_v purgatory_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n detain_v in_o it_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n therefore_o it_o do_v command_v bishop_n to_o teach_v sound_a doctrine_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v preach_v without_o handle_v subtle_a question_n before_o the_o ignorant_a people_n not_o suffer_v uncertain_a and_o unlikely_a thing_n to_o be_v publish_v prohibit_v curiosity_n superstition_n and_o unhonest_a gain_n procure_v that_o those_o suffrage_n be_v full_o execute_v which_o be_v usual_o make_v for_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o live_n as_o also_o that_o the_o thing_n ordain_v in_o last_o will_n or_o in_o any_o other_o manner_n be_v full_o perform_v in_o matter_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o do_v command_v bishop_n and_o all_o other_o who_o have_v saint_n of_o saint_n the_o charge_n of_o teach_v that_o they_o instruct_v the_o people_n concern_v the_o intercession_n and_o invocation_n of_o they_o honour_n of_o relic_n lawful_a use_n of_o image_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n consent_n of_o father_n and_o decree_n of_o counsel_n teach_v that_o the_o saint_n do_v pray_v for_o man_n that_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o invocate_v they_o and_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o their_o prayer_n and_o assistance_n afterward_o all_o in_o one_o period_n it_o do_v condemn_v seven_o asse●tions_n in_o this_o matter_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v invocate_v that_o they_o do_v not_o pray_v for_o man_n that_o it_o
satisfaction_n in_o this_o charge_n of_o hospitality_n may_v be_v compel_v though_o they_o be_v laikes_n by_o censure_n and_o other_o remedy_n to_o perform_v their_o duty_n and_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o the_o restitution_n of_o fruit_n in_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o such_o governement_n shall_v not_o begve_v hereafter_o to_o any_o for_o long_a time_n than_o three_o year_n 9_o the_o title_n of_o patronage_n shall_v be_v show_v to_o be_v authentical_a by_o foundation_n or_o donation_n or_o by_o presentation_n multiply_v time_n out_o of_o mind_n or_o by_o some_o other_o lawful_a manner_n but_o in_o person_n and_o community_n in_o who_o usurpation_n be_v usual_o presume_v the_o proof_n shall_v be_v more_o exact_a and_o time_n immemoriall_n shall_v not_o suffice_v except_o presentation_n of_o fifty_o year_n at_o the_o lest_o be_v authentical_o show_v and_o that_o they_o have_v all_o take_a effect_n other_o sort_n of_o patronage_n shall_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v abrogate_a except_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n king_n possessor_n of_o kingdom_n and_o supreme_a prince_n and_o of_o general_a study_n the_o bishop_n may_v refuse_v to_o admit_v those_o that_o be_v present_v by_o the_o patron_n if_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a and_o the_o patron_n shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o fruit_n neither_o shall_v the_o right_a of_o patronage_n be_v transfer_v against_o the_o canonical_a ordination_n and_o the_o union_n of_o simple_a benefice_n to_o those_o which_o have_v right_a of_o patronage_n if_o they_o have_v not_o real_o take_v effect_n shall_v whole_o cease_v and_o the_o benefice_n shall_v be_v reduce_v to_o liberty_n and_o those_o that_o have_v be_v make_v within_o forty_o year_n though_o they_o have_v be_v execute_v shall_v be_v review_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o if_o any_o defect_n be_v find_v shall_v be_v make_v void_a and_o likewise_o all_o patronage_n shall_v be_v review_v make_v within_o forty_o year_n for_o augmentation_n of_o dowry_n of_o the_o church_n or_o for_o build_v it_o anew_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v to_o be_v for_o the_o evident_a utility_n of_o the_o benefice_n they_o shall_v be_v revoke_v and_o that_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o patron_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o 10._o that_o in_o provincial_a counsel_n or_o diocesan_n four_o person_n at_o the_o least_o shall_v be_v elect_v endow_v with_o fit_a quality_n to_o who_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n shall_v be_v commit_v which_o be_v to_o be_v delegated_a by_o the_o legate_n nuncij_fw-la or_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o all_o other_o delegation_n shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v surreptitious_a 11._o money_n shall_v not_o be_v receive_v before_o hand_n for_o ecclesiastical_a good_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o successor_n nor_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n rent_v out_o neither_o shall_v the_o farmour_n of_o they_o have_v power_n to_o exercise_v they_o and_o the_o farm_n of_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n though_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v within_o thirty_o year_n for_o a_o long_a time_n that_o be_v for_o twenty_o nine_o or_o more_o year_n aught_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n to_o have_v be_v do_v with_o damage_n of_o the_o church_n 12._o those_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v tenthes_o shall_v pay_v they_o hereafter_o to_o who_o they_o be_v entire_o oblige_v and_o he_o that_o with_o hold_v they_o aught_o to_o be_v communicate_v and_o not_o to_o be_v absolve_v before_o restitution_n and_o it_o exhort_v all_o to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v wealth_n to_o impart_v some_o of_o it_o to_o bishop_n and_o priest_n who_o have_v poor_a church_n 13._o whereas_o the_o four_o of_o the_o funeral_n be_v usual_o pay_v until_o within_o these_o forty_o year_n unto_o the_o episcopal_a or_o parish_n church_n and_o be_v afterward_o grant_v to_o pious_a place_n it_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o they_o again_o 14_o it_o do_v forbid_v all_o clerk_n to_o keep_v concubine_n or_o any_o suspect_a woman_n at_o home_n or_o abroad_o which_o if_o they_o forbear_v not_o to_o do_v after_o admonition_n they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a rent_n &_o of_o all_o after_o the_o second_o admonition_n and_o suspend_v also_o from_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o case_n they_o persevere_v they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o all_o benefice_n and_o make_v uncapable_a of_o any_o other_o until_o they_o shall_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o if_o after_o they_o have_v forsake_v they_o they_o shall_v return_v they_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v also_o and_o the_o cognition_n of_o these_o cause_n shall_v belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n summary_o but_o clerk_n not_o benefice_v shall_v be_v punish_v with_o imprisonment_n suspension_n or_o inhabilitie_n and_o if_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o like_a error_n and_o not_o amend_v after_o admonition_n give_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n they_o shall_v be_v susspend_v and_o if_o they_o persevere_v they_o shall_v be_v delate_a to_o the_o pope_n 15_o the_o son_n of_o clerk_n not_o bear_v of_o lawful_a matrimony_n shall_v not_o have_v any_o benefice_n or_o ministry_n in_o church_n where_o their_o father_n have_v or_o have_v have_v a_o benefice_n nor_o have_v any_o pension_n in_o benefice_n which_o the_o father_n either_o have_v now_o or_o have_v have_v and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o father_n and_o son_n shall_v be_v benefice_v in_o the_o same_o church_n the_o son_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o resign_v within_o three_o month_n prohibit_v also_o resignation_n which_o the_o father_n shall_v make_v to_o another_o that_o he_o may_v resign_v his_o own_o to_o his_o son_n 16._o benefice_n with_o cure_n shall_v not_o be_v convert_v into_o simple_a benefice_n and_o in_o those_o which_o be_v convert_v already_o if_o the_o perpetual_a vicar_n have_v not_o a_o convenient_a rovenue_n it_o shall_v be_v assign_v to_o he_o at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o bishop_n 17._o whereas_o some_o bishop_n carry_v themselves_o base_o towards_o the_o minister_n of_o king_n man_n of_o pre-eminence_n and_o baron_n as_o well_o in_o the_o church_n as_o without_o and_o not_o only_o give_v they_o place_n with_o too_o much_o indignity_n but_o serve_v they_o in_o person_n the_o synod_n detest_a this_n and_o reviue_v the_o canon_n concern_v the_o decorum_n of_o episcopal_a dignity_n do_v command_v bishop_n to_o forbear_v this_o and_o regard_v their_o decree_n both_o in_o church_n and_o without_o remember_v they_o be_v pastor_n and_o also_o command_v prince_n and_o other_o to_o give_v they_o honour_n and_o reverence_n due_a to_o father_n 18._o the_o canon_n shall_v be_v observe_v indistinct_o by_o all_o and_o shall_v not_o be_v dispense_v but_o for_o a_o cause_n hear_v with_o maturity_n and_o without_o cost_n 19_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n who_o shall_v grant_v duel_n between_o christian_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o place_n in_o which_o the_o duel_n be_v commit_v if_o they_o hold_v it_o from_o the_o church_n and_o the_o combatant_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o combat_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v have_v their_o good_n confiscate_v and_o be_v perpetual_o infamous_a and_o if_o they_o die_v in_o the_o duel_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v bury_v in_o any_o sacred_a place_n and_o those_o who_o give_v they_o counsel_n either_o in_o jure_fw-la or_o in_fw-la facto_fw-la or_o persuade_v they_o to_o the_o duel_n and_o the_o looker_n on_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v 20._o in_o prince_n the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n the_o end_n the_o article_n of_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n or_o reformation_n of_o prince_n which_o have_v be_v so_o much_o examine_v be_v read_v in_o it_o the_o synod_n do_v admonish_v secular_a prince_n hope_v they_o will_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n the_o restitution_n of_o her_o right_n reduce_v their_o subject_n to_o reverence_v the_o clergy_n and_o not_o permit_v their_o officer_n and_o inferior_a magistrate_n to_o violate_v the_o immunity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n but_o that_o together_o with_o themselves_o the_o prince_n they_o will_v be_v obedient_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o counsel_n determine_v that_o all_o constitution_n of_o general_a counsel_n &_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o favour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o liberty_n shall_v be_v observe_v by_o all_o admonish_v the_o emperor_n king_n republic_n prince_n and_o all_o to_o reverence_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o ecclesiastical_a right_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v violate_v by_o inferior_a lord_n their_o magistrate_n or_o minister_n that_o the_o clerk_n may_v reside_v and_o perform_v their_o duty_n without_o impediment_n and_o with_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n after_o this_o a_o decree_n be_v read_v never_o mention_v before_o a_o decree_n concern_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n never_o mention_v before_o in_o any_o congregation_n by_o which_o
the_o synod_n do_v declare_v that_o in_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n make_v under_o paul_n julius_n and_o pius_n in_o the_o council_n with_o what_o word_n or_o clause_n soever_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n be_v except_v and_o preserve_v be_v not_o able_a to_o dispatch_v all_o the_o day_n be_v far_o spend_v the_o residue_n be_v defer_v until_o the_o next_o morning_n according_a to_o a_o determination_n make_v in_o the_o etc._n the_o decree_n of_o indulgence_n finish_v the_o council_n and_o of_o demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n etc._n etc._n general_a congregation_n in_o which_o the_o congregation_n be_v make_v before_o day_n howsoever_o news_n be_v come_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v better_a and_o out_o of_o danger_n of_o death_n the_o decree_n of_o indulgence_n finish_v the_o council_n and_o demand_v confirmation_n be_v read_v and_o approve_v by_o all_o after_o dinner_n the_o session_n be_v hold_v in_o which_o the_o decree_n of_o indulgence_n be_v read_v contain_v in_o substance_n that_o christ_n have_v give_v authority_n of_o grant_v they_o to_o the_o church_n and_o have_v use_v the_o same_o from_o all_o antiquity_n and_o therefore_o the_o synod_n do_v teach_v and_o command_v that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v continue_v as_o profitable_a for_o christian_a people_n and_o approve_v by_o counsel_n and_o do_v anathematise_v those_o that_o shall_v say_v they_o be_v unprofitable_a and_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o power_n to_o grant_v they_o and_o to_o preserve_v the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o provide_v against_o abuse_n it_o do_v command_v that_o all_o those_o office_n of_o pardonmonger_n be_v abolish_v and_o for_o the_o other_o abuse_n it_o do_v command_v the_o bishop_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v collect_v all_o of_o his_o own_o church_n and_o propose_v they_o in_o the_o provincial_a synod_n to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n who_o will_v take_v order_n therein_o concern_v fast_n difference_n of_o meat_n and_o observation_n of_o feast_n it_o exhort_v bishop_n to_o observe_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o for_o the_o index_n howsoever_o it_o be_v finish_v in_o regard_n the_o synod_n have_v not_o time_n to_o judge_v of_o it_o it_o do_v ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v carry_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o refer_v to_o his_o censure_n and_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v do_v concern_v the_o catechism_n breviaris_n &_o missal_n it_o publish_v also_o mother_n decree_n that_o by_o the_o place_n assign_v to_o ambas_fw-la it_o shall_v be_v understand_v that_o no_o man_n be_v prejudice_v in_o the_o end_n it_o pray_v the_o prince_n to_o use_v mean_n that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o violate_v by_o the_o heretic_n but_o receive_v and_o observe_v by_o they_o and_o by_o all_o in_o which_o if_o any_o difficulty_n or_o necessirie_n of_o declaration_n shall_v arise_v the_o pope_n call_v recite_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o two_o former_a convocation_n be_v recite_v those_o who_o he_o shall_v judge_v fit_a from_o the_o place_n where_o the_o difficulty_n be_v or_o call_v general_a counsel_n or_o by_o some_o other_o mean_n will_v make_v provision_n afterward_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n make_v in_o this_o council_n under_o paul_n and_o julius_n as_o well_o of_o faith_n as_o of_o reformation_n be_v recite_v for_o the_o last_o thing_n the_o secretary_n go_v into_o the_o midst_n do_v interrogate_v whether_o the_o father_n be_v please_v that_o a_o end_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o that_o synod_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o it_o of_o the_o legate_n and_o precedent_n a_o confirmation_n demand_v of_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o of_o all_o thing_n decree_v under_o paul_n julius_n and_o his_o holiness_n and_o they_o answer_v not_o one_o by_o one_o but_o all_o together_o placet_fw-la cardinal_n morone_n as_o chief_a precedent_n grant_v to_o every_o one_o that_o be_v present_a in_o the_o session_n or_o have_v assist_v in_o the_o council_n a_o plenary_a indulgence_n and_o bless_v the_o council_n give_v the_o council_n be_v end_v and_o a_o plenary_a indulgence_n be_v give_v and_o dismiss_v they_o all_o say_v that_o after_o they_o have_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n they_o may_v go_v in_o peace_n it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n in_o the_o oriental_a church_n to_o handle_v the_o matter_n of_o counsel_n in_o a_o public_a meeting_n of_o all_o and_z upon_o occasion_n popular_a acclamation_n do_v often_o happen_v and_o sometime_o tumultuous_a which_o notwithstanding_o do_v conclude_v in_o concord_n and_o in_o the_o end_n the_o bishop_n transport_v with_o joy_n for_o the_o uniform_a determination_n do_v pass_v to_o acclamation_n in_o praise_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o have_v assemble_v and_o favour_v the_o council_n in_o commendation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n declare_v by_o the_o council_n in_o prayer_n to_o trent_n the_o custom_n of_o acclamation_n be_v imitate_v in_o trent_n god_n for_o his_o continual_a divine_a assistance_n to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o for_o the_o health_n and_o prosperity_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v not_o premeditate_v but_o as_o the_o spirit_n do_v excite_v some_o bishop_n more_o zealous_a to_o break_v out_o fit_o into_o some_o one_o of_o these_o conceit_n so_o the_o common_a concourse_n do_v cry_v with_o he_o this_o be_v imitate_v in_o trent_n yet_o not_o give_v place_n to_o the_o extemporary_a spirit_n of_o any_o but_o meditate_v what_o shall_v be_v propose_v and_o answer_v and_o repeat_v it_o out_o of_o a_o paper_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n chief_a wherein_o the_o card._n of_o lorraine_n be_v chief_a take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a not_o only_o to_o compose_v the_o acclamation_n but_o to_o thunder_v they_o out_o also_o which_o be_v general_o construe_v for_o a_o lightness_n and_o vanity_n not_o beseem_v such_o a_o prelate_n and_o prince_n to_o do_v a_o office_n which_o do_v belong_v rather_o to_o the_o deacon_n of_o the_o council_n then_o to_o so_o principal_a a_o archbishop_n and_o cardinal_n the_o cardinal_n roar_v and_o the_o father_n answer_v a_o long_a life_n for_o his_o holiness_n and_o eternal_a felicity_n for_o paul_n and_o julius_n be_v pray_v for_o likewise_o eternal_a memory_n for_o charles_n the_o five_o and_o for_o the_o king_n protector_n of_o the_o council_n long_a life_n for_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n and_o for_o the_o king_n prince_n and_o repuqligue_n many_o thanks_o be_v give_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o cardinal_n and_o long_a life_n wish_v unto_o they_o life_n and_o happy_a return_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a general_a synod_n of_o trent_n be_v commend_v as_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o orthodox_n a_o anathema_n only_o a_o excommunication_n of_o heretic_n in_o general_a only_o be_v denounce_v against_o all_o heretic_n in_o general_a in_o one_o word_n only_o not_o specify_v either_o ancient_a or_o modern_a the_o father_n be_v command_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o subscribe_v the_o decree_n with_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o next_o day_n be_v sunday_n be_v spend_v in_o this_o and_o to_o do_v it_o in_o order_n there_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o congregation_n and_o the_o subscription_n be_v of_o four_o legate_n two_o suscribe_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o suscribe_v cardinal_n three_o patriarch_n five_o and_o twenty_o archbishop_n 268._o bishop_n seven_o abbat_n nine_o and_o thirty_o proctor_n of_o man_n absent_a seven_o general_n of_o regular_a order_n and_o howsoever_o it_o have_v be_v determine_v that_o the_o ambassador_n shall_v subscribe_v after_o the_o rather_n yet_o a_o contrary_a resolution_n be_v then_o take_v for_o two_o respect_n one_o be_v that_o the_o french_a ambassador_n be_v not_o cause_n the_o ambassador_n do_v not_o subscribe_v for_o two_o cause_n there_o if_o the_o subscription_n of_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v see_v and_o not_o he_o it_o may_v be_v think_v a_o manifestation_n that_o the_o frenchman_n will_v not_o receive_v the_o council_n the_o other_o because_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o subscribe_v absolute_o but_o with_o reservation_n because_o his_o king_n have_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o legate_n publish_v that_o it_o not_o be_v the_o custom_n that_o the_o decree_n shall_v be_v subscribe_v by_o any_o that_o have_v not_o a_o deliberative_a voice_n it_o will_v be_v a_o thing_n unusual_a if_o the_o ambassador_n shall_v in_o rome_n when_o the_o pope_n fall_v sick_a all_o fear_v his_o life_n there_o be_v much_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pope_n 〈…〉_o e_o make_a 〈◊〉_d confu_fw-fr 〈…〉_o the_o 〈◊〉_d confusion_n in_o the_o court._n for_o never_o have_v know_v a_o pope_n die_v in_o time_n of_o a_o council_n they_o be_v very_o fearful_a what_o may_v happen_v they_o have_v
will_v not_o endure_v a_o reformation_n this_o be_v oppose_v by_o almost_o all_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o court_n represent_v their_o loss_n and_o preiudices_fw-la and_o show_v how_o all_o will_v redound_v to_o the_o offence_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o diminution_n of_o his_o revenue_n only_o hugo_n buoncompagno_n bishop_n of_o bestice_n who_o be_v cardinal_n afterward_o a_o man_n much_o conversant_a in_o court_n affair_n say_v he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o wonder_n at_o this_o great_a fear_n which_o he_o see_v do_v arise_v without_o reason_n that_o by_o confirmation_n of_o the_o council_n more_o authority_n be_v not_o give_v it_o then_o other_o general_a counsel_n have_v or_o then_o be_v give_v to_o the_o decree_n or_o decretal_n by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o which_o and_o by_o their_o plain_a speak_v against_o the_o present_a manner_n many_o more_o preiudices_fw-la and_o offence_n may_v arise_v than_o can_v do_v by_o these_o few_o decree_n of_o trent_n much_o reserve_v in_o the_o former_a word_n that_o no_o law_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o term_n but_o in_o the_o meaning_n not_o in_o that_o which_o the_o vulgar_a and_o grammarian_n do_v give_v it_o but_o which_o use_n and_o authority_n do_v confirm_v that_o law_n have_v no_o power_n but_o what_o be_v give_v they_o by_o he_o that_o govern_v and_o have_v the_o care_n to_o execute_v they_o that_o he_o by_o his_o exposition_n may_v give_v they_o a_o more_o ample_a or_o a_o more_o strict_a sense_n yea_o and_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o the_o word_n do_v import_v and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o more_o to_o restrain_v or_o moderate_v the_o decree_n of_o trent_n now_o then_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v restrain_v by_o use_n or_o by_o exposition_n in_o time_n convenient_a he_o conclude_v that_o he_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o difficulty_n about_o the_o confirmation_n but_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n to_o withstand_v present_o the_o inconvenience_n which_o may_v arise_v by_o the_o temeritie_n of_o the_o doctor_n who_o the_o more_o ignorant_a they_o be_v of_o government_n and_o public_a affair_n the_o more_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o give_v interpretation_n to_o law_n which_o do_v confound_v authority_n that_o experience_n show_v that_o law_n do_v no_o hurt_n nor_o cause_v any_o suit_n but_o by_o the_o diverse_a sense_n give_v unto_o they_o that_o by_o the_o constitution_n of_o nicolas_n the_o three_o upon_o the_o rule_n of_o saint_n francis_n a_o matter_n full_a of_o ambiguity_n in_o itself_o never_o any_o disorder_n do_v arise_v because_o he_o forbid_v all_o glossator_n and_o commentator_n to_o expound_v it_o that_o if_o such_o provision_n be_v make_v for_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n and_o all_o man_n forbid_v to_o write_v upon_o they_o a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o which_o be_v fear_v will_v be_v withstand_v but_o if_o his_o holiness_n will_v forbid_v all_o interpretation_n even_o to_o the_o judge_n also_o and_o ordain_v that_o in_o all_o doubt_n they_o shall_v come_v for_o exposition_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n no_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o council_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o court_n which_o by_o use_n and_o by_o interpretation_n may_v be_v accommodate_v to_o that_o which_o will_v be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o there_o be_v a_o congregation_n which_o with_o great_a fruit_n do_v take_v care_n of_o the_o inquisition_n so_o his_o holiness_n may_v appoint_v another_o for_o this_o particular_a of_o expound_v the_o council_n to_o who_o all_o doubt_n shall_v be_v refer_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v do_v he_o say_v he_o foresee_v that_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o right_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o only_o not_o be_v diminish_v but_o increase_v and_o enlarge_v much_o in_o case_n they_o know_v how_o to_o make_v use_n of_o these_o mean_n those_o that_o hear_v he_o be_v move_v by_o these_o reason_n and_o the_o pope_n see_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o come_v to_o the_o absolute_a confirmation_n without_o any_o modification_n and_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o will_v fall_v out_o as_o the_o bishop_n council_n all_o gloss_n or_o interpretation_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v make_v upon_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n have_v say_v he_o be_v peremptory_a not_o to_o hearken_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v speak_v against_o it_o but_z full_a of_o hope_n to_o collect_v much_o fruit_n by_o the_o pain_n take_v for_o finish_v the_o council_n he_o resolve_v to_o confirm_v it_o to_o reserve_v the_o interpretation_n to_o himself_o and_o to_o institute_v a_o congregation_n as_o the_o bishop_n have_v counsel_v and_o have_v impart_v this_o to_o the_o cardinal_n apart_o he_o determine_v to_o effect_v it_o therefore_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o of_o january_n morone_n and_o simoneta_n have_v relate_v in_o consistory_n the_o tenor_n of_o the_o decree_n make_v in_o the_o last_o session_n that_o the_o confirmation_n shall_v be_v desire_v by_o they_o they_o demand_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o confirm_v all_o that_o which_o have_v be_v decree_v and_o define_v in_o that_o council_n under_o paul_n julius_n and_o his_o holiness_n the_o pope_n first_o cause_v the_o decree_n to_o be_v read_v ask_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o cardinal_n they_o be_v all_o for_o the_o confirmation_n uniform_o except_o the_o cardinal_n saint_n clement_n and_o alexandrinus_n who_o say_v that_o too_o much_o authority_n have_v be_v give_v to_o bishop_n in_o that_o council_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o moderate_v it_o and_o then_o to_o make_v a_o exception_n of_o those_o point_n that_o do_v enlarge_v it_o too_o much_o which_o be_v note_v already_o in_o the_o end_n the_o pope_n conclude_v that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o confirm_v all_o without_o exception_n and_o so_o he_o do_v in_o word_n in_o the_o consistory_n confirm_v they_o and_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v and_o inviolable_o observe_v by_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o same_o day_n he_o publish_v a_o bull_n subscribe_v by_o all_o the_o cardinal_n in_o which_o have_v relate_v the_o cause_n of_o call_v the_o council_n the_o progress_n the_o impediment_n and_o difficulty_n which_o happen_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o his_o diligence_n in_o favour_v the_o liberty_n thereof_o grant_v they_o free_a power_n over_o the_o thing_n reserve_v to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o thank_v god_n that_o it_o be_v end_v with_o a_o entire_a consent_n therefore_o be_v desire_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n for_o confirmation_n know_v the_o decree_n to_o be_v all_o catholic_a and_o profitable_a for_o christian_n he_o have_v confirm_v they_o in_o consistory_n and_o do_v confirm_v they_o by_o that_o writing_n command_v all_o prelate_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o exhort_v the_o emperor_n king_n republic_n and_o prince_n to_o assist_v for_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o also_o to_o favour_v the_o prelate_n not_o to_o permit_v their_o people_n but_o rather_o to_o prohibit_v they_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o embrace_v opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o council_n and_o to_o avoidconfusion_n for_o bad_a all_o sort_n of_o person_n as_o well_o clerk_n as_o laique_n to_o make_v any_o commentary_n gloss_n annotation_n or_o any_o interpretation_n whatsoever_o upon_o they_o or_o to_o make_v any_o kind_n of_o statute_n though_o under_o pretence_n of_o great_a strength_n or_o better_a execution_n of_o the_o decree_n but_o that_o if_o any_o obscure_a place_n want_v interpretation_n or_o decision_n they_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n because_o he_o do_v reserve_v unto_o himself_o power_n to_o declare_v the_o difficulty_n or_o controversy_n as_o also_o the_o synod_n have_v already_o decree_v this_o consistoriall_a act_n of_o confirmation_n and_o the_o bull_n be_v print_v together_o with_o the_o decree_n which_o give_v matter_n of_o speech_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o tenor_n of_o they_o that_o the_o decree_n have_v not_o vigour_n as_o constitute_v by_o the_o council_n but_o as_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v that_o one_o have_v confirmation_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n have_v power_n from_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n hear_v the_o cause_n and_o another_o have_v give_v the_o sentence_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v see_v the_o decrce_n before_o he_o confirm_v they_o because_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o consistoriall_a act_n that_o he_o have_v only_o see_v the_o decree_n for_o desire_v the_o confirmation_n they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o decree_v make_v under_o paul_n and_o julius_n be_v read_v in_o trent_n and_o that_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v
confirm_v by_o those_o that_o hear_v they_o rather_o than_o by_o he_o that_o do_v not_o know_v they_o but_o other_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n the_o pope_n shall_v then_o see_v they_o because_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o trent_n which_o be_v not_o first_o resolve_v by_o he_o in_o many_o consistory_n follow_v the_o pope_n speak_v for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n say_v he_o will_v observe_v they_o himself_o though_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v and_o give_v his_o word_n that_o he_o will_v never_o derogate_v from_o they_o but_o for_o evident_a and_o urgent_a cause_n and_o with_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n he_o charge_v morone_n and_o simoneta_n to_o be_v diligent_a in_o advertise_v he_o if_o any_o contrary_a thing_n be_v propose_v or_o handle_v in_o consistory_n which_o be_v but_o a_o small_a remedy_n against_o the_o transgression_n because_o not_o a_o hundred_o part_n of_o the_o grant_v make_v in_o rome_n be_v dispatch_v in_o consistory_n he_o send_v the_o bishop_n to_o their_o residence_n and_o resolve_v to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o protonotary_n and_o referendary_n in_o govern_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n but_o howsoever_o he_o be_v free_v from_o great_a trouble_n by_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n yet_o there_o be_v some_o remainder_n of_o it_o in_o all_o kingdom_n which_o bring_v new_a difficulty_n upon_o he_o advice_n come_v out_o of_o spain_n that_o the_o king_n be_v offend_v with_o the_o end_n of_o only_o and_o be_v execute_v in_o spain_n by_o the_o king_n authority_n only_o the_o council_n and_o determine_v to_o call_v the_o bishop_n and_o agent_n for_o the_o clergy_n of_o spain_n before_o he_o to_o set_v down_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o may_v be_v execute_v and_o the_o advice_n be_v not_o false_a for_o not_o only_o all_o that_o be_v do_v in_o spain_n for_o receive_v and_o execute_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n that_o year_n partly_o in_o the_o spring_n and_o partly_o in_o the_o autumn_n be_v by_o order_n and_o resolution_n take_v in_o the_o king_n council_n but_o the_o king_n send_v also_o his_o precedent_n to_o the_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v cause_v to_o be_v propose_v that_o which_o please_v he_o and_o be_v fit_a for_o his_o service_n to_o the_o great_a distaste_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v angry_a the_o king_n shall_v take_v so_o much_o upon_o he_o in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a but_o he_o make_v no_o demonstration_n angry_a which_o make_v the_o pope_n angry_a hereof_o to_o his_o minister_n purpose_v to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o in_o another_o opportunity_n design_v by_o himself_o which_o shall_v be_v relate_v in_o due_a place_n the_o precedent_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n have_v while_o he_o remain_v in_o venice_n make_v observation_n upon_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o two_o last_o session_n hold_v after_o his_o departure_n from_o trent_n and_o send_v they_o to_o the_o court_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n at_o his_o return_n the_o card_n of_o lorain_n be_v taxe●_n in_o france_n at_o his_o return_n return_n into_o france_n have_v many_o assault_n and_o reprehension_n for_o consent_v to_o thing_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o kingdom_n they_o say_v that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o first_o article_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o last_o session_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v charge_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o latin_a sollicitudinem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la vniversae_fw-la he_o have_v yield_v the_o point_n which_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o french_a bishop_n have_v so_o long_o contend_v for_o and_o obtain_v that_o prejudice_n may_v not_o be_v do_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o france_n of_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o may_v have_v remedy_v this_o with_o one_o little_a word_n by_o make_v they_o say_v as_o s._n paul_n have_v do_v care_v of_o all_o the_o church_n because_o no_o man_n will_v have_v deny_v that_o kind_n of_o speech_n which_o s._n paul_n do_v use_v that_o prejudice_n be_v likewise_o do_v to_o the_o same_o opinion_n of_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o article_n of_o the_o last_o session_n save_v in_o all_o the_o decree_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o in_o the_o last_o decree_n for_o demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n it_o be_v oppose_v also_o that_o the_o king_n and_o french_a church_n have_v contest_v that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v new_a and_o not_o the_o old_a continue_a the_o continuation_n be_v declare_v that_o it_o be_v one_o council_n with_o that_o of_o paul_n and_o julius_n in_o the_o say_v one_o and_o twenty_o article_n and_o in_o the_o decree_n for_o read_v the_o thing_n constitute_v under_o those_o pope_n by_o which_o all_o be_v base_o yield_v which_o have_v be_v two_o year_n maintain_v by_o the_o king_n they_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v under_o julius_n be_v dishonourable_a and_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o protestation_n then_o make_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o but_o they_o reprehend_v above_o all_o that_o honourable_a mention_n have_v be_v always_o make_v under_o paul_n and_o julius_n of_o king_n francis_n the_o first_o and_z king_n henry_n the_o second_o together_o with_o charles_n the_o five_o the_o cardinal_n have_v not_o cause_v a_o memory_n to_o be_v make_v of_o they_o in_o the_o acclamation_n when_o it_o be_v make_v of_o charles_n nor_o the_o present_a king_n to_o be_v name_v when_o the_o live_a emperor_n be_v the_o cardinal_n excuse_v other_o thing_n say_v that_o with_o six_o prelate_n for_o he_o have_v no_o more_o in_o his_o company_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v the_o consent_n of_o more_o than_o two_o hundred_o but_o this_o last_o opposition_n he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o excuse_v though_o he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o preserve_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o two_o kingdom_n for_o it_o be_v reply_v that_o he_o may_v have_v suffer_v other_o to_o make_v the_o intonation_n and_o not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n himself_o of_o that_o prejudice_n and_o so_o it_o be_v see_v that_o vain_a man_n often_o time_n think_v to_o gain_v reputation_n by_o retail_v do_v lose_v it_o in_o gross_a but_o the_o counsellor_n of_o the_o parliament_n find_v many_o other_o thing_n to_o oppose_v session_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n upon_o the_o last_o session_n against_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n publish_v in_o those_o two_o session_n where_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n they_o say_v be_v enlarge_v beyond_o its_o bound_n with_o the_o wrong_n and_o diminution_n of_o the_o temporal_a by_o give_v power_n to_o bishop_n to_o proceed_v to_o pecuniary_a mulct_n and_o imprisonment_n against_o the_o laity_n whereas_o no_o authority_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o minister_n but_o mere_a and_o pure_a spiritual_a that_o when_o the_o clergy_n be_v make_v a_o member_n and_o part_n of_o the_o policy_n the_o prince_n do_v by_o favour_n allow_v the_o bishop_n to_o punish_v inferior_a clergyman_n with_o temporal_a punishment_n that_o discipline_n may_v be_v observe_v among_o they_o but_o to_o use_v such_o kind_n of_o punishment_n against_o the_o laique_n they_o have_v neither_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o man_n but_o by_o usurpation_n only_o that_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o duel_n they_o pretend_v to_o proceed_v against_o the_o emperor_n king_n and_o other_o sovereign_n who_o grant_v it_o in_o their_o kingdom_n even_o by_o excommunication_n whereas_o their_o opinion_n be_v that_o to_o permit_v duel_n in_o some_o case_n be_v not_o amiffe_a as_o the_o permit_v of_o fornication_n and_o other_o offence_n howbeit_o they_o be_v sin_n be_v not_o ill_a in_o regard_n of_o public_a utility_n and_o to_o avoid_v great_a inconvenience_n they_o say_v that_o this_o power_n be_v natural_a and_o give_v to_o the_o prince_n by_o god_n can_v not_o be_v take_v away_o or_o restrain_v by_o any_o power_n of_o man_n they_o think_v it_o also_o intolerable_a to_o excommunicate_a king_n and_o prince_n hold_v it_o for_o a_o sure_a maxim_n in_o france_n that_o the_o king_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v nor_o his_o officer_n for_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n they_o add_v that_o to_o deprive_v prince_n of_o their_o state_n lord_n of_o their_o fee_n and_o to_o confiscate_v the_o good_n of_o private_a man_n be_v all_o usurpation_n of_o the_o temporal_a authority_n because_o that_o which_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o church_n do_v not_o extend_v itself_o to_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n concern_v patronage_n they_o say_v great_a wrong_n be_v do_v to_o the_o secular_o in_o disable_n their_o proof_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a article_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a maxim_n that_o all_o benefice_n be_v free_a if_o the_o patronage_n be_v not_o
by_o the_o water_n side_n oh_o monstrous_a extraordinary_a madness_n nothing_o can_v be_v ratify_v which_o the_o bishop_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v the_o common_a people_n do_v decree_n unless_o the_o pope_n make_v himself_o the_o author_n of_o it_o a_o epistle_n write_v by_o john_n jewel_n bishop_n of_o sarum_n unto_o one_o seign_n r_o scipio_n a_o gentleman_n in_o venice_n in_o answer_n of_o a_o expostulatory_a letter_n of_o his_o concern_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n 1_o sir_n according_a to_o that_o intimate_a acquaintance_n which_o have_v be_v between_o we_o ever_o since_o we_o live_v together_o at_o milan_n you_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o your_o commonweal_n l_o in_o my_o study_n you_o write_v unto_o i_o familiar_o that_o yourself_o and_o many_o other_o there_o with_o you_o wonder_n that_o since_o a_o general_n council_n at_o trent_n have_v be_v summon_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o religion_n and_o remove_v of_o controversy_n and_o see_v already_o all_o other_o nation_n from_o all_o part_n be_v there_o assemble_v the_o realm_n of_o england_n alone_o have_v neither_o send_v any_o ambassador_n thither_o nor_o by_o any_o message_n or_o letter_n excuse_v their_o absence_n but_o without_o any_o council_n have_v alter_v almost_o all_o the_o form_n of_o the_o old_a ancient_a religion_n the_o former_a whereof_o as_o you_o say_v argue_v a_o proud_a stubbornness_n the_o other_o a_o pernicious_a schism_n for_o it_o be_v a_o superlative_a crime_n for_o any_o man_n to_o decline_v the_o most_o sacred_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o be_v call_v by_o he_o to_o a_o council_n to_o withdraw_v himself_o as_o for_o the_o controversy_n about_o religion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o debate_v they_o other_o where_o then_o in_o such_o assembly_n for_o there_o be_v the_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n there_o be_v the_o learn_a man_n of_o all_o sort_n from_o their_o mouth_n the_o truth_n must_v be_v require_v there_o be_v the_o light_n of_o each_o church_n there_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o all_o godly_a prince_n if_o any_o doubt_n have_v rise_v concern_v god_n worship_n still_o refer_v it_o to_o a_o public_a consultation_n that_o moses_n joshua_n david_n ezechias_n josias_n and_o other_o judge_n king_n priest_n do_v not_o advise_v concern_v matter_n of_o religion_n elsewhere_o then_o in_o a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n that_o christ_n apostle_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n hold_v counsel_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o truth_n display_v her_o beam_n heresy_n be_v subdue_v so_o be_v arrius_n vanquish_v so_o eunomius_n so_o eutiches_n so_o macedonius_n so_o pelagius_n and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o mean_v the_o present_a distraction_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v compose_v and_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n make_v up_o again_o if_o contention_n and_o faction_n lay_v aside_o we_o will_v come_v to_o a_o council_n without_o which_o nothing_o can_v lawful_o be_v attempt_v in_o religion_n 2_o this_o in_o effect_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o your_o letter_n i_o do_v not_o now_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o answer_v you_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n by_o what_o advice_n ●●●ry_a thing_n have_v be_v do_v neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o you_o expect_v it_o from_o i_o or_o desire_v it_o the_o counsel_n of_o king_n be_v hide_v and_o secret_a and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v you_o know_v the_o old_a say_n nor_o every_o where_o nor_o to_o all_o nor_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n yet_o 〈◊〉_d ●ur_n old_a and_o intimate_a acquaintance_n because_o i_o see_v you_o desire_v it_o so_o earnest_o i_o will_v brief_o and_o friendly_a show_n you_o what_o i_o think_v but_o as_o he_o sales●_n as_o far_o as_o i_o know_v and_o be_o able_a and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o will_v satisfy_v you_o 3_o we_o wonder_v say_v you_o that_o no_o ambassador_n from_o england_n come_v to_o the_o council_n i_o pray_v you_o sir_n do_v englishmen_n only_a not_o come_v to_o this_o council_n be_v you_o yourself_o present_a at_o the_o council_n do_v you_o take_v a_o muster_n of_o they_o do_v you_o count_v they_o by_o the_o poll_n do_v you_o see_v that_o all_o other_o nation_n be_v meet_v from_o all_o part_n except_o only_o the_o english_a if_o you_o have_v such_o a_o mind_n to_o wonder_v why_o do_v not_o you_o wonder_v at_o this_o too_o that_o neither_o the_o three_o memorable_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n antioch_n and_o alexandria_n nor_o presbyter_n john_n nor_o the_o grecian_n armenian_n persian_n egyptian_n moor_n ethiopian_n or_o indian_n come_v to_o the_o council_n for_o do_v not_o many_o of_o these_o people_n believe_v in_o christ_n have_v they_o not_o bishop_n be_v they_o not_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v they_o not_o christian_n and_o so_o call_v or_o do_v there_o come_v ambassador_n from_o all_o these_o nation_n to_o the_o council_n or_o will_v you_o rather_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o call_v they_o or_o that_o your_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n take_v no_o hold_n of_o they_o 4_o but_o we_o wonder_v more_o at_o this_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v afterward_o call_v such_o man_n to_o a_o council_n who_o before_o hand_n he_o have_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n and_o open_o pronounce_v they_o excommunicate_a without_o hear_v either_o they_o or_o their_o plea._n for_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v first_o condemn_v and_o punish_v and_o afterward_o bring_v to_o their_o trial_n be_v absurd_a and_o as_o we_o say_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n but_o i_o will_v fain_o be_v resolve_v of_o this_o whether_o the_o pope_n meaning_n be_v to_o advise_v in_o the_o council_n concern_v religion_n with_o we_o who_o he_o account_v heretic_n or_o rather_o that_o we_o shall_v plead_v our_o cause_n at_o the_o bar_n and_o either_o change_v our_o opinion_n present_o or_o out_o of_o hand_n be_v condemn_v again_o the_o former_a be_v without_o example_n and_o deny_v heretofore_o by_o julius_n the_o three_o to_o those_o of_o our_o side_n the_o other_o be_v ridiculous_a if_o he_o think_v so_o that_o the_o english_a will_v come_v to_o the_o council_n only_o to_o be_v indict_v and_o to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o especial_o before_o he_o who_o long_o since_o be_v charge_v with_o most_o heinous_a crime_n not_o only_o by_o our_o side_n but_o also_o by_o their_o own_o 5_o now_o if_o england_n only_o seem_v to_o you_o thus_o stubborn_a where_o then_o be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n of_o the_o king_n of_o sueden_n of_o the_o suitzer_n of_o the_o grison_n of_o the_o hanse_v town_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o scotland_n of_o the_o dukedom_n of_o prussia_n see_v so_o many_o christian_a nation_n be_v want_v in_o your_o council_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o miss_v in_o your_o reckon_n only_o the_o english_a but_o why_o do_v i_o speak_v of_o these_o the_o pope_n himself_o come_v not_o to_o his_o own_o council_n and_o why_o do_v you_o not_o wonder_v at_o that_o also_o for_o what_o a_o pride_n be_v this_o for_o one_o man_n for_o his_o own_o pleasure_n to_o assemble_v together_o all_o christian_a king_n prince_n and_o bishop_n when_o he_o list_v and_o to_o require_v they_o to_o be_v at_o his_o call_n and_o himself_o not_o to_o come_v in_o their_o presence_n sure_o when_o the_o apostle_n summon_v assembly_n at_o jerusalem_n peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o who_o sea_n and_o succession_n they_o brag_v will_v not_o be_v absent_a but_o as_o i_o conceive_v pius_n the_o four_o the_o present_a pope_n remèmber_v what_o happen_v heretofore_o to_o john_n the_o 22_o that_o he_o come_v not_o in_o a_o very_a happy_a hour_n to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n for_o he_o come_v pope_n but_o return_v cardinal_n therefore_o since_o then_o the_o pope_n have_v provide_v for_o themselves_o in_o the_o rear_n and_o keep_v home_o and_o have_v withstand_v all_o counsel_n and_o free_a dispute_n for_o above_o forty_o year_n since_o when_o doctor_n martin_n luther_n be_v curse_v by_o the_o pope_n with_o bell_n book_n and_o candle_n because_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o reform_v religion_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o have_v humble_o request_v that_o his_o whole_a cause_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o cognisance_n of_o a_o general_n council_n he_o can_v have_v no_o audience_n for_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o do_v see_v well_o enough_o if_o the_o matter_n shall_v come_v to_o a_o council_n that_o his_o own_o state_n may_v come_v in_o danger_n and_o that_o he_o may_v perchance_o hear_v what_o he_o will_v not_o willing_o 6_o indeed_o the_o name_n of_o a_o general_n council_n carry_v a_o fair_a show_n so_o it_o be_v assemble_v as_o it_o ought_v and_o affection_n lay_v aside_o all_o thing_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n
and_o the_o truth_n only_o aim_v at_o but_o if_o religion_n and_o godliness_n be_v open_o beat_v down_o if_o tyranny_n and_o ambition_n be_v establish_v if_o man_n study_v faction_n gluttony_n lust_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o pernicious_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n all_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v hitherto_o as_o if_o this_o council_n which_o you_o call_v so_o do_v subsist_v somewhere_o and_o be_v indeed_o a_o council_n which_o i_o think_v absolute_o to_o be_v none_o or_o if_o it_o be_v one_o and_o subsist_v any_o where_n sure_o it_o be_v a_o obscure_a one_o and_o keep_v very_o close_o for_o though_o we_o be_v not_o very_o far_o off_o yet_o we_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n learn_v what_o be_v do_v there_o what_o bishop_n have_v meet_v or_o rather_o indeed_o whether_o any_o at_o all_o be_v meet_v nay_o beside_o above_o twenty_o month_n since_o when_o this_o council_n be_v first_o summon_v by_o pope_n pius_n the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n answer_v that_o though_o all_o other_o matter_n be_v accommodate_v yet_o he_o do_v much_o dislike_n the_o place_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v choice_n of_o for_o himself_o for_o trent_n though_o a_o pretty_a city_n yet_o neither_o be_v commodious_o enough_o seat_v for_o the_o receipt_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n nor_o able_a to_o receive_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o man_n as_o be_v likely_a in_o reason_n to_o meet_v at_o a_o general_n council_n the_o same_o answer_n be_v return_v from_o other_o christian_a prince_n and_o from_o some_o much_o sharp_a therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n together_o with_o the_o council_n itself_o have_v be_v vanish_v away_o into_o smoke_n 7_o but_o i_o pray_v you_o who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v summon_v this_o council_n and_o call_v the_o world_n together_o you_o will_v say_v pope_n pius_n the_o four_o and_o why_o he_o rather_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o toledo_n for_o by_o what_o power_n by_o what_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n by_o what_o right_a do_v he_o this_o do_v peter_n linus_n cletus_n clemens_n thus_o toss_v and_o tumble_v the_o world_n with_o their_o proclamation_n this_o be_v always_o while_o the_o empire_n flourish_v the_o proper_a right_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n but_o now_o since_o the_o power_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v lessen_v and_o kingdom_n by_o succession_n share_v part_n of_o the_o imperial_a power_n that_o power_n be_v communicate_v to_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n search_v the_o annal_n lay_v together_o the_o memorial_n of_o all_o antiquity_n you_o shall_v find_v the_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o nicene_n the_o ephesine_n that_o of_o chalcedon_n that_o of_o constantinople_n to_o have_v be_v call_v by_o the_o roman_a emperor_n constantine_n theodosius_n the_o first_o theodosius_n the_o second_o martian_a not_o by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 8_o leo_n the_o pope_n a_o man_n otherwise_o love_a enough_o to_o himself_o and_o no_o way_n neglectful_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o sea_n do_v humble_o beseech_v mauritius_n the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v summon_v a_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o italy_n as_o be_v the_o fit_a place_n all_o the_o priest_n say_v he_o beseech_v your_o clemency_n that_o you_o will_v command_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v hold_v within_o italy_n but_o the_o emperor_n cause_v that_o ceuncel_n to_o be_v assemble_v not_o in_o italy_n which_o the_o pope_n earnest_o labour_v but_o at_o chalcedon_n in_o bythinia_n to_o show_v that_o that_o be_v his_o right_n and_o belong_v to_o he_o only_o and_o when_o ruffinus_n in_o that_o bicker_n which_o he_o have_v with_o jerome_n have_v allege_v a_o certain_a synod_n tell_v i_o say_v jerome_n what_o emperor_n cause_v it_o to_o be_v call_v jerome_n do_v not_o think_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n firm_a enough_o unless_o a_o emperor_n have_v call_v it_o i_o demand_v not_o now_o what_o emperor_n have_v command_v the_o bishop_n to_o be_v call_v to_o trent_n at_o this_o present_a but_o with_o what_o emperor_n do_v the_o pope_n that_o have_v take_v thus_o much_o to_o himself_o advise_v of_o hold_v the_o council_n what_o christian_a king_n or_o prince_n do_v he_o make_v privy_a to_o his_o design_n to_o intrude_v upon_o another_o right_n by_o fraud_n or_o force_n and_o to_o usurp_v for_o his_o own_o what_o belong_v to_o other_o be_v injurious_a deal_n but_o to_o abuse_v the_o clemency_n of_o prince_n and_o to_o rule_v over_o they_o as_o his_o vassal_n be_v a_o egregious_a and_o a_o intolerable_a disgrace_n to_o they_o but_o for_o we_o by_o our_o comply_v to_o go_v about_o to_o back_o such_o a_o injury_n and_o disgrace_n be_v no_o less_o injury_n wherefore_o if_o we_o shall_v only_o say_v thus_o much_o that_o this_o trent_n council_n of_o you_o be_v not_o lawful_o call_v that_o pope_n pius_n have_v do_v nothing_o right_o or_o orderly_o no_o man_n can_v just_o find_v fault_n with_o our_o absence_n 9_o i_o pass_v over_o the_o wrong_n which_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v we_o that_o they_o have_v as_o often_o as_o they_o please_v arm_v our_o people_n against_o their_o sovereign_n that_o they_o have_v pull_v the_o sceptre_n out_o of_o our_o king_n hand_n and_o the_o crown_n from_o off_o their_o head_n that_o they_o will_v have_v the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n to_o be_v they_o and_o hold_v in_o their_o name_n and_o our_o king_n to_o reign_v by_o their_o favour_n that_o within_o these_o late_a year_n they_o have_v stir_v up_o against_o we_o sometime_o the_o french_a sometime_o the_o emperor_n what_o the_o intention_n of_o pius_n himself_o have_v be_v towards_o we_o what_o he_o have_v do_v what_o he_o have_v speak_v what_o he_o have_v practise_v what_o he_o have_v threaten_v it_o be_v needless_a to_o rehearse_v for_o his_o action_n and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o so_o close_o so_o conceal_v but_o that_o the_o aim_n of_o both_o may_v be_v discover_v by_o what_o course_n he_o be_v make_v pope_n and_o by_o what_o step_v he_o mount_v to_o so_o great_a a_o dignity_n i_o say_v nothing_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o aspire_v to_o the_o popedom_n by_o corrupt_v of_o cardinal_n buy_v of_o voice_n by_o price_n and_o purchase_v by_o undermine_n and_o ambush_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o late_o be_v not_o able_a to_o quit_v score_n he_o cast_v cardinal_n caraffa_n into_o prison_n and_o there_o murder_v he_o by_o who_o assistance_n he_o have_v compass_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o cardinal_n voice_n to_o who_o for_o that_o service_n he_o owe_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n these_o and_o diverse_a other_o thing_n i_o leave_v to_o you_o who_o both_o behold_v they_o at_o a_o near_a distance_n and_o better_o understand_v they_o and_o can_v you_o wonder_v then_o that_o wecome_v not_o to_o a_o man_n of_o blood_n one_o that_o purchase_v voice_n that_o deny_v to_o pay_v his_o debt_n to_o a_o simoniacal_a person_n to_o a_o heretic_n believe_v i_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o wise_a man_n wilful_o to_o run_v into_o a_o place_n infect_v and_o to_o consult_v of_o religion_n with_o the_o enemy_n of_o religion_n my_o mother_n say_v one_o forbid_v i_o the_o company_n of_o infamous_a person_n john_n the_o apostle_n dare_v not_o sit_v in_o the_o same_o bath_n nor_o wash_v with_o olympius_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v strike_v from_o heaven_n with_o the_o same_o thunder_n i_o have_v not_o sit_v say_v david_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o vanity_n neither_o will_v i_o walk_v with_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n 10_o but_o admit_v that_o this_o be_v the_o pope_n proper_a right_n let_v it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o call_v counsel_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n let_v those_o thing_n be_v false_a and_o vain_a whatsoever_o we_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o right_n of_o king_n grant_v that_o pope_n pius_n be_v a_o honest_a man_n that_o he_o be_v due_o and_o lawful_o make_v pope_n that_o he_o seek_v no_o man_n life_n that_o he_o do_v not_o kill_v caraffa_n in_o prison_n yet_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o counsel_n shall_v be_v free_a that_o every_o man_n may_v be_v present_a that_o will_v and_o those_o with_o who_o convenience_n it_o stand_v not_o may_v be_v absent_a and_o such_o be_v ancient_o the_o equity_n and_o moderation_n of_o those_o better_a man_n the_o prince_n be_v not_o then_o call_v together_o in_o such_o a_o slavish_a manner_n that_o if_o any_o one_o of_o they_o have_v stay_v at_o home_n or_o have_v not_o send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n present_o every_o eye_n be_v upon_o he_o every_o finger_n point_v at_o he_o in_o the_o nicen_n council_n in_o the_o ephesine_n in_o that_o of_o constantinople_n what_o spy_v observe_v who_o be_v absent_a but_o there_o be_v never_o a_o ambassador_n then_o neither_o from_o
england_n nor_o scotland_n nor_o poland_n nor_o spain_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o two_o pannonia_n nor_o out_o of_o denmark_n nor_o out_o of_o all_o germany_n see_v read_v reexamine_v the_o subscription_n you_o shall_v find_v it_o so_o as_o i_o say_v and_o why_o do_v not_o you_o marvel_v then_o that_o the_o english_a come_v not_o to_o those_o counsel_n be_v so_o full_a so_o famous_a so_o renown_v so_o frequent_v or_o that_o the_o pope_n in_o those_o time_n be_v so_o patient_a as_o not_o to_o condemn_v they_o of_o contumacy_n but_o this_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o yet_o grow_v up_o it_o be_v lawful_a then_o for_o holy_a bishop_n and_o father_n as_o it_o stand_v with_o their_o convenience_n to_o stay_v at_o home_n without_o prejudice_n the_o apostle_n paul_n will_v not_o put_v himself_o upon_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n but_o rather_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n athanasius_n the_o bishop_n though_o the_o emperor_n summon_v he_o to_o the_o council_n at_o caesarea_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o come_v the_o same_o man_n in_o the_o syrmian_n council_n when_o he_o see_v that_o the_o arrian_n be_v like_a to_o prevail_v present_o withdraw_v himself_o and_o go_v his_o way_n and_o the_o western_a bishop_n follow_v his_o example_n refuse_v to_o come_v to_o that_o council_n john_n chrysostome_n come_v not_o to_o the_o arrian_n council_n though_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n call_v he_o both_o by_o letter_n and_o also_o by_o message_n at_o what_o time_n the_o arrian_n bishop_n assemble_v in_o palestine_n and_o draw_v with_o they_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o mayor_n part_n old_a paphnutius_fw-la and_o maximus_fw-la bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n go_v out_o together_o out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o assembly_n bishop_n cyril_n appeal_v from_o the_o council_n of_o the_o patropassian_o paulinus_n bishop_n of_o trier_n will_v not_o come_v to_o the_o council_n of_o milan_n because_o that_o he_o see_v that_o by_o the_o favour_n and_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n all_o run_v of_o auxentius_n the_o arrian_n side_n the_o bishop_n that_o have_v meet_v in_o a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n be_v call_v to_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n refuse_v to_o come_v which_o notwithstanding_o turn_v not_o to_o their_o prejudice_n though_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n letter_n in_o those_o day_n the_o excuse_n seem_v reasonable_a enough_o that_o they_o be_v to_o intend_v the_o charge_n and_o reformation_n of_o their_o own_o church_n though_o they_o see_v that_o the_o arrian_n do_v play_v reak_n in_o all_o church_n and_o that_o their_o presence_n will_v have_v be_v of_o great_a importance_n for_o the_o abate_n of_o their_o rage_n 11_o what_o if_o our_o bishop_n shall_v now_o give_v the_o same_o answer_n that_o they_o can_v spare_v no_o time_n from_o their_o sacred_a function_n that_o they_o be_v whole_o employ_v in_o set_v up_o again_o their_o own_o church_n that_o they_o can_v be_v absent_a five_o six_o seven_o year_n especial_o there_o where_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v no_o good_a for_o our_o bishop_n be_v not_o so_o idle_a as_o those_o at_o rome_n that_o frolic_a it_o in_o their_o palace_n and_o dance_v attendance_n upon_o the_o cardinal_n and_o hunt_v after_o live_n our_o church_n be_v so_o miserable_o waste_v and_o ruin_v by_o they_o that_o they_o can_v be_v repair_v in_o a_o small_a time_n or_o with_o ordinary_a diligence_n but_o now_o we_o see_v plain_o that_o these_o man_n seek_v to_o encroach_v upon_o our_o time_n that_o without_o any_o necessity_n we_o may_v be_v draw_v abroad_o and_o so_o disable_v to_o advance_v the_o gospel_n at_o home_n and_o in_o the_o council_n be_v hinder_v by_o they_o 12_o for_o the_o pope_n that_o you_o may_v not_o be_v mistake_v do_v but_o make_v a_o show_n of_o a_o council_n and_o mean_v it_o not_o for_o think_v not_o that_o he_o do_v any_o thing_n sincere_o or_o true_o lewis_n the_o eleven_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v to_o charles_n the_o eight_o that_o he_o that_o know_v not_o how_o to_o make_v show_n of_o what_o he_o mean_v not_o ken_v not_o kings-craft_n but_o as_o the_o time_n go_v now_o he_o that_o know_v not_o how_o to_o make_v no_o show_n of_o what_o he_o mean_v and_o to_o cloak_n his_o design_n under_o a_o disguise_a countenance_n be_v much_o more_o ignorant_a how_o to_o play_v the_o pope_n for_o that_o sea_n be_v whole_o support_v with_o mere_a hypocrisy_n which_o the_o less_o natural_a strength_n it_o have_v so_o much_o the_o more_o colour_n it_o needs_o for_o if_o the_o pope_n thought_n a_o general_n council_n so_o effectual_a for_o remove_v of_o schism_n why_o do_v they_o differre_fw-la a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a thus_o long_o why_o do_v they_o sit_v quiet_a thirty_o year_n together_o and_o suffer_v luther_n doctrine_n to_o take_v root_n why_o do_v they_o not_o call_v a_o council_n with_o the_o first_o why_o do_v they_o assemble_v the_o trent_n council_n with_o such_o reluctancy_n and_o unwillingness_n more_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n then_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o have_v be_v at_o trent_n well_o nigh_o ten_o year_n with_o all_o this_o deliberation_n why_o have_v they_o do_v just_a nothing_o why_o have_v they_o leave_v the_o matter_n undo_v who_o hinder_v who_o with_o stand_v they_o believe_v i_o in_o this_o good_a brother_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o in_o hand_n now_o to_o keep_v a_o solemn_a council_n or_o to_o restore_v religion_n which_o they_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o that_o which_o they_o intend_v and_o seek_v and_o labour_n for_o be_v to_o delude_v the_o mind_n of_o godly_a man_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o a_o pompous_a expectation_n of_o a_o general_n council_n 13_o they_o see_v that_o their_o wealth_n have_v be_v lessen_v now_o a_o pretty_a while_n and_o decline_v that_o their_o trick_n do_v not_o find_v the_o same_o credit_n now_o as_o heretofore_o that_o a_o incredible_a number_n of_o man_n every_o day_n fall_v from_o they_o that_o man_n do_v not_o now_o run_v to_o rome_n in_o such_o troop_n that_o there_o be_v not_o now_o a_o day_n so_o high_a a_o estimation_n or_o so_o dear_a a_o price_n give_v for_o indulgence_n interdict_v blessing_n absolution_n and_o empty_a bull_n that_o their_o mart_n of_o ceremony_n and_o mass_n and_o all_o their_o whorish_a painting_n be_v slight_v that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o tyranny_n and_o pomp_n be_v shrink_v that_o their_o revenue_n be_v slendere_a than_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v that_o they_o and_o they_o be_v laugh_v at_o every_o where_o even_o by_o very_a child_n that_o their_o whole_a rest_n lie_v now_o at_o stake_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o those_o thing_n fall_v which_o have_v no_o root_n to_o hold_v they_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n extinguish_v all_o those_o thing_n not_o by_o arm_n or_o force_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o heavenly_a blast_n and_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n but_o will_v consume_v and_o abolish_v they_o with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n this_o be_v the_o force_n of_o god_n word_n this_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o gospel_n these_o be_v the_o weapon_n by_o which_o be_v overthrow_v every_o fortification_n which_o be_v raise_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n this_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v preach_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o despite_n of_o they_o all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o the_o merit-monger_n shop_n wax_v cold_a now_o at_o rome_n their_o ware_n as_o if_o porsenna_n good_n be_v put_v to_o sale_n be_v very_o low_o price_v and_o yet_o can_v scarce_o find_v a_o chapman_n the_o indulgence-broker_n trot_v up_o and_o down_o and_o find_v no_o fool_n this_o be_v it_o hence_o grow_v their_o grief_n this_o vex_v the_o pope_n they_o see_v that_o this_o so_o great_a light_n break_v forth_o from_o one_o spark_n what_o be_v it_o like_v to_o do_v now_o when_o so_o many_o fire_n be_v kindle_v in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o many_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n acknowledge_v and_o profess_v the_o gospel_n for_o they_o serve_v not_o christ_n jesus_n but_o their_o belly_n they_o say_v that_o carneades_n the_o philosopher_n when_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o make_v that_o memorable_a speech_n against_o justice_n among_o other_o thing_n he_o add_v this_o that_o this_o virtue_n if_o it_o be_v one_o will_v be_v less_o profitable_a to_o no_o kind_n of_o man_n then_o to_o the_o roman_n for_o they_o by_o force_n and_o robbery_n have_v subdue_v other_o man_n dominion_n to_o themselves_o and_o have_v compass_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o world_n by_o high_a injustice_n now_o if_o they_o will_v at_o length_n observe_v justice_n they_o must_v restore_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o possess_v unjust_o they_o must_v return_v to_o their_o shepherd_n
meae_fw-la donec_fw-la inveniam_fw-la locum_fw-la domino_fw-la &_o tabernaculum_fw-la deo_fw-la jacob_n o_o si_fw-la principes_fw-la christiani_n audire_fw-la vellent_fw-la vocem_fw-la domini_fw-la svi_fw-la nunc_fw-la reges_fw-la intelligite_fw-la inquit_fw-la dominus_fw-la erudimini_fw-la qui_fw-la iudicatis_fw-la terram_fw-la ego_fw-la inquit_fw-la dixi_fw-la dij_fw-la estis_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la homines_fw-la divinitùs_fw-la electi_fw-la quibus_fw-la nomen_fw-la meum_fw-la esset_fw-la curae_fw-la cogita_fw-la tu_fw-la quem_fw-la ego_fw-la desterquilinio_fw-la excitavi_fw-la &_o in_o summo_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la gradu_fw-la collocavi_fw-la &_o praefeci_fw-la populo_fw-la meo_fw-la cum_fw-la ita_fw-la studiosè_fw-la aedifices_fw-la &_o orne_v domum_fw-la tuam_fw-la quo_fw-la animo_fw-la potes_fw-la contemnere_fw-la domum_fw-la meam_fw-la aut_fw-la quomodo_fw-la quotidie_fw-la oras_fw-la ut_fw-la regnum_fw-la tuum_fw-la tibi_fw-la posterisque_fw-la tuis_fw-la confirmetur_fw-la an_fw-mi ut_fw-la nomen_fw-la meum_fw-la semper_fw-la afficiatur_fw-la contumetia_fw-mi ut_fw-la evangeliam_fw-la christi_fw-la mei_fw-la extinguatur_fw-la ut_fw-la servi_fw-la mei_fw-la meâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la tuos_fw-la te_fw-la inspectante_fw-la tracidentur_fw-la ut_fw-la tyrannis_fw-la longiùs_fw-la grassetur_fw-la ut_fw-la populo_fw-la meo_fw-la semper_fw-la imponatur_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la te_fw-la scandalum_fw-la confirmetur_fw-la vae_fw-la illi_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la venit_fw-la scandalum_fw-la vae_fw-la etiam_fw-la illi_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la confirmatur_fw-la scandalum_fw-la horres_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la corporum_fw-la quanto_fw-la magis_fw-la horrere_fw-la debes_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la animarum_fw-la memineris_fw-la quid_fw-la acciderit_fw-la antiocho_n herodi_n juliano_n ego_fw-la regnum_fw-la tuum_fw-la transferam_fw-la ad_fw-la hostem_fw-la tuum_fw-la quia_fw-la peccasti_fw-la adversum_fw-la me_fw-it ego_fw-la muto_fw-la tempora_fw-la &_o vice_n temporum_fw-la abijcioreges_fw-la &_o instituo_fw-la ut_fw-la intelligas_fw-la i_o alunssimum_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o vim_o habere_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la hominum_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la dare_v cvi_fw-la volo_fw-la ego_fw-la humilio_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la exalto_fw-la ego_fw-la glorificantes_fw-la i_o glorisico_fw-la &_o eos_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o contemnunt_fw-la afficio_fw-la contumeliâ_fw-la andrea_n dudithius_fw-la episcopus_fw-la qvinqveecclesiensis_fw-la in_o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la maximilianum_fw-la ii_o caesarem_fw-la ubi_fw-la sententiam_fw-la svam_fw-la refert_fw-la de_fw-la calais_n laicis_fw-la concedendo_fw-la &_o sacerdotum_fw-la coniugio_fw-la qvid_fw-la profici_fw-la potuit_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la concilio_n in_o quo_fw-la numerarentur_fw-la non_fw-la suis_fw-la momentis_fw-la ponderarentur_fw-la sententiae_fw-la si_fw-mi caussa_fw-la si_fw-la ratione_fw-la pugnandum_fw-la fuisset_fw-la si_fw-la pauci_fw-la quidam_fw-la socij_fw-la nobis_fw-la adfuissent_fw-la viceramus_fw-la quamuis_fw-la pauci_fw-la magnas_fw-la copias_fw-la adversariorum_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la numerus_fw-la tantùm_fw-la prodiret_fw-la in_o aciem_fw-la quo_fw-la longè_fw-la inferiores_fw-la futuri_fw-la fuissemus_fw-la in_fw-la optima_fw-la causa_fw-la victores_fw-la discedere_fw-la non_fw-la potuimus_fw-la singulis_n nostrum_fw-la centenos_fw-la de_fw-fr suis_fw-fr papa_n potuit_fw-la opponere_fw-la ac_fw-la si_fw-la centeni_fw-la parum_fw-la multi_fw-la viderentur_fw-la repentè_fw-fr mille_fw-la creare_fw-la potuit_fw-la quos_fw-la suis_fw-la laborantibus_fw-la subsidio_fw-la mitteret_fw-la itaque_fw-la videre_fw-la erat_fw-la quotidie_fw-la famelicos_fw-la &_o egentes_fw-la episcopos_fw-la exmaiori_fw-la parte_fw-la barbatulos_fw-la adolescentes_fw-la luxúque_fw-la perditos_fw-la tridentum_n volitare_fw-la conductos_fw-la ad_fw-la sententiam_fw-la secundùm_fw-la papae_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la dicendam_fw-la indoctos_fw-la illos_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o stolidos_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la impudentia_fw-la &_o audacia_fw-la utiles_fw-la he_o cum_fw-la ad_fw-la veteres_fw-la adulatores_fw-la papae_fw-la accesserant_fw-la tum_fw-la verò_fw-la victrix_fw-la exultabat_fw-la iniquitas_fw-la neque_fw-la decerni_fw-la iam_fw-la quidquam_fw-la potuit_fw-la nisi_fw-la in_o eorum_fw-la sententiam_fw-la qui_fw-la papae_fw-la potentiam_fw-la luxúmque_fw-la defendere_fw-la summam_fw-la religionem_fw-la arbitrabantur_fw-la erat_fw-la aliquis_fw-la vir_fw-la gravis_fw-la &_o eruditus_fw-la qui_fw-la tantam_fw-la indignitatem_fw-la far_o not_o poterat_fw-la hic_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la bone_fw-la catholicus_n terror_fw-la minis_fw-la ac_fw-la insectatione_n à_fw-la concilio_n ad_fw-la probandum_fw-la quae_fw-la nollet_fw-la traducebatur_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la in_fw-la eum_fw-la statum_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la adducta_fw-la istorum_fw-la qui_fw-la illuc_fw-la facti_fw-la institutique_fw-la venerant_fw-la improbitate_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la iam_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la sed_fw-la laruarum_fw-la non_fw-la hominum_fw-la sed_fw-la simulacrorum_fw-la quae_fw-la neruis_fw-la moventur_fw-la alienis_fw-la ut_fw-la daedali_fw-la statuae_fw-la fuisse_fw-la perhibentur_fw-la concilium_fw-la illud_fw-la videretur_fw-la erant_fw-la episcopi_fw-la illi_fw-la conductitij_fw-la plerique_fw-la ut_fw-la utres_fw-la rusticorum_fw-la musicum_fw-la instrumentum_fw-la quos_fw-la ut_fw-la vocem_fw-la mittant_fw-la inflare_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la nil_fw-la habuit_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la conventu_fw-la s._n spiritus_fw-la commereij_fw-la omne_fw-la erant_fw-la humana_fw-la consilia_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o immodica_fw-la &_o sanè_fw-la quàm_fw-la pudenda_fw-la pontificum_fw-la tuenda_fw-la dominatione_fw-la consumebantur_fw-la illinc_fw-la responsa_fw-la tanquam_fw-la delphis_n aut_fw-la dodonâ_fw-la expectabantur_fw-la illinc_fw-la nimirum_fw-la spiritus_fw-la ille_fw-la s._n quem_fw-la suis_fw-la concilijs_fw-la prae_fw-la esse_fw-la iactant_fw-la tabellarij_fw-la manticis_fw-la inclusus_fw-la mittebatur_fw-la qui_fw-la quod_fw-la admodum_fw-la ridiculum_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la aliquando_fw-la ut_fw-la fit_n aquae_fw-la plwijs_fw-la excrescebant_fw-la non_fw-la ante_fw-la advolare_fw-la poterat_fw-la quàm_fw-la inundationes_fw-la desedissent_fw-la ita_fw-la fiebat_fw-la ut_fw-la spiritus_fw-la non_fw-la super_fw-la aquas_fw-la ut_fw-la est_fw-la in_o genesi_fw-la sed_fw-la secus_fw-la aquas_fw-la ferretur_fw-la o_o portentosam_n &_o singularem_fw-la dementiam_fw-la ratum_fw-la nihil_fw-la esse_fw-la poterat_fw-la quod_fw-la episcopi_fw-la tanquam_fw-la plebs_fw-la sciscerent_fw-la nisi_fw-la papa_n author_n fieret_fw-la a_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o all_o the_o principal_a matter_n contain_v in_o this_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n a_o abuse_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v collect_v to_o be_v reform_v pag._n 83_o 84_o acclamation_n use_v in_o former_a counsel_n and_o imitate_v in_o trent_n 813_o adrian_n 6._o be_v create_v pope_n be_v much_o fear_v for_o his_o severity_n 19_o be_v learn_v in_o schoole-divinitie_n be_v bear_v in_o vtrect_n resolve_v to_o reform_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n 20_o be_v dissuade_v from_o it_o 23_o he_o lament_v because_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v good_a though_o they_o desire_v it_o never_o so_o much_o 24_o he_o confess_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n not_o exempt_n the_o apostolic_a sea_n 25_o his_o death_n and_o praise_n 30_o amante_n seruita_fw-la a_o friar_n of_o brescia_n concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o luther_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n and_o be_v silence_v 522_o ambassador_n in_o trent_n hold_v a_o consultation_n how_o to_o remedy_v the_o proceed_n in_o council_n and_o choose_v the_o french_a ambassador_n lansac_n to_o speak_v for_o they_o 570_o 571_o the_o ambassador_n in_o trent_n do_v not_o subscribe_v the_o decree_n when_o the_o council_n be_v end_v 813_o andreas_n vega_n chief_a of_o the_o franciscan_n dispute_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v without_o declare_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o catboliques_n 179_o he_o write_v against_o soto_n 216_o anna_n du_fw-fr bourg_n be_v burn_v in_o france_n for_o religion_n and_o his_o constancy_n cause_v a_o great_a increase_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n 419_o annat_n be_v speak_v against_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o nismes_n 716_o appeal_v and_o their_o original_n 334_o 335_o apostolic_a sea_n what_o it_o be_v 321_o archbishop_n of_o collen_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o clear_v himself_o of_o lutheranisme_n object_v against_o he_o 124_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o same_o time_n 125_o be_v sentence_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o sentence_n be_v not_o execute_v by_o the_o emperor_n until_o certain_a year_n after_o 165_o he_o be_v obey_v by_o his_o people_n 189_o be_v proceed_v against_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n adolphus_n put_v in_o his_o place_n 259_o arch-bishp_a of_o otranto_n oppose_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o have_v forty_o voice_n at_o his_o command_n 719_o be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n for_o make_v private_a congregation_n 759_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n be_v in_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n his_o book_n be_v examine_v in_o council_n and_o approve_a 750_o aremboldus_n be_v agent_n for_o the_o pope_n sister_n to_o vent_v her_o indulgence_n 5_o augustan_n confession_n whence_o it_o have_v the_o name_n and_o when_o the_o first_o liberty_n to_o beprofessed_a public_o 63_o auignion_n rebell_v against_o the_o pope_n 429_o 430_o b_o bando_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n 201_o baptism_n discuss_v 242_o whether_o that_o of_o john_n be_v equal_a to_o christ_n baptism_n 243_o battle_n of_o s._n quintin_n in_o which_o the_o french_a king_n receive_v a_o great_a overthrow_n 406_o battle_n in_o france_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o papist_n in_o which_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v take_v prisoner_n 647_o cause_v much_o joy_n in_o trent_n 649_o bavaria_n desire_v liberty_n of_o religion_n 397._o 398_o the_o bavarian_a ambassador_n make_v a_o bite_a oration_n in_o council_n against_o
the_o assistant_n in_o council_n 554_o salmeron_n the_o jesuite_n proceed_v by_o faction_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 555_o laynez_n general_n of_o the_o jesuite_n spend_v a_o whole_a congregation_n in_o a_o discourse_n concern_v the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n 609_o 610_o 611_o his_o suffrage_n concern_v dispensation_n 721_o favour_n do_v to_o he_o in_o council_n by_o the_o legate_n 721._o 722_o the_o jesuite_n do_v profess_v to_o live_v by_o beg_v but_o will_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o it_o 799_o they_o make_v use_v of_o the_o negligence_n of_o the_o father_n in_o council_n to_o raise_v their_o order_n to_o more_o greatness_n 801_o image_n and_o their_o doctrine_n 806_o index_n be_v dispute_v on_o 474_o 475_o 502_o a_o decree_n make_v concern_v it_o 480_o indulgence_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o bring_v money_n to_o the_o pope_n coffer_n 4_o a_o plenary_a indulgence_n grant_v by_o vrban_n the_o second_o and_o leo_n the_o ten_o 4_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o indulgence_n of_o saxony_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o pope_n sister_n 5_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n be_v never_o well_o understand_v before_o luther_n write_v against_o they_o 6_o four_o different_a opinion_n concern_v they_o and_o all_o catholic_a 22_o the_o council_n dare_v not_o handle_v indulgence_n exact_o 801_o the_o decree_n concern_v they_o 812_o a_o indulgence_n grant_v by_o the_o legate_n in_o trent_n without_o authority_n 113_o in_o quisition_n bring_v into_o naples_n 271_o and_o into_o the_o low-countries_n 300_o the_o office_n of_o inquisition_n be_v main_o promote_v by_o paul_n the_o four_o 409_o the_o inquisition_n shall_v have_v be_v bring_v into_o milan_n which_o cause_v a_o great_a tumult_n there_o and_o in_o the_o council_n 757_o 758_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n to_o do_v as_o the_o church_n do_v whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o baptism_n and_o the_o other_o sacrament_n 240_o 241_o etc._n etc._n interim_n or_o peace_n of_o religion_n be_v make_v in_o germany_n 62_o it_o displease_v both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n 294._o be_v abrogate_a 379_o john_n tancherel_n be_v condemn_v in_o france_n for_o maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v king_n 463_o 464_o ireland_n be_v make_v a_o kingdom_n by_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o which_o title_n it_o have_v long_o before_o 392_o ispruc_n be_v take_v by_o the_o protestant_n 378_o jubilee_n publish_v in_o rome_n 130_o and_o in_o trent_n 203_o another_o jubilee_n celebrate_v in_o rome_n for_o joy_n of_o the_o determination_n to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n 435_o julius_n the_o 2._o pope_n be_v more_o a_o soldier_n then_o a_o clergy_n man_n 3_o julius_n the_o 3_o create_a pope_n 298_o be_v more_o incline_v to_o pleasure_n then_o business_n creat_v a_o young_a car._n of_o unknown_a parent_n 299_o restore_v the_o council_n to_o trent_n 302_o 303_o be_v alien_v from_o the_o emperor_n 371_o suspend_v the_o council_n 376_o maintain_v his_o reputation_n by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o armenia_n 382_o 383_o rejoice_v for_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o obedience_n of_o england_n he_o die_v 389_o justice_n by_o who_o it_o be_v to_o be_v administer_v in_o council_n 82_o justification_n be_v discuss_v in_o many_o article_n 192_o which_o do_v trouble_v the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n because_o it_o be_v never_o well_o discuss_v by_o the_o schoolman_n 194_o k_o king_n of_o denmark_n embrace_v the_o reform_a religion_n 84_o king_n of_o navarre_n have_v a_o guard_n set_v upon_o he_o 436_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o govern_v france_n 437_o write_v to_o the_o protestant_a prince_n in_o germany_n that_o he_o will_v preserve_v religion_n in_o france_n 480_o be_v slay_v with_o a_o bullet_n at_o the_o siege_n of_o rouen_n 640_o his_o death_n make_v a_o great_a alteration_n in_o france_n 641_o knight_n of_o malta_n send_v a_o ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n who_o be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n 762_o l._n landgrave_n of_o hassia_n prevent_v a_o division_n among_o the_o reformatist_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o spira_n 47_o publish_v a_o manifest_a against_o the_o emp._n 190_o who_o set_v forth_o a_o bando_n against_o he_o 201_o landgrave_n and_o saxon_n have_v equal_a authority_n in_o the_o war_n against_o the_o emperor_n which_o be_v a_o great_a disadvantage_n to_o they_o 204_o he_o yield_v himself_o prisoner_n to_o the_o emperor_n 270_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n 379_o lateran_n council_n what_o advantage_n it_o bring_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n 19_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v discourse_v of_o 155_o 156_o 157_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v approve_v 159_o it_o be_v say_v that_o no_o error_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o it_o 161_o law_n of_o pope_n be_v more_o strict_o observe_v then_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 488_o league_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o french_a king_n be_v confirm_v by_o marriage_n 67_o between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o protestant_n 188_o the_o league_n between_o charles_n the_o emperor_n and_o henry_n 8._o king_n of_o england_n offend_v the_o pope_n 105_o a_o league_n of_o all_o catholic_n against_o the_o protestant_n be_v treat_v by_o the_o pope_n 515_o but_o can_v be_v effect_v 516_o a_o league_n between_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o french_a k._n against_o the_o emp._n confirm_v by_o marriage_n 252_o another_o of_o the_o protestant_n in_o germany_n against_o the_o emperor_n 312_o 484_o legate_n in_o trent_n desire_v to_o have_v two_o sort_n of_o letter_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o cipher_n 113_o leo_fw-la 10_o pope_n his_o description_n 3_o lewis_n 12._o french_a king_n be_v excommunicate_v 3_o liberty_n of_o friar_n be_v hold_v dangerous_a by_o the_o legate_n and_o repress_v 228_o a_o friar_n of_o brescia_n be_v disgrace_v for_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n like_o luther_n 422_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n violate_v by_o the_o pope_n 503_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n be_v think_v by_o the_o speaker_n to_o be_v too_o great_a 533_o and_o by_o the_o french_a ambassador_n to_o be_v none_o at_o all_o 542_o as_o also_o by_o the_o spaniard_n 551_o the_o precedent_n use_v mean_n to_o curb_v the_o spanish_a prelate_n 620_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n say_v open_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a 635_o the_o bishop_n of_o veglia_n quit_v the_o council_n for_o fear_n 644_o the_o prelate_n be_v terrify_v with_o the_o pope_n authority_n 645_o martin_n guzdalin_n a_o spaniard_n complain_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a 661_o and_o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n do_v the_o like_a who_o be_v answer_v by_o cardinal_n morone_n 754_o limbo_n be_v the_o place_n where_o child_n be_v who_o die_v without_o baptism_n before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n 178_o luther_n speak_v against_o indulgence_n 5_o and_o against_o the_o pope_n authority_n 7_o appeal_v to_o the_o council_n 8._o 12_o pass_v to_o other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n 9_o burn_v the_o pope_n bull_n and_o decretal_n in_o wittenberg_n 12_o be_v call_v to_o the_o diet_n of_o worm_n 13_o and_o a_o edict_n be_v publish_v against_o he_o after_o his_o departure_n 15_o which_o be_v never_o execute_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n 26_o 27_o etc._n etc._n his_o answer_n to_o vergerius_n 75_o he_o die_v 148_o diverse_a fable_n be_v raise_v of_o his_o death_n 149_o m._n mantua_n be_v choose_v to_o hold_v the_o council_n in_o 79_o wherewith_o the_o duke_n be_v content_v at_o the_o first_o but_o repent_v afterward_o 82_o marcellus_n the_o second_o create_v pope_n 389_o purpose_v to_o make_v a_o severe_a reformation_n of_o the_o court_n and_o clergy_n and_o to_o erect_v a_o religious_a order_n of_o a_o hundred_o person_n 390_o he_o die_v have_v sit_v but_o two_o and_o twenty_o day_n 392_o marriage_n of_o priest_n what_o inconvenience_n it_o bring_v 460_o why_o it_o be_v forbid_v 680_o matrimony_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v dispute_v 662_o 665._o the_o inconvenience_n of_o secret_a marriage_n 665_o 668_o etc._n etc._n whether_o priest_n may_v marry_v 678_o 679_o a_o marriage_n be_v desire_v and_o seek_v by_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n between_o his_o sister_n and_o his_o son_n charles_n 685_o marriage_n of_o child_n without_o consent_n of_o their_o parent_n be_v speak_v against_o by_o the_o french_a ambassador_n 746_o 747_o 754_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v promote_v and_o oppose_v in_o council_n 747_o the_o abuse_n of_o matrimony_n be_v discuss_v 747_o 748._o a_o question_n discuss_v whether_o one_o may_v be_v force_v to_o marry_v 749_o 750_o diverse_a opinion_n concern_v clandestine_v marriage_n 782_o the_o doctrine_n of_o matrimony_n be_v decree_v 784_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o abuse_n of_o it_o be_v decree_v 784_o 785_o the_o impediment_n of_o matrimony_n be_v decree_v 785._o mary_n obtain_v the_o crown_n of_o england_n 383_o establish_v popery_n 384_o be_v marry_v to_o king_n philip._n 385_o appoint_v ambassador_n to_o go_v to_o
731_o 732_o the_o decree_n be_v read_v for_o save_v the_o pope_n authority_n which_o be_v never_o mention_v before_o 812_o the_o pope_n authority_n whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n 812_o pope_n only_o must_v interpret_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 818_o portugal_n ambassador_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n 476_o preach_v claim_v by_o the_o regulars_n as_o belong_v to_o they_o which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o prelate_n 161_o 167_o precedence_n be_v claim_v by_o don_n diego_n the_o spanish_a ambassador_n before_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n 114_o 117_o by_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n before_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n 443_o prince_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o france_n have_v precedence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n 449_o the_o prelate_n in_o trent_n differ_v about_o precedence_n 467_o and_o so_o do_v the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n and_o hungary_n 480_o likewise_o the_o bavarian_a and_o venetian_a ambassador_n differ_v about_o precedence_n 501_o and_o so_o do_v the_o french_a and_o spanish_a ambassador_n in_o trent_n 663_o in_o rome_n 713_o and_o again_o in_o trent_n 727_o 728_o 729_o predestination_n be_v discuss_v 210_o 211_o etc._n etc._n precedent_n send_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v never_o govern_v counsel_n before_o that_o of_o constance_n 137_o they_o give_v auricular_a voice_n in_o trent_n 616_o precedent_n name_v for_o the_o second_o reduction_n of_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 310_o for_o the_o three_o reduction_n 444_o 445_o the_o precedent_n only_o do_v give_v audience_n to_o the_o ambassador_n 553._o two_o new_a precedent_n 681_o precedent_n of_o counsel_n what_o authority_n they_o have_v 707_o priesthood_n and_o the_o decree_n concern_v it_o 738_o the_o anathematisme_n belong_v to_o it_o 739_o prince_n of_o conde_n be_v imprison_v 436_o prince_n of_o orange_n marry_v a_o daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n 456_o proctor_n send_v by_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n to_o give_v voice_n in_o council_n for_o all_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o kingdom_n 118_o the_o pope_n decree_v that_o none_o shall_v give_v voice_n by_o proctor_n 118_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n be_v about_o to_o leave_v the_o council_n 122_o prohibition_n of_o book_n be_v discourse_v on_o by_o the_o author_n 472_o protestant_n make_v a_o conditional_a submission_n to_o the_o council_n 274_o a_o consultation_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o council_n 367_o protestant_a divine_n of_o wittenberg_n and_o strasburg_n come_v to_o trent_n 374_o fifty_o thousand_o protestant_n be_v execute_v in_o the_o low-countries_n within_o a_o short_a space_n 413_o the_o protestant_n assemble_v in_o noremburg_n and_o the_o pope_n send_v nuncii_fw-la unto_o they_o 439_o protestation_n of_o doctor_n that_o they_o refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n be_v but_o word_n of_o compliment_n and_o of_o good_a manner_n 249_o protestation_n of_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o council_n of_o bolonia_n 279_o 280_o another_o protestation_n in_o rome_n before_o the_o pope_n 281_o which_o the_o pope_n say_v the_o ambassador_n do_v make_v without_o commission_n from_o his_o master_n 282_o the_o ambassador_n protest_v again_o 284_o the_o french_a k._n protest_v against_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n 319_o the_o intend_a protestation_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n about_o precedence_n 730_o 731_o proverb_n in_o trent_n very_o blasphemous_a about_o the_o bring_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o rome_n 497_o another_o proverb_n in_o council_n we_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o spanish_a scab_n to_o the_o french_a pox_n 640_o a_o kind_n of_o proverb_n make_v in_o france_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n 822_o purgatory_n be_v speak_v of_o 799_o q._n queen_n mary_n governess_n of_o the_o low_a country_n favour_v the_o protestant_n 89_o queen_n mother_n of_o france_n refuse_v a_o spanish_a army_n to_o assist_v she_o against_o the_o hugonot_n 648_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n 712_o be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o pather_n for_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o chastillon_n and_o other_o hugonot_n in_o france_n 776_o queen_n of_o scotland_n write_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 703_o queen_n of_o england_n shall_v have_v be_v proceed_v against_o in_o council_n but_o the_o emperor_n will_v not_o fuffer_v it_o 727_o queen_n of_o navarre_n be_v cite_v to_o rome_n for_o lutheranisme_n 780_o and_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o french_a king_n 794_o 795_o r._n reformation_n make_v by_o cardinal_n campeggio_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o noremberg_n 32_o 33_o etc._n etc._n a_o reformation_n make_v in_o rome_n under_o paul_n the_o three_o be_v suppress_v 79_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n and_o much_o discuss_v 83_o 84_o the_o emperor_n will_v have_v reformation_n handle_v before_o doctrine_n 202_o it_o be_v whole_o recall_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o rome_n but_o the_o prelate_n will_v not_o yield_v 254_o 255_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n publish_v by_o the_o emperor_n 292_o a_o reformation_n make_v in_o council_n be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o priest_n 343_o another_o be_v make_v in_o rome_n of_o small_a matter_n only_o 505_o twenty_o point_n of_o reformation_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n 513_o nine_o point_n of_o reformation_n 532_o 538_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o reformation_n be_v omit_v 568_o reformation_n be_v main_o promote_v in_o council_n by_o the_o imperialist_n and_o spaniard_n 588_o the_o free_a speech_n in_o council_n concern_v reformation_n do_v trouble_v the_o legate_n 595_o 600_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n how_o it_o begin_v 617_o article_n of_o reformation_n propose_v in_o council_n by_o the_o frenchman_n 650_o 652_o the_o pope_n think_v that_o a_o reformation_n will_v not_o reduce_v the_o heretic_n 700_o a_o reformation_n of_o cardinal_n be_v main_o promote_v but_o vanish_v quick_o 726_o a_o reformation_n propose_v by_o the_o imperialist_n 751_o 752_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n be_v defer_v 760_o a_o hundred_o prelate_n do_v combine_v to_o promote_v it_o 766_o it_o be_v declare_v at_o large_a 769_o 770_o the_o emperor_n dista_v it_o and_o the_o french_a ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n make_v a_o oration_n against_o it_o 771_o 772_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_a reformation_n 808_o 809_o etc._n etc._n the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n 811_o 812_o etc._n etc._n regulars_n be_v complain_v of_o by_o the_o prelate_n and_o defend_v themselves_o 169_o they_o begin_v to_o mutiny_v about_o their_o exemption_n 761_o their_o reformation_n 806_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o england_n 295_o 384_o 421_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o denmark_n 84_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o the_o palatinate_n 148_o 398_o religion_n be_v change_v in_o scotland_n 426_o 451_o reputation_n be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o the_o papal_a greatness_n 29_o residence_n be_v treat_v of_o 191_o 216_o 217_o etc._n etc._n whether_o it_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la 218_o 219_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o question_n to_o be_v decide_v 232_o the_o question_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o 486_o 487_o etc._n etc._n it_o cause_v great_a fear_n in_o rome_n 502_o be_v dispute_v on_o again_o 505_o 510_o the_o disputation_n of_o it_o be_v divert_v by_o the_o legate_n 550_o residence_n be_v decree_v 723_o 736_o the_o reformation_n of_o it_o be_v decree_v 739_o richard_n of_o vercelli_n die_v with_o grief_n because_o he_o be_v in_o disgrace_n with_o the_o legate_n for_o speak_v free_o in_o council_n 566_o 569_o rite_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v diverse_a 548_o rome_n be_v take_v by_o the_o colonnesi_n 41_o and_o by_o the_o dutchman_n and_o duke_n of_o borbon_n 43_o rota_n in_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o great_a court_n of_o justice_n there_o reject_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o segovia_n assist_v in_o council_n for_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n because_o he_o do_v not_o second_v the_o pope_n design_n 678_o s._n sacrament_n in_o general_n be_v handle_v 234_o 235_o etc._n etc._n how_o they_o do_v contain_v and_o cause_n grace_n 237_o a_o decree_n of_o reformation_n be_v make_v concern_v they_o 245_o and_o anathematism_n 248_o safeconduct_a be_v require_v by_o the_o protestant_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n 316_o the_o content_n of_o it_o 341_o it_o be_v dislike_v by_o the_o protestant_n 343_o 344_o the_o council_n refuse_v to_o alter_v it_o 369_o santa-croce_n the_o legate_n be_v threaten_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o river_n adice_n 202_o schism_n in_o the_o council_n some_o remain_v in_o trent_n and_o other_o be_v go_v to_o bolonia_n 269_o 274_o scotland_n shake_v off_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n 426_o 451_o session_n the_o first_o hold_v in_o trent_n deocin_n 13._o a_o 1545._o 130_o the_o second_o jan._n 7._o 1546._o 139_o the_o three_o feb._n 4._o 1546._o
opposite_a who_o ambassador_n will_v be_v in_o trent_n very_o short_o he_o resolve_v to_o give_v the_o king_n 100000._o crown_n and_o to_o lend_v he_o as_o much_o in_o the_o name_n of_o merchant_n upon_o sufficient_a assurance_n for_o the_o principal_a and_o the_o interest_n so_o that_o he_o will_v in_o earnest_n and_o without_o dissimulation_n revoke_v the_o edict_n and_o make_v war_n for_o religion_n that_o with_o that_o money_n swiss_n and_o german_n may_v be_v levy_v to_o be_v under_o the_o conduct_n of_o his_o legate_n and_o the_o colour_n of_o the_o church_n that_o no_o huguenot_n shall_v be_v pardon_v without_o his_o consent_n that_o the_o chancellor_n the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n and_o other_o to_o be_v name_v by_o he_o shall_v be_v imprison_v that_o in_o the_o council_n nothing_o shall_v be_v handle_v against_o his_o authority_n and_o that_o his_o ambassador_n shall_v not_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o annat_n yet_o he_o promise_v to_o accord_v with_o the_o king_n in_o that_o matter_n and_o to_o reform_v it_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o majesty_n afterward_o the_o pope_n consult_v on_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n that_o when_o there_o be_v occasion_n he_o may_v speak_v thereof_o correct_o without_o prejudice_n to_o himself_o or_o scandal_n to_o other_o and_o have_v well_o discuss_v the_o reason_n he_o settle_v his_o opinion_n to_o approve_v it_o and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v execute_v upon_o what_o residence_n he_o consult_v on_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n law_n soever_o it_o be_v ground_v whether_o canonical_a or_o evangelicall_a and_o so_o he_o answer_v the_o french_a ambassador_n who_o speak_v to_o he_o of_o it_o add_v that_o he_o alone_o be_v depute_v to_o see_v the_o execution_n of_o all_o the_o evangelicall_a precept_n for_o christ_n have_v say_v to_o s._n peter_n feed_v my_o lamb_n have_v ordain_v that_o all_o the_o order_n make_v by_o his_o divine_a majesty_n shall_v be_v execute_v by_o mean_n of_o he_o only_o and_o that_o he_o will_v make_v a_o bull_n thereof_o with_o a_o penalty_n of_o deprivation_n of_o the_o bishopricke_n which_o shall_v be_v more_o fear_v than_o a_o declaration_n which_o the_o council_n may_v make_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divine_a and_o the_o ambassador_n insist_v upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n he_o say_v that_o if_o all_o liberty_n be_v grant_v unto_o it_o they_o will_v extend_v it_o to_o reform_v not_o only_o the_o pope_n but_o secular_a prince_n also_o and_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n much_o please_v his_o holiness_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o nothing_o be_v worse_o than_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o defence_n only_o and_o that_o if_o other_o do_v threaten_v he_o with_o the_o council_n he_o will_v play_v with_o they_o at_o the_o same_o weapon_n at_o this_o time_n to_o begin_v to_o execute_v that_o which_o he_o have_v request_v and_o promise_v only_o and_o reform_v the_o court_n in_o petty_a matter_n only_o that_o be_v to_o reform_v the_o court_n that_o the_o council_n may_v not_o meddle_v with_o it_o he_o first_o publish_v a_o reformation_n of_o the_o penitentiary_n a_o very_a principal_a member_n give_v out_o a_o report_n that_o he_o will_v short_o also_o reform_v the_o chancery_n and_o the_o chamber_n every_o one_o do_v expect_v that_o the_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n shall_v have_v be_v regulate_v which_o be_v manage_v in_o that_o office_n but_o in_o the_o bull_n there_o be_v not_o any_o the_o least_o mention_n make_v of_o repentance_n conscience_n or_o any_o other_o spiritual_a thing_n only_o it_o take_v away_o the_o faculty_n which_o the_o penitentiary_n do_v exercise_v in_o diverse_a cause_n beneficial_a belong_v to_o the_o exterior_a discipline_n of_o regular_a friar_n not_o express_v whether_o that_o provision_n be_v make_v to_o give_v those_o faculty_n to_o some_o other_o officer_n or_o whether_o he_o esteem_v they_o abuse_n undecent_a and_o will_v banish_v they_o from_o rome_n but_o the_o event_n do_v immediate_o take_v away_o the_o doubt_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v obtain_v from_o the_o datary_n and_o by_o other_o way_n only_o with_o great_a charge_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o to_o return_v to_o trent_n the_o father_n have_v deliver_v their_o opinion_n and_o the_o deputy_n frame_v nine_o decree_n for_o the_o article_n of_o matrimony_n as_o already_o decide_v and_o of_o residency_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o legate_n and_o of_o some_o of_o the_o father_n persuade_v thereunto_o be_v omit_v they_o propose_v they_o to_o be_v establish_v in_o congregation_n and_o to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o session_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v by_o reason_n of_o this_o omission_n the_o demand_n of_o those_o that_o favour_a residency_n residence_n another_o contendon_n about_o residence_n be_v stir_v up_o whereunto_o the_o legate_n answer_v that_o that_o article_n be_v not_o well_o discuss_v nor_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v propose_v in_o that_o session_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o time_n convenient_a they_o be_v more_o earnest_a than_o before_o allege_v that_o there_o will_v never_o be_v a_o great_a opportunity_n murmur_v that_o it_o be_v a_o trick_n never_o to_o conclude_v it_o but_o they_o be_v force_v to_o relent_v see_v the_o legate_n resolute_a not_o to_o handle_v it_o then_o and_o because_o those_o of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n encourage_v from_o rome_n do_v labour_n more_o effectual_o to_o the_o contrary_n therefore_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o article_n only_o with_o some_o few_o alteration_n the_o nine_o head_n be_v frame_v the_o maquis_n of_o pescara_n make_v earnest_a suit_n in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o that_o council_n may_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n begin_v under_o paul_n 3._o and_o prosecute_v under_o julius_n he_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n declare_v the_o spanish_a ambassador_n make_v siut_a to_o have_v the_o continuation_n declare_v and_o other_o who_o follow_v they_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v for_o necessity_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o otherwise_o the_o determination_n already_o make_v will_v be_v question_v which_o will_v be_v a_o notable_a impiety_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n use_v strong_a persuasion_n to_o the_o contrary_a say_v they_o will_v present_o depart_v ambassador_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n &_o protest_v for_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v his_o word_n to_o germany_n that_o that_o convocation_n shall_v be_v a_o new_a council_n he_o can_v not_o endure_v so_o great_a a_o affront_n they_o say_v they_o will_v not_o by_o this_o mean_n reexamine_v the_o thing_n decide_v but_o that_o while_o there_o be_v hope_n to_o reduce_v germany_n they_o will_v not_o cut_v it_o off_o especial_o with_o so_o much_o disgrace_n of_o the_o emperor_n card._n seripando_n have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v determine_v to_o be_v a_o continuation_n &_o former_o in_o make_v the_o bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n do_v labour_n therein_o &_o do_v now_o effectual_o further_a the_o spaniard_n request_n but_o mantua_n do_v constant_o resist_v that_o such_o a_o injury_n may_v not_o be_v do_v to_o the_o emperor_n without_o necessity_n and_o he_o find_v a_o temper_n to_o pacify_v the_o spaniard_n say_v that_o have_v already_o hold_v 2._o session_n without_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o proposition_n it_o will_v be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o defer_v it_o also_o to_o another_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n to_o depart_v and_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o card._n cause_v pescara_n to_o proceed_v more_o rimisly_a and_o letter_n come_v very_o fit_o from_o lewis_n de_fw-fr lansac_n chief_a of_o the_o ambassador_n send_v to_o the_o council_n from_o the_o french_a king_n who_o be_v in_o his_o voyage_n not_o far_o distant_a write_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o father_n to_o pray_v they_o that_o the_o session_n may_v be_v prorogue_v until_o he_o &_o his_o colleague_n be_v come_v mantua_n make_v use_n of_o this_o occasion_n propose_v the_o prorogation_n of_o the_o session_n for_o which_o though_o they_o will_v not_o consent_v in_o regard_n of_o maintain_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o synod_n yet_o they_o resolve_v some_o for_o one_o respect_n some_o for_o another_o and_o some_o because_o the_o humour_n of_o residence_n be_v not_o well_o quiet_v to_o celebrate_v it_o without_o propose_v any_o thing_n the_o 14._o day_n be_v come_v they_o meet_v in_o the_o public_a session_n with_o the_o usual_a hold_v a_o session_n be_v hold_v ceremony_n where_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o prayer_n accustom_v be_v end_v the_o secretary_n read_v the_o mandate_n of_o prince_n according_a to_o the_o order_n in_o which_o the_o ambassador_n present_v themselves_o in_o congregation_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n of_o the_o swiss_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o hungary_n and_o of_o